Skip to main content

Full text of "A commentary upon the Gospel according to S. Luke"

See other formats


^j5SfOFPwmS5; 


: 

BS  2595  .C9713  1859  v. 2 
Cyril,  ca.  370-444. 
A  commentary  upon  the  Gospe 
according  to  S.  Luke 


/•?•• 


V 

A    COMMENTARY 


U "i    -  '   'z:~ 

vJU:.      -  -    'ZwJ 


UPON 


TEE  GOSPEL  ACCOKDING  TO  S.  LUKE, 


BY 
l/ 

S.  CYRIL, 

PATRIARCH    OF    ALEXANDRIA. 


NOW  FIRST  TRANSLATED  INTO  ENGLISH 

FROM  AN  ANCIENT   SYRIAC  VERSION 

BY 

R.  PAYNE    SMITH,  M.A., 

SUBLIBRARIAN    OF  THE    BODLEIAN    LIBRARY. 


PART   II. 


OXFORD: 

AT    THE    UNIVERSITY    PRESS. 
M.DCCC.LIX. 


Till]  SECOND  BOOK 


THE  SECOND  BOOK 


OP   THE 


FXPLANATION  OF  THE  GOSPEL  OF  LUKE, 


BY 


THE    HOLY    CYRIL, 

ARCHBISHOP  OF  ALEXANDRIA. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  S69 


BOOK  II. 


SERMON   LXXXL 

But  if  I  by  Beelzebub  cast  out  the  devils,  by  whom  do  your  C.  xi.  19- 
sons  cast  them  out  ?    Therefore  they  shall  be  your  judges.  " 
But  if  I  by  the  finger  of  God  cast  out  the  devils,  then  the 
kingdom  of  God  has  come  upon  you.     When  the  strong 
man  armed  guardeth  his  house,  his  goods  are  in  peace  : 
but  when  He    Who  is  stronger  than  he  shall  come  upon 
him,  and  overcome  him,  He  takethfrom  him  all  his  armour 
wherein  he  trusted,  and  divideth  his  spoils.    He  that  is  not 
with  Me  is  against  Me :  and  he  that  gathereth  not  with 
Me,  scattereth  for  Me.     When  the  unclean  spirit  hath  gone  o-KoPTri(ei 
forth  from  the  man,  it  wandereth  about  in  places  where  M°' 
there  is  no  water,  seeking  rest :  and  not  having  found  it, 
then  it  saith,  I  will  return  to  my  house,  whence  I  came  out.  t6t<-  \iyn 
And  when  it  cometh,  it  findeth  it  empty,  swept,  and  gar-  om'  r6rf 
nished.      Then  it  goeth,  and  bringeth  seven  other  spirits  GTs. 
worse  than  itself,  and  they  enter  in  and  dwell  there.     And  \^0VTa  g. 
the  last  state  of  that  man  is  made  worse  than  the  first. 

THE  God  of  all,  blaming  the  haughtiness  of  the  Jews,  and 
their  constant  tendency  to  run  into  disobedience,  thus  spake  by 
the  voice  of  Isaiah ;  "  Hear,  0  heavens,  and  give  ear,  0  earth ;  is.  i.  2. 
"  for  the  Lord  hath  spoken.  I  have  begotten,  and  brought  up 
"  sons ;  and  they  have  rejected  Me."  For  they  rejected  God 
the  Father,  by  setting  in  manifold  ways  the  Son  at  nought, 
Who,  though  sprung  from  Him  by  nature,  yet  afterwards 
was  made  like  unto  us  for  our  sakes  :  and  yet  He  called  them 
unto  the  grace  that  is  by  faith,  and  would  have  fulfilled  the 
promise  given  unto  their  fathers.  For  of  this  the  sacred  Paul 
bears  witness,  where  he  writes,  "  For  I  say  that  Christ  was  a  Rom.  xv.  8. 
"  minister  of  the  circumcision,  to  fulfil  the  promises  of  the 
"  fathers :  and  that  the  Gentiles  might  glorify  God  for  mercy." 
The  Only-begotten  Word  of  God  therefore  was  made  man, 
that  He  might  fulfil  the  promise  of  the  blessing  granted  unto 

3* 


370  COMMENTARY  UPON 

them.  And  that  they  might  know  that  it  was  He  Whom  the 
law  had  prefigured  by  shadows,  and  Whom  the  company  also 
of  the  holy  prophets  had  foretold,  He  wrought  these  godlike 
deeds,  and  rebuked  the  unclean  spirits.  But  they,  though  it 
was  their  duty  to  have  praised  Him,  as  doing  wonders,  as  One 
Who  possessed  a  power  and  authority  beyond  that  of  nature, 
and  incomparable  in  degree,  on  the  contrary  disparaged  His 
o-lorv,  saving,  'c  This  man  casteth  not  out  devils  but  bv  Beel- 
"  zebub  the  prince  of  the  devils."  And  what  doth  Christ  reply 
to  this  ?  u  If  I  by  Beelzebub  cast  out  devils,  by  whom  do  your 
"  sons  cast  them  out  Vf 

Now  this  subject  was  explained  by  me  to  you  at  length  at 
our  last  meeting.  But  inasmuch  as  it  is  right  that  the  wicked- 
ness of  the  Jews,  in  thus  idly  prating  against  Him,  should  still 
further  be  rebuked  by  many  and  convincing  arguments,  He 
adds  on  this  account  to  what  had  been  already  said,  an  unan- 
swerable consideration.  And  what  this  is,  I  will  now  mention 
to  you  as  to  my  children. 

The  blessed  disciples  were  Jews,  and  the  children  of  Jews, 
according  to  the  flesh ;  but  they  had  obtained  authority  from 
Christ  over  unclean  spirits,  and  set  free  those  that  were  pos- 
sessed by  them,  by  calling  over  them  these  words,  "  In  the 
"  Name  of  Jesus  Christ."  For  Paul  also  once  with  apostolic 
Acta  xvi.  authority  commanded  an  unclean  spirit,  saying,  "  I  command 
l8-  "  thee,  in  the  Name  of  Jesus  Christ,   to  come  out  of  her." 

When  therefore  He  says,  your  own  children  in  My  Name 
trample  upon  Beelzebub,  by  rebuking  his  satellites,  and  ex- 
pelling them  forthwith  from  those  in  whom  they  are,  what  else 
is  it  but  manifest  blasphemy,  joined  with  great  ignorance,  to 
say  that  I  borrow  this  power  from  Beelzebub  ?  Ye  are  con- 
victed therefore,  He  says,  by  the  faith  of  your  own  children, 
if,  as  is  the  case,  they  having  received  of  Me  authority  and 
power,  overthrow  Satan,  and  against  his  will  drive  him  from 
those  in  whom  he  dwells ;  while  ye  affirm,  that  I  make  use  of 
his  agency  in  working  divine  miracles.  But  inasmuch  as  what 
ye  say  is  not  true,  but,  on  the  contrary,  empty  and  false,  and 
liable  to  the  charge  of  calumny,  it  is  plain  that  I  cast  out 
Mat.  xii.  devils  by  the  finger  of  God.  And  by  the  finger  of  God  He 
means  the  Holy  Ghost.  For  the  Son  is  called  the  hand  and 
arm  of  God  the  Father ;  for  He  doeth  all  things  by  the  Son, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  371 

and  the  Son  in  like  manner  worketh  by  the  Spirit.     For  just 
as  the  finger  is  appended  to  the  hand,  as  something  not  foreign 
from  it,  but  belonging  to  it  by  nature,  so  also  the  Holy  Ghost, 
by  reason  of  His  being  equal  in  substance,  is  joined  in  oneness  to 
the  Son,  even  though  He  proceed  from  God  the  Father.    For, 
as   1   said,  the  Son  does  every  thing  by  the  consubstantial 
Spirit.     Here,  however,  purposely  He  says,  that  by  the  finger 
of  God  He  casts  out  devils,  speaking  as  a  man :  because  the 
Jews  in  the  infirmity  and  folly  of  their  mind,  would  not  have 
endured  it,  if  He  had  said,  "by  My  own  Spirit  I  cast  out 
"  devils."     Appeasing  therefore  their  excessive  readiness  to 
anger,  and  the  proneness  of  their  mind  unto  insolence  and 
phrensy,  He  spake  as  a  man,  although  He  is  by  nature  God, 
and  Himself  the   Giver  of  the  Spirit  from   God  the  Father 
to  those  who  are  worthy,  and  employs  as  His  own  that  power 
which  is  from  Him.      For  He   is   consubstantial  with   Him, 
and  whatsoever  is  said  to  be  done  by  God  the  Father,  this 
necessarily  is  by  the  Son  in  the  Spirit.     If  therefore,  He  says, 
I,  being  a  man,  and  having  become  like  unto  you,  cast  out 
devils  in  the  Spirit  of  God,  human  nature  has  in   Me  first 
attained  to  a  godlike  kingdom.     For  it  has  become  glorious  bv 
breaking  the  power  of  Satan,  and  rebuking  the  impure  and 
abominable  spirits  :  for  such  is  the  meaning  of  the  words,  that 
"the  kingdom  of  God  has  come  upon  you."    But  the  Jews  did 
not  understand  the  mystery  of  the  dispensation  of  the  Only- 
begotten  in  the  flesh  :    and  yet  how  ought  they  not  rather  to 
have  reflected,  that  by  the  Only -begotten  "Word  of  God  having 
become  man,  without  ceasing  to  be  that  which  He* was,  He 
glorified  the  nature  of  man,  in  that  He  did  not  disdain  to  take 
upon  Him  it3  meanness,  in  order  that  He  might  bestow  upon 
it  His  own  riches. 

And  inasmuch  as  it  was  necessary,  as  I  shewed,  that  the 
argument  upon  this  subject  should  travel  through  many  consi- 
derations, He  makes  use  of  a  most  plain  and  evident  compa- 
rison, by  means  of  which  those  who  will  may  see,  that  He  has 
conquered  the  ruler  of  this  world,  and  having,  so  to  speak, 
hamstrung  him,  and  stripped  him  of  the  power  which  he  pos- 
sessed, has  given  him  over  for  a  prey  unto  His  followers. 
"  For  when,  He  says,  the  strong  man  being  armed  guardcth 
"  his  house,  all  his  goods  are  in  peace :  but  when  One  That  is 

3b2 


372  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  stronger  than  he  shall  come  upon  him,  and  overcome  him, 
"  He  taketh  away  all  his  armour  wherein  he  trusted,  and  divi- 
"  deth  his  spoil."  This  is,  as  I  said,  a  plain  demonstration,  and 
typo  of  the  matter  depicted  after  the  manner  of  human  affairs. 
For  as  long  as  a  strong  man  retains  the  superiority,  and  guards 
his  own  property,  he  is  in  no  danger  of  being  plundered. 
But  when  one  who  is  stronger  than  he,  and  more  powerful, 
comes  upon  him,  and  prevails  against  him,  then  forthwith  he  is 
spoiled.  And  such  has  been  the  fate  of  our  common  enemy, 
the  wicked  Satan,  that  many  headed  serpent,  the  inventor  of 
sin.  For  before  the  coming  of  the  Saviour,  he  was  in  great 
power,  driving  and  shutting  up,  so  to  speak,  in  his  own  stall 
flocks  not  his  own,  but  belonging  to  God  over  all,  like  some 
rapacious  and  most  insolent  robber.  But  inasmuch  as  the  Word 
of  God  Who  is  above  all,  the  Giver  of  all  might,  and  Lord  of 
powers  assailed  Him,  having  become  man,  all  his  goods 
have  been  plundered,  and  his  spoil  divided.  For  those  who  of 
old  had  been  ensnared  by  him  into  ungodliness  and  error  have 
been  called  by  the  holy  apostles  to  the  acknowledgment  of  the 
truth,  and  been  brought  near  unto  God  the  Father  by  faith  in 
His  Son. 

Wouldst  thou  also  hear  and  learn  another  convincing  argu- 
ment besides  these  ?  "  He  that  is  not  with  Me,"  He  says,  "  is 
"  against  Me :  and  he  that  gathereth  not  with  Me,  scattereth 
for  Me."  For  I,  He  says,  have  come  to  save  every  man  from 
the  hands  of  the  devil ;  to  deliver  from  his  guile  those  whom 
he  had  ensnared ;  to  set  the  prisoners  free ;  to  give  light  to 
those  in  darkness ;  to  raise  up  them  that  had  fallen  ;  to  heal 
the  broken-spirited  :  and  to  gather  together  the  children  of 
God  who  were  scattered  abroad.  Such  was  the  object  of 
My  coming  T  But  Satan  is  not  with  Me ;  on  the  contrary  he 
is  against  Me.  For  he  ventures  to  scatter  those  whom  I  have 
gathered  and  saved.  How  then  can  he,  who  wars  against  Me, 
and  sets  his  wickedness  in  array  against  My  purposes,  give  Me 
power  against  himself?  How  is  it  not  foolish  even  barely  to 
imagine  the  possibility  of  such  a  thing  as  this  ? 

The  cause  however  which  made  the  Jewish  multitudes  fall 
into  such  thoughts  concerning  Christ  He  Himself  makes  plain, 
by  saying  ;  "  When  the  wicked  spirit  hath  gone  forth  from 
"  the  man,  it  returneth  with  seven  other  spirits  more  bitter 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  37S 

"  than  itself ;  and  the  last  state  of  that  man  is  worse  than  the 
"  first."  For  as  long  as  they  were  in  bondage  in  Egypt,  and 
lived  according  to  the  customs  and  laws  of  the  Egyptians, 
which  were  full  of  all  impurity,  they  led  polluted  lives ;  an 
evil  spirit  dwelt  in  them :  for  it  dwells  in  the  hearts  of  the 
wicked.  But  when  in  the  mercy  of  God  they  had  been  delivered 
by  Moses,  and  received  the  law  as  a  schoolmaster,  calling  them 
to  the  light  of  the  true  knowledge  of  God,  the  impure  and  pol- 
luted spirit  was  driven  out z.  But  because  they  did  not  believe 
in  Christ,  but  rejected  the  Saviour,  the  impure  spirit  again 
attacked  them:  for  he  found  their  heart  empty,  and  devoid 
of  all  fear  of  God,  and,  swept  as  it  were,  and  took  up  his 
abode  in  them.  For  just  as  the  Holy  Ghost,  when  He  sees 
any  one's  heart  free  from  all  impurity,  and  clean,  dwells  and 
abides  there,  and  rests  therein ;  so  also  the  impure  spirit  is 
wont  to  dwell  in  the  souls  of  the  wicked.  For  they  are  devoid, 
as  I  said,  of  all  virtue :  and  there  is  in  them  no  fear  of  God. 
The  last  state  therefore  of  the  Israelites  has  become  worse 
than  the  first.  For  as  the  disciple  of  the  Saviour  said ;  "  It  2  Pet.  ii. 
"  had  been  better  for  them  not  to  have  known  the  way  of21" 
"  truth,  than  that  when  they  have  known  it,  they  should  turn 
"  back  again  from  the  holy  commandment  that  was  delivered 
"  unto  them.  It  has  happened  to  them  according  to  the  true 
"  proverb  ;  The  dog  that  returned  to  its  vomit ;  and  the 
"  washed  sow  to  wallow  in  the  mire."  Let  us  flee  therefore 
from  being  like  the  Jews ;  let  Christ  Who  worketh  miracles, 
be  extolled  by  us :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen. 

z  An  instance  occurs  in  this  place  p.  334  C,  to  the  effect  that  the  ex- 

of  the  neatness  with  which  the  Ca-  pulsion   of  the   spirit  took    place, 

tenists  inserted  passages  from  other  "  when  they  sacrificed  the  lamb  as 

works  of  S.  Cyril  in  the  body  of  the  "  a  type  of  Christ,  and  were  anoint- 

Commentary.    For  two  lines  merely  f  ed  with   its   blood,  and  escaped 

are  here  added  from  the  Glaphyra,  "  the  destroyer." 


374  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  LXXXIL 

C.  xi.  29-  And  when  the  multitudes  were  gathered  together,  He  began  to 
om.  ytvtk  say  ;  This  generation  is  an  evil  generation.  It  seeketh 
alterumGi.      a  s^n  .  an(jj  a  s^n  s]ian  not  oe  giVGn  it,  except  the  sign  of 

Jonah*. 


From  Mai.      THE  request  originated  in  malice,  and  therefore  was  not 

Hoa.  v.  6.   granted  them,  according  to  the  text,  "  The  wicked  shall  seek 
"  Me,  and  shall  not  find  Me."        *  *  *  * 

From  the    *  *  *  *  and  which  He  spake  to  the  divine 

Moses ;  the  rod  was  changed  into  a  serpent.  And  what  thing 
is  this?  some  one,  forsooth,  may  say;  or  what  is  the  truth  it 
hints  at  ?  And  this  certainly  we  must  examine :  for  I  say  that 
of  all  that  is  contained  in  the  sacred  Scriptures,  there  is  nothing 
which  is  not  useful  for  edification.  When  Israel  then  had 
dwelt  for  a  lengthened  period  in  Egypt,  and  been  brought  up 
in  the  customs  of  its  inhabitants,  he  wandered  far  from  God, 
and  became  like  one  that  had  fallen  from  His  hand,  and  been 
made  a  serpent,  by  which  is  meant  one  naturally  of  a 
thoroughly  wicked  disposition.  But  inasmuch  as  God  again 
took  hold  of  him,  he  was  restored  to  his  former  state,  and 
became  a  rod,  that  is  to  say,  a  plant  of  Paradise.  For  he  was 
called  to  the  true  knowledge  of  God,  and  enriched  with  the 
law  as  the  means  of  a  virtuous  life. 

Moreover  God  wrought  also  something  further  of  an  equally 

Ex.  iv.  6.  miraculous  character.  For  He  said  unto  Moses,  "  Put  thy 
"  hand  into  thy  bosom.  And  he  put  his  hand  into  his  bosom  ; 
"  and  he  drew  forth  his  hand  from  his  bosom,  and  his 
"  hand  had  become  leprous,  like  snow.  And  he  said  again, 
"  Put  thy  hand  into  thy  bosom.  And  he  put  his  hand  into  his 
"  bosom ;  and  he  drew  it  forth  from  his  bosom,  and  it  had 
"  gained  again  the  colour  of  his  flesh."  For  as  long  as  Israel 
adhered  to  the  customs  of  his  fathers,  and  represented  in  his 

a  A  folium  in  the  Syriac  has  seldom  preserving  the  Exordia  of 
perished,  of  which  Mai  has  reco-  these  discourses.  Of  the  next  folium 
vered  but  one  sentence,  the  Catenoe     lost  most  has  been  preserved. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  375 

own  manners  the  type   of  virtuous  living  which  he   had  in 

Abraham,  and  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  he  was,  as  it  were,  in  the 

bosom  of  God,  that  is,  under  His  guardianship  and  protection : 

but  by  abandoning  the  virtue  of  his  ancestors,  he  became,  so 

to  speak,  leprous  ;  and  fell  into  impurity  :  for  the  leper  by  the 

law  of  Moses  was  impure.    But  when  He  was  again  accepted  by 

God,  and  placed  under  His  protection,  he  was  delivered  from 

his  leprosy  ;  and  put  away  the  impurity  of  the  Egyptian  mode 

of  life.     And  when  these  signs  were  wrought  in  their  presence, 

they  believed  Moses,  saying,  "  The  Lord  God  of  your  fathers  Ex.  iv.  31. 

"  hath  sent  me  unto  you." 

Observe  therefore  that  they  did  not  make  the  display  of 
miracles  a  reason  for  fault  finding.  They  did  not  revile  the 
divine  Moses ;  they  did  not  give  free  license  to  an  unbridled 
tongue,  and  say  that  he  wrought  the  miracles  which  he  dis- 
played before  them  by  means  of  Beelzebub  :  they  did  not  ask 
a  sign  from  heaven,  in  contempt  of  his  mighty  deeds.  But 
thou  assignedst  to  Beelzebub  works  thus  honourable  and  mira- 
culous, and  wast  not  ashamed  in  bringing  to  perdition  others 
as  well  as  thy  own  self,  by  means  of  those  very  things  which 
ought  to"  have  made  thee  possess  a  steadfast  faith  in  Christ. 
But  He  will  not  grant  thee  another  sign,  that  He  may  not 
give  holy  things  unto  dogs,  nor  cast  pearls  before  swine.  For 
how  can  they  who  are  hot  calumniators  of  the  miracles  already 
wrought,  deserve  yet  more  ?  On  the  contrary  we  see  that 
very  skilful  husbandmen,  when  they  observe  land  sluggish  in 
bearing  fruit,  withhold  their  hand,  and  refuse  to  plough  it  any 
more,  that  they  may  not  suffer  the  loss  at  once  both  of  their 
labour  and  of  the  seed. 

He  said,  however,  the  sign  only  of  Jonah  shall  be  given 
them,  by  which  is  meant  the  passion  upon  the  cross,  and  the 
resurrection  from  the  dead.  "  For  as  Jonah,"  He  says,  "  was 
"  in  the  belly  of  the  fish  three  days  and  three  nights,  so  shall 
"  also  the  Son  of  Man  be  in  the  heart  of  the  earth  three  days 
"  and  three  nights."  But  had  it  been  possible  for  Jesus  not 
to  have  willed  to  suffer  death  in  the  flesh  upon  the  cross, 
neither  would  this  sign  have  been  given  to  the  Jews :  but 
inasmuch  as  the  passion,  wrought  for  the  salvation  of  the 
world,  was  indispensable,  it  was  given  these  unbelievers  for 
their  condemnation.     For  also  in  speaking  to  the  Jews,  He 


376  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Jobnii.  19.  saij^  «  Loose  this  temple,  and  in  three  days  I  will  raise  it  up." 
But  that  the  abolishing  of  death,  and  restoration  of  corruption 
by  the  resurrection  from  the  dead,  is  a  very  great  sign  of  the 
power  and  godlike  authority  of  the  Incarnate  Word,  will  be 
sufficiently  proved,  as  I  imagine,  in  the  judgment  of  serious 
men,  by  the  soldiers  of  Pilate,  who  were  appointed  to  guard 
the  tomb,  having  been  bribed  with  a  large  sum  of  money  to 

MatxxvfiL  say,  that  "  the  disciples  came  by  night,  and  stole  Him."  It 
was  therefore  no  unavailing  sign,  but  rather  one  sufficient  to 
convince  all  the  inhabitants  of  the  whole  earth,  that  Christ  is 
God,  that  of  His  own  choice  He  suffered  death  in  the  flesh,  but 
rose  again,  having  commanded  the  bonds  of  death  to  depart, 
and  overthrown  corruption.  But  the  Jews  did  not  believe 
even  this :  for  which  reason  it  was  very  justly  said  of  them, 
that  "the  queen  of  the  south  shall  rise  up  in  the  judgment 
"  against  this  generation."  *  *  *  * 

From  Mai.  *  #  This  woman,  though  a  barbarian,  earnestly  sought  to 
hear  Solomon,  and  for  this  purpose  travelled  so  vast  a  distance, 
to  listen  to  his  wisdom  upon  the  nature  of  things  visible,  and 
animals,  and  plants.  But  ye,  though  already  present,  and 
listening  to  Wisdom  Itself,  Who  came  to  you,  discoursing  upon 
things  invisible  and  heavenly,  and  confirming  what  He  said  by 
deeds  and  miracles,  turn  away  from  the  word,  and  pass  by  with 
indifference  the  wonderful  nature  of  His  oracles.  How  then  is 
there  not  more  than  Solomon  here,  that  is  in  Me  ?  And  again 
observe,  I  pray,  the  skilfulness  of  His  language  ;  for  why  does 
He  say  "  here,"  and  not  rather  "  in  Me  V  It  is  to  persuade  us 
to  be  humble,  even  though  we  be  largely  endowed  with  spiri- 
tual gifts.  And  besides,  it  is  not  at  all  unlikely,  that  had  the 
Jews  heard  Him  say,  "  that  there  is  more  than  Solomon  in 
"  Me,"  they  would  have  ventured  to  speak  of  Him  in  their 
usual  way :  '  See !  He  says,  that  He  is  superior  even  t^o  the 
4  kings  who  have  gloriously  reigned  over  us.'  The  Saviour, 
therefore,  for  the  economy's  sake,  uses  moderate  language, 
.saying,  "  here,"  instead  of  "  in  Me." 

He  says,  moreover,  that  the  Ninevites  will  appear  for  the 
condemnation  of  the  Jews  at  the  season  of  judgment:  for  they 
were  rude  and  barbarous  people,  ignorant  of  Him  Who  by 
nature  and  in  truth  is  God,  who  had  never  even  heard  of  the 
predictions  of  Moses,  and  were  without  knowledge  of  the  glo- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  377 

rious  tidings  of  prophecy :  but  even  though  this  was  their 
mental  state,  they  repented,  He  says,  at  the  preaching  of 
Jonah.  Far  better  therefore  were  they  than  the  Israelites, 
and  will  condemn  them.  But  listen  to  the  very  words  :  "  The 
"  men  of  Nineveh  shall  rise  up  in  the  judgment  with  this  gene- 
"  ration,  and  shall  condemn  it;  for  they  repented  at  the 
"  preaching  of  Jonah,  and  behold  !  more  than  Jonah  is  here." 

"No  man,  having  lighted  a  lamp,  putteth  it  into  a  cellar,  Ver.33. 
"  nor  under  the  bushel,  but  upon  the  lampstand,  that  they  who 
"  enter  in  may  see  the  light.'1     And  what  was  the  object  of 
such   words  as  these  ?     He  combats  the  Jews  by  an  objec- 
tion drawn  from  their  own  folly  and  ignorance :  for  they  said 
that  He  wrought  miracles,  not  that  He  might  be  more  fully 
believed  in,  but  that  He  might  have  numbers  of  followers,  and 
catch  the  applause  of  those  who  saw  his  wondrous  acts.     And 
this  calumny  He  refutes  by  taking  as  an  example  the  use  of  a 
lamp.     For  a  lamp,  He  says,  is  always  elevated,  and  put  upon 
a  stand,  to  be  of  use  to  those  who  see.     And  let  us  consider 
the  inference  which  follows  from  this.     Before  then  the  coming 
of  our  Saviour,  the  father  of  darkness,  even  Satan,  had  made 
the  world  dark,  and  blackened  all  things  with  an  intellectual 
gloom  ;  but  in  this  state  the  Father  gave  us  the  Son,  to  be  as 
it  were  a  lamp  to  the  world,  to  irradiate  us  with  divine  light, 
and  rescue  us  from  Satanic  darkness.     But,  0  Jew,  if  thou 
blamest  the  lamp,  because  it  is  not  hidden,  but  on  the  con- 
trary, being  set  on  high  on  a  stand,  gives  its  light  to  those  who 
see,  then  blame  Christ  for  not  wishing  to  be  concealed,  but  on 
the  contrary  to  be  seen  of  all,  illuminating  those  in  darkness, 
and  shedding  on  them  the  light  of  the  true  knowledge  of  God. 
He  did  not  therefore  fulfil  His  miracles  so  much  in  order  to  be 
wondered  at,  nor  seek  by  them  to  become  famous,  as  that 
we  might  rather  believe,  that  whereas  He  is  God  by  nature, 
yet  He  became  man  for  our  sakes,  but  without  ceasing  to 
be  what  He  was.      And  upon  the  holy  church  as  a  lamp- 
stand,  shining  by  the  doctrine  He  proclaims,  He  gives  light  to 
the  minds  of  all  by  filling  them  with  divine  knowledge. 


3  c 


378  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  LXXXIII. 

C  xi.  37-  And  as  He  was  speaking,  a  certain  Pharisee  besought  Him 
om  tis BT  t0  <^'ine  wMl  him  •'  and  He  went  in  and  lay  down  to  meat. 
But  the  Pharisee,  when  he  saw  it,  wondered  that  He  had 
not  first  washed  before  dinner.  But  the  Lord  said  unto 
him,  Now  do  ye  Pharisees  make  clean  the  outside  of  the 
cup  and  the  dish,  but  that  which  is  within  you  is  full  of 
rapine  and  wickedness.  0  ye  little  minded,  did  not  He 
Who  made  that  which  is  without,  make  that  which  is 
within  also  ?  But  whatever  there  is  give  as  alms,  and  be- 
hold !  every  thing  is  clean  unto  you. 

i Tim. i  15.  THE  very  wise  Paul  truly  tells  us,  that  "Christ  came  into 
"  the  world  to  save  sinners."  For  this  was  His  aim,  and  for 
this  purpose  He  humbled  Himself  to  the  emptying  of  His 
glory,  and  appeared  upon  earth  in  the  flesh,  and  conversed 
with  men.  For  it  was  right,  that  as  being  the  Creator  and 
Lord  of  all,  He  should  give  a  saving  hand  to  those  who  had 
fallen  into  sin,  and  show  unto  them  that  were  wandering  in 
error,  a  pathway  that  would  lead  them  straight  unto  every 
good  work,  and  the  excellence  of  virtuous  deeds.  And  it  is 
said  somewhere  also  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets,  concerning 
those  who  have  been  called  by  faith  to  the  knowledge  of  His 

la.  liv.  13.  glory  "  And  they  shall  be  all  taught  of  God."  How,  there- 
fore, does  He  lead  us  into  every  thing  that  is  useful?  By  hum- 
bling Himself  to  be  with  sinners,  and  condescending  sometimes 
even  to  those  things  that  He  would  not,  that  so  He  might  save 
many.  That  this  was  the  case  we  may  see  by  the  lessons  from 
the  gospel  now  set  before  us;  for  one  of  the  Pharisees,  it  says,  . 
besought  Him  to  dine  at  His  house  :  "  and  He  went  in,  and 
"  lay  down  to  meat."  And  yet  how  is  it  not  plain  to  every 
one,  that  the  Pharisees b  as  a  class  were  always  wicked  and 
impure,  hateful  to  God,  and  envious,  ready  for  anger,  of  innate 
pride,  and  ever  bold  of  speech  against  Christ  the  Saviour  of  us 
all?  For  they  found  fault  with" His  divine  miracles,  and  gather- 
ing wicked  troops  of  counsellors,  plotted  His  death.  How  then 
b  Literally,  the  gang  of  the  Pharisees. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  879 

did  He  become  their  guest  ?  Was  He  not  aware  of  their  mali- 
ciousness ?  But  how  can  this  be  safely  affirmed  ?  For  as  God 
He  knoweth  all  things.  What  therefore  is  the  explanation  ? 
It  is  this,  that  He  was  especially  anxious  to  admonish  them, 
therein  resembling  the  most  excellent  physicians.  For  they 
apply  the  remedies  of  their  art  to  those  who  are  most  danger- 
ously ill,  struggling  against  the  disease  under  which  they 
suffer,  and  assuaging  its  cruel  attacks.  As  they  therefore 
without  restraint  gave  way  to  an  infatuated  mind,  it  was  ne- 
cessary for  Christ  to  speak  unto  them  what  was  requisite 
and  useful  for  their  salvation.  For  as  He  Himself  some- 
where says,  "He  came  not  to  call  the  righteous,  but  sinners  to  Mat.ix.13. 
"  repentance."  And  again  He  also  said,  that  "  they  who  are  lb.  ii. 
"  whole  need  not  a  physician,  but  they  who  are  sick." 

The  Pharisee  therefore  for  some  purpose  of  his  own  invites 
Him  to  an  entertainment :  and  the  Saviour  of  all  submits,  as  I 
said,  to  this,  for  the  economy's  sake.  But  He  made  the  matter 
an  opportunity  of  giving  instruction,  not  consuming  the  time  of 
their  meeting  in  the  enjoyment  of  food  and  delicacies,  but  in 
the  task  of  making  those  more  virtuous  who  were  assembled 
there.  And  the  dull  Pharisee  himself  supplied  an  occasion  for 
His  discourse,  for  "  he  wondered,"  it  says,  "  that  He  had  not 
"  washed  before  dinner."  Did  he  then  wonder  at  Him,  as 
having  done  something  of  which  he  approved,  as  being  espe- 
cially worthy  of  the  saints  1  This  was  not  his  view :  how 
could  it  be  ?  On  the  contrary  he  was  offended,  because  having 
the  reputation  among  them  of  a  righteous  man  and  a  prophet, 
He  did  not  conform  Himself  to  their  unreasonable  customs. 
For  they  washed  before  meat,  as  though  they  so  freed  them- 
selves from  all  pollution.  But  this  was  very  absurd.  For  the 
washing  with  water  is  highly  useful  for  those  who  are  unclean 
in  body ;  but  how  can  it  free  men  from  the  defilement  of  the 
mind  and  heart  ? 

Our  argument  however  is  this :  0  foolish  Pharisee,  thou 
vauntest  much  of  thy  knowledge  of  the  sacred  Scriptures : 
thou  art  ever  quoting  the  law  of  Moses.  Tell  us  therefore 
where  Moses  gave  thee  this  precept?  What  commandment 
canst  thou  mention,  ordained  by  God,  requiring  men  to  wash 
before  meat  ?  The  waters  of  sprinkling  were  indeed  given  by 
the  command  of  Moses  for  the  cleansing  of  corporeal  unclean- 

3  c  2 


380  COMMENTARY  UPON 

ness,  as  being  a  type  of  the  baptism  which  really  is  holy  and 
cleansing,  even  that  in  Christ.  Those  also  who  were  called 
unto  the  priesthood  were  bathed  in  water-:  for  so  did  the 
divine  Moses  bathe  Aaron,  and  the  Levites  with  him,  the  law 
thereby  declaring  by  means  of  the  baptism  enacted  in  type 
and  shadow,  that  even  its  priesthood  had  not  that  which  suf- 
ficeth  for  sanctification,  but,  on  the  contrary,  needs  divine 
and  holy  baptism  for  the  true  cleansing :  and  further,  beauti- 
fully shewing  us  that  the  Saviour  of  all  is  sufficient  to  sanctify 
and  cleanse  from  all  defilement,  by  means  of  holy  and  precious 
baptism,  ourselves,  who  are  the  generation  consecrated  to  and 
elect  of  God.  Plainly  however,  he  nowhere  commands  it  as  a 
duty  to  wash  before  eating.  Why  therefore  dost  thou  wonder, 
or  for  what  reason  art  thou  offended,  0  Pharisee  ?  He  Who 
Himself  spake  it  in  old  time  has  not  violated  the  precept  of 
Moses :  and,  as  I  said,  the  law,  which  thou  makest  a  profes- 
sion of  honouring,  has  nowhere  given  thee  any  such  com- 
mandment. 

But  what  said  the  Saviour  ?  He  most  opportunely  rebuked 
them,  saying,  "  Now  do  ye  Pharisees  make  clean  the  outside 
"  of  the  cup,  and  the  dish  ;  but  that  which  is  within  you  is  full 
"  of  rapine  and  wickedness."  For  it  would  have  been  easy  for 
the  Lord  to  have  used  other  words  with  the  view  of  instructing 
the  foolish  Pharisee,  but  He  found  an  opportunity,  and,  so  to 
speak,  connects  His  teaching  with  what  was  before  their  eyes. 
For  as  it  was  the  time  of  eating,  and  of  sitting  at  table,  He  takes 
as  a  plain  comparison  the  cup  and  the  dish,  and  shows  that 
those  who  sincerely  serve  God  must  be  pure  and  clean,  not 
only  from  bodily  impurity,  but  also  from  that  hidden  within 
in  the  mind ;  just,  for  instance,  as  those  utensils  also  that  serve 
the  table  must  be  cleansed  both  from  those  impurities  that  are 
on  the  outside,  and  also  as  well  from  those  that  arc  within. 
"For  He  who  made,"  He  says,  "that  which  is  without,  made 
"  also  that  which  is  within  :"  by  which  is  meant,  that  He  Who 
created  the  body  made  also  the  soul.  As  therefore  they  are 
both  the  works  of  one  virtue-loving  God,  their  purification 
must  be  uniform. 

But  this  was  not  the  practice  of  the  Scribes  and  Pharisees ; 
for  so  far  as  the  mere  reputation  went  of  being  clean,  they 
were  anxious  to  do  every  thing.     They  went  about  with  sad 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  381 

looks,  as  though  pale  from  fasting ;  and  as  the  Saviour  says, 
"  made  broad  the  hems  of  their   robes,  and  widened    their  Mat.  xxiii. 
"  phylacteries,  and  stood  in  the  streets  and  prayed,  that  they  j^at  ^ 
"  might  be  seen  of  many/'  wishing  rather  to  have  praise  of 
men  than  God,  and  to  carry  off  the  applause  of  the  spectators. 
And,  to  speak  briefly,  while  they  exhibited  themselves  to  the 
lookers  on  as  the  very  pattern  of  the  life  of  virtue  that  is  by 
the  law,  they  in  every  possible  way  withdrew  from  being  lovers 
of  God.  "Whitened  sepulchres  were  they,"  as  the  Saviour  said,  Mat.  xxiii. 
"which  on  the  outside  are  beautiful,  but  inside  are  full  of3'' 
"  bones  of  the  dead,  and  of  all  uncleannessc."     But  Christ 
willeth  not  that  we  be  such  as  these,  but  rather  spiritual  wor- 
shippers, holy  and  without  blame  both  in  soul  and  body.     For 
one   also  of  our   communion  said,  "Cleanse  your  hands  ye  James  iv.  8. 
"  sinners,  and  sanctify  your  hearts,  ye  double-minded."     And 
the  prophet  David  somewhere  sings,  "  Create  in  me  a  clean  Ps.  H.  10. 
"  heart,  0  God,  and  renew  a  right  spirit  within  me."     And 
again  the  prophet  Isaiah  speaks  as  in  the  person  of  God, 
"  Wash  you,  make  you  clean ;  put  away  iniquities  from  your  is.  i.  16. 
"  souls  from  before  My  eyes.     Cease  from  your  iniquities." 
Observe  the  exactness  of  the  expression :  for  His  words  are, 
"  From  before  My  eyes  put  away  iniquities  from  your  souls." 
For  the  wicked  do  sometimes  escape  the  eyes  of  men,  but 
never  can  they  escape  those  of  God.     It  is  our  duty  therefore, 
inasmuch  as  God  sees  what  is  secret,  to  put  away  wickedness 
from  before  His  eyes. 

But  the  Pharisees  had  no  knowledge  of  any  such  method 
of  virtuous  living :  what  medicine  therefore  did  the  Saviour 
offer  them  after  His  rebukes  ?  How  did  He  Who  smote  them 
make  them  whole  ?  "  Whatever  ye  have,"  He  says,  "  give  as 
"  alms :  and  lo  !  every  thing  is  pure  unto  you."  And  yet  we 
affirm  that  there  are  many  ways  of  virtuous  conduct,  such  for 
instance  as  meekness,  humility,  and  other  kindred  virtues  : 
whv  therefore  did  He  omit  these,  and  command  them  to  be 


c  Mai  mentions,  that  in  one  of  his  mentary.     As  the  Syriac  however 

Codices,  A,  a  passage  here  inserted  does  not  recognise  it,  the  alterations 

is  said  to  he  from  the  Julian  books ;  are  probably  rather  to  be  regarded 

but  as  it  differs  in  some  respects  from  as  made  by  the  Catenist  to  fit  the 

its  form  there,  he  thinks  it  possible  passage  to  its  new  position, 
that  S.  Cyril  repeated  it  in  the  Com- 


382  COMMENTARY  UPON 

compassionate?  What  answer  do  we  make  to  this  ?  The  Pha- 
risees then  were  exceedingly  avaricious,  and  the  slaves  of  base 
gains,  and  accumulated  with  greedy  hand  stores  of  wealth. 
For  the  God  of  all  even  somewhere  said  concerning  them, 

la.  i. -21.  "  How  has  the  faithful  city  Zion,  that  was  full  of  judgment, 
"  become  a  harlot !  Righteousness  lodged  in  her,  but  now 
"  murderers !  Your  silver  is  adulterate ;  thy  merchants  mingle 
"  the  wine  with  water ;  thy  princes  are  disobedient,  the  part- 
"  ners  of  thieves,  loving  bribes,  running  after  recompense ; 
"■  they  judge  not  the  fatherless,  and  regard  not  the  suit  of  the 
"  widow."  He  purposely  therefore  had  regard  to  that  malady 
which  had  possession  of  them,  and  tears  their  avarice  up  by 
the  root,  that  being  delivered  from  its  wickedness,  and  at- 
taining to  purity  in  mind  and  heart,  they  might  become  true 
worshippers. 

The  Saviour  therefore  in  all  these  things  acted  in  accordance 
with  the  plan  of  salvation ;  and  being  invited  to  a  banquet, 
bestowed  spiritual  food,  not  only  upon  His  entertainer,  but 
upon  all  those  who  were  feasting  with  Him.     And  let  us  too 

John  vi.  5 1.  pray  Him  for  this  spiritual  food;  for  "He  is  that  living 
"  Bread,  which  came  down  from  heaven,  and  giveth  life  unto 
"  the  world :"  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father 
be  praise  and_  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and 
ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  3&J 


SERMON  LXXXIV. 

But  woe  unto  you,  Pharisees!  who  tithe  mint  and  rue  ancle,  xi.  +i- 
all  herbs,  and  pass  over  judgment  and  the  love  of  God.  44' 
But  these  thinqs  ought  ye  to  have  done,  and  not  to  leave  T<™ T"  BTr. 
the  other  undone.     Woe  unto  you,  Phansees  !  jor  ye  love  ^^0^ 
the  uppermost  seat  in  the  synagogues,  and  greetings  in  the  r£v 
markets.    Woe  unto  you  !  for  ye  are  as  those  graves  which  gSj. 
appear  not,  and  the  men  that  walk  over  them  know  it  not.   *'?/**{ 

.     Qapuraioi 

THOSE  who  are  exact  observers  of  the  sacred  command-  broKpirai  *. 
ments  do  not  venture  in  any  way  whatsoever  to  offend  the 
God  of  all.  For  they  feel  the  truth  of  what  is  written,  "  That  James  ii. 
"  whosoever  shall  keep  the  whole  law,  but  shall  offend  in  one 
"  particular,  becomes  guilty  of  all.  For  He  Who  said,  Thou 
"  shalt  not  commit  adultery,  said  also,  Thou  shalt  not  kill.  If 
"  then  thou  commit  not  adultery,  but  yet  killest,  thou  art 
"  become  a  transgressor  of  the  law."  The  transgression  there- 
fore of  one  commandment  transgresses  the  law,  that  is,. proves 
the  man  to  be  without  the  law.  But  when  any  one  disre- 
gards those  commandments,  which  especially  are  important 
above  the  rest,  what  words  will  he  find  able  to  save  him  from 
deserved  punishment  ?  That  the  Pharisees  then  merited  these 
severe  censures,  the  Lord  proved  against  them,  saying,  "  Woe 
"  unto  you,  Pharisees !  who  tithe  mint  and  rue  and  all  herbs, 
"  and  pass  over  judgment  and  the  love  of  God.  These  things 
"  ought  ye  to  have  done,  and  not  to  pass  by d  the  other,  that 
"  is,  to  leave  them  undone."  For  while  they  omitted,  as  of  no 
importance,  those  duties  which  they  were  especially  bound  to 
practice,  as,  for  instance,  judgment  and  the  love  of  God,  they 
carefully  and  scrupulously  observed,  or  rather  commanded  the 
people  subject  to  their  authority  to  observe,  those  command- 
ments  only  which  were  a  way  and  means  of  great  revenues  for 
themselves. 

d  From  this  it  is  possible  that  S.     explaining  it   by  afaevai,  his   own 
Cyril  really  read  nape'ivai.,  as  other-     reading  in  the  text, 
wise  one  can  see  no  reason  for  his 


38-t  COMMENTARY  UPON 

But  more  fully  to  explain  these  things  to  thee,  my  beloved, 
I  must  speak  as  follows.  The  law  of  Moses  commanded  tithes 
to  be  offered  to  the  priests  by  the  Israelites.     Fur  it  spake 

Deut.  xviii.  thus  ;  "  The  sons  of  Levi  shall  have  no  inheritance  among  the 
"  children  of  Israel.  The  offerings  of  the  Lord  are  their 
"  inheritance."  For  whatsoever  was  offered  by  any  one  for 
the  glory  of  God,  on  the  score  I  mean  of  tithe,  this  God  set 
apart  for  those  whose  office  it  was  to  minister ;  and  this  was 
their  inheritance.  But  inasmuch  as  the  Pharisees  above  all 
others  were  covetous,  and  fond  of  disgraceful  gains,  they  com- 
manded that  this  law  of  tithing  should  be  observed  carefully 
and  scrupulously,  so  as  not  even  to  omit  the  most  paltry  and 
insignificant  herbs ;  while  they  carelessly  disregarded  what 
they  ought  to  have  observed,  namely,  the  more  essential  com- 
mandments given  by  Moses;  such,  for  instance,  as  judgment, 
by  which  is  meant  justice  in  passing  judgment,  and  the  love  of 
God.  For  it  would  have  been  a  just  judgment,  and  an  upright 
sentence,  to  have  considered  every  thing  that  was  commanded 
deserving  of  equal  care  and  attention,  and  not  to  neglect  things 
of  primary  importance,  while  they  paid  a  scrupulous  regard  to 
those  only  which  were  to  their  profit.  And  the  effect  of  love 
to  God  would  have  been  to  avoid  making  Him  angry  in  any 
respect,  and  to  dread  the  violation  of  any  part  whatsoever  of 
the  law. 

Or  to  put  it  in  another  light,  one  may  say,  that  judgment 
would  have  been  to  decree  just  sentences,  and  to  make  upon  no 
matter  whatsoever  an  unfair  decision.  And  this  too  was  disre- 
garded by  the  Pharisees ;  for  the  Spirit  rebuked  them  by  the 

P3.  Lxxxii.  voice  of  David,  thus  saying,  "  God  arose  in  the  congregation  of 

'"  "  the  Gods,  and  in  the  midst  of  the  Gods  He  judgcth.     How 

"  long  judge   ye    unjustly,   and   accept   the   persons   of  the 
"  wicked?"    He  accused  them  also  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah, 

Is.  lit.  saying,  "  How  has  the  faithful  city  Zion,  that  was  full  of 
"judgment,  become  a  harlot?  Righteousness  lodged  in  her, 
w  but  now  murderers.  Your  silver  is  adulterate :  thy  mer- 
"  chant3  mingle  the  wine  with  water :  thy  princes  arc  disobe- 
"  dient,  the  partners  of  thieves,  loving  bribes,  running  after 
"  recompense :  they  judge  not  the  fatherless,  and  regard  not 
"  the  suit  of  the  widow."  For  to  judge  unjustly  is  not  the  part 
of  those  who  practice  love  to  the  brethren,  but  the  crime  rather 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  385 

of  an  iniquitous  mind,  and  a  plain  proof  of  a  falling  away  into 
sin.  While  therefore  ye  tithe  mint,  He  says,  and  rue,  and 
every  herb,  and  ordain  that  the  commandment  upon  these 
points  is  to  be  strictly  kept,  ye  deign  no  attention  to  the 
weightier  matters  of  the  law,  to  those  commandments,  I  mean, 
which  are  more  especially  necessary  and  beneficial  to  the  soul, 
and  by  means  of  which  ye  might  prove  yourselves  honourable 
and  holy,  and  full  of  such  praises  as  become  those  whose  desire 
it  is  to  love  God,  and  please  Him. 

And  He  adds  yet  another  woe  to  those  already  spoken, 
saying,  ""Woe  unto  you,  Pharisees,  who  love  the  uppermost 
"  seat  in  the  synagogues,  and  greetings  in  the  market  places." 
Is  then  this  reproof  useful  to  the  Pharisees  only  ?  Not  so  :  for 
the  benefit  of  it  extends  even  unto  us :  for  by  the  rebukes 
He  addressed  to  them,  He  effects  also  our  improvement.  For 
true  it  is,  that  those  who  are  perfect  in  mind,  and  lovers  of  up- 
right conduct,  find  in  the  rebukes  of  others  the  means  of  their 
own  safety.  For  they  of  course  avoid  imitating  them,  and  do 
not  expose  themselves  to  being  caught  in  similar  faults.  The 
accusation  therefore  which  Christ  brino-s  against  the  Pharisees, 

DO  * 

that  they  seek  for  greetings  in  the  market  places,  and  the 
uppermost  seats  in  the  synagogues,  or  meetings,  shews  that 
they  were  fond  of  praise,  and  wont  to  indulge  themselves  in 
empty  ostentation,  and  an  absurd  superciliousness.  And  what 
can  be  worse  than  this  ?  or  how  must  not  such  conduct  be 
hateful  to  every  man,  as  being  boastful  and  annoying,  and  des- 
titute of  the  praises  of  virtue,  and  intent  solely  upon  stealing 
the  reputation  of  being  honourable.  And  how  must  not  he  be 
incomparably  superior  to  men  thus  disposed,  who  is  poor  in 
spirit,  and  gentle,  and  affable ;  not  loving  boasting,  but  court- 
eous ;  not  deceiving  men  by  outside  and  fictitious  disguises,  but 
being  rather  a  true  worshipper,  and  adorned  with  that  rational 
beauty  which  the  divine  Word  imprinteth  in  us  by  means  of  all 
virtue  and  holiness  and  righteousness. 

For  if  we  must  prove  ourselves  better  than  others, — and 
there  is  nothing  to  prevent  this, — let  the  sentence  of  superiority 
be  given  us  of  God,  by  our  excelling  them  in  point  of  conduct 
and  morals,  and  in  a  wise  and  blameless  knowledge  of  the  sa- 
cred scriptures.  For  to  be  saluted  by  others,  and  seated  higher 

3  D 


386  COMMENTARY  UPON 

than  one's  friends e,  does  not  at  all  prove  us  to  be  persons  of 
merit :  for  this  is  possessed  by  many,  who,  so  far  from  being 
virtuous,  are  rather  lovers  of  pleasure,  and  lovers  of  sin.  For 
they  wrest  honours  from  every  one,  because  of  their  possessing 
either  vast  wealth  or  worldly  power. 

But  that  our  being  admired  by  others  without  investigation 
and  inconsideratelv,  and  without  their  knowing:  our  real  state, 
does  not  at  all  make  us  elect  in  the  presence  of  God,  Who 
knoweth  all  things,  the  Saviour  at  once  demonstrates  by  say- 
ing ;  "  Woe  unto  you,  for  ye  are  as  those  graves  which  appear 
"  not,  and  the  men  who  walk  over  them  know  it  not."  Ob- 
serve, I  pray,  very  clearly  the  force  of  the  example.  Those 
who  desire  to  be  saluted  by  every  one  in  the  marketplace, 
and  anxiously  consider  it  a  great  matter  to  have  the  foremost 
seats  in  the  synagogues,  differ  in  no  respect  from  graves  that 
appear  not,  which  on  the  outside  are  beautifully  adorned,  but 
are  full  of  all  impurity.  See  here,  I  pray,  that  hypocrisy  is 
utterly  blamed :  for  it  is  a  hateful  malady,  both  towards  God 
and  men.  For  whatsoever  the  hypocrite  seems,  and  is  thought 
to  be,  that  he  is  not :  but  he  borrows,  so  to  speak,  the  reputa- 
tion of  goodness,  and  thereby  accuses  his  real  baseness :  for 
the  very  thing  which  he  praises  and  admires,  he  will  not  prac- 
tise. But  it  is  a  thing  impossible  for  thee  long  to  hide  thy 
hypocrisy :  for  just  as  the  figures  painted  in  pictures  foil  off, 
as  time  dries  up  the  colours,  so  also  hypocrisies,  after  escaping 
observation  for  a  very  little  time,  are  soon  convicted  of  being 
really  nothing. 

We  then  must  be  true  worshippers,  and  not  as  wishing  to 
please  men,  lest  we  fall  from  being  servants  of  Christ.  For  so  the 
Gal.  i.  io.  blessed  Paul  somewhere  speaks ;  "  For  now  do  I  persuade  men 
"  or  God  ?  or  do  I  seek  to  please  men  ?  If  I  yet  pleased  men, 
"  I  should  not  be  the  servant  of  Christ."  For  suppositions  in 
matters  of  moral  excellence  are  simply  ridiculous,  and  worthy 
neither  of  account  nor  admiration.  For  just  as  in  gold  coins, 
that  which  is  counterfeit  and  faulty  is  rejected,  so  the  hypocrite 
is  regarded  with  scorn  both  by  God  and  men.     But  he  who  is 

e  The  Syriac  translator  evidently     has  rrpo*5p<vo-ai  (piXth,  which  is,  no 
read    npotbptvcrai   (pCXuv,  but   Mai      doubt,  the  right  reading. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  387 

true  meets  with  admiration ;  just,  for  instance,  as  Nathaniel, 

of  whom  Christ  said,  "  Behold  one  truly  an  Israelite,  in  whom 

"  is  no  sruile."     He  who  is  such  is  esteemed  before  God ;  he  is 

counted  worthy  of  crowns  and  honours;  has  a  glorious  hope 

given  him  ;  and  is  "  a  fellow-citizen  with  the  saints,  and  of  the  Eph.  ii.  19. 

"  household  of  God." 

Let  us  therefore  flee  from  the  malady  of  hypocrisy :  and 
may  there  rather  dwell  within  us  a  pure  and  uncorrupt  mind, 
resplendent  with  glorious  virtues.  For  this  will  unite  us  unto 
Christ  ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever, 
Amen. 


3d 


388  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON   LXXXV. 

C.  xi.  45-    Then   answered   one   of  the   lawyers,  and   said  unto  Him, 

48'  Teacher,  in  saying  these  things  thou  reproachest  us  also. 

And  He  said,  Also  unto  you,  lawyers,  woe  I  for  ye  lade 

add.  flop*'o       men  with  burdens  heavy  and  grievous  to  be  borne  ;  and  ye 

Ka\  S.  yourselves  touch  not  the  burdens  with  one  of  your  fingers. 

Woe  unto  you  I  for  ye  build  the  sepulchres  of  th-e  prophets, 

and  your  fathers  killed  them.     Therefore  ye  bear  witness, 

and  approve  of  the  deeds  of  your  fathers  :  for  they  indeed 

om.  olvtuv       killed  them,  and  ye  build  their  sepulchres. 

to  fj.vrnj.ua 
ET. 

REPROOF  is  ever,  so  to  speak,  a  thing  difficult  for  any 

man  to  bear  :  but  it  is  not  without  profit  to  the  soberminded  : 
for  it  leads  them  to  the  duty  of  performing  those  things  which 
make  them  worthy  of  honour,  and  lovers  of  virtuous  pursuits. 
Bat  those  who  run  into  wickedness  with  all  eagerness,  and 
whose  heart  is  set  against  admonition,  are  hurried  into  greater 
sins  by  the  very  things  that  should  have  made  them  more 
soberminded,  and  are  only  hardened  by  the  words  of  those 
who  try  to  benefit  them.  And,  as  an  example  of  this  state  of 
mind,  behold  those  who  among  the  Jews  were  called  lawyers. 
For  the  Saviour  of  all  was  rebuking  the  Pharisees,  as  men  that 
were  wandering  far  from  the  right  way,  and  fallen  into  unbe- 
coming practices.  For  He  blamed  them  as  being  boasters,  as 
hvpocrites,  as  loving  greetings  in  the  markets,  and  as  wishing 
to  sit  in  front  of  everybody  else  in  the  synagogues :  and  He 
Mat.  xxiii.  further  called  them  "  whited  sepulchres,  which  on  the  outside 
"  are  beautiful,  but  inside  are  full  of  dead  men's  bones  and  all 
"  impurity."  At  these  things  the  band  of  wicked  lawyers  was 
indignant,  and  one  of  them  stood  up  to  controvert  the  Saviour's 
declarations,  and  said ;  "  Teacher,  in  saying  these  things,  Thou 
"  reproachest  us  also."  Oh  what  great  ignorance !  what  blind- 
ness in  mind  and  understanding  unto  every  thing  necessary ! 
These  men  subject  themselves  to  blame :  or  rather  the  force  of 
truth  shewed  them  to  be  liable  to  the  same  accusations  as  the 
Pharisees,  and  of  one  mind  with  them,  and  partners  of  their 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  389 

evil  deeds,  if  they  thus  consider  that  what  Christ  said  unto  the 
others  was  spoken  also  against  them.  For  tell  me,  for  what 
reason  art  thou  angry  ?  When  any  reproof  is  addressed  to  the 
Pharisees,  thou  sayest  that  thou  art  reproached.  Thou  con- 
fessest  therefore  thy  deeds.  Thou  art  conscious,  of  course,  to 
thyself  of  being  a  similar  character.  But  if  thou  considerest  it 
a  reproach  for  ought  of  this  sort  to  be  said  of  thee,  and  never- 
theless dost  not  alter  thy  behaviour,  it  is  thy  own  conduct  thou 
art  found  blaming.  If  thou  hatest  reproof  as  being  a  re- 
proach, shew  thyself  superior  to  the  faults  with  which  thou  art 
charged :  or  rather  do  not  regard  as  a  reproach  the  word  of 
correction.  Dost  thou  not  see  that  those  who  heal  the  bodies 
of  men  converse  with  the  sick  upon  the  causes  which  have 
brought  on  their  maladies,  and  use  pungent  drugs  to  coun- 
teract what  has  happened  :  but  no  one  is  angry  with  them  on 
this  account,  or  regards  what  they  say  as  a  reproach.  But 
thou  art  weak-minded  in  bearing  admonitions,  nor  consentest 
to  learn  what  those  passions  are  which  are  bringing  injury  to 
thy  heart.  Far  better  would  it  be  to  love  reproof,  and  ask  for 
deliverance  from  thv  maladies,  and  healing  for  the  ulcers  of 
thy  soul.  Far  better  were  it  rather  to  say,  "  Heal  me,  0  Lord,  jer.  xvii. 
"  and  I  shall  be  healed  :  save  me,  and  I  shall  be  saved :  for  I4- 
"  Thou  art  my  praise." 

Nothing  however  of  this  sort  enters  the  mind  of  the  lawyers, 
but  they  venture  even  to  say;  "In  speaking  these  things,  Thou 
"  reproachest  us  also :"  ignorantly  giving  the  name  of  reproach 
to  a  reproof  which  was  for  their  benefit  and  advantage.  What 
then  does  Christ  reply  ?  He  makes  His  reproof  yet  more  se- 
vere, and  humbles  their  empty  pride,  thus  saying ;  "  Also  to 
"  you,  lawyers,  woe !  for  ye  lade  men  with  burdens  heavy  and 
"  grievous  to  be  borne :  and  ye  yourselves  touch  not  the  bur- 
"  dens  with  one  of  your  fingers."  He  frames  His  argument 
against  them  out  of  a  plain  example.  For  the  law  was  confess- 
edly grievous  to  the  Israelites,  as  the  divine  disciples  also  ac- 
knowledged. For  they  even  rebuked  those  who  were  endea- 
vouring to  make  such  as  had  already  believed  desire  to  return 
to  the  legal  ritual :  for  they  said;  "  And  now  why  tempt  ye  Actsxv.io. 
"  God,  to  put  a  yoke  upon  the  neck  of  the  disciples,  which 
"  neither  we  nor  our  fathers  were  able  to  bear  1"  And  the 
Saviour  Himself  taught  us  this,  crying  out  and  saying ;  "  Come  Mat.  xi.  28. 


390  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  unto  Me,  all  ye  weary,  and  heavy  laden ;  and  I  will  give  you 
"  rest.  Take  My  yoke  upon  you,  and  learn  of  Me ;  for  I  am 
"  meek  and  lowly  in  heart ;  and  ye  shall  find  rest  for  your- 
"  selves."  Weary  then  and  heavy  laden  are  those,  He  says, 
who  are  under  the  law :  while  He  calls  Himself  meek,  as 
though  the  law  had  nothing  in  it  of  this  character.     For,  as 

Heb.  x.  28.  Paul  says  ;  "  Whosoever  has  despised  Moses'  law  is  put  to 
"  death  without  mercy  at  the  mouth  of  two  or  three  witnesses." 
Woe  to  you,  therefore,  He  says,  0  lawyers  :  for  while  ye  bind 
burdens  grievous  to  be  borne,  and  intolerable  to  carry,  and  lay 
them  on  those  who  are  under  the  law,  ye  yourselves  will  not 
touch  them.  For  while  commanding  that  the  ordinance  of 
Moses  should  be  kept  inviolate,  and  passing  sentence  of  death 
upon  any  who  despise  it,  they  themselves  paid  not  the  slightest 
heed  to  the  duty  of  performing  its  precepts.     As  accustomed 

Eom. ii.  17.  thu3  to  act,  the  wise  Paul  also  rebukes  them,  saying;  "  Behold 
"  thou  art  called  a  Jew,  and  restest  in  the  law,  and  makest 
"  thy  boast  of  God ;  and  knowest  His  will,  and  discernest  the 
"  things  that  are  more  excellent,  being  instructed  by  the  law ; 
"  and  art  confident  of  thyself,  that  thou  art  a  guide  of  the 
"  blind  ;  an  instructor  of  those  without  understanding  ;  a 
"  teacher  of  babes ;  and  that  thou  hast  the  form  of  knowledge 
"  and  of  truth  in  the  law.  Thou  therefore  that  teachest  others, 
"  teachest  thou  not  thyself?  thou  that  sayesfc  that  men  should 
"  not  steal,  dost  thou  steal  ?  thou  that  sayest  that  men  should 
".not  commit  adultery,  dost  thou  commit  adultery  t  And  thou 
"  that  despisest  idols,  dost  thou  plunder  the  sanctuary  ?  And 
"  thou  that  boastest  in  the  law,  by  the  transgression  of  the 
"  law  despisest  thou  God  ? "  For  the  teacher  is  rejected  with 
infamy  when  his  conduct  does  not  agree  with  his  words.  Upon 
him  our  Saviour  also  passes  the  sentence  of  severe  punishment : 

Mat.  v.  19.  «  for  whosoever,'1  He  says,  "  has  taught  and  done,  shall  be 
"  called  great :  but  whosoever  shall  teach  and  not  do,  he  shall 
"  be  called  small  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven."  And  for  the  same 

James  iii.  1.  reason  the  disciple  of  the  Saviour  also  writes  to  us;  "Let 
"  there  not  be  many  teachers  among  you,  my  brethren;  know- 
"  ing  that  we  shall  receive  the  greater  condemnation.  For  in 
"  many  things  we  all  of  us  commit  wrong." 

And  having  thus  shewn  the  worthlessness  of  this  abominable 
crew  of  lawyers,  He  goes  on  to  utter  a  common  reproof  to  all 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  391 

the  chiefs  of  the  Jews  :  "  Woe  unto  you !  for  ye  build  the 
"  sepulchres  of  the  prophets :  and  your  fathers  killed  them. 
"  Therefore  ye  bear  witness,  and  approve  of  the  deeds  of  your 
"  fathers ;  for  they  indeed  killed  them,  and  ye  build  their  se- 
"  pulehres."  Let  us  then  carefully  examine  what  the  Saviour 
means ;  for  what  wicked  act  can  we  say  that  they  were  guilty 
of  in  building  the  tombs  of  the  saints  ?  Were  they  not  rather 
doing  them  distinguished  honour  ?  What  doubt  can  there  be 
of  this  ?  It  is  necessary  therefore  to  see  what  it  is  which 
Christ  teaches  us.  The  ancestors  then  of  the  Jews  had  from 
time  to  time  put  the  holy  prophets  to  death,  when  bringing 
them  the  word  of  God,  and  leading  them  unto  the  right  way : 
but  then*  descendants,  acknowledging  that  the  prophets  were 
holy  and  venerable  men,  built  over  them  sepulchres  or  tombs, 
as  bestowing  upou  them  an  honour  suitable  to  the  saints. 
Their  fathers  therefore  slew  them ;  but  they,  as  believing  that 
they  were  prophets  and  holy  men,  became  the  judges  of  those 
that  slew  them.  For  by  determining  to  pay  honour  to  those 
who  had  been  put  to  death,  they  thereby  accused  the  others 
of  having  done  wrongfully.  But  they,  who  condemned  their 
fathers  for  such  cruel  murders,  were  about  to  incur  the  guilt 
of  equal  crimes,  and  to  commit  the  same,  or  rather  more 
abominable  offences.  For  they  slew  the  Prince  of  Life,  the 
Saviour  and  Deliverer  of  all :  and  added  also  to  their  wicked- 
ness towards  Him  other  abominable  murders.  For  Stephen 
was  put  to  death,  not  as  being  accused  of  any  thing  base,  but 
rather  for  admonishing  them,  and  speaking  unto  them  what  is 
contained  in  the  inspired  Scriptures.  And  other  crimes  besides 
were  committed  by  them  against  every  saint  who  preached 
unto  them  the  Gospel  message  of  salvation. 

The  lawyers  therefore  and  Pharisees  were  reproved  in  every 
way,  as  being  haters  of  God,  and  boastful,  and  lovers  of  plea- 
sure more  than  lovers  of  God :  and  as  everywhere  hating  to  be 
saved.  For  this  reason  Christ  added  always  that  word  "  woe," 
as  something  peculiarly  theirs :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to 
God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever,  Amenf. 

f  In  the  Syriac  the  49th  and  two  repeatedly  occur.  In  filling  up  this 
following  verses  are  omitted,  other  lacuna,  the  Catenists  first  attribute 
instances  of  which  habit  of  S.  Cyril     to  him  an  explanation  of  v.  49,  to 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


the  effect  that  by  the  prophets 
whom  the  wisdom  of  God  sends  are 
meant  the  apostles,  and  their  suc- 
cessors, the  chief  pastors  of  the 
church:  but  as  the  apostles  are 
mentioned  by  name  in  the  text, 
there  is  no  reason  for  making  the 
prophets  identical  with  them  in 
meaning,  especially  as  our  Lord  was 
plainly  referring  to  3  Chron.  xxiv. 
19 — 21.  Next  on  v.  51,  two  of 
Mai's  codices  C  and  D  assign  to 
Cyril  a  passage  closely  resembling, 
as  he  remarks,  one  in  Gregory  of 
Nyssa's  sermon  in  diem  nat.  Do- 
mini, and  actually  referred  to  him 
by  B,  and  by  Cramer's  MS. :  and 
though  there  are  many  verbal  dis- 
crepancies in  Gregory's  text,  yet 
other  portions,  especially  towards 
the  end,  so  exactly  agree,  that  there 
can  be  no  doubt  that  it  is  really  his. 
It  records  an  "  unwritten  tradition," 
to  use  Severus'  words,  to  the  effect 
that  by  Zacharias  is  meant  John 
Baptist's  father,  and  that  he  was 
put  to  death  at  the  altar  for  assert- 
ing the  virginity  of  Mary,  who  after 


her  conception  had  nevertheless 
taken  her  place  in  that  part  of  the 
temple  appropriated  to  virgins. 
Upon  the  Jews  wishing  to  remove 
her,  Zacharias  prophesied  that  she 
would  be  the  mother  of  God,  and 
that  her  offspring  would  be  "  God 
"  the  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  the 
"  King  and  Ruler  of  their  race." 
The  Jews  then  in  alarm  at  the  pre- 
diction of  a  king,  slew  Zacharias  at 
the  altar.  Of  such  a  tradition  it  is 
enough  to  say  in  the  words  of  Je- 
rome ;  '  Quia  de  scripturis  non 
'  habet  auctoritatem,  eadem  facili- 
'  tate  contemnitur,  qua  probatur.' 
Com.  in  Mat.  xxiii.  35.  Lastly,  a 
few  lines  are  assigned  to  Cyril  in  A. 
to  the  effect,  that  when  our  Lord 
says  that  the  punishment  of  murder 
would  be  required  of  that  genera- 
tion, He  does  not  mean  that  mur- 
derers of  other  generations  were  to 
escape:  for  'generation'  sometimes 
means  the  whole  of  any  class,  as 
where  the  Psalmist  says,  "This  is 
"  the  generation  of  them  that  seek 
"  the  Lord." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  #X3 


SERMON  LXXXVI. 

Woe  unto  you,  lawyers:  for  ye  have  taken  away  the  hey  ofc:^-  ac- 
knowledge :  ye  entered  not  in,  and  those  that  are  entering  ' 
in  ye  hindered.     And  as  He  came  out  from  thence,   the  KaKtStv 
scribes  and  Pharisees  began  to  urge  Him  vehemently ,  and  at,roz  est. 


I/TOS  06 

ai/TovTO-VTa 


to  put  Him  to  silences  about  many  things,  lying  in  wait  to  x*y°v_ 
catch   something   out   of  his   mouth.       Meanwhile    many  ,rpby  aurou? 
myriads  of  the  people^  having  assembled,  so  that  they  trode  ^     2  r 
one  upon  another,  He  began  to  say  unto  His  disciples  first  toZvt^  G-j. 
of  all,  Beware  in  yourselves  of  the  leaven  of  the  Pharisees,  /CUT^"',. 
which  is  hypocrisy.     For  there  is  nothing  covered,   that  <ru<r «* «»T0» 
shall  not  be  revealed:  neither  hid,  that  shall  not  be  known. 
All  things  whatsoever  ye  have  spoken  in  darkness,  shall  be 
heard  in  the  light :  and  that  which  ye  have  spoken  in  the 
ear  in  chambers,  shall  be  proclaimed  upon  the  housetops. 

THOSE  who  search  the  sacred  Scriptures,  and  know  the 
Lord's  will,  if  thej  are  virtuous  men,  and  anxious  for  the  peo- 
ple's good,  and  skilled  in  leading  them  aright  unto  every  thing 
that  is  admirable,  shall  be  rewarded  with  every  blessing,  if 
they  discharge  their  duties  with  earnestness.  And  of  this  the 
Saviour  assures  us  where  He  says,  "  Who  then  is  a  faithful  Mat.  xxiv. 
"  and  wise  servant,  whom  his  Lord  hath  set  over  his  household, 
"  to  give  them  meat  in  its  season?  Blessed  is  that  servant, 
"  whom  his  Lord  shall  come  and  find  so  doing  :  verily,  I  say 
"  unto  you,  that  he  will  set  him  over  all  that  he  hath."  But 
if  he  be  indolent,  and  neglectful,  and  a  cause  of  offence  to  those 
entrusted  to  his  charge,  so  as  for  them  to  fall  from  the  right 
way,  most  miserable  is  he,  and  in  danger  of  hopeless  punish- 
ment. For  again  Christ  Himself  has  said;  "  Whosoever  there-  Mat.  xviii. 
"  fore  shall  offend  one  of  these  little  ones,  which  believe  in  Me, 
"  it  were  better  for  him  that  the  millstone  of  an  assh  were 
"  hung  about  his  neck,  and  that  he  were  drowned  in  the  depths 
"  of  the  sea." 

S    By    airoa-royLaTL^iv    is    rather  h  That    is,   the   stone   of  a   mill 

meant   "to    question."     The   Phi-  turned   by  an  ass,  and   so  of  the 

loxenian  nevertheless  translates  it  in  largest  size,  hand  mills  being  gene- 

the  same  way  as  the  text.  rally  used. 

3  E 


394  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Of  faults  thus  grievous,  Christ  proved  them  guilty  who  pro- 
fessed to  be  skilled  in  the  law  ;  the  scribes,  I  mean,  and  law- 
yers :  and  for  this  reason  he  said  unto  them  ;  "  Also  to  you 
"  lawyers  woe  !  who  have  taken  away  the  key  of  knowledge." 
By  the  key  of  knowledge  we  consider  that  the  law  itself  is 
meant,  and  justification  in  Christ,  by  faith  I  mean  in  Him. 
For  though  the  law  was  in  shadow  and  type,  yet  those  types 
shape  out  to  us  the  truth,  and  those  shadows  depict  to  us  in 
manifold  ways  the  mystery  of  Christ.  A  lamb  was  sacrificed 
according  to  the  law  of  Moses:  they  ate  its  flesh,  they  anointed 
the  lintels  with  its  blood,  and  overcame  the  destroyer.  But 
the  blood  of  a  mere  sheep  could  not  turn  away  death.  It  was 
Christ  then  Who  was  typified  under  the  form  of  a  Iamb,  Who 
endures  to  be  the  victim  for  the  life  of  the  world,  and  saves  by 
His  blood  those  who  are  partakers  of  Him.  And  one  might 
mention  many  other  instances  as  well,  by  means  of  which  we 
can  discern  the  mystery  of  Christ,  sketched  out  in  the  shadows 
of  the  law.     And  He  Himself  once  when  speaking  to  the  Jews 

Johnv.  45.  said,  "  There  is  one  that  accuseth  you,  even  Moses,  in  whom 
u  ye  trusted.  For  if  ye  had  believed  Moses,  ye  would  have 
"  also   believed   Me  ;    for   he   wrote   of  Me. "      And   again  ; 

John  v.  39.  u  gearch  the  Scriptures  :  for  in  them  ye  think  that  ye  have 
"  eternal  life ;  and  it  is  they  that  testify  of  Me.  And  ye  are 
"  not  willing  to  come  unto  Me,  that  ye  may  have  life."  For 
every  word  of  divinely  inspired  Scripture  looks  unto  Him,  and 
refers  to  Him.  And  whether  it  be  Moses  who  speaks,  he,  as 
has  been  shewn,  was  typifying  Christ :  or  be  it  the  holy  pro- 
phets that  thou  namest,  they  also  proclaimed  to  us  in  mani- 
fold ways  the  mystery  of  Christ,  preaching  beforehand  the  sal- 
vation that  is  by  Him. 

It  was  the  duty  therefore  of  those  who  were  called  lawyers, 
because  they  studied  the  law  of  Moses,  and  were  well  ac- 
quainted with  the  words  of  the  holy  prophets,  to  open,  so  to 
speak,  to  the  Jewish  multitudes  the  doors  of  knowledge.  For 
the  law  directs  men  unto  Christ,  and  the  pious  announcements 
of  the  holy  prophets  lead,  as  I  said,  to  the  acknowledgment  of 
Him.  But  this  the  so-called  lawyers  did  not  do,  but  on  the 
contrary  they  took  away  the  key  of  knowledge,  by  which  you 
are  to  understand  the  guidance  of  the  law,  or  really  faith  in 
Christ.     For  by  faith  is  the  knowledge  of  the  truth,  as  the 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  395 

prophet  Isaiah  somewhere  says ;  "  If  ye  will  not  believe,  nei-  la.  vii.  y. 
"  ther  shall  ye  understand."     This  same  way  of  salvation  by 
faith  in  Christ  He  before  declared  unto  us  by  the  holy  pro- 
phets, saying ;  "  Yet  a  little,  a  little  while,  and  he  that  cometh  Hab.  ii.  3. 
"  shall  come,  and  shall  not  tarry.     And  whosoever  shall  draw    e    *" 37' 
"  back,  in  him  My  soul  shall  have  no  pleasure."     And  what  is 
meant  by  a  person's  drawing  back  is  his  giving  way  to  sloth- 
fulness.     When  therefore  He  says,  that  no  one  of  those  who 
have  been  called  must  draw  back,  it  means,  that  if  he  grow 
slothful  in  his  progress  towards  the  grace  which  is  by  faith,  My 
soul  shall  have  no  pleasure  in  him. 

But  that  the  fathers  were  proved  by  faith,  the  examination 
of  their  deeds  demonstrates.     Take,  for  instance,  the  patriarch 
Abraham,  who  was  called  the  friend  of  God :  what  is  written 
of  him?  "Abraham  believed  God,  and  it  was  counted  unto  him  James  ii. 
"  for  righteousness  :   and  he  was  called  the  friend  of  God."  "3" 
And  it  is  written  again;  "By  faith  Xoah,  when  it  was  revealed  Heb.  xi.  7. 
"  to  him  of  things  not  seen  as  yet,  prepared  the  ark  for  the 
"  saving  of  his  house,  in  which  few,  that  is,  eight  persons,  were  1  Pet.  iii. 
"  saved  by  water."     And  the  blessed  Paul  has  laid  down  for 
us  a  definition,  so  to  speak,  or  rather  a  general  law,  thus 
saying ;  "  Without  faith  it  is  impossible  for  any  one  whatso-  Heb.  xi.  6. 
"  ever  to  please  God."     "  For  by  it,  he  said,  the  elders,  that 
"  is,  those  in  old  time,  obtained  a  good  report.'" 

But  these  so-called  lawyers  had  taken  away  the  key  of 
knowledge  ;  for  they  would  not  let  men  believe  in  Christ  the 
Saviour  of  all.    He  wrought  miracles  in  manifold  ways;  raising 
the  dead  from  their  graves ;  restoring  beyond  all  hope  their 
sight  to*the  blind ;    making   the  lame   whole  in  their  feet; 
cleansing  lepers ;    and  rebuking  unclean  spirits.      But  they, 
though   it  was   their   duty  to  regard   Him  with   admiration 
because  of  these  things,  despised  His  divine  signs:  and  making 
the  people  entrusted  to  their  charge  to  stumble,  they  said  ; 
"  This  man  casteth  not  out  devils  but  in  Beelzebub  the  prince  Mac.  xii. 
"  of  the  devils."     Here  then  thou  seest  them  taking  away  the  2jf' 
key  of  knowledge.     He  taught  in  their  synagogues  ;  He  re- 
vealed to  His  hearers  that  good  and  acceptable  and -perfect  Rom.  xii.:. 
will  of  God  the  Father;  but  they  cannot  leave  even  these* His 
instructions  without  blame  :  for  they  called  out  to  the  multi- 
tudes, "  He  hath  a  devil,  and  is  utterly  mad.     Why  hear  ye  John  x.  20. 

3  B  2 


396  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  Him?"  In  truth  therefore  they  took  away  the  key  of  know- 
ledge :  they  went  not  in  themselves,  and  the  others  they 
hindered. 

And  thus  being  indignant  at  this  reproof,  ;'  they  began,"  it 
says,  "  to  urge  Him  vehemently  ;"  by  which  is  meant,  to 
attack  Him  with  cunning,  and  oppose  Him,  and  shew  their 
hatred  of  Him.  And  they  ventured  also,  it  says,  even  "  to  put 
"  Him  to  silence  about  manv  things."  And  what  again  is  the 
meaning  of  their  putting  Him  to  silence?  It  is  that  they  re- 
quired Him  at  once,  and  so  to  speak,  without  consideration  to 
make  answer  to  their  wicked  questions  ;  expecting  forsooth  that 
he  would  fall,  and  say  something  or  other  open  to  objection. 
But  they  knew  not  that  He  was  God ;  or  rather,  they  were  de- 
spisers,  and  proud  and  contemptuous.  And  therefore  it  was 
that  Christ  told  His  friends,  that  is,  His  disciples,  to  "  beware 
<;  of  the  leaven  of  the  Pharisees  and  scribes,"  meaning  by  leaven 
their  false  pretence.  For  hypocrisy  is  a  thing  hateful  to  God, 
and  abominated  by  man,  bringing  no  reward,  and  utterly  use- 
less for  the  salvation  of  the  soul,  or  rather  the  cause  of  its  per- 
dition. For  though  sometimes  it  may  escape  detection  for  a 
little,  yet  before  long  it  is  sure  to  be  laid  bare,  and  bring  upon 
them  disgrace ;  like  ill-featured  women,  when  they  are  stripped 
of  that  external  embellishment  which  they  had  produced  by 
artificial  means. 

Hypocrisy  therefore  is  a  thing  foreign  to  the  character  of 
the  saints :  for  that  it  is  impossible  for  those  things  that  are 
done  and  said  by  us  to  escape  the  eye  of  the  Deity,  He  shewed 
by  saying  ;  "  For  there  is  nothing  covered  that  shall  not  be 
"  revealed :  neither  hid  that  shall  not  be  known."  '  For  all 
our  words  and  deeds  shall  be  revealed  at  the  day  of  judgment. 
Hypocrisy  therefore  is  superfluous  trouble ;  and  our  duty  is  to 
prove  ourselves  true  worshippers,  serving  God  with  free  and 
open  countenance,  not  submitting  our  judgment  to  those  who 
take  away  the  key  of  knowledge,  but  seeing  even  in  the  law 
the  mystery  of  Christ,  and  seizing  upon  the  words  of  the  holy 
prophets  to  confirm  our  knowledge  of  Him.  For  this  His  dis- 
^  Pet.  i.  19.  ciple  also  taught  us  thus  saying;  "  We  have  for  confirmation 
"  th(?  word  of  prophecy,  into  which  ye  do  well  to  look,  as  upon 
"  a  torch  shining  in  a  dark  place,  until  the  day  dawn,  and  the 
"  star  of  light  arise  in  your  hearts." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  397 

On  us  then  who  are  in  Christ  the  day  has  shone,  and  the 
star  of  the  rational  dawn  has  arisen,  possessing  as  we  do  a  cor- 
rect and  blameless  knowledge  of  Him  :  for  He  has  Himself 
put  into  our  mind  and  heart  divine  knowledge,  being  the 
Saviour  and  Lord,  of  all;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen1. 

1  Mai  adds  a  few  lines  from  A.     are  known  unto  God,  and  shall  be 
explaining  v.  3,  as  possibly  signi-     revealed  unto  everybody, 
fying  that  all  our  deeds  and  words 


398  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON   LXXXVII. 

THIS  HOMILY  IS  FIT  TO  BE  READ  IN  A  TIME 

OF  STRUGGLE  AND  PERSECUTION  FOR 

FAITH  IN  GOD. 

C.  xii.  4-7.  And  I  say  unto  you,  My  friends,  Fear  not  them  that  kill  the 
body,  and  afterwards  have  nothing  more  to  do.  But  I 
will  shew  you  Whom  ye  shall  fear  :  fear  Him  Who  after 
He  hath  killed  hath  power  to  cast  into  hell :  yea,  I  say 
unto  you,  fear  Him.  Are  not  five  sparrows  sold  for  two 
halfpence ;  and  not  one  of  them  is  forgotten  before  God. 
But  even  the  hairs  of  your  head  are  all  numbered.     Fear 

nv  BST.  n0£ .  ye  are  of  more  value  than  many  sparrows. 

M  oiiv  Gs.  9  J  *    r 

PATIENCE,  and  an  enduring  and  courageous  mind,  form 

the  impenetrable  armour  of  the  saints :  for  they  render  them 

approved  and  resplendent  with  the  praises  of  piety.     For  one 

Luke  xxi.   also  of  the  holy  apostles  thus  spake,  at  one  time  ;  "  In  patience 

Heb  x  x6  "  Possess  ye  7our  sou^s  : "  at  aaotner ;  "  Ye  have  need  of 
"  patience,  that  by  doing  the  will  of  God,  ye  may  receive  the 
"  promise."  By  such  manly  virtues  we  become  famous,  and 
praiseworthy,  and  renowned  among  men  everywhere,  and 
worthy  of  honours  and  the  blessings  that  are  prepared  for  the 

1  Cor.  ii.  9.  saints  :  even  those  which  "  eye  hath  not  seen,  nor  ear  heard,0 
as  wise  Paul  says.  And  how  must  not  those  things  be  worth 
the  gaining  and  admirable,  which  surpass  our  understanding 
and  reason?  And  therefore,  as  I  said,  He  preparesk  those  who 
love  Him  for  spiritual  fortitude,  thus  speaking ;  "  I  say  unto 
"  you,  My  friends." 

His  present  discourse  therefore  does  not,  as  it  seems',  belong 
to  every  one  absolutely  :  but,  on  the  contrary,  to  those  only 
who  evidently  love  Him  with   all  their  heart,  and  can  fitly 

Rom.  viii.  say ;  "  Who  shall  separate  me  from  the  love  of  Christ  ?  shall 

35- 

k  Literally  "  He  anoints,"  a  me-  the    struggle    began.      To    anoint 

taphor    taken    from   the    palaestra,  therefore  is  to   prepare  for  imme- 

where  the  combatant  was    rubbed  diate  exertion, 
over   with    oil,  immediately   before 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  399 

"  tribulation,  or  distress,  or  persecution,  or  famine,  or  naked- 
"  ness,  or  peril,  or  sword  ? "  For  those  who  have  as  yet  no 
sure  and  certain  and  well-founded  love  of  Him,  as  long  as  they 
live  in  tranquil  times,  may  forsooth  possibly  preserve  their 
faith  in  Him  :  but  if  distress  or  persecution  harass  them  a 
little,  they  turn  away  and  forsake  Him,  losing,  together  with 
their  faith,  that  which  stirred  them  up  to  love  Him.  For  just 
as  young  plants,  which  have  lately  sprung  up,  cannot  endure 
the  violence  of  too  tempestuous  a  wind,  because  they  have  not 
as  yet  struck  their  roots  deep  ;  while  those  which  are  firmly 
fixed,  and  well  rooted,  remain  secure  in  the  ground,  even 
though  a  o-ale  of  fierce  winds  shake  them  :  so  those  whose 
mind  is  not  yet  firmly  and  securely  fixed  upon  Him  are  very 
easily  drawn  aside,  and  readily  desert ;  while  those  who  have 
stored  up  and  possess  in  mind  and  heart  a  secure  and  unwa- 
vering love  of  Him,  are  unalterable  in  mind,  and  unwavering 
in  heart,  being  superior  to  all  indolence,  and  looking  with  con- 
tempt upon  the  most  intolerable  dangers,  and  making  a  mock 
at  terrors,  so  as  even  to  ridicule  the  violence  of  death.  The 
commandment  therefore  so  to  act  belongs  to  those  who  love 
Him. 

But  who  are  those  who  love  Him  ?     They  are,  so  to  speak, 
such  as  are  like-minded  with  Him,  and  anxious  to  follow  in  His 
footsteps.     And  to  this  His  disciple  encourages  us  by  saying  ; 
"  Forasmuch  then  as  Christ  hath  suffered  for  us  in  the  flesh,  iPet.  iv.  r. 
"  do  ye  for  His  sake1  arm  yourselves  with  the  same  mind." 
He  laid  down  His  life  for  us,  and  was  "among  the  dead  as  oue  Ps.lxxxviH. 
"  free."     For  death  did  not  attack  Him,  as  it  attacks  us,  be-  s' 
cause  of  sin  :  for  He  was  and  is  far  removed  from  all  sin,  and 
incapable  of  iniquity  :  but  of  His  own  will  He  endured  it  for 
our  sakes,  because  of  His  boundless  love  toward  us.    For  listen 
to  Him  as  He  plainly  says  ;  "  Greater  love  hath  no  man  than  Johnxv.13. 
"  this,  that  a  man  lay  down  his  life  for  his  friends."    And  how 
then  is  it  not  a  most  base   thing  not  to    return  to   Christ, 
as  a  most   necessary  debt,  that  which  we  have  received  of 
Him? 


1  This  addition  of  vnep  alrov  to  the  text  is  not  supported  by  any  MS. 
authority. 


400  COMMENTARY  UPON 

And,  to  put  it  in  another  light ;  as  being  His  friends,  we 

ought  not  to  fear  death,  but  rather  imitate  the  faith  of  the 

holy  fathers.     The  patriarch  Abraham,  when  tempted,  offered 

Heb.  xi.19.  liis  onlv-beo-otten  son  Isaac,  "  accounting  that  God  was  able  to 

"  raise  him  up  even  from  the  dead."     What  terror  of  death, 

7  Tim.  i.io.  therefore,  can  assail  us,  now  that  "  Life  hath  abolished  death  ?" 

Johnxi.25.  for  Christ  is  "  the  Resurrection  and  the  Life." 

And  this  too  we  must  bear  in  mind,  that  the  crowns  are  to 
be  won  by  labour.  It  is  strong-  exertion  united  with  skill  that 
perfects  those  mighty  athletes  in  the  games.  It  is  courage  and 
a  brave  mind  that  are  most  serviceable  to  those  who  are  skilled 
in  battles :  while  the  man  who  throws  away  his  shield  is  ridi- 
culed even  by  the  foe :  and  if  the  runaway  live,  he  leads  a  life 
of  disgrace.  But  he  who  was  steadfast  in  the  battle,  and  stood 
stoutly  and  courageously  with  all  his  might  against  the  enemy, 
is  honoured  if  he  win  the  victory;  and  if  he  fall,  is  looked  upon 
with  admiration.  And  so  ought  we  to  reckon  for  ourselves ;  for 
to  endure  patiently,  and  maintain  the  conflict  with  courage, 
brings  with  it  great  reward,  and  is  highly  desirable,  and  wins 
for  us  the  blessings  bestowed  by  God :  while  to  refuse  to  suffer 
death  in  the  flesh  for  the  love  of  Christ,  brings  upon  us  lasting, 
or  rather  never-ending  punishment.  For  the  wrath  of  man 
reaches  at  most  to  the  body,  and  the  death  of  the  flesh  is  the 
utmost  that  they  can  contrive  against  us  :  but  when  God  pun- 
ishes, the  loss  reaches  not  to  the  flesh  alone ; — how  could  it  ? — 
but  the  wretchedm  soul  also  is  cast  along  with  it  into  torments. 
Let  our  lot  therefore  rather  be  the  honoured  deatli ;  for  it 
makes  us  mount  up  to  the  commencement  of  an  eternal  life,  to 
which  of  necessity  are  attached  those  blessings  also  which  come 
from  the  divine  bounty :  and  let  us  flee  from  and  despise  a  life 
of  shame ;  a  life  accursed,  and  of  short  duration,  and  which 
leads  down  to  bitter  and  everlasting  torment. 

And  to  bestow  yet  another  means  of  succour  upon  our 
minds,  He  forcibly  added;  "  that  five  sparrows  are  scarcely 
M  perhaps  worth  two  halfpence,  and  yet  not  one  of  them  is  for- 
"  gotten  before  God."     And  further,  He  said  ;  "  that  also  the 


m  Mai   reads   7   adavarot  yfa>X7l>     aBkia,  which  the  Syriac  and  Cramer 
hut  notices  that  some  MSS.  have     confirm. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  401 

"  separate  hairs  of  your  head  are  all  numbered."  Consider, 
therefore,  how  great  care  He  takes  of  those  that  love  Him. 
For  if  the  Preserver  of  the  universe  extends  His  aid  to  tilings 
thus  worthless,  and  descends,  so  to  speak,  to  the  smallest  ani- 
mals, how  can  He  forget  those  who  love  Him,  especially  when 
He  takes  so  great  care  of  them,  and  deigns  so  to  visit  them, 
as  to  know  exactly  each  particular  of  their  state,  and  even  how 
many  are  the  hairs  of  their  head  ? 

Where,  then,  is  the  vain  and  senseless  babbling  of  heathen 
boasting  ?  "  Where  is  the  wise  ?  Where  is  the  scribe  ?  Where  i  Cor.  i.  20. 
"  is  the  disputer  of  this  world  ?  hath  not  God  made  foolish  the 
"  wisdom  of  the  world  V  For  some  of  them  entirely  deny  the 
providence  of  God :  while  others  make  it  reach  down  as  far 
only  as  the  moon,  and  set  bounds  to  it,  as  though  they  had 
had  this  authority  committed  to  them.  Unto  such  we  would 
say :  Is  the  providence  of  God  too  weak  to  reach  down  to  that 
which  is  below,  and  even  as  far  as  unto  us,  or  is  the  Creator 
of  all  too  weary  to  see  what  we  do  ?  If  then  they  say  that  it 
is  too  weak,  this  is  mere  stupidity,  and  nothing  else.  But  if 
they  represent  the  divine  nature  as  subject  to  indolence,  they 
make  it  thereby  liable  also  to  envy.  And  this  again  is  blas- 
phemy, and  a  crime  than  which  none  is  greater.  But  they 
answer,  it  is  giving  trouble  to  the  divine  and  supreme  will 
to  impose  upon  it  the  care  of  all  these  earthly  matters.  They 
know  not  how  great  is  that  nature  which  the  mind  cannot  un- 
derstand  nor  speech  describe,  and  which  ruleth  over  all.  For 
to  it  all  things  are  small :  and  so  the  blessed  prophet  Isaiah 
teaches  us  where  he  says ;  "  If  it  be  true  that  all  the  nations  Is.  si.  15. 
"  are  as  a  drop  from  a  cask,  and  are  reckoned  as  the  turn 
"  of  a  balance,  and  shall  be  counted  as  spittle,  to  what  have 
"  ye  likened  the  Lord?"  For  what  is  one  drop  from  a  cask? 
and  what  is  the  turn  of  a  balance  ?  and  what  too  is  spittle  ? — 
that  is,  a  single  expectoration  ?  If  therefore  this  be  the  posi- 
tion of  all  things  towards  God,  how  can  it  be  a  great  matter 
to  Him,  or  one  that  occasions  Him  trouble,  to  have  the  care 
of  all  things  ?  The  noxious  sentiments  therefore  of  the  heathen 
arc  bereft  of  reason. 

Let  us  therefore  not  doubt  but  that  with  rich  hand  He  will 
bestow  His  grace  upon  those  who  love  Him.     For  either  He 

3p 


402  COMMENTARY  UPON 

will  not  permit  us  to  fall  into  temptation :  or  if,  by  His  wise 
purpose,  He  permit  us  to  be  taken  in  the  snare,  in  order  that 
we  may  gain  glory  by  suffering.  He  will  most  assuredly  grant 
us  the  power  to  bear  it.  And  of  this  the  blessed  Paul  is  our 
iCor. x.13.  witness,  who  says;  "  God  is  powerful,  Who  will  not  suffer  you 
"  to  be  tempted  above  that  ye  are  able,  but  will  with  the 
"  temptation  also  make  a  way  of  egress,  that  ye  may  be  able 
"  to  bear  it."  For  He  Who  is  the  Saviour  and  Lord  of  us  all, 
is  the  Lord  of  powers  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  403 


SERMON   LXXXVIII. 

Tm3  Homily  also  is  pit  to  be  read  in  a  tlme  op  struggle 

AND  PERSECUTION  FOR  FAITH  IN  GOD. 

And  I  say  unto  you,  that  whosoever  shall  confess  Me  before  C.  xii.  8- 
men,  him  shall  the  Son  of  man  also  confess  before  the  I0' 
angels  of  God.  But  he  that  shall  deny  Me  before  men, 
shall  be  denied  before  the  angels  of  God.  And  whosoever 
shall  speak  a  word  against  the  son  of  man,  it  shall  be 
forgiven  him :  but  unto  him  that  blasphemeth  against  the 
Holy  Ghost,  it  shall  not  be  forgiven  him. 

HERE  too,  ye  who  love  to  hear,  replenish  yourselves  with 
the  words  of  holiness :  receive  within  you  the  knowledge  of  the 
sacred  doctrines,  that  advancing  prosperously  in  the  faith,  ye 
may  obtain  the  crown  of  love  and  steadfastness  in  Christ.  For 
He  bestows  it,  not  upon  those  whose  heart  is  faint  and  easily 
shaken,  but  rather  on  those  who  can  with  fitness  say;  "  For  to  Phil.  i.  si. 
"  me  to  live  is  Christ,  and  to  die  is  gain."  For  those  who  live 
holily,  live  unto  Christ ;  and  those,  who  for  piety  towards  Him, 
endure  dangers,  gain  the  life  incorruptible,  being  crowned  by 
His  decree  before  the  judgment  seat  of  God.  And  this  He 
teaches  us,  saving ;  "  Whosoever  shall  confess  XTe  before  men, 
"  him  shall  the  Son  of  man  also  confess  before  the  angels  of 
"  God." 

It  is  then  a  thing  above  all  others  worthy  of  our  attention  to 
see  who  it  is  that  confesses  Christ,  and  in  what  way  one  may 
rightly  and  blamelessly  confess  Him.  Most  wise  Paul  therefore 
writes  to  us,  "  Say  not  in  thine  heart,  Who  shall  ascend  unto  Rom.  x.  6. 
"  heaven?  that  is  to  bring  Christ  down  :  or  who  shall  descend 
"  into  the  deep  ?  that  is,  to  bring  Christ  up  from  the  dead. 
"  But  what  saith  the  Scripture  ?  The  Word  is  nigh  thee,  in 
"  thy  mouth  and  in  thy  heart;  that  is,  the  Word  of  faith  which 
"  we  preach :  because  if  thou  shalt  say  with  thy  mouth  that 
"  Jesus  is  the  Lord,  and  shalt  believe  in  thy  heart  that  God 
"  raised  Him  from  the  dead,  thou  shalt  live.  For  with  the 
"  heart  man  believeth  unto  righteousness,  and  with  the  mouth 

3  F  2 


404  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  confession  is  made  unto  salvation."  In  which  words  the  mystery 
of  Christ  is  most  excellently  explained.  For  first  of  all  it  is  our 
duty  to  confess  that  the  Son,  Who  sprang  from  God  the  Fa- 
ther, and  Who  is  the  Only-begotten  of  His  substance,  even 
God  the  Word,  is  Lord  of  all:  not  as  one  on  whom  lordship 
has  been  bestowed  from  without,  and  by  imputation,  but  as 
being  by  nature  and  in  truth  Lord,  as  the  Father  also  is.  And 
next  we  must  believe,  that  "  God  raised  Him  from  the  dead," 
that  is,  when  having  become  man,  He  had  suffered  in  the  flesh 
for  our  sakes :  for  so  He  arose  from  the  dead.  The  Son  there- 
fore is,  as  1  said,  Lord  ;  yet  must  He  not  be  reckoned  with 
those  other  lords,  to  whom  the  name  of  lordship  is  given  and 
imputed:  for  He  alone,  as  I  said,  is  Lord  by  nature,  being 
God  the  Word,  Who  transcends  every  created  thing.  And 
i  Cor.  viii.  this  the  wise  Paul  teaches  us  saying ;  "  That  though  there  be 
5'  "  in  heaven  or  in  earth  certain  Gods  many,  and  Lordships 

"  many  :  yet  to  us  there  is  one  God  the  Father,  from  Whom 
"  is  everything  and  we  from  Him :  and  one  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
"  by  Whom  is  everything  and  we  by  Him.'"  But  even  though 
there  be  but  one  God,  Whose  name  is  the  Father ;  and  one 
Lord,  Who  is  the  Son ;  yet  neither  is  the  Father  put  aside 
from  being  Lord,  by  reason  of  His  being  God  by  nature :  nor 
does  the  Son  cease  from  being  God,  because  He  is  Lord  by 
nature.  For  perfect  freedom  is  the  attribute  of  the  divine  and 
supreme  substance  only,  and  to  be  entirely- separate  from  the 
yoke  of  servitude :  or  rather,  to  have  the  creation  put  in 
subjection  under  Its  feet.  And  therefore,  though  the  Only- 
begotten  Word  of  God  became  like  unto  us,  and,  as  far  as 
regarded  the  measure  of  the  human  nature,  was  placed  un- 
der the  yoke  of  slavery : — for  He  purposely  paid  the  Jewish 
tax-gatherers  the  two  drachms  according  to  the  law  of  Moses  ; 
— yet  He  did  not  conceal  the  splendour  of  the  glory  that  dwelt 
Mat.  xvii.  in  Him.  For  He  asked  the  blessed  Peter  ;  "  The  kings  of  the 
"5-  "  earth,  of  whom  do  they  receive  tribute  and  poll-tax;  of  their 

"  own  children,  or  of  strangers  ?     And  when  he  had  said,  Of 
"  strangers :  Then,  said  He,  are  the  children  free."     The  Son 
therefore  is  in  His  own  nature  Lord  as  being  free :  as  the  wise 
7 Cor. iii.     Paul  has  again  taught  us,  thus  writing:  "But  we  all,  with 
l8-  "  open  face,  beholding  as  in  a  glass  the  glory  of  the  Lord,  are 

"  changed  into  the  same  likeness,  from  glory  to  glory,  as  by 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  405 

"  the  Lord,  the  Spirit."  "  JNow  the  Spirit  is  the  Lord:  but  2C0r.iii.17. 
"  where  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord  is,  there  is  liberty."  Observe 
therefore  how  he  affirms  that  the  Spirit  is  Lord :  not  as  pos- 
sessed of  sonship  ;  for  He  is  the  Spirit,  and  not  the  Son ;  but 
as  being  co-essential  with  the  Son,  "Who  is  Lord  and  free,  and 
proved  by  this  natural  equality  with  Him  to  possess  that  free- 
dom which  befitteth  God. 

Whosoever  therefore  confesseth  Christ  before  men,  as  God 
and  Lord,  shall  be  acknowledged  by  Him  before  the  anerels  of 
God.  But  where  and  how  ?  Evidently  at  that  time,  when  He 
shall  descend  from  heaven  in  the  glory  of  His  Father  with  the 
holy  angels  at  the  end  of  this  world :  then  shall  He  crown  His 
true  confessor,  who  possessed  an  unwavering  and  genuine 
faith,  and  so  made  profession.  There  also  shall  the  company 
of  the  holy  martyrs  shine,  who  endured  the  conflict  even  unto 
life  and  blood,  and  honoured  Christ  by  their  patient  en- 
durance :  for  they  denied  not  the  Saviour,  nor  was  His  glory 
unknown  to  them,  but  they  kept  their  fealty  to  Him.  Such 
shall  be  praised  by  the  holy  angels ;  and  shall  themselves  glo- 
rify Christ  the  Saviour  of  all,  for  bestowing  upon  the  saints 
those  honours  which  especially  are  their  due.  And  so  the 
Psalmist  also  declares,  "And  the  heavens  shall  declare  His  Pa-  1-  6. 
"  righteousness ;  because  God  is  judge."  And  such  then  shall 
be  the  lot  of  those  who  confess  Him. 

But  the  rest,  those  who  denied  and  despised  him,  shall  be 
denied :  when  the  Judge  shall  say  to  them  that,  as  it  were, 
which  was  spoken  by  the  holy  prophets  to  certain  of  old  ;  "As  Obad.  15. 
"  thou  hast  done,  it  shall  be  done  unto  thee ;  and  thy  requital 
"  shall  be  requited  upon  thine  own  head ;"    and  shall  deny 
them  in  these  words :  "  Depart  from  Me,  ye  workers  of  ini-  Luke  xiii. 
"  quity,  I  know  you  not."     And  who  then  are  they  that  shall  ''' 
be  denied  ?    First  of  all,  those  who  when   persecution   was 
pressing  upon  them,  and  tribulation  had  overtaken  them,  de- 
serted the  faith.     The  hope  of  such  shall  depart  utterly  from 
its  very  root :    for   such   no   human   words   can  suffice ;    for 
'wrath  and  judgment  and  the  unappeasable  fire  shall  receive 
them. 

And  in  like  manner  both  the  followers  and  teachers  of  heresy 
deny  him.  For  they  venture  to  say  that  the  Only-begotten 
Word  of  God  is  not  by  nature  and  in  truth  God ;  and  they 


406  COMMENTARY  UPON 

traduce  His  ineffable  generation,  by  saying  that  He  is  not  of 
the  substance  of  the  Father :  yea  rather,  they  count  among 
things  created  Him  Who  is  the  Creator  of  all,  and  wickedly 
class  with  those  who  are  under  the  yoke  Him  "Who  is  Lord  of 

Phil.  ii.  ii.  all ;  although  Paul  affirms,  that  we  must  say  that  "Jesus  is 
"Lord/' 

The  disciples  also  of  the  vain  babbling  of  Nestorius  deny 
Him  by  acknowledging  two  sons,  one  false,  and  one  true ;  the 
true  one,  the  "Word  of  God  the  Father :  the  false  one,  to  whom 
the  honour  and  name  of  a  son  belongs  by  imputation  only, 
who  in  their  phrase  is  the  son  only,  and  sprung  from  the 
seed  of  the  blessed  David,  according  to  the  flesh.     Most  heavy 

2  Pet.  ii.  i.  is  the  judgment  of  these  also  ;  for  they  have  denied  "  the  Lord 
"  Who  bought  them."    They  have  not  understood  the  mystery 

Eph.  iv.  5.  of  His  dispensation  in  the  flesh:  for  "  there  is  one  Lord,  one 
"  faith,"  as  it  is  written.  For  we  do  not  believe  in  a  man  and 
a  God,  but  in  one  Lord,  the  Word  Who  is  from  God  the 
Father,  Who  became  man,  and  took  upon  Him  our  flesh.  And 
thus  then  these  also  are  numbered  among  those  Who  deny 
Him. 

And  that  blasphemy  is  a  most  wicked  crime  for  men  to 
commit,  He  has  further  taught  us  by  saying,  "  that  whosoever 
"  shall  speak  a  word  against  the  son  of  man",  it  shall  be  for- 
"  given  him :  but  unto  him  that  blasphemeth  against  the  Holy 
"  Ghost,  it  shall  not  be  forgiven."  And  in  what  way  is  this  too 
to  be  understood  ?  Now  if  the  Saviour  means  this,  that 
if  any  scornful  word  be  used  by  any  one  of  us  towards  some 
mere  man,  he  will  obtain  forgiveness  if  he  repent,  the  matter  is 
free  from  all  difficulty.  For  as  God  is  by  nature  good,  He  will 
free  from  blame  all  those  who  repent.     But  if  the  declaration 


i    As    I   have   before   mention-  but  that  blasphemy  against  God  is 

ed,  the  Syriac  language  possesses  so  serious  a  sin,  that  under  ordi- 

no  single  word  for   "man,"   c>»j|  nary  circumstances   it   can   expect 

signifying  "  some   one :"    its  place  no   forgiveness.      In  this   way   S. 

therefore  is  supplied   by  the  peri-  Cyril   first   of  all   explains  it,  and, 

phrasis    ^j«o,    the   son    of  some  then    takes   the    other    alternative, 

one,  or  as  it  is   usually   rendered,  which  as  being  acquainted  with  the 

"  the  son  of  man."     The  meaning  Greek  language  only,  he  probably 

therefore  of  the  text  is,  that  whoso-  considered  equally  tenable,  of  our 

ever  shall  speak  ill  of  a  man,  shall  Lord  by  the  son  of  man  signifying 

upon   his  repentance  be   forgiven :  Himself. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  407 

has  reference  to  Christ  himself,  the  Saviour  of  all,  how  can  he 

be  innocent,  or  secure  from  condemnation,  who  has  spoken 

against  Him  ?    What  then  we  say  is  this ;  that  whenever  any 

one,  who  has  not  yet  learnt  the  meaning  of  His  mystery,  nor 

understood  that  being  by  nature  God,  He  humbled  Himself 

to  our  estate,  and  became  man,  speaks  anything  against  Him, 

blasphemous  to  a  certain  extent,  but  yet  not  so  wicked  as  to 

pass  forgiveness,   such  things  God  will  pardon  in  those  who 

have  sinned  from  ignorance.     And  to  explain  my  meaning  by 

an  example;  Christ  somewhere  said,  "  I  am  the  living  bread  John  vi.51. 

"  which  came  down  from  heaven,  and  giveth  life  to  the  world." 

Because  therefore  some  did  not  know  His  glory,  but  thought 

that  he  was  a  mere  man,   they  said,  "  Is  not  this  the  car- 

"  penter's  son,  Whose  father  and   mother  we   know  ?    How 

"  doth  He  now  say  that  I  came  down  from  heaven  1"  And 

again,  He  was  once  standing  teaching  in  a  synagogue,  and  was 

wondered  at  by  them  all.     But  some,  it  tells  us,  said,  "  How  Johnvii.15. 

"  knoweth  this  man  learning,  having  never  been  taught  V  For 

of  course  they  knew  not  that  "  in  Him  are  all  the  treasures  of  Col.  ii.  3. 

"  wisdom,  and  the  hidden  things  of  knowledge."     Such  things 

might  well  be  forgiven,  as  being  spoken  inconsiderately  from 

ignorance. 

But  for  those  who  have  blasphemed  the  Godhead  itself,  con- 
demnation is  inevitable,  and  the  punishment  eternal  both  in 
this  world  and  in  that  which  is  to  come. 

For  by  the  Spirit  He  here  means  not  only  the  Holy  Ghost, 
but  also  the  whole  nature  of  the  Godhead,  as  understood  (to 
consist)  in  the  Father,  and  the  Son,  and  the  Holy  Gnost.  And 
the  Saviour  Himself  also  somewhere  said,  "  God  is  a  Spirit."  John  iv.24. 
Blasphemy  therefore  against  the  Spirit,  is  against  the  whole 
supreme  substance :  for  as  I  said,  the  nature  of  the  Deity, 
as  offered  to  our  understanding  in  the  holy  and  adorable  vourai. 
Trinity,  is  one. 

Let  us  therefore,  as  the  writer  of  the  book  of  Proverbs 
saith,  "put  a  door  and  a  bar  to  the  tongue,"  and  draw  near  to  Eccius. 
the  God  over  all,  thus  saying,  "  Set  a  watch,  0  Lord,  upon  my  pg^'n5; 
"  mouth ;  and  a  door  of  safety  about  my  lips ;  incline  not  my 
"  heart  to  wicked  words ;"  for  those  are  wicked  words  which 
are  against  God.     And  if  thus  we  rightly  fear  Him,  Christ 


408  COMMENTARY  UPON 

will  bless  us  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father 
be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and 
ever,  Amen.0 

0  S.  Cyril  having  omitted  vv.  n,  effect  that  our  Lord  would  have  His 

12,  the  Catenist  has  inserted,  pos-  disciples  anxious  only  to  defend  the 

sibly    from    the    Commentary    on  faith,  and  trust  all  besides  to  His 

Mark  xiii.  II,  a  few  words  to  the  care. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  409 


SERMON   LXXXIX. 

And  one  of  the  multitude  said  unto  Him,  Teacher,  bid  my  c.  xii.  13- 
brother  divide  with  me  the  inheritance.     But  He  said  unto  2I' 
him,  Man,  who  made  Me  a  judge  or  a  divider  over  you  ? 
And  He  said  unto  them,  Take  heed,  and  keep  yourselves 
from  all  greediness :  for  a  man's  life  is  not  from  his  pos-  aiT0z  GSs. 
sessions  by  reason  of  his  having  a  superfluity .     And  He  aijTv  BT< 
spake  a  parable  unto  them,  saying,  The  ground  of  a  certain 
rich  man  brought  forth  unto   him  plentifdly.     And   he  add.auT^S. 
thought  within  himself  saying,  What  shall  I  do,  because  1 4v  avrf  E. 
have  not  where  to  gather  my  fruits  ?  And  he  said,  This 
will  I  do :  I  will  pull  down  my  storehouses,  and  build 
greater:  and  there  will  I  gather  all  my  crops  and  my  rbv o-7tovB. 
goods.     And  I  will  say  to   myself,  Self,  thou  hast  much  lulJd'(y[vu. 
goods  laid  up  for  many  years ;  take  thine  ease,  eat,  drink,  »•)>«>« 
enjoy  thyself     But  God  said  unto  him,   Thou  fool,  this 
night  they  demand  of  thee   thy   soul.      But  whose  shall 
those  things  be  which  thou  hast  provided  ?    So  is  he  that 
layeth  up  treasures  for  himself,  and  is  not  rich  toward  ^Tv  B. 
God. 

PAUL,  as  a  wise  man,  recommends  constancy  in  prayer :  for 
he  said,  "  Pray  without  ceasing."  And  in  very  truth  it  is  a  t  The3.  v. 
thing  full  of  benefit.  But  I  say  this,  that  whosoever  draws  ''" 
near  unto  God,  ought  not  to  do  so  carelessly ;  nor  may  he 
offer  unbefitting  petitions.  And  one  may  very  justly  affirm, 
of  a  multitude  of  petitions,  that  they  are  unbefitting,  and  such 
as  are  not  suitable  for  God  to  give,  nor  beneficial  for  us  to 
receive.  And  if  we  will  direct  the  penetrating  glance  of  the 
mind  upon  the  passage  before  us,  we  shall  see  without  difficulty 
the  truth  of  what  I  have  said.  For  a  certain  man  drew  near 
to  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  us  all,  and  said,  "  Teacher,  bid  my 
"  brother  divide  with  me  the  inheritance.  But  He  said  unto 
"  him,  Man,  who  set  Me  as  judge  or  divider  over  you?  "  For 
the  Son  indeed,  when  He  appeared  in  our  likeness,  was  set  by 
God  the  Father  as  "  Head  and  King  over  Sion,  His  holy  p3.  ii.  6. 
"  mount/'  according  to  the  Psalmist's  words :  and  the  nature 

30 


410  COMMENTARY  UPON 

of  His  office  He  again  Himself  makes  plain,  "  For  I  am  come, 
"  Ho  says,  to  preach  the  commandment  of  the  Lord."     And 
what  is  this  ?    Our  virtue-loving  Master  wisheth  us  to  depart 
far  from  all  earthly  and  temporal  matters ;  to  flee  from  the 
love  of  the  flesh,  and  from  the  vain  anxiety  of  business,  and 
from  base  lusts ;  to  set  no  value  on  hoards,  to  despise  wealth, 
and  the  love  of  gain ;  to  be  good  and  loving  unto  one  another  ; 
not  to  lay  up  treasures  upon  earth  ;  to  be  superior  to  strife  and 
envy,  not  quarrelling  with  the  brethren,  but  rather  giving  way 
to  them,  even  though  they  seek  to  gain  an  advantage  over  us ; 
Luke  vi.  29.  "  for  from  him,   He  saith,  who  taketh  away  what  is  thine, 
"  demand  it  not  again ;"  and  rather  to  strive  after  all  those  things 
which  are  useful  and  necessary  for  the  salvation  of  the  soul. 
And  for  those  who  habitually  thus  live,  Christ  lays  down  laws 
by  which  they  become  illustrious  and  praiseworthy.     For  He 
Mat.  x.  9.    said,   u  Possess  neither  silver  nor  gold  :  nor  two  coats,  nor 
Luke  xii.     "  scrip,  nor  brass  in  your  purses."     And  again,  "  Make  for 
33'  "  yourselves  purses  that  grow  not  old  :  a  treasure  that  faileth 

"  not  for  ever  in  heaven."  And  when  a  young  man  drew  near 
Mat.  xix.  saying,  "  Teacher,  what  shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life  ?" 
1<5-  "  Go,  He  answered,  sell  what  thou  hast,  and  give  to  the  poor, 

"  and  thou  shalt  have  treasure  in  heaven,  and  come  after  Me." 
To  those  therefore  who  bow  down  to  Him  the  obedient  neck  of 
their  minds,  He  both  gives  commandments  and  appoints  laws  : 
He  lays  down  for  them  precepts,  distributes  to  them  the  hea- 
venly inheritance,  gives  them  spiritual  blessings,  and  is  a  store- 
house for  them  of  never-failing  gifts.  While  for  those  who 
think  only  of  earthly  things,  and  whose  heart  is  set  on  wealth, 
and  their  mind  hardened,  and  unmerciful,  and  without  gen- 
tleness or  love  for  the  poor,  to  such  He  will  justly  say,  "  Who 
"  set  Me  as  ruler  or  divider  over  you  V*  He  rejects  the  man 
therefore  as  troublesome,  and  as  having  no  desire  to  learn 
ought  fitting  for  him  to  know. 

But  He  does  not  leave  us  without  instruction :  for  having 
found,  so  to  speak,  a  seasonable  opportunity,  He  frames  a  pro- 
fitable and  saving  discourse  ;  and  protesting  as  it  were  against 
them,  declares,  "Take  heed,  and  keep  yourselves  from  all 
"  covetousness  p."      He  shewed  us   that  pitfall  of  the  devil, 

P  In  the  text  the  translator  had  as  here  he  has  j  /  -  ac  \  S> ,  the 
used  j { .-) t V  .  "greediness,"  where-     word  constantly  elsewhere  used  by 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  411 

covetousness,  a  thing  hateful  to  God,  and  which  the  wise  Paul 
even  calls  idolatry,  perhaps  as  being  suitable  for  those  only  Col.  iii.  5. 
who  know  not  God,  or  as  being  equal  in  the  balance  with  the 
defilement  of  those  men  who  choose  to  serve  stocks  and  stones. 
It  is  a  snare  of  evil  spirits,  by  which  they  drag  down  man's  soul 
to  the  meshes  of  hell.  For  this  reason  He  says  very  justly,  as 
setting  them  on  their  guard,  "  Take  heed  and  keep  yourselves 
"  from  all  covetousness :"  that  is,  from  great  and  small,  and 
from  defrauding  any  one  whoever  he  may  be.  For  as  I  said, 
it  is  a  thing  hateful  to  God  and  men.  For  who  does  not  flee 
from  him  who  uses  violence,  and  is  rapacious  and  greedy,  and 
ready  for  iniquity  in  those  things  to  which  he  has  no  right, 
and  who  with  avaricious  hand  gathers  that  which  is  not  his  ? 
What  beast  of  prey  does  not  such  a  man  surpass  in  savageness  ? 
Than  what  rocks  is  he  not  more  hard  ?  For  the  heart  of  him 
who  is  defrauded  is  torn,  and  even  melted  sometimes  by  the 
penetrating  pain  as  it  were  by  fire :  but  he  takes  pleasure 
therein,  and  is  merry,  and  makes  the  pains  of  them  that  suffer 
a  cause  of  rejoicing.  For  the  wronged  man  is  sure  generally 
to  be  one  without  power,  who  can  but  raise  his  eyes  to  Him 
Who  alone  is  able  to  be  angry  for  what  he  has  suffered.  And 
He,  because  He  is  just  and  good,  accepts  his  supplication,  and 
pities  the  tears  of  the  sufferer,  and  brings  punishment  on  those 
who  have  done  the  wrong. 

And  this  thou  mayest  learn  from  what  He  Himself  says 
thereupon  by  the  mouth  of  the  holy  prophets;  "  Therefore  Amos 7.1 1. 
"  because  ye  have  bruised  the  heads  of  the  poor,  and  taken 
"  from  them  chosen  gifts,  ye  shall  build  houses  of  carved  stone, 
"  but  ye  shall  not  dwell  therein :  and  ye  shall  plant  desirable 
"  vineyards,  but  ye  shall  not  drink  of  their  wine.     For  I  know 

him  as  the  equivalent  of  TT^eovegta.  "Spirit"  feminine,  whereas  his  own 
As  j  /  g  1  v  .  is  also  used  in  the  custom  is,  wherever  it  refers  to  the 
Peschito,  (and  the  PhUox.)  I  ima-  Godhead,  to  make  it  masculine,  in 
gine  that  though  the  translator  ren-  the  same  way  as  "  the  Word"  is 
dered  the  Greek  directly  into  Sy-  masculine,  and  not  feminine,  where- 
riac,  yet  that  in  the  quotations  his  ever  it  refers  to  Christ.  That  he 
memory  frequently  suggested  to  did  not  however  use  a  translation 
him  the  words  and  phrases  of  the  directly,  I  infer  from  the  fact,  that 
Peschito,  as  there  frequently  occur  he  so  frequently  varies  in  his  quo- 
in texts  archaic  forms  unlike  his  tations,  using  synonyms  even  where 
own  more  polished  language.  He  evidently  rendering  exactly  the  same 
has  even  once  or  twice   made  the  Greek  text. 

302 


412  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  your  many  wickednesses,  and  mighty  are  your  sins."  And 
Is.  v.  3.  again,  "  Woe  unto  those  who  add  house  to  house,  and  join 
"  field  to  field,  that  they  may  take  away  something  from  their 
"  neighbour.  Will  ye  dwell  alone  in  the  earth  ?  For  these 
"  things  have  been  heard  in  the  ears  of  the  Lord  of  hosts. 
"  For  though  your  houses  be  many,  they  shall  be  a  desolation : 
"  though  thev  be  great  and  fair,  there  shall  be  none  to  inhabit 
"  them.  For  the  ground  that  ten  yoke  of  oxen  till  shall  pro- 
"  duce  one  pitcher  full :  and  he  that  soweth  six  artaboc-q  shall 
"  gather  three  measures."  Although  therefore  houses  and 
fields  may  be  the  fruit  of  the  oppression  of  others,  yet  these, 
He  says,  shall  lie  waste,  without  inhabitants,  and  shall  yield  no 
profit  whatsoever  to  those  who  will  act  wickedly,  because  the 
just  wrath  of  God  is  poured  out  upon  them.  In  every  way 
therefore  there  is  no  profit  in  covetousness. 

And  to  view  it  in  yet  another  light ;  it  availeth  nothing, 
because  a  man's  life,  as  He  saith,  is  not  from  his  possessions, 
by  reason  of  his  having  a  superfluity.  And  this  is  plainly 
true :  for  the  duration  of  a  man's  life  is  not  extended  in  pro- 
portion to  his  wealth,  nor  does  the  sum  of  his  life  run  parallel 
with  that  of  his  wicked  gains.  And  this  the  Saviour  has 
clearly  and  manifestly  shewn  us,  by  very  excellently  adding 
the  present  parable  in  connexion  with  His  previous  argument. 
"  For  the  ground,  He  said,  of  a  certain  rich  man  brought  forth 
"  abundant  crops."  Consider  it  exactly,  that  thou  mayest 
admire  the  beautiful  art  of  the  discourse.  For  He  has  not 
pointed  out  to  us  an  estate  of  which  one  portion  only  brought 
forth  abundant  harvests ;  but  the  whole  of  it  was  fertile  for  its 
owner,  shewing  therebv  the  vastness  of  his  wealth.  Similar 
to  this  is  that  passage  of  one  of  the  holy  apostles ;  "  Be- 
Jamesv.  4.  "  hold,  the  hire  of  the  labourers  who  have  reaped  your  land, 
"  which  is  of  you  kept  back  by  fraud,  crieth  :  and  the  suppli- 
"  cations  of  those  that  reaped  have  entered  into  the  ears  of  the 
"  Lord  of  Sabaoth."  The  Saviour  therefore  said  that  all  his 
estate  brought  forth  abundant  harvests. 

<i  In  the   margin  the   translator  an  Ephah,  i.  e.  i^  bushels.    As  the 

has    remarked    that   "  one   Artaba  Sept.  however  here  translate  a  Ho- 

'*  equals  three  measures."  But  three  mer  by  six  Artake,  whereas  it  is 

measures,  rpia  y-irpa,  is  the  usual  generally   represented   as   equal   to 

rendering  of  the   Sept.   for  HQ'N,  ten  Ephahs,  there  is  still  some  diffi- 

'  Ephah,'  cf.  Ex.  xvi.  36.     An  Ar-  culty  in  reconciling  the  translation 

taba  therefore  must  be  the  same  as  with  the  Hebrew. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  413 

What  therefore  does  the  rich  man  do,  surrounded  by  a  pro- 
fusion of  so  many  blessings  beyond  all  numbering  ?   In  distress 
and  anxiety  he  utters  the  words  of  poverty.     "  For  what,  he 
"  says,  shall  I  do  V  The  man  who  is  in  want  of  necessaries 
constantly  ejaculates  this  miserable   language :    but  lo !    one 
here  of  boundless  wealth  uses  similar  expressions.     He  deter- 
mined then  to  build  more  spacious  storehouses  :  he  purposed  to 
enjoy  for  himself  alone  those  revenues  that  were  sufficient  for  a 
populous  city.     He  looks  not  to  the  future ;  he  raises  not  his 
eyes  to  God ;  he  does  not  count  it  worth  his  while  to  gain  for 
the  mind  those  treasures  which  are  above  in  heaven :  he  does 
not  cherish  love  for  the  poor,  nor  desire  the  estimation  to 
be   gained  thereby  :    he  sympathizes  not  with  suffering ;    it 
gives  him  no  pain,  nor  awakens  his  pity.     And  what  is  still 
more  irrational,  he  settles  for  himself  the  duration  of  his  life, 
as  if  he  would  reap  this  too  from  the  ground :  for  he  says, 
"  I  will  say  to  myself,  Self,  thou  hast  goods  laid  up  for  many 
"  years;  eat,  drink,  enjoy  thyself."     '  But,  0  rich  man,  one 
c  may  say,  thou  hast  indeed   storehouses  for  thy  fruits,  but 
'  whence  wilt  thou  obtain  thy  many  years  ?  for  by  the  decree 
'  of  God  thy  life  is  shortened.     For  God,  it  tells  us,  said  unto 
'  him,  Thou   fool,  this  night  they  shall  require  of  thee  thy 
'  soul.     But  whose  shall  these  things  be  that  thou  hast  prc- 
'  pared1"  ?' 

It  is  true  therefore,  that  a  man's  life  is  not  from  his  posses- 
sions, by  reason  of  his  having  a  superfluity  :  but  very  blessed, 
and  of  glorious  hope  is  he  who  is  rich  towards  God.  And  who 
is  he?  Evidently  one  who  loveth  not  wealth,  but  virtue  rather, 
and  to  whom  few  things  are  sufficient:  and  whose  hand  is  open  Luke  x.  42. 
to  the  necessities  of  the  indigent,  comforting  the  sorrows  of 
those  in  poverty,  according  to  his  means,  and  the  utmost  of  his 
power.  It  is  he  who  gathers  in  the  storehouses  that  are  above, 
and  lays  up  treasures  in  heaven.  Such  a  one  shall  find  the 
usury  of  his  virtue,  and  the  recompense  of  his  upright  and 
blameless  life  ;  Christ  shall  bless  him  :  by  Whom,  and  with 
Whom,  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion  with  the 
Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 

1  A  passage  inserted  in  this  place     Com.  on  Luke,  at  all  events  is  not 
by  Mai,  as  quoted  in  a  catena  upon     rightly  placed  here, 
the    minor   prophets   from   Cyril's 


414 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


C.  xii.  12- 

3«- 

om.  aiiTov 
B. 

Om.   1-aCiV 

BT. 

om.  ufj.uf 

GTs. 

om.  yap 

GTy. 

ou — ou5e 

BGSr. 

oure-oSre 

T. 

om.  ufpiu- 

vaJi>  T. 

om.  evoBT. 

om.  ai^avei 

T. 

OU  KOTTia 

ovSe  i^tfei 
BGSj. 
oCts  vi)dei 
oCt(  vipaivei 
T. 

add.  Sri  S. 
^j/  aypy  top 
X&ptov  uvra 
<77)M-  BT. 
top  x-  l*  Ttt> 
aypcp  a~hfjL. 
ivra  GSy. 
kcl!  ri  BT. 
H  rl  GSj. 


SERMON    XC. 

And  He  said  unto  His  disciples ;  Therefore  I  say  unto  you, 
Be  not  anxious  for  your  life,  what  ye  shall  eat :  nor  for 
your  body,  what  ye  shall  put  on.  For  the  life  is  more 
than  meat,  and  the  body  than  raiment.  Consider  the 
ravens,  that  they  sow  not  nor  reap :  which  have  neither 
closet  nor  store,  and  God  feedeth  them :  how  much  more 
are  ye  better  than  the  birds  I  And  which  of  you  by  being 
anxious  can  add  to  his  stature  one  cubit  ?  If  ye  then  be 
not  able  to  do  even  that  which  is  least,  why  are  ye  anxious 
about  any  thing  else  ?  Consider  the  lilies  how  they  grow : 
they  toil  not,  neither  do  they  spin  :  but  I  say  unto  you, 
that  even  Solomon  in  all  his  glory  was  not  arrayed  like 
one  of  these.  If  then  God  so  clothe  the  grass,  which  is 
today  in  the  field,  and  tomorrow  is  cast  into  the  oven,  how 
much  more  will  He  you,  0  ye  of  little  faith  ?  And  seek  not 
what  ye  shall  eat,  nor  what  ye  shall  drink,  neither  let  your 
mind  be  unsettled  :  for  all  these  things  the  nations  of  the 
world  seek  after :  but  your  Father  knoweth  that  ye  have 
need  of  them.  But  seek  His  kingdom,  and  all  these  things 
shall  be  added  unto  you. 


om.  Ttavra 
BT. 

Baruch  iv. 
4- 


THE  law  of  Moses  was  ordained  for  the  Israelites,  to  guide 
abroi  BST.  them  unto  all  which  it  was  their  duty  to  do.  and  to  set  clearly  be- 
fore  them  whatever  was  for  their  benefit.  And  they  made  this  a 
matter  of  the  greatest  joy,  saying,  "  Blessed  are  the  children 
"  of  Israel :  for  unto  us  are  made  known  the  things  that  please 
"  the  Lord.''  But  I  affirm,  that  we  can  even  more  fitly  and 
appropriately  use  these  words  :  for  it  was  not  a  prophet,  nor 
yet  an  angel,  who  spake  unto  us,  but  the  Son  in  His  own 
person,  even  He  Who  is  Lord  of  the  holy  angels  and  of  the 
prophets.  And  this  the  wise  Paul,  the  minister  of  His  myste- 
ries, clearly  teaches  us,  thus  writing ;  "  God,  Who  in  manifold 
"  parts  and  manifold  manners  spake  in  old  times  to  the 
"  fathers  by  the  prophets,  hath  in  these  last  days  spoken 
"  unto  us  by  the  Son,  Whom  He  hath  appointed  Heir  of  all ; 


Heb.  i.  i. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  415 

"  and  by  Whom  also  He  made  the  worlds."  Blessed  therefore 
arc  we,  in  that  we  are  taught  by  Himself  His  good  and  saving 
will,  by  which  we  are  guided  into  all  virtuous  pursuits,  that 
having  so  fulfilled  a  life  worthy  of  emulation,  such  as  befits  the 
elect,  we  may  reign  with  Him. 

Observe  therefore  how  carefuHy.  and  with  what  great  skill 
He  fashions  the  lives  of  the  holy  apostles  unto  spiritual  excel- 
lence.    But  with  them  Ho  benefits  us  also  :  for  He  wills  that 
all  mankind  should  be  saved,  and  should  choose  the  wise  and 
more  excellent  life.     For  this  reason  He  makes  them  abandon 
superfluous  anxiety,  and  does  not  permit  them  to  practise  a 
careworn  and  urgent  industry  through  the  wish  of  gathering 
what  exceeds  their  necessities  ;  for  in  these  matters  a  super- 
fluity adds  nothing  to  our  benefit.    "  Be  not  anxious  therefore,     , 
"  He  says,  for  your  life,  what  ye  shall  eat :  nor  for  your  body,     ! 
"  what  ye  shall  put  on.     For  the  life  is  more  than  meat,  and 
"  the  body  than  raiment."     He  did  not  simply  say,  "  Bo  not 
"  anxious;''  but  added  "for  your  life:"  that  is,  do  not  expend 
any  careful  study  on  these  things,  but  bestow  your  earnestness 
on  things  of  far  higher  importance.     For  the  life  indeed  is  of 
more  importance  than  food,  and  the  body  than  raiment.    Since       \ 
therefore  a  risk  is  laid  upon  us  that  concerns  both  life  and       i 
body,  and  pain  and  punishment  are  decreed  against  those  who       j 
will  not  live  uprightly,  let  all  anxiety  be  laid  aside  respecting       > 
raiment  and  food.  I 

*  And  besides  how  is  it  not  a  base  thing  for  those  who  are 
lovers  of  virtue,  and  earnest  followers  after  such  manly  virtues 
as  are  excellent  and  approved  of  God,  to  be  intoxicated  with 
fine  apparel  like  young  boys,  and  to  run  after  expensive  ban- 
quets !  For  there  follow  immediately  upon  these  things  a 
savage  crowd  also  of  other  lusts :  and  the  result  is  apostasy 
from  God  :  for  it  is  written,  "  Love  not  the  world,  neither  the  i  John  ii. 
"  things  that  are  in  the  world."  And  again  ;  "  Know  ye  not  jjme3ivr_4. 
"  that  the  love  of  the  world  is  enmity  with  God  I"  It  is  our 
duty  therefore  to  keep  our  foot  apart  from  all  worldly  desires, 
and  rather  to  take  delight  in  those  things  which  please  God. 

But  perchance  thou  wilt  reply  to  this,  '  Who  then  will  give 
'  us  the  necessaries  of  life?'  And  to  this  be  our  answer  as  fol- 
lows ;  The  Lord  is  worthy  to  bo  trusted ;  and  He  clearly 
promises  it  to  thee,  and  by  little  things  gives  thee  full  assur- 


416  COMMENTARY  UPON 

ance  that  He  will  be  true  also  in  that  which  is  great.  "  For 
"  consider,  He  says,  the  ravens :  that  they  sow  not,  nor  reap  : 
"  they  have  neither  closet  nor  store  :  and  God  feedeth  them." 
For  just  as,  when  He  was  strengthening  us  unto  spiritual  forti- 
tude, He  taught  us  to  despise  even  death  itself  by  saying, 
Lukexii.4.  "  Fear  not  them  that  kill  the-  body,  but  are  not  able  to  kill  the 
"  soul  C  and  in  the  same  way  to  make  His  providence  plain  to 
thee,  used  for  His  proof  things  utterly  valueless,  saying ; 
"  Are  not  two  sparrows  sold  for  one  halfpenny  ?  and  not  one 
"  of  them  falleth  to  the  ground  without  your  Father  :  "  and 
"  the  individual  hairs  of  your  head  are  all  counted :  fear  not 
"  therefore ;  for  ye  are  of  more  value  than  many  sparrows  :" 
so  also  here,  from  the  birds  and  the  flowers  of  the  field,  he 
produces  in  thee  a  firm  and  unwavering  faith.  Nor  does  He 
permit  us  at  all  to  doubt,  but  that  most  certainly  He  will  grant 
us  His  mercy,  and  stretch  out  His  comforting  hand,  to  bestow 
upon  us  in  all  things  a  sufficiency.  It  is  moreover  a  very 
wicked  thing,  that  while  those  who  are  placed  under  the  yoke 
of  bodily  slavery  depend  upon  their  masters,  as  sufficient  to 
supply  them  with  food  and  clothing ;  we  will  not  consent  to 
put  our  trust  in  Almighty  God,  when  He  promises  us  the 
necessaries  of  life. 

And  what  benefit  at  all  is  there  in  living  luxuriously  ?  Or 
rather,  will  it  not  bring  with  it  utter  destruction  ?  For  quickly 
of  a  certainty  there  enter  along  with  luxurious  pleasures 
the  infamies  of  sensuality,  and  the  assaults  of  base  and  con- 
temptible lusts ; — things  whose  approach  is  difficult  to  combat. 
And  the  being  clad  too  in  splendid  apparel  is  of  no  benefit 
whatsoever.  "  For  consider,"  He  says,  "  the  lilies,  how  they 
"  grow.  They  toil  not,  neither  do  they  spin.  I  tell  you,  that 
"  not  even  Solomon  in  all  his  glory  was  arrayed  like  one  .of 
"  these."  And  this  also  is  true  :  for  both  in  lilies  and  other 
flowers  that  spring  up  in  the  fields,  the  lustre  of  the  colours 
possesses  an  admirable  beauty,  both  by  the  diversity  of  the 
hues,  and  the  variety  of  the  arrangement,  as  they  glitter  in 
their  natural  purple,  or  shine  with  the  brilliancy  of  other 
colours  :  but  all  that  is  made  by  the  art  of  man  in  imitation  of 
them,  whether  by  the  painter's  skill,  or  in  embroidery,  alto- 
gether falls  short  of  the  reality :  and  even  though  it  be  suc- 
cessful as  a  work  of  art,  it  scarcely  even  approaches  the  truth. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  417 

If  therefore  these  representations  by  means  of  art,  are  so  infe- 
rior to  the  glorv  of  the  lilv,  and  the  beautiful  colours  of  other 
flowers,  how  is  it  not  true,  that  even  Solomon,  though  so  mag- 
nificent a  king,  in  all  his  glory  was  not  arrayed  like  one  of 
these  ?  Vain  therefore  is  our  toil  for  beautiful  apparel.  Suffi- 
cient is  it  for  men  of  sense  that  their  raiment  being  such  as 
necessity  requires  should  be  decorous,  and  easily  procurable ; 
and  with  it  such  a  bare  sufficiency  of  food  as  merely  satisfies 
the  demands  of  nature.  Let  their  banquet  in  Christ  be  suffi- 
cient for  the  saints  :  a  banquet  spiritual,  divine,  and  intellec- 
tual: and  the  glory  that  will  follow.  "  For  He  shall  change  Phil.  iii. n. 
"  the  body  of  our  humiliation  into  the  likeness  of  the  body  of 
"  His  o-lorv  •"  and  as  He  Himself  savs,  "  Thev  shall  shine  like  Mat.  xiii. 
"  the  sun  in  the  glory  of  their  Father. "  What  garments  43' 
therefore  are  not  surpassed  in  splendour  by  the  magnificence 
that  is  in  Christ  ? 

And  in  another  view  it  was  unbefitting  for  those  who  were  to 
be  the  type  and  pattern  for  others  of  holy  conduct,  themselves 
carelessly  to  fall  into  those  things,  which  as  soon  as  they  be- 
came the  world's  teachers,  they  would  have  to  warn  others  to 
abandon.  And  it  would  have  been  no  slight  injury  both  to 
their  zeal,  and  to  the  usefulness  of  their  sacred  preaching,  for 
the  disciples  to  have  been  burdened  with  the  care  of  worldly 
pursuits.  On  the  contrary,  it  was  their  duty  with  determined 
mind  entirely  to  disregard  such  things,  and  simply  and  ear- 
nestly to  be  anxious  for  apostolic  victories3.  Very  justly  for 
this  reason  He  openly  reprobates  the  pursuit  of  the  things  of 

3  Some  additions  are  here  made  bably  taken  from  some  other  work 

by  Mai,  who  first  gives  what  wears  of  S.  Cyril.     And  lastly,  from  the 

the  appearance  of  a  deduction  of  the  same  Codex  A,  supported  by  B,  a 

Catenist,    namely,    that    our   Lord  sentence  is  inserted  as  an  introduc- 

took  no  slight  care  of  the  preacher's  tion  to  the  subsequent  passage  in 

office  in  thus  making  him  abstain  the  Syriac,  viz.,  "  Shall  not  so  good 

from  worldly  business.     In  the  Ox-  "  a  Lord,  Who  nourishes  the  tiniest 

ford   translation   of  Aquinas,   who  "  bird,  feed  him  who  was  made  in 

has  correctly  given  Dominus  con-  "his  own  image?  "Very  justly  for 

suluit  non  modicum  studio  sacra-  "  this  reason,"  &c.     On  more  than 

rum  predicationum,  this  passage  is  one    occasion    I   have   noticed   the 

changed  into,  "  Our  Lord  strongly  same  habit  of  the  Catenists,  to  in- 

"  recommends    the   study   of  holy  troduce   some  extract  quoted  ver- 

"  preaching."     Next  from  A  178,  batim  by  a  short  summary  of  the 

there  is  an  exhortation  to  value  the  previous  argument, 
soul  above  meat  and  clothing,  pro- 

3H 


418  COMMENTARY  UPON 

time,  "  tor  the  nations  of  the  world,"  He  says,  "  seek  after 
"  them  :"  and  raises  them  to  the  unwavering  conviction,  that 
certainly  and  under  all  circumstances  they  will  have  enough, 
because  their  Father  well  knoweth  of  what  things  they  have 
need,  even  He  Who  is  in  heaven.  And  at  a  most  fitting  season 
He  calls  Him  Father,  that  they  may  know,  that  He  will  not 
forget  His  children,  but  be  kind  and  loving  unto  them. 

Let  us  seek,  therefore,  not  such  food  as  is  unnecessary  and 
superfluous,  but  whatsoever  tends  unto  the  salvation  of  the 
soul :  not  raiment  of  great  price,  but  how  to  deliver  our  body 
from  the  fire,  and  from  judgment.  And  this  let  us  do,  seeking 
His  kingdom ;  even  all  that  will  aid  us  in  becoming  partakers 
of  the  kingdom  of  Christ :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God 
the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever.     Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  419 


SERMON  XCI. 

Fear  not,  little  flock;  for  it  is  your  Fathers  good  pleasure  C.  xii.  32- 
to  give  you  the  kingdom.     Sell  your  possessions,  and  give  34' 
alms  :  make  you  purses  that  grow  not  old  :  and  a  treasure  add.  ko\  S. 
that  faileth  not  in  heaven,  where  thief  approacheth  not,  nor 
moth  destroyeth.     For  where  your  treasure  is,  there  will 
your  heart  be  also. 

AGAIN  the  Saviour  deigns  to  bestow  upon  us  a  pathway  to 
eternal  life,  and  opens  wide  the  door  of  salvation  ;  that  travel- 
ling thereon,  and  adorning  the  soul  with  every  virtue,  we  may 
attain  to  the  city  which  is  above,  and  of  which  the  prophet 
Isaiah  also  bore  witness,  saying ;  "  Thine  eyes  shall  see  Jeru-  Is.  xxxiii. 
"  salem,  the  wealthy  city,  even  the  tents  that  shake  not.1'  For 
immoveable  is  that  tabernacle  which  is  in  heaven,  and  unend- 
ing joy  is  the  lot  of  those  that  dwell  therein.  And  the  nature 
of  the  way  that  leads  us  thereto  He  shews  us,  by  saying  ; 
"  Fear  not,  little  flock  :  for  it  is  your  Father's  good  pleasure 
"  to  give  you  the  kingdom.11  This  therefore  is  indeed  spiritual 
consolation,  and  the  pathway  that  leads  us  to  assured  faith. 

I  think,  however,  that  I  ought  first  of  all  to  shew  you  the 
reason  why  the  Saviour  spake  words  such  as  these  ;  for  so 
the  full  signification  of  the  passage  before  us  will  become  the 
more  plain  to  the  hearers.  In  teaching  therefore  His  dis- 
ciples not  to  be  covetous  of  wealth,  He  also  withdraws  them 
from  worldly  anxiety,  and  from  vain  toils  and  luxury  and 
splendour  of  attire,  and  whatsoever  evil  habits  follow  upon 
these  things :  and  bids  them  rather  courageouslv  be  earnest  in 
the  pursuit' of  these  things,  [which*  are  good  and  more  excel- 
lent, by  saying  ;  "  Be  not  anxious  for  your  life,  what  ye  shall 
"  eat :  nor  foe  your  body,  what  ye  shall  put  on.  For  the  life 
"  is  more  than  meat,  and  the  body  than  raiment?1'  And  He 
also]  added  to  this,  that  "  your  Father  which  is  in  heaven 
"  knoweth  that  these  things  are  needed  by  you."     And,  so  to 

*  The   MS.   having   suffered   in     rent,  the  words  within  brackets  are 
this   place  a  slight  injury  from  a     added  to  complete  the  sense. 

3  H  2 


420  COMMENTARY  UPON 

speak,  He  enounced  as  a  general  law,  useful  and  necessary  for 
salvation,  not  only  to  the  holy  apostles,  but  to  all  who  dwell 
upon  the  earth,  that  men  must  seek  His  kingdom,  as  being 
sure  that  what  He  gives  will  be  sufficient,  so  as  for  them  to 
be  in  need  of  nothing.  For  what  does  He  say  ?  "  Fear  not, 
"  little  flock/'  And  by  Do  not  fear,  He  means  that  they 
must  believe  that  certainly  and  without  doubt  their  heavenly 
Father  will  give  the  means  of  life  to  them  that  love  Him.     He 

Pa.  civ.  28.  will  not  neglect  His  own :  rather  He  will  open  unto  them  His 
hand,  which  ever  filleth  the  universe  with  goodness. 

And  what  is  the  proof  of  these  things  ?  "  It  is,"  He  says, 
"your  Father's  good  pleasure  to  give  you  the  kingdom."  And 
He  Who  gives  things  thus  great  and  precious,  and  bestows  the 
kingdom  of  heaven,  what  unwillingness  can  there  be  on  His 
part  to  be  kind  towards  us ;  or  how  will  He  not  supply  us  with 
food  and  clothing  ?  For  what  earthly  good  is  equal  to  the 
kingdom  of  heaven  ?  or  what  is  worthy  to  be  compared  with 
those  blessings,  which  God  is  about  to  bestow,  and  which  nei- 
ther  the   understanding  can   conceive,  nor  words   describe  ? 

1  Cor.  U.  9.  "  For  eye  hath  not  seen,  nor  ear  heard,  neither  have  entered 
"  into  the  heart  of  man,  the  things  which  God  hath  prepared 
"  for  them  that  love  Him."  When  thou  praisest  earthly  wealth, 
and  admirest  worldly  power,  these  things  are  but  as  nothing 

i  Pet.  i.  24.  compared  with  that  which  is  in  store.  "  For  all  flesh,"  it  says; 
"  is  grass  :  and  all  the  glory  of  man  as  the  flower  of  grass." 
And  if  thou  speakest  of  temporal  affluence  and  luxuries  and 

1  John  ii.  banquets,  yet  "  the  world,'1  it  says,  "  passeth  away,  and  the 
"  desire  thereof."  The  things  therefore  which  are  of  God  sur- 
pass in  an  incomparable  degree  ought  which  this  world  pos- 
sesses. Ii*  therefore  God  bestow  the  kingdom  of  heaven  upon 
those  that  love  Him,  how  can  He  be  unwilling  to  give  food 
and  raiment  ? 

And  He  calls  these  on  earth  a  "  little  flock."  For  we  are 
inferior  to  the  multitude  of  the  angels,  who  are  innumerable, 
and  incomparably  surpass  in  might  our  mortal  things.  And 
this  too  the  Saviour  has  Himself  taught  us,  in  that  parable  in 
the  Gospels  so  excellently  framed  for  our  instruction :  for  He 

Luke  xv.  4.  said,  "What  man  of  you,  that  has  a  hundred  sheep,  and  one 
"  of  them  go  astray,  will  not  leave  the  ninety  and  nine  upon 
"  tho  mountains,  and  go  to  seek  that  which  has  strayed  ?   And 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  421 

"  if  he  chance  to  find  it,  verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  he  will 
"  rejoice  in  it  more  than  in  the  ninety  and  nine  which  went  not 
"  astray."  Observe  therefore,  that  while  the  number  of  ra- 
tional created  beings  extends  to  ten  times  ten,  the  flock  that  is 
upon  earth  is  but  as  one  out  of  a  hundred.  But  though  it  is 
little,  both  by  nature  and  number  and  dignity,  compared  with 
the  countless  troops  of  the  spirits  that  are  above,  yet  has  the 
goodness  of  the  Father,  which  surpasses  all  description,  given 
also  to  it  the  portion  of  those  transcendent  spirits,  I  mean  the 
kingdom  of  heaven :  for  permission  is  given  to  whosoever  will 
to  attain  thereunto. 

u[And  the  means  by  which  we  may  attain  to  it,  we  learn 
from  the  Saviour's  words :  for  He  says,  "  Sell  that  ye  have, 
"  and  give  alms."  And  this  perchance]  is  a  commandment 
hard  and  difficult  for  the  rich  to  endure :  for  so  He  Him- 
self has  somewhere  said ;  "  That  hardly  shall  they  that  have  Luke  xviii. 
"  riches  enter  the  kingdom  of  God."  And  vet  the  command-  24' 
ment  is  not  impossible  for  them  that  are  of  perfect  mind.  For 
come,  let  me  address  a  few  words  to  those  who  are  rich.  "With- 
draw your  attention  a  little  from  these  temporal  things ;  cease 
from  too  worldly  a  mind ;  fix  the  eye  of  the  understanding 
upon  the  world  that  is  to  be  hereafter  :  for  that  is  of  long  dura- 
tion ;  but  this  is  limited  and  short :  the  time  of  every  indivi- 
dual's life  hereis  allotted  by  measure;  but  his  life  in  the  world 
to  come  is  incorruptible  and  enduring.  Let  our  earnestness 
therefore  after  things  to  come  be  unwavering:  let  us  store 
up  as  our  treasure  the  hope  of  what  will  be  hereafter  :  let  us 
gather  beforehand  for  ourselves  those  things,  by  which  we 
shall  even  then  be  counted  worthy  of  the  gifts  which  God 
bestows. 

To  persuade  us,  however,  to  take  due  care  of  our  souls, 
come,  and  let  us  consider  the  matter  among  ourselves  with 
reference  to  men's  ordinary  calculations.  Suppose  one  of  us 
wanted  to  sell  a  fertile  and  productive  farm,  or,  if  you  will,  a 

u  The  words  within  brackets  have  the  Greek  text  in  Mai,  to  supply 
been  added  to  supply  the  lacuna  on  the  place  of  those  which  have  pe- 
the  obverse  side  of  the  leaf  occa-  rished  in  the  Syriac,  the  whole  fo- 
sioned  by  the  rent  spoken  of  above. '  lium  being  in  an  extremely  mud- 
Many  single  words  have  also  been  lated  state, 
added  chiefly  on  the  authority  of 


422  COMMENTARY  UPON" 

very  beautifully-built  house;  and  so  one  of  you,  who  had  plenty 
of  gold  and  plenty  of  silver,  were  to  conceive  the  desire  of  pur- 
chasing it;  would  he  not  feel  pleasure  in  buying  it,  and  readily 
give  the  money  that  was  laid  up  in  his  coffers,  and  even  add  to 
what  he  had  by  him  other  money  on  loan  ?  Of  this  I  think 
there  can  be  no  doubt,  and  that  he  would  feel  pleasure  in  giv- 
ing it :  for  the  transaction  would  not  expose  him  to  loss,  but 
rather  the  expectation  of  his  future  gains  would  make  him  in 
a  flutter  of  joy.  Now  what  I  say  is  somewhat  similar  to  this. 
The  God  of  all  offers  to  sell  thee  paradise.  There  thou  wilt 
reap  eternal  life;  an  unending  joy;  an  honourable  and  glorious 
habitation.  Once  there,  right  blessed  wilt  thou  be,  and  wilt 
reign  with  Christ.  Draw  near  therefore  with  eagerness  :  pur- 
chase the  estate :  with  these  earthly  things  obtain  things  eter- 
nal :  give  that  which  abideth  not,  and  gain  that  which  is  se- 
cure :  give  these  earthly  things,  and  win  that  which  is  in  hea- 
ven :  give  that  which  thou  must  leave,,  even  against  thy  will, 
that  thou  may  est  not  lose  things  hereafter  :  lend  to  God  thy 
wealth,  that  thou  mayest  be  really  rich. 

And  the  way  in  which  to  lend  it  He  next  teaches  us,  saying ; 
"  Sell  your  possessions,  and  give  alms.  Make  you  purses  that 
"  grow  not  old :  and  a  treasure  that  faileth  not,  eternal x,  in 
"  heaven."  And  the  very  same  the  blessed  David  also  teaches 
us  in  the  Psalms,  where  he  says  by  inspiration  of  every  merciful 
Pa.  cxii.  9.  and  good  man  :  "  He  hath  dispersed,  and  given  to  the  poor, 
"  and  his  righteousness  is  stored  up  for  ever."  For  worldly 
wealth  has  many  foes :  for  thieves  are  numerous,  and  this 
world  of  ours  is  full  of  oppressors  ;  of  whom  some  are  wont  to 
plunder  by  secret  means,  while  others  use  violence,  and  tear  it 
away  even  from  those  who  resist.  But  the  wealth  that  is  laid 
up  above  in  heaven,  no  one  injures:  for  God  is  its  Keeper,  Who 
sleepeth  not. 

And  besides  it  is  a  very  absurd  thing,  that  while  we  often 
entrust  men  of  probity  with  our  earthly  wealth,  and  feel  no 
fear  lest  any  loss  should  result  from  our  confidence  in  the  up- 
rightness of  those  who  receive  it ;  we  will  not  trust  it  to  God, 

x  "  Eternal"  is  an  erroneous  ad-  memory,  as  he  does  not  read  it  in 
dition,  occasioned  probably  by  S.  the  heading,  nor  has  it  any  MS. 
Cyril  having  quoted  the  text  from     authority. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  423 

Who  receives  from  us  these  earthly  things,  so  to  speak,  as  a 
loan,  and  promises  to  give  us  things  eternal,  and  that  with 
usury.  "  For  good  measure,"  He  says,  "  and  pressed  close,  and  Lukevi.38. 
"  weighing  down  the  scale,  and  running  over,  shall  they  give 
"  into  your  bosom."1  And  for  the  measure  to  run  over,  is  a 
direct  proof  of  its  great  abundance.  Away  then  with  this  plea- 
sure-loving wealth  ;  this  parent  of  base  lusts ;  this  inciter  to 
carnal  impurity ;  this  friend  of  covetousness ;  this  worker  of 
boasting :  which,  as  with  indissoluble  bonds,  chains  the  human 
mind  in  effeminacy  and  indolence  towards  all  that  is  good,  and 
stretches  out,  so  to  speak,  a  stiff  and  haughty  neck  against 
God :  for  it  yields  not  itself  to  that  yoke  which  would  lead  it 
unto  piety.  And  be  gentle,  and  merciful,  ready  to  communi- 
cate, and  courteous.  For  the  Lord  is  true,  Who  says;  "that 
"  where  thy  treasure  is,  there  is  thy  heart  also."  For  the 
whole  earnestness  of  those  who  value  these  temporal  things  is 
set  upon  them ;  while  those  who  wish  for  that  which  is  in  hea- 
ven, direct  thither  the  eye  of  the  mind.  Be  therefore,  as  I 
said,  friendly  to  thy  companions,  and  merciful.  And  the  blessed 
Paul  makes  me  speak  unto  thee,  where  he  writes ;  "  Charge  1  Tim.  vi. 
"  them  who  are  rich  in  this  world,  that  they  be  not  high-  I7' 
"  minded,  nor  trust  in  riches,  wherein  is  no  reliance,  but  on 
"  God,  Who  giveth  us  all  things  richly  to  enjoy :  that  they  do 
"  good :  that  they  be  rich  in  good  works,  ready  to  give,  and 
"  willing  to  share  with  others  ;  laying  up  for  themselves  trea- 
"  sures  that  shall  be  a  good  foundation  for  that  which  is  to 
"  come,  that  they  may  lay  hold  upon  true  life."  These  are  the 
things  which,  if  we  earnestly  practise,  we  shall  become  heirs  of 
the  kingdom  of  heaven,  by  Christ ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom 
to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy 
Ghost,  for  ever  and  over,  Amen.y 

y  Mai's  first  extract  from  this  ing  partly  his,  but  that  the"  Ca- 
Serraon,  from  A.  and  D.,  is  par-  tenre  do  not  uniformly  ascribe  it  to 
tially  an  abbreviation  of  S.  Cyril,  him  appears  from  Aquinas,  who  as- 
but  with  additional  explanations  signs  half  of  it  to  Theophylact,  and 
from  Theophylact,  and  some  other  half  to  Bede.  Theophylact  always 
author,  of  the  reason  why  our  Lord  borrows  largely  from  CyTil,  but  in- 
called  his  disciples  a  little  flock:  terweaves  his  own  very  marked 
Cf.  Th.  p.  412.  The  passage  may  style  of  interpretation, 
have  been  assigned  to  Cyril  as  be- 


424  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON   XCII. 

C  sii.  55-  L^t  your  loins  be  girt,  and  your  lamps  burning,  and  ye  like 

6pSv  bis  S.       unto  men  that  wait  for  their  lord,  when  he  will  return 

from,  the  banquet :  that  when  he  hath  come  and  knocked 

they  may  open  to  him  immediately.     Blessed  are  those  ser- 

add.  avruv      vants,  whom  their  lord  at  his  coming  shall  find  watching. 

Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  he  will  gird  up  his  loins,  and 

make  them  sit  down  to  meat,  and  pass2  by  and  minister 

om.  eAfy  et      unto  them.     And  if  he  come  in  the  second  watch,  or  if  he 

<Pva£kt)  b.       come  in  the  third  watch,  and  find  them  so,  blessed  are 

om.oloou-       those  servants.     And  know  this,  that  if  the  master  of  the 

house  had  known  at  what  hour  the  thief  would  come,  he 

would  be  awake,  and  not  have  suffered  his  house  to  be  dug 

om.  olv  B.       through.     Be  ye  therefore  also  ready,  for  in  an  hour  that 

ye  expect  not  the  Son  of  man  cometh. 

THE  Psalmist  has  somewhere  said  unto  Christ,  the  Saviour 
Ps.cxix.96.  of  all ;  "  Thy  commandment  is  exceeding  broad."  And  any 
one  may  see  if  he  will  from  the  very  facts  that  this  saying  is 
true:  for  He  establishes  for  us  pathways  in  countless  numbers, 
so  to  speak,  to  lead  us  unto  salvation,  and  make  us  acquainted 
with  every  good  work,  that  we,  winning  for  our  heads  the 
crown  of  piety,  and  imitating  the  noble  conduct  of  the  saints, 
may  attain  to  that  portion  which  is  fitly  prepared  for  them.  For 
this  reason  He  says,  "  Let  your  loins  be  girt,  and  your  lamps 
"  burning."  For  He  speaks  to  them  as  to  spiritually-minded 
persons,  and  describes  once  again  things  intellectual  by  such  as 
are  apparent  and  visible. 

For  let  no  one  say,  that  He  wishes  us  to  have  our  .bodily 
loins  girt,  and  burning  lamps  in  our  hands : — such  an  interpre- 

z  The  Greek  irapuXdotv  probably  translator  renders  yafioi  by  a  "  ban- 
means  "  coming  forward  ;"  Alford  "  quet,"  and  so  does  the  Peschito, 
translates  "coming  in  turn  to  each:"  following  iD  this  the  Greek  usage, 
the  Syriac,  however,  translates  it  which  had  gradually  widened  the 
quite  literally,  and  so  do  both  the  meaning  of  ydjxot  to  any  sumptuous 
Peschito  and  Philox.  versions.  It  entertainment, 
will  be  noticed  also  above  that  the 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  425 

tation  would  suit  only  Jewish  dullness  : — but  our  loins  being 
girt,  signifies  the  readiness  of  the  mind  to  labour  industriously 
in  every  thing  praiseworthy ;  for  such  as  apply  themselves  to 
bodily  labours,  and  are  engaged  in  strenuous  toil,  have  their 
loins  girt.  And  the  lamp  apparently  represents  the  wakefulness 
of  the  mind,  and  intellectual  cheerfulness.a  And  we  say  that 
the  human  mind  is  awake  when  it  repels  any  tendency  to 
slumber  off  into  that  carelessness,  which  often  is  the  means  of 
bringing  it  into  subjection  to  every  kind  of  wickedness,  when 
being  sunk  in  stupor  the  heavenly  light  within  it  is  liable 
to  be  endangered,  or  even  already  is  in  danger  from  a  vio- 
lent and  impetuous  blast,  as  it  were,  of  wind.  Christ  therefore 
commands  us  to  be  awake:  and  to  this  His  disciple  also  arouses 
us  by  saying  ;  Be  awake :  be  watchful.'"  And  further,  the  very  t  Pet.  v.  8. 
wise  Paul  also  says ;  "  Awake,  0  sleeper,  and  arise  from  the  Eph.  v.  14. 
"  dead :  and  Christ  shall  give  thee  liorht."" 

It  is  the  duty  therefore  of  those  who  would  be  partakers  of 
eternal  life,  and  firmly  believe  that  in  due  season  Christ  will 
descend  from  heaven  as  Judge,  not  to  be  lax,  and  dissolved  in 
pleasures ;  nor,  so  to  speak,  poured  out  and  melted  in  worldly 
dissipation :  but  rather  let  them  have  their  will  tightly  girt, 
and  distinguish  themselves  by  their  zeal  in  labouring  in  those 
duties  with  which  God  is  well  pleased.  And  they  must  further 
possess  a  vigilant  and  wakeful  mind,  distinguished  by  the 
knowledge  of  the  truth,  and  richly  endowed  with  the  radiance 
of  the  vision  of  God ;  so  as  for  them,  rejoicing  therein,  to  say, 
"  Thou,  0  Lord,  will  light  my  lamp :  Thou,  my  God,  wilt  Ps.  xviii. 
"  lighten  my  darkness." 

Quite  unbefitting  is  an  expression  like  this  for  heretics, 
whether  they  be  the  sectaries  or  the  teachers.  For  as  Christ 
Himself  said,  "  Darkness  b  has  blinded  their  eyes."  And  this  John  xii. 
Paul  explains  to  us,  saying,  that  "  the  god  of  this  world  hath  \ °qqv  iv  +- 
'"  blinded  the  minds  of  them  that  believe  not,  that  the  light  of 
"  the  glorious  Gospel  of  Christ  may  not  shine  upon  them." 
It  is  our  duty  therefore  carefully  to  avoid  their  false  speaking, 

a  Mai  has  a  short  interpolation  "  watch  with   unwinking  eyes  for 

here,    possibly    from    some    other  "  our  Master's  nod." 

work  of  S.  Cyril,  as  follows  :  "And  b  In  this  quotation  S.  Cyril's  me- 

"  that  we  must  daily  be  prepared  mory    has    apparently  confounded 

"for    our    departure    hence,    and  John  xii.  40.  with  1  John  ii.  11. 

31 


426  COMMENTARY  UPON 

and  not  to  turn  aside  from  the  doctrines  of  the  truth,  and 
admit  into  our  minds  the  darkness  of  the  devil ;  but  rather  to 
draw  near  to  the  true  light,  even  Christ,  praising  Him  in  psalms 

P3.  xiii.  3.  and  saying,  "Lighten  mine  eyes,  that  I  sleep  not  for  death."" 
For  it  is  in  very  deed  death,  and  that  not  of  the  body,  but  of 
the  soul,  to  fall  from  the  uprightness  of  true  doctrines,  and 
choose  falsehood  instead  of  the  truth.  Let  therefore  our  loins 
be  girt,  and  our  lamps  burning,  according  to  what  has  here 
been  spoken  unto  us. 

And  let  us  know  that  the  law  also  of  the  very  wise  Moses 
is  found  to  have  commanded  something  of  the  kind  to  the 

Ex.  xii.  6.    Israelites.    For  a  lamb  was  sacrificed  on  the  fourteenth  day  of 

1  Cor.  v.  7.  the  first  month,  as  a  type  of  Christ.  "  For  our  passover,  Christ 
"  is  sacrificed/'  according  to  the  testimony  of  most  sacred 
Paul.  The  hierophant  Moses  then,  or  rather  God  by  his  means, 

Ex.  xii.  n.  commanded  them,  when  eating  its  flesh,  saying,  "Let  your 
"  loins  be  girt,  and  your  shoes  on  your  feet,  and  your  staves  in 
"  your  hands."  For  I  affirm  that  it  is  the  duty  of  those  who 
are  partakers  of  Christ,  to  beware  of  a  barren  indolence ;  and 
yet  further,  not  to  have  as  it  were  their  loins  ungirt  and  loose, 
but  be  ready  cheerfully  to  undertake  whatever  labours  become 
the  saints ;  and  to  hasten  besides  with  alacrity  whithersoever 
the  law  of  God  leads  them.  And  for  this  reason  He  very 
appropriately  made  them  wear  [at  the  passover]  the  garb  of 
travellers  c. 

And  that  we  ought  to  look  for  the  coming  again  of  Christ 
from  heaven ; — for  He  will  come  in  the  glory  of  the  Father  with 
the  holy  angels  ; — He  has  taught  us  saying,  "  That  we  must  be 
"  like  unto  men  that  wait  for  their  lord,  when  he  will  return 
"  from  the  banqueting-house,  that  when  he  hath  come  and 
"  knocked,  they  may  open  to  him  immediately."  For  Christ 
will  return  as  from  a  feast :  by  which  is  plainly  shown,  that 
God  ever  dwells  in  festivals,  such  as  befit  Him.     For  above 

c  Again,  Mai  adds  the  following  '  "  the  loin,  embolden  thy  strength 

from  B,  ■  For  the  dress  of  travellers  ■  "  greatly."    For  He  bids  them,  as 

'  is  very  fitting  for  those  who  preach  '  though  about  to  proceed  immedi- 

1  the  divine  gospel :    and   so    God  '  ately  to  Judaea,  to  strengthen  the 

'  bids  the  captives  in  Babylon,  when  'loin;  which  means,  to   be   ready 

'  foretelling   their  restoration,   and  '  and  prepared  for  the   labours  of 

'encouraging  them  to  prepare  for  '  wayfaring,  and,  using  resistless  ear- 

'  it;  "  Examine  the  way,  strengthen  '  nestness,to  prevail  over  every  toil.' 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  427 

there  is  no  sadness  whatsoever :  since  nothing  can  grieve  That 
nature  Which  is  incapable  of  passion,  and  of  being  affected  by 
anything  whatsoever  of  this  kind. 

When  therefore  He  comes  and  finds  us  girt  and  wakeful, 
and  with  our  heart  enlightened,  then  forthwith  He  will  make 
us  blessed :  for  "  He  will  gird  up  His  loins,  and  serve  them." 
By  which  we  learn  that  he  will  requite  us  proportionately  : 
and  because  we  are  as  it  were  weary  with  toil,  He  will  comfort 
us,  setting  before  us  spiritual  banquets,  and  spreading  the 
abundant  table  of  His  "rifts. 

"  And  whether  He  come  in  the  second  watch,  it  says,  or 
"  whether  He  come  in  the  third  watch,  blessed  are  they." 
Here  observe  I  pray,  the  breadth  of  the  divine  gentleness,  and 
the  bountifulness  of  His  mildness  towards  us.     For  verily  He 
knoweth  our  frame,  and  the  readiness  with  which  man's  mind 
wanders  into  sin.     He  knoweth  that  the  power  of  fleshly  lust 
tyrannizeth  over  us,  and  that  the  distractions  of  this  world 
even,  so  to  speak,  against  our  will  drag  us  on  by  force,  leading 
the  mind  into  all  that  is  unseemly.     But  in  that  He  is  good, 
He  does  not  leave  us  to  despair,  but  on  the  contrary,  pities  us, 
and  has  given  us  repentance  as  the  medicine  of  salvation.    For 
this  reason  He  says,  that  "  whether  He  come  in  the  second 
"  watch,  or  whether  He  come  in  the  third  watch,  and  find 
"  them  so  doing,  blessed  are  they."     Now  the  meaning  of  this 
thou  will  certainly  wish  clearly  to  understand.     Men  therefore 
divide  the  night  into  three  or  four  watches.     For  the  sentinels 
on  city  walls,  who  watch  the  motions  of.  the  enemy,  after  being 
on  guard  three  or  four  hours,  deliver  over  the  watch  and  guard 
to  others.     So  with  us  there  are  three  ages :  the  first,  that  in 
which  we  are  still  children ;  the  second,  in  which  we  are  young 
men ;  and  the  third,  that  in  which  we  come  to  old  age.     Now 
the  first  of  these,  in  which  we  are  still  children,  is  not  called  to 
account  by  God,  but  is  deemed  worthy  of  pardon,  because  of 
the  imbecillity  as  yet  of  the  mind,  and  the  weakness  of  the 
understanding.     But  the  second  and  the  third,  the  periods  of 
manhood  and  old  age,  owe  to  God  obedience  and  piety  of  life, 
according  to  His  good  pleasure.    Whosoever  therefore  is  found 
watching,  and,  so  to  speak,  well  girt,  whether,  if  it  so  chance, 
he  be  still  a  young  man,  or  one  who  has  arrived  at  old  age, 

3  l  3 


428  COMMENTARY  UPON 

blessed  shall  he  be.     For  he  shall  be  counted  worthy  of  at- 
taining to  Christ's  promises. 

And  in  commanding  us  to  watch,  He  adds  further  for  our 
safety  a  plain  example,  which  very  excellently  shews  that  it  is 
dangerous  to  act  otherwise.  For  He  says,  "  that  if  the  master 
"  of  the  house  had  known  at  what  hour  the  thief  would  come, 
"  he  would  be  awake,  and  not  have  suffered  his  house  to  be 
"  dug  through.  Be  ye  therefore  also  ready,  for  in  an  hour 
"  that  ye  expect  not,  the  Son  of  man  cometh."  For  as  His 
2  Pet.  iii.  disciple,  said,  "The  day  of  the  Lord  will  come  as  a  thief,  in 
"  which  the  heavens  shall  suddenly  pass  away,  and  the  ele- 
"  ments  being  on  fire  shall  melt,  and  the  earth,  and  the  works 
"  that  are  therein  shall  be  utterly  burned.  But  we  look  for 
"  new  heavens  and  a  new  earth,  andJ  His  promises."  And  to 
this  he  adds,  "  Since  then  all  these  things  shall  be  dissolved, 
"  what  manner  of  persons  ought  we  to  be  found,  being  holy 
"  and  without  blame  before  Him  ?  "  For  no  one  at  all  knows 
the  time  of  the  consummation  of  all  things,  at  which  Christ 
shall  appear  from  above,  from  heaven,  to  judge  the  world  in 
righteousness.  Then  shall  He  give  an  incorruptible  crown  to 
them  that  are  watching ;  for  He  is  the  Giver,  and  Distributor, 
and  Bestower  of  the  Divine  gifts:  by  "Whom,  and  with  Whom,  to 
God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 

d  Mai  has  the  ordinary  reading      Syriac  has  the  reading  of  several  of 
Kara  ra  eVayyA/xara  aumv,  hut  the      the  best  MSS.,  as  B,  m)  tu  i,  a. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  429 


SERMON    XCIII. 

And  Peter  said,  Lord  speakest  Thou  this  parable  unto  us,  or  C.  xii.  4 1- 
also  unto  all?  And  the  Lord  said,  Wl\o  then  is  the  faith-  ^  ^^ 
fid  and  ivise  steward,  whom  his  lord  shall  set  over  his  CTs-_ 
household,  to  give  the  portion  of  food  in  its  season  ?  Blessed  bs. 
is  that  servant,  whom,  his  lord  at  his  coming  shall  find  so  ™*e"  5<F 
doing.     Of  a  truth  I  say  unto  you,  that  he  will  appoint  6  <ppw.  BT. 
him  over  all  that  he  hath.     But  if  that  servant  say  in  his  Ka  *' 
heart,  My  lord  delayeth  his  coming,  and  begin  to  beat  the 
men  servants  and  female  servants,  and  to  eat  and  drink, 
and  be  drunken:  the  lord  of  that  servant  shall  come  in  a 
day  that  he  expecteth  not,  and  at  an  hour  of  which  he  is 
not  aware,  and  will  cut  him  asunder,  and  give  him  a  por-  °m-  a"ToS 
tion  with  the  unbelievers.     And  that  servant  who  knew  his 
lord's  will,  and  did  it  not ',-  neither  prepared  according  to  KJ^  ^  ™n'1' 
his  will,  shall  be  beaten  with  many  stripes.     But  he  who  troi^ao-as 
knew  it  not,  and  did  things  worthy  of  stripes,  shall  be  V  *  : £* 
beaten  with  few  stripes.     For  unto  whomsoever  much  is  (?)  B.)  wot. 

BCTc 

given,  of  him  shall  be' much  required:  and  to  whom  men 
have  committed  much,  of  him  they  will  require  the  more. 

IT  is  a  good  and  saving  thing  for  us  to  direct  the  penetrating 
glance  of  the  mind  unto  the  words  of  God.  For  it  is  written  of 
the  words  which  God  speaks,  "Who  is  wise,  and  he  will  under-  Ho9-  xlv-9- 
"  stand  them  ?  or  prudent,  and  he  will  know  their  meaning  ?  " 
For  simply  to  hear,  and  receive  the  spoken  word  in  the  ear,  is 
common  to  all  men,  both  to  the  wise,  and  to  those  who  are  not 
so :  but  the  habit  of  penetrating  deep  into  profitable  thoughts 
is  found  only  with  those  who  are  truly  wise.  Let  us  therefore 
ask  this  of  Christ :  let  us  imitate  the  blessed  Peter,  that  chosen 
disciple,  that  faithful  steward  and  true  believer ;  who,  when  he 
had  heard  Christ  say  somewhat  highly  advantageous  for  their 
benefit,  prayed  that  it  might  be  explained  to  him,  and  did 
not  allow  it  to  pass  by,  because  he  had  not  as  yet  clearly 
understood  it.  For  he  said,  "  Lord,  speakest  Thou  this  parable 
"  unto  us,  or  also  unto  all?"    Is  it,  he  asks,  a  general  law,  and 


430  COMMENTARY  UPON 

one  that  appertains  in  equal  measure  to  all,  or  is  it  fitting  for 
those  only  who  are  superior  to  the  rest?  What  then  was  it 
which  troubled  the  wise  disciple,  or  what  led  him  to  wish  to 
learn  things  such  as  this  from  Christ  ?  This  point  then  we  will 
first  discuss. 

There  are  then  some  commandments  which  befit  those  who 
have  attained  to  apostolic  dignities,  or  possess  a  more  than 
ordinary  knowledge,  and  the  higher  spiritual  virtues ;  while 
others  belong  to  those  in  an  inferior  station.     And  that  this  is 
true,  and  according  to  my  words,  we  may  see  from  what  the 
iCor. iii. 2.  blessed  Paul  wrote  unto  certain  of  his  disciples,  "I  have  given 
"  you  milk  to  drink,  and  not  meat :  for  ye  were  not  as  yet 
Heb.  v.  r4.  "  strong  enough,  nor  even  yet  could  ye  bear  it."     "  For  solid 
"  food  belongeth  to  them  that  are  full  grown,  who  by  reason 
"  of  perfectnesse  have  the  senses  of  the  heart  exercised  for  the 
"  discerning  of  good  and  evil."     For  just,  for  instance,  as  very 
heavy  burdens  can  be  carried  by  persons  of  a  very  power- 
ful frame,  to  which  men  of  weaker  stature   are  unequal,  so 
those  of  a  vigorous  mind  may  justly  be  expected  to  fulfil  the 
weightier  and  more  excellent  commands  among  those  which 
become  the  saints ;  while  such  as  are,  so  to  speak,  simple,  and 
quite  easy,  and  free  from  all  difficulty,  suit  those  who  have  not 
yet  attained  to  this   spiritual   strength.     The    blessed  Peter 
therefore,  considering  with  himself  the  force  of  what  Christ 
had  said,  rightly  asked,  which  of  the  two  was  meant;  whether 
the  declaration  referred  to  all  believers,  or  only  to  them ;  that 
is,  to  those  who  had  been  called  to  the  discipleship,  and  espe- 
cially honoured  by  the  grant  of  apostolic  powers  ? 

And  what  is  our  Lord's  reply  ?  He  makes  use  of  a  clear  and 
very  evident  example,  to  shew  that  the  commandment  especially 
belongs  to  those  who  occupy  a  more  dignified  position,  and 
have  been  admitted  into  the  rank  of  teachers.  "  For  who,  He 
"  says,  is  the  faithful  and  wise  servant,  whom  his  lord  will  set 
"  over  his  household,   to  give  the  allowance   of  food   at  its 

0  As  all  the  MSS.  read  <£ir,  and  "  ness,"  "  ability  obtained  by  prac- 

also  the  Greek  of  Mai,  the  Syriac  "  tice  and  experience;"  for  examples 

translator  apparently  intends  to  ex-  of  which  cf.  Rost's  Passow.    "  The 

press  it  by  his  word  "  perfectness"  "  senses  of  the  heart"  is  rather  a 

or  "  completeness."     He  has  taken  periphrase  than  a  translation  of  ra 

it  therefore  in  its  sense  of  "  skilful-  aiaQrjrrjpia. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  431 

"  season/'  {  Let  us  suppose,  He  says,  a  householder  ;  who 
'  being  about  to  go  upon  a  journey,  has  entrusted  to  one  of  his 
'  faithful  slaves  the  charge  of  all  his  house,  to  give  his  house- 
'  hold,  that  is,  his  servants,  their  allowance  of  corn  at  its  due 
1  season.  When  therefore,  He  says,  he  shall  return,  if  on 
'  coming  to  his  house  he  shall  find  him  so  doing  as  he  com- 
'  manded,  very  blessed  shall  that  servant  be.  For  he  will  set 
'  him,  He  says,  over  all  that  he  hath.  But  if  he  be  neglectful 
'  and  indolent,  and  take  pleasure  in  oppressing  his  fellow- 
'  servants,  eating  and  drinking,  and  given  up  to  self-indulgent 
'  voluptuousness,  he  will  be  cut  asunder,  that  is,  will  have  to 
'  bear  the  severest  punishment,  when  his  lord  shall  come  to 
'  him  in  a  day  that  he  expecteth  not,  and  at  an  hour  of  which 
'  he  is  not  aware.' 

Such  then  is  the  simple  and  plain  meaning  of  the  passage : 
but  if  we  now  fix  our  mind  accurately  upon  it,  we  shall  see  what 
is  signified  bv  it,  and  how  useful  it  is  for  their  benefit  who 
have  been  called  to  the  apostleship,  to  the  office,  that  is,  of 
teacher.  The  Saviour  has  ordained  as  stewards,  so  to  speak, 
over  his  servants ; — that  is,  over  those  who  have  been  won  by 
faith  to  the  acknowledgment  of  His  glory ; — men  faithful  and 
of  oreat  understanding,  and  well  instructed  in  the  sacred  doc- 
trines.  And  He  has  ordained  them,  commanding  them  to  give 
their  fellow-servants  their  allowance  of  food;  and  that  not 
simply  and  without  distinction,  but  rather  at  its  proper  season  : 
by  which  is  meant  such  food,  I  mean  spiritual  food,  as  is 
sufficient  and  fitting  for  each  individual.  For  it  is  not  fitting 
to  address  simply  to  all  who  have  believed  in  Christ  instruction 
upon  all  points ;  for  it  is  written,  "  With  knowledge  learn  the  Proy. 
"  souls  of  thy  flock.'"  For  very  different  is  the  way  in  which  xxvu"  *3' 
we  establish  in  the  paths  of  truth  one  who  has  but  just  now 
become  a  disciple,  using  simple  teaching,  in  which  there  is 
nothing  profound  nor  difficult  to  understand,  counselling  him 
to  escape  from  the  error  of  polytheism,  and  fittingly  persuading 
him  to  discern  by  the  beauty  of  things  created,  the  universal 
Creator  and  Artificer,  Who  is  One  by  nature,  and  verily  God : 
from  the  way  in  which  we  instruct  those  who  are  more  con- 
firmed in  mind,  and  able  to  understand  what  is  the  height  and 
depth,  and  what  the  length  and  breadth,  of  the  definitions  of 


432  COMMEXTAEY  UPON 

the  supreme  Godhead.     For  as  we  have  already  said,  "  Solid 
a  meat  belongeth  to  them  that  are  full  grown." 

Whoever  therefore  shall  wisely  in  due  season,  and  according 
to  their  need,  divide  to  his  fellow-servants  their  portion,  that 
is,  their  food,  very  blessed  shall  he  be,  according  to  the 
Saviour's  word.  For  he  shall  be  counted  worthy  of  still 
greater  things,  and  shall  receive  a  suitable  recompense  for  his 
fidelity.  "  For  he  will  set  him.  He  says,  over  all  that  he  hath.'' 
And  this  the  Saviour  has  elsewhere  taught  us,  where  praising 
Mat.  xxv.  the  active  and  faithful  servant,  He  said,  "  0  good  and  faithful 
"'  "  servant,  thou  hast  been  faithful  over  few  things,  I  will  set 

"  thee  over  many  things :  enter  into  the  joy  of  thy  lord." 

But  if,  He  says,  neglecting  the  duty  of  being  diligent  and 
faithful,  and  despising  watchfulness  in  these  things  as  super- 
fluous, he  let  his  mind  grew  intoxicated  with  worldly  cares, 
and  is  seduced  into  improper  courses,  dragging  by  force,  and 
oppressing  those  who  are  subject  to  him,  and  not  giving  them 
their  portion,  in  utter  wretchedness  shall  he  be.  For  this  I 
think,  and  this  only,  is  the  meaning  of  his  being  cut  asunder. 
"  And  his  portion  too,"  He  says,  "shall  be  with  the  unbe- 
"  lievers."  For  whosoever  hath  done  wrong  to  the  glory  of 
Christ,  or  ventured  to  think  slightingly  of  the  flock  entrusted 
to  his  charge,  differs  in  no  respect  whatsoever  from  those  who 
know  Him  not:  and  all  such  persons  will  justly  be  counted 
amons  those  who  have  no  love  for  Him.  For  Christ  even 
John  xxi.  once  said  to  the  blessed  Peter,  "  Simon,  son  of  Jonah,  lovest 
l6-  "  thou  Me  ?  feed  My  sheep  ;  feed  My  lambs."     If  therefore 

he  who  feeds  his  flock  loves  it,  then  of  course  he  that  neglects 
it,  and  leaves  the  flock  that  has  been  entrusted  to  him  without 
oversight,  hates  it :  and  if  he  hate  it  he  will  be  punished,  and 
be  liable  to  the  condemnation  pronounced  upon  the  unbelievers, 
as  being  convicted  by  the  very  facts  of  being  negligent  and 
contemptuous.  Such  was  he  who  received  the  talent  to  trade 
with  in  things  spiritual,  and  did  not  do  so,  but  on  the  contrary 
brought  that  which  had  been  given  him  without  increase, 
Mat.  xxv.  saying,  "  Lord,  I  knew  that  thou  art  a  hard  man,  that  thou 
*4-  "  reapest  where  thou  hast  not  sown,  and  gatherest  whence 

"  thou   hast  not  scattered  ;    and  I   was  afraid,  and  hid  the 
"  talent :  lo !  thou  hast  what  is  thine."     But  those  who  had 


POTJTUlS 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  433 

received  the  five  talents,  or  even  yet  more,  and  laboured  and 
loved  service,  were  honoured  with  glorious  dignities.  For  they 
heard,  the  one  of  them,  "  Be  thou  over  ten,"  and  the  other, 
"  Be  thou  over  five  cities  :"  while  that  contumelious  and  slothful 
servant  suffered  the  severest  condemnation.  To  be  negligent 
therefore  in  discharging  the  duties  of  the  ministry  is  every- 
where dangerous,  or  rather,  brings  upon  men  perdition:^  but  to 
perform  them  with  unwearying  zeal  earns  for  us  life  and 
glory.  And  this  means  to  discourse  to  our  fellow  servants 
correctly  and  without  error  the  things  which  relate  to  God, 
and  whatsoever  is  able  to  benefit  them  in  attaining  both  to  the 
knowledge  and  the  ability  to  walk  uprightly.  And  the  blessed 
Paul  [Peter]  also  writes  to  certain  persons,  "  Feed  the  flock  of  i  Pet.  v.  2. 
"  God  which  is  among  you,  that  when  the  Chief  Shepherd 
"  shall  appear,  ye  may  receive  your  reward"  And  as  know- 
ing  that  slothfulness  is  the  door  of  perdition,  he  again  said, 
"  Woe  is  me,  if  I  preach  not."  l  or'lx'1 

And  that  bitter  and  inevitable  punishment  is  threatened 
against  those  who  are  slothful  in  this  duty,  the  Saviour  immedi- 
ately shewed,  by  adding  to  what  had  been  already  said  two  ex- 
amples one  after  the  other.  "  For  the  servant,"  He  says,  "  who 
"knew  his  master's  will,  and  did  it  not,  neither  prepared 
"  according  to  his  will,  shall  be  beaten  with  many  stripes  :  but 
"  he  who  knew  it  not,  and  did  things  worthy  of  stripes,  shall 
«  be  beaten  with  few  stripes."  Now  the  guilt  is  indisputable 
in  the  case  of  him  who  knew  his  master's  will,  but  afterwards 
neglected  it,  and  did  nothing  that  was  fitting,  and  which  it  was 
his"  duty  to  do.  For  it  is  manifest  contumely,  and  therefore 
the  many  stripes.  But  for  what  reason  were  the  few  stripes 
inflicted  on  him  who  neither  knew  nor  did  his  master's  will  ? 
For  some  one,  for  instance,  may  say,  How  can  he  who  knew  it 
not  be  guilty  ?  The  reason  is,  because  he  would  not  know  it, 
although  it  was  in  his  power  to  learn.  But  if  he  who  is  . 
entirely  ignorant  of  it  does  not  escape  from  anger,  because 
when  it  was  his  duty  to  know  he  neglected  the  means  of  learn- 
ing what  plea  can  deliver  him  from  justly  bearing  many 
stripes,  who  knew,  and  disregarded  it?  «  For  unto  whomso- 
"  ever  much  is  given,  of  him  shall  be  much  required :  and  to 
«  whom  men  h^ve  committed  much,  of  him  they  will  require 
"  the  more." 

3K 


434  COMMENT AR  V .  UPON 

Very  severe  therefore  is  the  condemnation  of  those  who 
teach.  And  this  Christ's  disciple  shews  us,  saying, "  Let  there 
"  not  be  many  teachers  among  you,  my  brethren,  knowing  that 
"  we  shall  receive  the  greater  condemnation."  For  abundant 
is  the  bestowal  of  spiritual  gifts  upon  those  who  are  the  chiefs 
of  the  people:  for  so  the  wise  Paul  also  somewhere  wrote  to 
Tim.  ii.  7.  the  blessed  Timothv  ;  "  The  Lord  shall  give  thee  wisdom  in 
Tim.  i.  6.  "  every  thing.'1  And,  "Despise  not  the  gift  that  is  in  thee, 
"  which  was  given  thee  by  the  laving  on  of  my  hands."  From 
such  as  these  then,  the  Saviour  of  all,  in  that  He  hath  given 
them  much,  requires  much  in  return.  And  what  are  the  vir- 
tues He  requires  ?  Constancy  in  the  faith  ;  correctness  in 
teaching ;  to  be  well  grounded  in  hope  ;  unwavering  in 
patience  ;  invincible  in  spiritual  strength  ;  cheerful  and  brave 
in  every  more  excellent  achievement :  that  so  we  may  be 
examples  to  others  of  the  evangelic  life.  For  if  we  will 
thus  live,  Christ  will  bestow  upon  us  the  crown  ;  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion, 
with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen f. 

f  An  instance  occurs  in  this  ser-  and  for  the  most  part  in  his  very 

mon  of  the  manner  in  which  the  words,  but  entirely  remodelled,  and 

Catenists  summed   up  the  general  in  the  manner  of  an  abstract  rather 

sense  of  a  passage :  for  the  second  than  of  a  quotation.     An  exactly 

extract   given   by   Mai    in    p.  304,  similar  but  shorter  instance  occurs 

from  A  and  D,  but  chiefly  I  ima-  again  in  Mai,  p.  310. 
gine  from  the  latter,  is  really  Cyril's, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  iSo 


SERMON   XCIV. 

/  am  come  to  cast  fire  upon  the  earth  :  and  what  will  I,  ifC.  xii.  49- 
already  it  be  kindled?  And  I  have  a  baptism  to  be  bap- 
tized with  :  and  how  am  I  straitened,  until  it  be  accom- 
plished !  Ye  think  that  I  am  come  to  give  peace  upon 
earth:  I  tell  you,  Nay,  but  division.  For  henceforth  there 
shall  be  five  in  one  house  divided ;  three  against  two,  and 
two  against  three.     The  father  shall  be  divided  against  Sia^ptcre-h- 

«/  */  *s  Tvn 

■l  •  (Tovrai  Ul. 

the  son,  and  the  son  against  the  father ;  the  mother  against  —0^aiTai 
the  daughter,  and  the  daughter  against  the  mother;  theGSs' 
mother-in-laxv  against  her  daughter-in-law,  and  the  daugh- 
ter-in-law against  her  mother-in-law.  °m-  a"T^9 

GOD  the  Father  for  the  salvation  of  all  sent  down  for  us 
the  Son  from  heaven.  For  to  the  Israelites  indeed  He  gave  p3.  ixxviii. 
the  law  to  be  their  helper,  according  to  the  Scripture ;  and  3" 
also  spake  to  them  by  the  holy  prophets  such  things  as  were 
profitable  for  their  salvation,  promising  them  the  deliverance 
that  is  by  Christ.  But  when  the  season  had  arrived,  in  which 
those  things  that  had  been  prophesied  of  old  were  to  be  accom- 
plished, He  Who  is  God  and  Lord  shone  forth  upon  us.  And 
He  tells  us  the  cause  thereof  in  those  words ;  "  I  am  come  to 
"  cast  fire  upon  the  earth ;  and  what  will  I  if  already  it  be 
"kindled?"  Come  therefore,  and  let  us  examine  of  what 
nature  is  this  fire,  concerning  which  He  here  speaks.  Is  it 
useful  for  those  upon  earth?  Is  it  for  their  salvation?  Or  does  it 
torture  men,  and  cause  their  perdition,  like  that  which  is  pre- 
pared for  the  devil  and  Ins  angels? 

We  affirm  therefore  that  the  fire  which  is  sent   forth   by 
Christ  is  for  men's  salvation  and  profits:  God  grant  that  all 

s  The  Catenist  in  Mai  (from  A,)  give  the  leading  portions  of  what 

prefaces    this    sentence    with    the  follows  very%correctly,  though  not 

words,   "  Cleopas  and  his  compa-  in   the  same   order  as   the  Syriac. 

"  nions  having  this  fire  said,  Did  Cramer  gives  the  same  sentence  eg 

"  not  our  heart  burn  within  us  on  avemypd^ov,   whence   probably   its 

"  the  way  as  he  opened  to  us  the  confusion  with  what  is  really  Cy- 

"  Scriptures,"  but  then  proceeds  to  ril's. 

3  K  - 


436  COMMENTARY  UPON 

oar  hearts  may  be  full  thereof.  For  the  fire  here  is,  I  say,  the 
savins  message  of  the  Gospel,  and  the  power  of  its  command- 
meats  ;  by  which  all  of  us  upon  earth,  who  were  so  to  speak 
cold  and  dead  because  of  sin,  and  in  ignorance  of  Him  Who  by 
nature  and  truly  is  God,  are  kindled  unto  a  life  of  piety,  and 

Rom.  xii.  made  "  fervent  in  spirit,"  according  to  the  expression  of  the 
blessed  Paul.  And  besides  this  we  are  also  made  partakers  of 
the  Holy  Ghost,  "Who  is  as  fire  within  us.  For  we  have  been 
baptized  with  fire  and  the  Holy  Ghost.  And  we  have  learnt 
the  way  thereto,  by  what  Christ  says  to  us  :  for  listen  to  His 

John  iii.  5.  words  ;  "  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  except  a  man  be  born  of 
"  water  and  spirit,  he  cannot  see  the  kingdom  of  God." 

It  is  the  custom  moreover  of  the  divinely  inspired  Scripture 
to  o*ive  the  name  of  fire  sometimes  to  the  divine  and  sacred 
words,  and  to  the  efficacy  and  power  which  is  by  the  Holy 
Ghost,  and  whereby  we  are  made,  as  I  said,  "  fervent  in 
"  spirit."     For  one  of  the  holy  prophets  thus  spake  as  in  the 

Mai.  iii.  1.  person  of  God  respecting  Christ  our  common  Saviour  :  "The 
"  Lord,  Whom  ye  seek,  shall  suddenly  come  to  His  temple, 
"  even  the  Messenger  of  the  covenant,  Whom  ye  desire : 
"  behold  He  cometh  saith  the  Lord.  And  who  shall  endure 
"  the  day  of  His  coming  ?  or  who  shall  stand  at  the  sight 
"  of  Him  ?  For  lo  !  He  cometh  like  the  fire  of  a  furnace,  and 
'*  like  the  sulphur  of  the  bleacher.  And  He  shall  sit,  like  one 
"  that  smelteth  and  purifieth  as  silver  and  as  gold."  Now  by 
the  temple  he  here  means  the  body,  holy  of  a  truth  and  unde- 
fined, which  was  born  of  the  holy  virgin  by  the  Holy  Ghost  in 
the  power  of  the  Father.     For  so  was  it  said  to  the  blessed 

Luke  i.  35.  virgin,  "  The  Holy  Ghost  shall  come  upon  thee,  and  the  power 
f  of  the  Highest  shall  overshadow  thee."  And  he  styles  Him 
"  the  Messenger  of  the  covenant,"  because  He  makes  known 
and  ministers  unto  us  the  good-will  of  the  Father.     For  He 

John  xv.     has  Himself  said  to  us,  "  All  things  that  I  have  heard  of  the 

'5'  "  Father,  I  have  made  known  unto  you."     And  the  prophet 

Is.  L\.  6.  Isaiah  also  thus  writes  respecting  Him ;  "  Unto  us  a  Child  is 
"  born ;  yea,  unto*  us  a  Son  is  given :  and  His  government 
"  shall  be  upon  His  shoulder :  and  His  name  shall  be  called, 
"  The  Messenger  of  the  great  counsel."  Just  therefore  as 
those  who  know  how  to  refine  gold  and  silver,  melt  out  the 
dross  contained  in  them  by  the  use  of  fire ;  so  also  the  Saviour 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  437 

of  all  cleanses  by  the  doctrines  of  the  Gospel  in  the  power  of  the 
Spirit,  the  mind  of  all  those  who  have  believed  in  Him. 

And  further  the  prophet  Isaiah  also  said,  that  "  He  saw  the  is.  vi.  i. 
"  Lord  of  Sabaoth  sitting  upon  a  throne  high,  and  lifted  up  : 
"  and  around  Him  stood  the  Seraphim,  praising  Him.  Then 
"  said  He  to  himself,  Alas  for  me  a  sinner,  for  I  repent  me  :  in 
"  that  being  a  man,  and  of  unclean  lips,  I  dwell  among  a 
"  people  of  unclean  lips,  and  have  seen  with  my  eyes  the  King, 
"  the  Lord  of  Sabaoth."  But  to  this  he  adds,  that  "  one  of 
"  the  Seraphim  was  sent  unto  me,  and  in  his  hand  he  had  a 
"  live  coal,  which  he  had  taken  with  the  tongs  from  the  altar, 
"  and  he  touched  with  it  my  mouth,  and  said,  Lo !  this  hath 
"  touched  thy  lips,  and  it  shall  take  away  thy  sins,  and  cleanse 
"  thee  of  thy  iniquities."  What  interpretation  then  are  we  to 
put  upon  the  coal  which  touched  the  prophet's  lips,  and 
cleansed  him  from  all  sin  ?  Plainly  it  is  the  message  of  sal- 
vation, and  the  confession  of  faith  in  Christ,  which  whosoever 
receiveth  with  his  mouth  is  forthwith  and  altogether  purified. 
And  of  this  Paul  thus  assureth  us;  "that  if  thou  shalt  say  with  Kom.  x.  9. 
"  thy  mouth  that  Jesus  is  Lord,  and  shalt  believe  in  thy  heart 
"  that  God  hath  raised  Him  from  the  dead,  thou  shalt  be 
"  saved." 

We  say  then  that  the  power  of  the  divine  message  resembles 
a  live  coal  and  fire.     And  the  God  of  all  somewhere  said  to  the 
prophet  Jeremiah,  "  Behold,  I  have  made  My  words  in  thy  jer.  v.  14. 
"  mouth  to  be  fire,  and  this  people  to  be  wood,  and  it  shall 
"  devour  them."     And  again,  "  Are  not  My  words  as  burning  jer.  xxiii. 
"  fire,  saith  the  Lord  ?"  Rightly  therefore  did  our  Lord  Jesus  29- 
Christ  say  unto  us,  "  I  am  come  to  throw  fire  upon  earth ;  and 
"  what  will  I,  if  it  be  already  kindled  ? "    For  already  some  of 
the  Jewish  crowd  believed  on  Him,  whose  firstfruits  were  the 
divine  disciples :  and  the  fire  being  once  kindled  was  soon  to 
seize  upon  the  whole  world,  immediately  that  the  whole  dis- 
pensation had  attained  to  its  completion :  as  soon,  that  is,  as  He 
had  borne  His  precious  passion  upon  the  cross,  and  had  com- 
manded the  bonds  of  death  to  cease.     For  He  rose  on  the 
third  day  from  the  dead. 

And  this  He  teaches  us  by  saying,  "  But  I  have  a  baptism  to 
"  be  baptized  with,  and  how  am  I  straitened  until  it  be  accom- 
"  plished !"   And  by  His  baptism  He  means  His  death  in  the 


438  COMMENTARY  UPON 

flesh :  and  bv  being  straitened  because  of  it  He  means,  that 
He  was  saddened  and  troubled  until  it  was  accomplished.  For 
what  was  to  happen  when  it  was  accomplished  ?  That  hence- 
forth not  in  Judrea  only  should  the  saving  message  of  the 
Gospel  be  proclaimed :  comparing  which  to  fire  He  said,  "  I 
"  am  come  to  send  fire  upon  earth  :" — but  that  now  it  should 
be  published  even  to  the  whole  world.  For  before  the  precious 
cross,  and  His  resurrection  from  the  dead,  His  commandments 
and  the  glory  of  His  divine  miracles,  were  spoken  of  in  Judaea 
only.     But  because  Israel  sinned  against  Him,  for  they  killed 

Actsiii.  15.  the  Prince  of  Life,  as  far  as  they  were  concerned,  even  though 
He  arose  having  spoiled  the  grave :  then  immediately  He  gave 

M.-u.xxviii.  commandment  to  the  holy  apostles  in  these  words:  "  Go,  make 
"  disciples  of  all  nations,  baptizing  them  in  the  name  of  the 
"  Father  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost ;  and  teach- 
"  ing  them  to  observe  all  those  things  which  I  have  commanded 
"  you."  Behold  therefore,  yea  see,  that  throughout  all  nations 
was  that  sacred  and  divine  fire  spread  abroad  by  means  of  the 
holy  preachers. 

And  of  the  holy  apostles  and  evangelists  Christ  somewhere 

Zech.  xii.6.  spake  by  one  of  the  prophets  :  "  And  it  shall  come  to  pass  in 
"  that  day,  that  I  will  make  the  heads  of  the  thousands  of 
"  Judah  like  a  firebrand  among  wood,  and  like  a  fiery  lamp 
"  among  reeds ;  and  they  shall  devour  on  the  right  hand  and 
"  on  the  left  all  the  nations  round  about."  For,  so  to  speak, 
like  fire  they  ate  up  all  the  nations,  and  fed  upon  the  whole 
earth,  kindling  all  its  inhabitants,  who  as  I  said  were  cold,  and 
had  suffered  the  death  of  ignorance  and  sin. 

Wouldst  thou  see  the  effects  of  this  divine  and  rational  fire  ? 
hear  then  again  His  words  :  "  Or  think  ye  that  I  am  come  to 
"  give  peace  upon  earth  ?    I  tell  you,  nay,  but  division."    And 

Eph.  ii.  14.  yet  Christ  is  our  peace,  according  to  the  Scriptures.  "  He 
"  hath  broken  down  the  middle  wall :  He  hath  united  the 
"  two  people  in  one  new  man,  so  making  peace  :  and  hath 
"  reconciled  both  in  one  body  unto  the  Father."  He  hath 
united  the  things  below  to  them  that  are  above  :  how  therefore 
did  He  not  come  to  give  peace  upou  earth  ?  What  then  say  wc 
to  these  things11? 

h  In  Mai  nearly  a  page  of  addi-  and  C.  recasting  the  latter  part  of 
tional  matter  is  inserted  from  A.  B.     this  passage  in  a  more   rhetorical 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  439 

That  peace  is  an  honourable  and  truly  excellent  thing  when 
given  by  God.  For  the  prophets  also  say;  "  Lord,  grant  us  Is.xxvi.n 
"  peace  :  for  Thou  hast  given  us  all  things."  But  not  every 
peace1  necessarily  is  free  from  blame :  there  is  sometimes,  so  to 
speak,  an  unsafe  peace,  and  which  separates  from  the  love  of 
God  those  who,  without  discretion  or  examination,  set  too  high 
a  value  upon  it.  As  for  instance:  the  determination  to  avoid  evil 
men,  and  refuse  to  be  at  peace  with  them  ; — by  which  I  mean 
the  not  submitting  to  entertain  the  same  sentiments  as  they 
do ; — is  a  thing  profitable  and  useful  to  us.  And  in  like  man- 
ner the  opposite  course  is  injurious  to  those  who  have  believed 
in  Christ,  and  attained  to  the  knowledge  of  His  mystery  :  to 
such  it  is  unprofitable  to  be  willing  to  follow  the  same  sentiments 
as  those  who  wander  away  from  the  right  path,  and  have  fallen 
into  the  net  of  heathen  error,  or  been  caught  in  the  snares  of 
wicked  heresies.  With  these  it  is  honourable  to  contend,  and 
to  set  the  battle  constantly  in  array  against  them,  and  to  glory 
in  holding  opposite  sentiments ;  so  that  even  though  it  be  a 
father  that  believes  not,  the  son  is  free  from  blame  who  con- 
tradicts him,  and  resists  his  opinions.  And  in  like  manner  also 
the  father,  if  he  be  a  believer,  and  true  unto  God,  but  his  son 
disobedient  and  evilly  disposed,  and  that  opposeth  the  glory  of 
Christ,  is  also  free  from  blame,  if  he  disregard  natural  affec- 
tion, and  disowns  him  as  his  child.  And  the  same  reasoning 
holds  with  respect  to  mother  and  daughter :  and  daughter-in- 
law  and  mother-in-law.  For  it  is  right  that  those  who  are  in 
error  should  follow  those  who  are  sound  in  mind :  and  not,  on 
the  contrary,  that  those  should  give  way  whose  choice  is  to 

form,    and    which,    after     dilating  "  peace  is   an    honourable  thing," 

upon     the     seeming    contradiction  and  gives  the   rest   in   accordance 

between  Christ's   declarations,  that  generally  with  the  Syriac,  but  in  a 

He    especially   gives    peace,   (John  briefer  form.    Possibly  therefore  the 

xiv.  27.),  and  yet  is  come   not  to  Catenists  may  have  borrowed  from 

give  peace  upon  earth,  finally  solves  S.  Cyril's    Commentary    on    Mat. 

the    difficulty   by    quoting    1  Cor.  x.  34. 

v.  11.  that  we  are  not  even  to  eat  '  In  the  margin  some  later  hand 

with  a  fornicator;    and  2  John  10,  has  written;  "That  not  every  peace 

that  we  are  not  to  receive  a  heretic.  "  is  free  from  blame,  but  that  there 

It  tfien  inserts  &7X02/  yap  before  the  "  is   an   unsafe   peace,  and   which 

next  passage,  "  For  it  is  plain  that  "  withdraws  us  from  loving  God." 


440  COMMENTARY  UPON 

entertain  correct  sentiments,  and  who  have  a  sound  knowledge 
of  the  glory  of  God. 

And  this  Christ  has  also  declared  to  us  in  another  manner ; 

Mat.  x.  37.  «  jfJe  that  loveth  father  or  mother  more  than  Me,  is  not 
"  worthy  of  Me :  and  he  that  loveth  son  or  daughter  more 
"  than  Me,  is  not  worthy  of  Me."  When  therefore  thou  de- 
niest  an  earthly  father  for  thy  piety's  sake  towards  Christ, 
then  shalt  thou  gain  as  Father  Him  Who  is  in  heaven.  And 
if  thou  give  up  a  brother  because  he  dishonours  God,  by  re- 
fusing to  serve  Him,  Christ  will  accept  thee  as  His  brother : 
for  with  His  other  bounties  He  has  given  us  this  also,  saying ; 

P3.xxii. z2.  "  I  will  declare  Thy  Name  unto  My  brethren.1'  Leave  thy 
mother  after  the  flesh,  and  take  her  who  is  above,  the  heavenly 

Gal.  iv.  16.  Jerusalem,  "  which  is  our  mother:"  so  wilt  thou  find  a  glorious 
and  mighty  lineage  in  the  family  of  the  saints.  With  them 
thou  wilt  be  heir  of  God's  gifts,  which  neither  the  mind  can 
comprehend,  nor  language  tell.  Of  which  may  we  too  be 
counted  worthy  by  the  grace  and  loving-kindness  of  Christ,  the 
Saviour  of  us  all ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for 
ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  441 


SERMON    XCV. 

And  He  said  also  to  the  multitudes,  When  ye  have  seen  a  -Qxn'  3*~ 
cloud  rising  out  of  the  xuest,  straightway  ye  say,  that  rain  add.  8™  S. 
cometh ;  and  so  it  is.     And  when  [_ye  see]  the  south  wind 
blowing,  ye  say,   There   will  be  heat :  and  so  it  is.      Ye 
hypocrites  !  ye  know  how  to  prove  the  face  of  the  sky,  and 
of  the  earth :  how  then  know  ye  not  hoiv  to  prove  this  time  ?  o!j*  »Wot« 
and  why  even  of  yourselves  judge  ye  not  what  is  just  ?  For  gg. 
whilst  thou  art  going  with  him  who  hath  a  suit  against  °?  5o*'£~" 
thee  in  the  way  to  the  magistrate,  give  diligence  that  thou  ev  rfj  68$ 
mayest  be  delivered  from  him ;   lest  he  drag  thee  to  the  g71"  a^ovra 
judge,  and  the  judge  deliver  thee  to  the  exactor,  and  the  om.  a*'  B. 
exactor  cast  thee  into  prison.     I  tell  thee,  thou  shalt  not 
come  out  thence,  until  thou  hast  made  compensation  unto 
the  last  mite. 

THOSE  physicians  who  are  exact  in  their  art,  and  have  be- 
come proficients  by  great  practice,  deliver  the  sick  from  their 
maladies,  by  making  use  of  many  kinds  of  drugs,  by  the  aid  of 
which  they  appease  the  anguish  of  men's  sufferings,  gathering 
from  all  quarters  whatever  may  benefit  them.     And  this  we 
also  find  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  all,  here  doing :  for  He  is  the 
Physician  of  spirits,  and  delivers  us  from  the  maladies  of  the 
soul.  For  He  even  said  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets ;  "  Return,  Jer.  Hi.  a*. 
"  ye  returning  sons  ;  and  I  will  heal  your  breaches."     And  as 
knowing  this,  the  prophet  Jeremiah  offered  up  his  supplications 
unto  Him  in  these  words :  "  Heal  me,  O  Lord,  and  I  shall  be  Jer.  xvii. 
"  healed :  save  me,  0  Lord,  and  I  shall  be  saved :  for  Thou  l4' 
"  art  my  glory." 

Observe,  therefore,  how  he  prepares  for  us  the  medicine  of 
admonition,  not  using  as  He  so  often  did  direct  discourse,  but 
mingling,  so  to  speak,  and  entwining  with  it  images  drawn 
from  examples,  to  make  it  the  more  abundantly  profitable. 
For  He  cried  unto  the  multitudes,  saying ;  "  When  ye  see  a 
"  cloud  rising  out  of  the  west,  straightway  ye  say  that  rain 

3  l 


442  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  cometh ;  and  it  is  so.  And  when  [ye  see]  the  south  wind 
"  blowing,  ye  say  there  will  be  heat :  and  so  it  is."  For  men 
fix  their  attention  on  things  of  this  kind,  and  from  long  obser- 
vation and  practice  tell  beforehand  when  rain  will  fall,  or  gusts 
happen  of  violent  winds  :  and  one  especially  sees  sailors  very 
skilful  in  this  matter.  Well  therefore,  He  says,  well  would  it 
become  those  who  can  calculate  things  of  this  sort,  and  foretell, 
it  may  be,  storms  that  are  about  to  happen,  to  fix  the  pene- 
trating glance  of  the  mind  also  upon  matters  of  importance. 
And  what  are  these  ?  The  law  shewed  beforehand  the  mystery 
of  Christ ;  and  that  certainly  He  would  shine  forth  in  the  last 
ages  of  the  world  upon  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth,  and  sub- 
mit to  be  a  sacrifice  for  the  salvation  of  all.  For  it  even  corn- 
Ex.  xii.  6.  manded  a  lamb  to  be  sacrificed  as  a  type  of  Him  towards 
evening,  and  at  lamp-lighting ;  that  we  might  understand,  that 
when,  like  the  day,  this  world  was  declining  to  its  close,  the 
great  and  precious  and  truly-saving  passion  would  be  fulfilled  : 
and  the  door  of  salvation  be  thrown  widely  open  unto  those 
who  believe  in  Him,  and  abundant  happiness  be  their  lot.  For 
also  in  the  Song  of  Songs  we  find  Christ  calling  to  the  bride 
there  described,  and  who  represents  the  person  of  the  Church, 
Cant.  ii.  io.  in  these  words:  "Arise,  come,  My  neighbour,  Mybeautifu  1 
"  dove  :  for  lo !  the  winter  is  past,  and  the  rain  is  gone :  it 
"  hath  passed  away.  The  flowers  appear  on  the  ground  :  the 
"  time  of  the  pruning  is  come."  As  I  said,  therefore,  a  certain 
springlike  calm  was  about  to  arise  for  those  who  believe  in 
Him. 

But  against  those,  who,  in  the  greatness  of  their  wickedness, 
have  scorned  His  goodness,  and  rejected  the  Saviour,  there  is 
decreed  wrath  and  misery ;  and,  as  it  were,  a  winter  of  tor- 
ment and  punishment,  from  the  blast  of  which  hard  will  it  be 
Ps.  xi.  6.    to  escape.     For,  as  the  Psalmist  says ;  "  Fire,  and  brimstone, 
"  and  the  whirlwind,  is  the  portion  of  their  cup."     And  why 
so  ?     Because  they  have  rejected,  as  I  said,  the  grace  that  is 
by  faith ;  and  therefore  the  guilt  of  their  sins  cannot  be  wiped 
away,  and  they  must  bear,  as  they  deserve,  the  punishment 
due  to  those  who  love  sin.    For  so,  when  speaking  of  the  Jews, 
John  viii.    He  said  ;  "  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  if  ye  believe  not  that  I 
24-  "  am  He,  ye  shall  die  in  your  sins."" 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  443 

And  that  the  blessed  prophets  also  in  manifold  ways  preached 
the  mystery  of  Christ,  no  one  can  doubt.  For  one  of  them  thus 
speaks  as  in  the  person  of  God  the  Father :  "  Behold  I  lay  in  Rom.ix.33. 
"  Sion  a  stone  of  stumbling,  and  a  rock  of  offence :  and  who- 
"  soever  believeth  in  Him  shall  not  be  ashamed."  ,  For  those 
who  are  in  their  sins  are  full  of  shame.  For  so  it  is  somewhere 
said  of  the  Israelites,  who  violated  the  law  of  Moses  :  "  Like  Jer.  ii.  26. 
"  the  shame  of  a  thief  when  he  is  caught,  so  shall  the  children 
"  of  Israel  be  ashamed."  But  those  who  are  in  Christ  by 
faith,  escaping  from  the  pollutions  of  sin,  are  not  only  not  full 
of  shame,  but  have  that  boldness  which  becometh  those  who 
are  free. 

It  was  their  duty,  therefore,  yes!  their  duty,  He  says,  as 
being  possessed  of  understanding,  and  able  to  discern  the  face 
of  the  sky  and  of  the  earth,  to  examine  also  things  future,  and 
not  to  let  those  tempests  escape  their  observation,  which  come 
after  this  world.  For  there  will  be  the  south  wind  and  rain : 
that  is  to  say,  fiery  torment.  For  the  south  wind  is  hot :  and 
the  infliction  of  that  punishment  is  vehement  and  inevitable,  like 
the  rain  falling  upon  those  overtaken  by  it.  They  must  not, 
therefore,  let  the  time  of  salvation  pass  by  unnoticed :  that 
time  in  which  our  Saviour  came,  and  at  which  perfect  know- 
ledge of  the  truth  reached  mankind,  and  the  grace  shone  forth 
which  purifieth  the  wicked.  And  that,  not  by  means  of  the 
law:  for  "it  made  nothing  perfect,"  having  only  types  and  Heb.vii.19. 
shadows ;  but  by  faith  rather  in  Christ,  not  rejecting  the  law, 
but  fulfilling  it  by  a  spiritual  service.  For  the  very  wise 
Paul  wrote;  "Do  we  then  make  void  the  law  through  faith  ?  Eom.iii.31. 
"It  may  not  be :  but  we  establish  the  law."  For  we  who  are 
justified  by  Christ  establish  that  law  of  faith,  which  in  mani- 
fold ways  was  proclaimed  beforehand  by  Moses  and  the  pro- 
phets. k 

k  A  few  lines  follow  in  Mai  from  '  tions  about  to  overtake  you  per- 

A.  manifestly  interpolated.    '  Prove  '  suade  you  :  the  destruction  of  the 

'  ye  not  the  season  ?     Prove  ye  not  *  temple,  the  capture  of  the  metro- 

*  the  things  by  the  words  ?  nor  the  *  polis,  the  destruction  of  the  race. 

*  words   by  the   things  ?      Ye   see  '  Do  not  these  things  bring  you  to 

*  wonders,  and  behold    signs  con-  '  your  senses  ? '     His  next  extract 

*  firming  the  words  :  if  these  things  also  begins  with  five  lines,  not  ac- 
'  persuade  you  not,  let  the  terapta-  knowledged  by  the  Syriac,  to  the 

3  L  2 


444  COMMENTARY  UPON 

That  it  is  our  duty,  therefore,  to  be  watchful,  in  seeking 
quickly  to  attain  to  deliverance  from  our  sins,  and  the  means  of 
escaping  from  blame,  before  we  arrive  at  the  termination  of  our 
natural  lives,  He  has  shewn,  by  saying ;  "And  why  even  of 
"  yourselves  judge  ye  not  what  is  just  ?  For  while  thou  art 
"  going  with  him  who  hath  a  suit  against  thee,  in  the  way  to 
"  the  magistrate,  give  diligence  that  thou  mayest  be  delivered 
"  from  him  ;  lest  he  drag  thee  to  the  judge,  and  the  judge  de- 
"  liver  thee  to  the  exactor,  and  the  exactor  cast  thee  into  pri- 
"  son.  I  tell  thee,  thou  shalt  not  come  out  thence,  until  thou 
"  hast  made  compensation  unto  the  last  mite." 

Now  perhaps  it  may  be  imagined  that  the  sense  of  this  pas- 
sage is  difficult  to  comprehend :  but  it  will  become  very  easy 
if  we  examine  the  metaphor  by  what  takes  place  among  our- 
selves. For  let  there  be  supposed,  He  says,  some  one  who 
has  brought  a  charge  against  thee  before  one  of  those  in  au- 
thority, and  has  pointed  thee  out  to  those  whose  office  it  is  to 
carry  the  accused  into  court,  and  is  causing  thee  to  be  taken 
thither.  "  While  therefore,  He  says,  thou  art  still  with  him 
"  in  the  way,"  that  is,  before  thou  hast  come  to  the  judge, 
"  give  diligence,"  that  is,  weary  not,  in  using  all  thy  earnest- 
ness that  thou  mayest  be  delivered  from  him.  For  otherwise 
he  will  give  thee  up  to  the  judge  ;  and  then,  when  thou  hast 
been  proved  to  be  indebted  to  him,  thou  wilt  be  delivered  to 
the  exactors,  to  those,  that  is,  whose  office  it  is  to  exact  the 
money  ;  and  they  will  cast  thee  into  prison,  and  make  thee 
pay  the  last  mite. 

Now  all  of  us,  without  exception,  upon  earth  are  guilty  of 

offences :  he  who  has  a  suit  against  us  and  accuses  us  is  the 

Ps.  viii.  ?.  wicked  Satan :  for  he  is  "  the  enemy  and  the  exactor."    While 

therefore  we  are  in  the  way  :  that  is,  ere  yet  we  have  arrived 

at  the  termination  of  our  life  here,  let  us  deliver  ourselves  from 

effect,  '  that  those  who  settle  a  suit  pimav  tit  dp%r)v  alriaaiv  riva  rroii^- 
1  without  the  intervention  of  a  judge  adixtvos  Kara  <rov  :  and  there  can  be 
'  are  more  prudent  than  those  who  no  doubt  that  the  Syriac  has  rightly 
'  go  to  law :  and  that  what  is  right  translated  it,  but  Mai  renders,  Esto 
•  to  do  at  one  place  is  right  to  do  at  aliquis,  inquit,  subjectus  homini  in 
'  another.'  The  next  sentence  Mai  dignitate  constituto,  quicum  con- 
misunderstands  :  the  Greek  is,  vno-  troversiam  habens,  &c. 
K(icrda>  ri(  facri  <<p'  HWf  tuv  rtray- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  445 

him :  let  us  do  away  with  the  offences  of  which  we  have  been 
guilty :  let  us  close  his  mouth :  let  us  seize  upon  the  grace  that 
is  by  Christ,  which  frees  us  from  all  debt  and  penalty,  and  de- 
livers us  from  fear  and  torment :  lest  if  our  impurity  be  not 
cleansed  away,  we  be  carried  before  the  judge,  and  given  over 
to  the  exactors,  that  is,  the  tormentors,  from  whose  cruelty  no 
man  can  escape  :  yea,  rather,  who  will  exact  vengeance  for 
every  fault,  whether  it  be  great  or  small. 

Far  removed  from  this  danger  are  those  who  search  for  the 
time  of  Christ's  coming,  and  are  not  ignorant  of  His  mystery, 
but  well  know  that  the  Word,  though  He  be  God,  has  shone 
forth  upon  the  inhabitants  of  earth  in  likeness  as  one  of  us, 
that  freeing  them  from  all  blame,  He  may  bless  with  exceeding 
happiness  those  who  believe  in  Him,  and  acknowledge  Him  as 
God  and  the  Son  of  God :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God 
the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for 
ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


446  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON   XCVL 


C.xiii.6-9.  And  He  spake  this  parable.  A  certain  man  had  a  Jig-tree 
planted  in  his  vineyard,  and  he  came  and  sought  fruit 
thereon,  but  found  none.     Then  said  he  unto  the  dresser  0/ 

add.  pev  S.      his  vineyard,  Lo,  three  years  indeed  I  come  seeking  fintit 

add.  oZv  S.  on  this  fig-tree,  and  find  none.  Cut  it  doivn  therefore  :  ivhy 
doth  it  make  the  ground  also  barren  ?  But  he  answered 
and  said  unto  him,  Lord,  let  it  alone  this  year  also :  until 

ttiifiihyt       I  did  around  it,  and  dung  it:  and  if  it  bear  Mat  in  the 

ante  eis  rb  »  * t  "  . 

jufAAoe  coming  [year,  welt],  and  if  not,  thou  shalt  cut  it  down. 

GTs.  post 

THE  Psalmist  shews  the  surpassing  gentleness  of  Christ, 
Pa.  viii.  4.  the  Saviour  of  us  all,  in  these  words ;  "  Lord,  what  is  man, 
"  that  Thou  art  mindful  of  him,  or  the  son  of  man,  that  Thou 
"  visitest  him?"  For  man  upon  earth,  as  far  as  his  bodily  na- 
ture is  concerned,  is  dust  and  ashes:  but  he  has  been  honoured 
bv  God,  by  having  been  made  in  His  image  and  likeness  : 
not  in  his  bodily  shape, m  that  is,  but  rather  because  he  is  ca- 
pable of  being  just  and  good,  and  fitted  for  all  virtue.  The 
Creator  therefore  takes  care  of  him,  as  being  His  creature, 
and  for  the  purpose  of  adorning  the  earth.  For  as  the  prophet 
la.  xlv.  18.  Isaiah  saith ;  "  He  made  it  not  in  vain,  but  that  it  should  be 
"  inhabited :" — inhabited  of  course  by  a  rational  animal,  who 
can  discern  with  the  eyes  of  the  mind  the  Creator  and  Artificer 
of  the  Universe,  and  glorify  Him  like  the  spirits  that  are 
above.  But  because  by  the  deceiving  arts  of  the  serpent  he 
had  turned  aside  unto  wickedness,  and  was  held  fast  by  the 
chains  of  sin,  and  removed  far  from  God,  Christ,  to  enable  him 

1  Again   S.  Cyril    has    omitted  the  law  of  Moses.     This  extract  is 

w.  1-5.  of  this   chapter,   but  the  ascribed  to  S.  Cyril  by  A.  C.  and  D. 

lacuna  is  filled  up  in  the  Catena?  by  of  Mai's  Codices,  and  by  Aquinas. 

a    long  extract  from  Theophylact,  m  In  the  margin  a  note  occurs 

p.  422.    identifying   the    Galilaeans  by  the  same  later  hand  to  the  fol- 

with  the  followers  of  Judas  of  Ga-  lowing  effect :  "  In  what  way  man 

Idee,  Acts  v.  37, 'who  forbade  their  "  is  in  the  image  and  likeness  of 

calling  any  one  Lord,  or  offering  "  God." 
any   sacrifice    not    commanded   by 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  447 

once  again  to  mount  upwards,  has  sought  him  out,  and  fashioned 
him  anew  to  what  he  was  at  first,  and  granted  him  repentance 
as  the  pathway  to  lead  him  unto  salvation. 

He  proposes  therefore  a  wise  parable:  but  we  ought  perhaps 
first  to  explain  what  was  the  occasion  which  led  to  it,  or  what 
at  all  the  necessity  why  He  brought  it  forward. 

There  were  therefore  certain  who  told  Christ,  the  Saviour 
of  us  all,  that  Pilate  had  put  to  death  cruelly  and  without  pity 
certain  Galiloeans,  and  mingled  their  blood  with  their  sacrifices. 
And  others  that  the  tower  near  Shiloh  had  fallen,  and  eighteen  Siloam. 
persons  perished  beneath  the  ruins.  And  afterwards  referring 
to  these  things,  Christ  had  said  to  His  hearers  ;  "  Verily,  I  say 
"  unto  you,  that  except  ye  repent,  ye  also  shall  in  like  manner 
"  perish."  This  was  the  head  and  root  of  the  present  parable, 
and  that  at  which  it  was,  as  it  were,  aimed. 

Now  the  outer  sense  of  this  passage  needs  not  a  single 
word  for  its  explanation :  but  when  we  search  into  its  inward 
and  secret  and  unseen  purport,  it  is,  we  affirm,  as  follows.  The 
Israelites,  after  our  Saviour's  crucifixion,  were  doomed  to  fall 
into  the  miseries  they  deserved,  Jerusalem  being  captured, 
and  its  inhabitants  slaughtered  by  the  sword  of  the  enemy. 
Nor  were  they  to  perish  thus  only,  but  their  houses  were  to 
be  burnt  with  fire,  and  even  the  temple  of  God  demolished. 
It  is  probable  therefore  that  He  likens  the  synagogue  of  the 
Jews  to  a  fig  tree ;  for  the  sacred  Scripture  also  compares 
them  to  various  plants :  to  the  vine,  for  instance,  and  the 
olive,  and  even  to  a  forest.  For  the  prophet  Jeremiah  at  one  Hosea. 
time  says  of  Jerusalem,  or  rather  of  its  inhabitants  ;  "  Israel  is  Hos.  x.  i. 
"  a  vine  with  many  branches."  And  again  at  another  address- 
ing it,  he  says ;  "  The  Lord  hath  called  thy  name  a  beautiful  Jer-  xi-  l6- 
"  olive  tree,  well  shaded  in  appearance :  at  its  pruning  time  a 
"  fire  was  kindled  in  it :  great  was  the  tribulation  that  was 
"  upon  it ;  its  branches  were  destroyed.'1  And  another  of  the 
holy  prophets,  comparing  it  to  Mount  Lebanon,  thus  speaks ; 
"  Open  thy  doors,  0  Lebanon,  and  the  fire  shall  devour  thy  Zech.  xi.  r. 
"  cedars."  For  the  forest  that  was  in  Jerusalem,  even  the 
people  there,  many  as  they  were  and  innumerable,  was  de- 
stroyed as  by  fire.  He  takes  therefore,  as  I  said,  the  fig  tree 
spoken  of  in  the  parable  as  a  figure  of  the  Jewish  synagogue, 
that  is,  of  the  Israelites :   and  "  three  years,*"  He  says,  "  He 


448  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  sought  fruit  upon  it,  and  found  none."  By  which,  I  think, 
are  signified  to  us  those  three  periods  during  which  the  Jewish 
synagogue  bore  no  fruit.  The  first  of  these,  one  may  sav,  was 
that  in  which  Moses  and  Aaron  and  his  sons  lived :  who  served 
God,  holding  the  office  of  the  priesthood  according  to  the  law. 
The  second  was  the  period  of  Jeshua,  the  son  of  Nun,  and  the 
judges  who  succeeded  him.  And  the  third,  that  in  which  the 
blessed  prophets  flourished  down  to  the  time  of  John  the  Bap- 
tist     During  these  periods  Israel  brought  forth  no  fruit. 

But  I  can  imagine  persons  making  to  this  the  following  ob- 
jection ;  '  But  lo  !  it  did  fulfil  the  service  ordained  by  the  law, 
'  and  offered  the  sacrifices  which  consisted  in  the  blood  of  vic- 
'  tims  and  burning  incense/    But  to  this  we  reply :  that  in  the 
writings  of  Moses  there  was  only  a  type  of  the  truth,  and  a 
gross  and  material  service :   there  was  not  as  yet  a  service 
simple,  pure,  and  spiritual,  such  as  we  affirm  God  chiefly  loves, 
John  iv.  24.  having  so  learnt  of  Christ,  Who  said;  "  God  is  a  Spirit:  and 
"  they  that  worship  Him  must  worship  Him  in  spirit  and 
"  truth."'     As  far  therefore  as  regarded  the  good-will  of  the 
Father,  and  evidently  that  also  of  the  Son,  the  service  which 
consisted  in  shadows  and  types  was  unacceptable,  being  utterly 
without  fruit  in  whatsoever  appertains  to  a  sweet  spiritual 
savour.     And  therefore  it  was  rejected:  for  so  the  Saviour 
Pa.  ii.  6.    teaches  us,  when  saying  to  God  the  Father  in  heaven ;  n  Sa- 
"  crifice  and  offering  Thou  wouldest  not :  and  whole  burnt 
"  offerings,  and  sin  offerings  Thou  didst  not  require.'"     And 
again  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah  He  saith  Himself  to  those  who 
Is.  i.  12.     were  seeking  to  fulfil  it  :    "  For  who  hath  required  this  at 
. "  your  hands  ?     Tread  My  court  no  more  :  if  ye  bring  fine 
"  meal,  it  is  in  vain :  incense  is  an  abomination  unto  Me."  How 
therefore  can  that  which  God  hates  and  abominates  be  sup- 
posed to  be  the  rational  and  spiritual  fruit  of  the  soul,  and  ac- 
ceptable unto  Him  ? 

He  says  therefore,  "  Lo,  three  years  do  I  come  seeking  fruit 
"  on  this  fig  tree,  and  find  none.  Cut  it  down  therefore  :  why 
"  doth  it  make  the  ground  also  useless."  As  though  He 
would  say,  Let  the  place  of  this  barren  fig  tree  be  laid  bare : 
for  then  there  will  come  up  or  may  be  planted  there  some 
other  tree.  And  this  too  was  done  :  for  the  multitude  of  the 
Gentiles  was  summoned  into  its  room,  and  took  possession  of 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  449 

the  inheritance  of  the  Israelites.  It  became  the  people  of  God  ; 
the  plant  of  Paradise  ;  a  germ  good  and  honourable  ;  that 
knoweth  how  to  bring  forth  fruit,  not  in  shadows  and  types, 
but  rather  by  a  pure  and  perfectly  stainless  service,  even  that 
which  is  in  spirit  and  in  truth,  as  being  offered  to  God,  Who  is 
an  immaterial  Being. 

The  owner  then  of  the  ground  said,  that  the  fig-tree,  which 
during  so  Ions  a  time  had  been  barren  and  without  fruit,  must 
be  cut  down.  But  the  vinedresser,  it  says,  besought  him,  say- 
ing ;  "  Lord,  let  it  alone  this  vear  also :  until  I  dig  around  it 
"  and  dung  it :  and  if  it  bear  fruit  in  the  coming  [year,  well ;] 
"  and  if  not,  thou  shalt  cut  it  down." 

Now  it  is  necessary  to  inquire,  who  is  to  be  understood  by 
the  vinedresser.  If  then  any  one  choose  to  affirm  that  it  is 
the  angel  who  was  appointed  by  God  as  the  guardian  of  the 
synagogue  of  the  Jews,  he  would  not  miss  a  suitable  interpreta- 
tion. For  we  remember  that  the  prophet  Zechariah  wrote,  that 
one  of  the  holy  angels  stood  offering  supplications  for  Jerusa- 
lem, and  saying,  "  0  Lord  Almighty,  how  long  wilt  Thou  not  Zech.  i.  12. 
"  have  mercy  upon  Jerusalem,  and  on  the  cities  of  Judah ; 
"  which  Thou  hast  abandoned,  lo  !  for  seventy  years  ? "  And 
it  is  writlen  also  in  Exodus,  that  when  the  ruler  of  the  land 
of  the  Egyptians  with  his  warriors  was  pursuing  after  the 
Israelites,  and  was  already  upon  the  point  of  engaging  with  Ex.xiv.20. 
them  in  battle,  the  angel  of  God  stood  between  the  camp  of 
the  Israelites  and  of  the  Egyptians,  and  the  one  came  not  near 
the  other  all  the  night.  There  is  therefore  nothing  unbefitting 
in  supposing  here  also,  that  the  holy  angel  who  was  the  guar- 
dian of  the  synagogue  offered  supplications  in  its  behalf,  and 
prayed  for  a  respite,  if  perchance  yielding  to  better  influence  it 
might  yet  bring  forth  fruit. 

But  if  any  one  should  say  that  the  vinedresser  is  the  Son, 
this  view  also  has  a  reason  on  its  side  not  unbefitting  right  ar- 
guments. For  "  He  is  our  Advocate  with  the  Father,"  "  and  1  Johnii.r. 
"  our  propitiation,"  and  the  husbandman  of  our  souls,  Who 
pruneth  away  constantly  whatever  is  to  our  hurt,  and  filleth  us 
with  rational  and  holy  seeds,  that  so  we  may  bring  forth  for 
Him  fruits :  and  so  He  spake  of  Himself.  "  A  sower  went  out  Lukeviii.5. 
"  to  sow  his  seed." 

And  it   in  no  respect   militates  against  the  glory  of  the 

3  M 


450  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Son,  that  He  assumes  the  character  of  the  vinedresser :  for 
the  Father  is  Himself  also  found  to  have  taken  it,  without 
being  exposed  to  any  blame  for  so  doing.  For  the  Son  said 
John  xv.  /.  to  the  holy  apostles,  "  I  am  the  Vine  :  ye  are  the  branches  : 
"  My  Father  is  the  Husbandman."  For  the  verbal  expression 
must  from  time  to  time  be  made  to  accord  with  tbe  supposi- 
tions which  are  laid  down. 

Let  Him  therefore  be  supposed  to  be  the  Advocate  in  our 
behalf:  and  He  says,  "  Let  it  alone  this  year  also,  until  I  dig 
"  around  it  and  dung  it."  And  what  then  is  this  year  ?  But 
plainly  this  fourth  year,  this  time  subsequent  to  those  former 
periods,  is  that  in  which  the  Only-begotten  Word  of  God  be- 
came man,  to  stir  up  like  some  husbandman  by  spiritual  ex- 
hortations the  Israelites  who  had  withered  away  in  sin,  digging 
Rum.  xii.  round  them,  and  warming  them,  to  make  them  "  fervent  in 
"  spirit."  For  He  repeatedly  denounced  against  them  destruc- 
tion and  ruin,  wars  and  slaughters,  burnings  and  captivities, 
and  immitigable  wrath:  while,  on  the  orher  hand,  He  promised, 
if  thev  would  believe  on  Him,  and  now  at  length  become  fruit- 
ful  trees,  that  he  would  give  them  life  and  glory,  the  grace  of 
adoption,  the  communion  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  the  kingdom 
of  heaven.  But  Israel  was  incapable  of  being  taught  even  thus. 
It  was  still  a  barren  fig  tree,  and  continued  so  to  be.  It  was 
cut  down,  therefore,  that  it  might  not  make  the  ground  use- 
less :  and  in  its  stead  there  sprung  up,  as  a  fertile  plant,  the 
goutile  church,  beautiful,  and  fruit-bearing,  deeply-rooted,  and 
incapable  of  being  shaken.  For  they  have  been  counted  as 
Rom.xi  -4.  children  unto  Abraham,  and  have  been  ingrafted  into  the  good 
olive-tree :  for  a  root  has  been  preserved,  and  Israel  has  not 
utterly  perished. 

But  that  it  was  doomed  to  be  cut  down,  on  account  of  its 
utter  barrenness,  the  blessed  John  the  Baptist  also  declared  in 
Luk'.-  iii.  9.  these  words ;  "  Behold  the  axe  is  laid  at  the  root  of  the  trees  : 
"  every  tree  therefore  that  bringcth  not  forth  good  fruit  is 
"  hewn  down,  and  cast  into  the  fire."  And  one  of  the  holy 
prophets  also"  ***** 

n  The  rest  of  this  (96th)  Exposi-  pp.  315-321 ;  and  Cramer,  ii.  107, 

tion,  the  whole  of  the  97th,  and  the  where  9ome  of  the  following  extract 

commencement  of  the  98th,  having  is   given    anonymously :    and   from 

perished,    their    place    is    supplied  the  Aurea  Catena,  p.  201.  ed.  Ve- 

from  Mai's  Nov.  Bib.  Pat.  vol.  ii.  net.  1775. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  451 

Behold  there  was  a  woman,  which  had  a  spirit  of  infirmity   C.  nil  n. 
eighteen  years. 
Now  there  was  in  the  synagogue  a  woman  who  for  eighteen  From  Mai. 
vears  was  bowed  down  by  infirmity.     And  her  case  may  prove 
of  no  little  benefit  to  those  who  have  understanding :  for  wo 
must  gather  what  is  to  our  advantage  from  every  quarter  : — 
since  by  what  happened  to  her  we  may  see  that  Satan  often 
receives  authority  over  certain  persons,  such,  namely,  as  fall 
into   sin,   and   have   grown   lax  in   their  efforts   after   piety. 
Whomsoever  therefore  he  gets  into  his  power,  he  involves,  it 
may  be.  in  bodily  diseases,  since  he  delights  in  punishment 
and  is  merciless.     And  the  opportunity  for  this  the  all-seeing 
God  most  wisely  grants  him,  that  being  sore  vexed  by  the  bur- 
den of  their  misery,  men  may  set  themselves  upon  changing 
to  a  better  course.     For  which  reason  St.  Paul  also  delivered 
over  to  Satan  a  certain  person  at  Corinth  accused  of  fornica- 
tion, "  for  the  destruction  of  the  flesh,  that  the  spirit  might  be  ■  Cur.  v.  5. 
"  saved."     The  woman  therefore  who  was  bowed  down  is  said  Also  from 

,  .         .      .,  r         Cramer. 

to  have  suffered  this  from  the  cruelty  of  the  devil,  according 
to  our  Master's  words,  «  Whom  Satan  hath  bound  for  eighteen 
"  years  :"  God,  as  I  said,  so  permitting  it,  either  for  her  own 
sins,  or  rather  by  the  operation  of  a  universal  and  general  law. 
For  the  accursed  Satan  is  the  cause  of  disease  to  the  bodies  of 
men,  inasmuch  as  Adam's  transgression  was,  we  affirm,  his 
doing,  and  by  means  of  it  our  human  frames  have  become 
liable  to  infirmity  and  decay.  But  when  this  was  the  state 
of  men,  God,  Who  by  His  very  nature  is  good,  did  not  aban- 
don us  when  suffering  under  the  'punishment  of  a  protracted 
and  incurable  malady,  but  freed  us  from  our  bonds,  re- 
vealing as  the  glorious  remedy  for  the  sufferings  of  mankind 
His  own  presence  and  manifestation  in  the  world.  For  He 
came  to  fashion  our  state  again  to  what  it  was  originally  :  for 
"  God,  as  it  is  written,  made  not  death  :  neither  hath  He  Wisdom 
"  pleasure  in  the  destruction  of  the  living.  For  He  created  all  L 
"  things  that  they  might  have  their  being ;  and  healthful  were 
"  the  generations0  of  the  world ;  and  there  is  in  them  no  poi- 

0  Or  rather,  if  our  language  per-      cms,  the  creative  acts  by  which  the 
mitted,  "  the  generatings,"  a\  ytvi-      world  was  called  into  existence. 

3  M  2 


4.52  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Wisdom      "  son   of  destruction,"  '*  but  by  the  envy  of  the  devil  death 

"'  "4-         "  entered  into  the  world." 

Also  from       The  Incarnation  of  the  Word,  and  His  assumption  of  human 

Aquinas.  nat;Ure  ^qqJ^  place  for  the  overthrow  of  death  and  destruction, 
and  of  that  envy  nourished  against  us  by  the  wicked  serpent, 
who  was  the  first  cause  of  evil.  And  this  is  plainly  proved  to 
us  by  facts  themselves.  And  so  He  set  free  the  daughter  of 
Abraham  from  her  protracted  sickness,  calling  out  and  saying, 
*'  Woman,  thou  art  loosed  from  thy  infirmity."  A  speech  most 
worthy  of  God,  and  full  of  supernatural  power :  for  with  the 
kingrlv  inclination  of  His  will  He  drives  awav  the  disease. 
And  He  also  lays  His  hands  upon  her  :  and  immediately,  it 
says,  she  was  made  straight.  And  hence  too  it  is  possible  to 
see  that  His  holy  flesh  bore  in  it  the  power  and  activity  of 
God.  For  it  was  His  own  flesh,  and  not  that  of  some  other 
Son  beside  Him,  distinct  and  separate  from  Him,  as  someP 
most  impiously  imagine. 

Ver.  14.        And  the  ruler  of  the  synagogue  answered,  being  indignant, 
that  Jesus  had  healed  on  the  sabbath  day,  $*c. 

From  Mai.  And  yet  how  ought  he  not  rather  to  have  wondered  at 
Christ's  having  freed  from  her  bonds  this  daughter  of  Abra- 
ham ?  Thou  hast  seen  her  unexpectedly  delivered  from  her 
misfortune  :  thou  wast  an  eyewitness  that  the  Physician  prayed 
not,  nor  received  as  a  boon  from  another  the  healing  of  the 
sick  woman;  but  that  He  wrought  it  as  a  deed  of  power.  As 
being  the  ruler  of  a  synagogue,  thou  knowest,  I  suppose,  the 
writings  of  Moses.  Thou  sawest  him  praying  upon  every 
occasion,  and  working  nothing  whatsoever  by  his  own  power. 
For  when  Mariam  was  struck  with  leprosy,  for  having  merely 
spoken  something  against  him  in  the  way  of  reproach,  and  that 

Num.xii.i.  true,  "  for  he  had  taken,  she  says,  unto  himself  an  Ethiopian 
wife,"  Moses  could  not  overcome  the  disease,  but,  on  the  con- 
trary, fell  down  before  God,  saying,  "  0  God,  I  beseech  Thee, 
"  heal  her."  And  not  even  so,  though  he  besought  it,  was  the 
penalty  of  her  sin  remitted  her.  And  each  one  of  the  holy 
prophets^  if  anywhere  at  all  they  wrought  any  miracle,  is  seen  to 

p  The  Nestorians,  who  are  ex-  of  this  extract  from  Cyril,  or  the 
pressly  named  by  Theophylact,  who  Catenist  has  mixed  up  the  two  to- 
haa  either  borrowed  the  latter  part      gether. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  453 

have  done  it  by  the  power  of  God.  But  here  observe,  I  pray, 
that  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  all,  offers  no  prayer,  but  refers 
the  accomplishment  of  the  matter  to  His  own  power,  healing 
her  by  a  word  and  the  touch  of  the  hand.  For  being  Lord 
and  God,  He  manifested  His  own  flesh  as  of  equal  efficacy 
with  Himself  for  the  deliverance  of  men  from  their  diseases. 
And  hence  it  was  intended  that  men  should  understand  the 
purport  of  the  mystery  concerning  Him.  Had  therefore  the 
ruler  of  the  synagogue  been  a  man  of  understanding,  he  would 
have  perceived  Who  and  how  great  the  Saviour  was  from  so 
wonderful  a  miracle,  nor  would  he  have  talked  in  the  same 
ignorant  manner  as  the  multitudes,  nor  have  accused  those 
occupied  with  healing  of  a  breach  of  the  law  respecting  the 
traditional  abstinence  from  labour  on  the  sabbath  day. 

■  But  plainly  to  heal  is  to  labour.'  Is  the  law  then  broken 
when  God  shews  mercy  even  on  the  sabbath  day  ?  Whom  did 
He  command  to  desist  from  labour  ?  Himself  ?  or  was  it  not 
rather  thee  ?  If  Himself,  let  His  providence  over  us  cease  on 
the  sabbath :  let  the  sun  rest  from  his  daily  course ;  let  the 
rains  not  fall;  let  the  springs  of  waters,  and  the  streams  of 
ever-flowing  rivers,  and  the  winds  be  still:  but  if  He  com- 
manded thee  to  rest,  blame  not  God  because  with  power  He 
has  shewn  mercy  on  any  even  on  the  sabbath.  And  why  did 
He  command  men  at  all  to  rest  upon  the  sabbath  ?  It  was, 
thou  art  told,  that  thy  manservant,  and  thy  ox,  and  thy 
horse,  and  all  thy  cattle  might  rest.  When  therefore  He 
gives  men  rest  by  freeing  them  from  their  diseases,  and  thou 
forbiddest  it,  plainly  thou  breakest  the  law  of  the  sabbath,  in 
not  permitting  those  to  rest  who  are  suffering  under  sickness 
and  disease,  and  whom  Saian  had  bound. 

But  the  ruler  of  the  unthankful  synagogue,  when  he  saw  Abofrom 
the  woman  whose  limbs  were  crippled,  and  her  body  bent  and  ^uu 
crooked  even  to  the  ground,  receiving  mercy  from  Christ,  and 
made  perfectly  upright  by  the  touch  alone  of  His  hand,  and 
walking  with  that  erect  gait  which  becometh  man,  and  magni- 
fying God  for  her  deliverance,  is  vexed  thereat,  and  burning 
with  rage  against  the  glory  of  the  Lord,  is  entangled  in  envy, 
and  calumniates  the  miracle;  nevertheless  he  passes  by  our 
Lord,  Who  would  have  exposed  his  hypocrisy,  and  rebukes  the 
multitudes,  that  his  indignation  might  seem  to  be  aroused  for  the 


454  COMMENTARY  UPON 

sake  of  the  sabbath  day.  But  his  object  really  was  to  prevail  upon 
those  who  were  dispersed  throughout  the  week,  and  occupied 
with  their  labours,  not  to  be  spectators  and  admirers  of  the 
miracles  of  the  Lord  upon  the  sabbath,  lest  ever  they  also 
should  believe. 

But  tell  me,  0  thou  slave  of  envy,  what  kind  of  work  did 
the  law  forbid  in  commanding  thee  to  abstain  on  the  sabbath 
day  from  all  manual  labour  ?  Does  it  forbid  the  labour  of  the 
mouth  and  speaking  ?  Abstain  then  from  eating  and  drinking, 
and  conversing,  and  singing  psalms  on  the  sabbath.  But  if 
thou  abstainest  from  these  things,  and  dost  not  even  read  the 
law.  what  <rood  is  the  sabbath  to  thee  ?  If  however  thou  con- 
finest  the  prohibition  to  manual  labour,  how  is  the  healing  of  a 
woman  by  a  word  a  manual  labour  ?  But  if  thou  callest  it  an 
act  because  the  woman  was  actually  healed,  thou  also  per- 
formest  an  act  in  blaming  her  healing. 

1  But  says  he,  He  said,  thou  art  loosed  from  thy  infirmity : 
'  and  she  is  loosed/  Well !  dost  not  thou  also  unloose  thy 
girdle  on  the  sabbath  ?  Dost  not  thou  put  off  thy  shoes,  and 
make  thy  bed,  and  cleanse  thy  hands  when  dirtied  with  eating  ? 
airo\t\utrai  Why  then  art  thou  so  angry  at  the  single  word  "  thou  art 
"  loosed?""  And  at  what  work  did  the  woman  labour  after  the 
word  was  spoken  ?  Did  she  set  about  the  craft  of  the  brazier,  or 
the  carpenter,  or  the  mason?  Did  she  that  very  day  begin 
weaving  or  working  at  the  loom  ?  f  No.  She  was  made 
'  straight,  he  says.  It  was  the  healing  absolutely  that  is  a 
'  labour.1  But  no !  thou  art  not  really  angry  on  account  of 
the  sabbath :  but  because  thou  seest  Christ  honoured,  and  wor- 
shipped as  God,  thou  art  frantic  and  choked  with  rage,  and 
pinest  with  envy.  Thou  hast  one  thing  concealed  in  thy 
heart,  and  professest  and  makest  pretext  of  another ;  for 
which  reason  thou  art  most  excellently  convicted  by  the  Lord, 
Who  knoweth  thy  vain  reasonings,  and  receivest  the  title 
which  befits  thee,  in  being  called  hypocrite  and  dissembler 
and  insincere  <?. 

i  The  comparison  of  the  original  sense  with  tolerable  exactness,  the 

Greek  with  the  Latin  of  the  Aurea  English  translator  has  been  guilty 

Catena,  and  the  English  of  the  Ox-  of  extreme  carelessness.     Thus    in 

ford  translation,  will  be  sufficient  to  the  Greek,  Christ  heals  the  woman 

6hew  that  while  Aquinas  gives  the  vtvpari.  /3ao-iXt*&>,   rendered    by   A- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE. 


455 


Thou  hypocrite!  does  not  each  one  of  you  on  the  sabbath  Ver.  15. 
loose  his  ox  or  his  ass  from  the  stall,  and  lead  him  axvay 
to  watering  ? 

Thou  wonderest,  He  says,  at  Me,  Who  have  loosed  a  From  Mai. 
daughter  of  Abraham  ;  and  yet  thou  givest  rest  to  thy  ox  and 
thy  ass,  loosing  them  from  their  labours,  and  leading  them 
away  to  watering;:  but  when  a  humnn  being;  suffering  from 
sickness  is  marvellously  healed,  and  God  has  shewn  mercy, 
thou  blamest  both  as  transgressors  :  the  One  for  having 
healed,  and  the  other  for  being  delivered  from  her  maladv. 

Behold,  I  pray,  the  ruler  of  the  synagogue,  how  a  human 
being  is  of  less  account  in  his  sight  than  a  beast,  since  at  least 
he  counts  his  ox  and  his  ass  worthy  of  care  on  the  sabbath, 
but  in  his  envy  would  not  have  Christ  deliver  from  her 
intirmitv  the  woman  who  was  bowed  together,  nor  wishes  her 
to  recover  her  natural  form. 

But  the  envious  ruler  of  the  synagogue  would  have  preferred 
the  woman  who  was  made  straight  to  be  bowed  down  after  the 
manner  of  fourfooted  beasts,    rather   than   that   she    should 


quinas  imperatorio  motu,  and  in  the 
English,  "by  His  royal  assent.''' 
The  act  proves,  on  ttjv  tov  &tov 
8vvajAiv  Tf  Acal  evepyeiav  77  ayia  7re- 
<^o'p7/ce  <yapi'  which  Aquinas  cor- 
rectly renders  '  in  quo  oportet  per- 
'  pendere  sacram  carnem  induisse 
'  virtutem  divinam.'  But  the  Eng- 
lish, •  Vi'e  should  here  answer  that 
1  the  divine  power  had  put  on  the 
'  sacred  flesh  !'  6  rrjs  axapiarov  ow 
ayutyrj^  dp^icrvfdyoiyos,  ingratas  syn- 
agogse  pnesul,  becomes  '  the  un- 
'  grateful  ruler  of  the  synagogue.' 
«rl  177  8d£u  tov  Kvplov  irvpT?o\ov- 
fjLtvot  SecrpeiTcu  tu  (pQ6vu>,  /cat  {Tttj- 
pea£ei  rw  OavpaTi,  ardens  gloria 
Domini,  irretitur  invidia,  arguitque 
niiraculum,  becomes,  'sullies  his 
'  zeal  for  the  glory  of  the  Lord  with 
'  envy,  and  condemns  the  miracle.' 
aXX'  drri  q/xTc,  6  vo^-os  tKoiXvcrtv  qti 
otto  rrairrot  epyov  ^etpo/c/iijrou  anoa- 
11707/  rjj  <7^f'p9  tov  <7a/3/3urov"  Spa  t6 


81a  OTOfxaTos  Kal  81a  Xoyov ;  Sed  die, 
lex  prohibuit  ab  opere  manuali  die 
sabbati  abstinere,  numquid  ab  eo 
quod  verbo  et  ore  fit  ?  becomes, 
'  But  the  law  has  not  forbidden  all 
'  manual  work  on  the  sabbath  day, 
'  and  has  it  forbidden  that  which  is 
(  done  by  the  word  or  the  mouth  ? ' 
lua  tI,  cur,  i.  e.  cui  rei,  for  what 
purpose,  becomes  'how  ?'  These  ex- 
amples are  taken  from  the  transla- 
tion of  a  single  passage  of  thirty-two 
lines  in  p.  484,  and  I  can  imagine 
nothing  more  calculated  to  bring 
the  writings  of  the  fathers  into  dis- 
credit than  such  negligence,  in  pre- 
paring their  works  for  the  use  of 
English  readers.  The  only  passage 
in  the  above  which  offers  the 
slightest  difficulty  is  'ardens  gio- 
*  ria  Domini,'  where  gloria  is  the 
abl.  of  the  cause,  burning  (with 
rage)  because  of  the  glory  of  the 
Lord. 


456  COMMENTARY  UPON 

recover  the  form  fitting  for  man ;  having  no  other  view  than 
that  Christ  might  not  be  magnified,  nor  be  proclaimed  as  God 
Ako  from  by  His  deeds.  But  he  is  convicted  of  being  a  hypocrite,  if  at 
least  he  leads  his  dumb  cattle  upon  the  sabbath  to  watering, 
but  is  indignant  that  this  woman,  who  was  a  daughter  of 
Abraham  by  descent,  and  still  more  by  her  faith,  should  bo 
freed  from  the  chain  of  her  infirmity.  For  he  considers  her 
deliverance  from  sickness  as  a  transgression  of  the  sabbath r. 

Ver.  17.  All  His  adversaries  were  ashamed. 

From  Mai  Shame  fell  then  on  those  who  had  uttered  these  corrupt 
n!L. "  4U1  opinions :  who  had  stumbled  against  the  chief  corner  stone, 
and  been  broken ;  who  had  resisted  the  Physician,  who  had 
clashed  against  the  wise  Potter,  when  busied  in  straightening 
His  crooked  vessels :  and  there  was  no  reply  which  they  could 
make.  They  had  unanswerably  convicted  themselves,  and  were 
put  to  silence,  and  in  doubt  what  they  should  say.  So  had  the 
Lord  closed  their  audacious  mouth.  But  the  multitudes,  who 
reaped  the  benefit  of  the  miracles,  were  glad.  For  the  glory 
and  splendour  of  His  works  solved  all  inquiry  and  doubt  in 
those  who  sought  Him  without  malice. 

"Ver.  19.  It  is  like  a  grain  of  mustard  seed. 

The  comparison  is  an  excellent  one,  and  most  fit  to  set 
before  them  what  took  place  and  happened  at  the  divine  and 
sacred  preaching  of  the  Gospel,  to  which  He  here  gives  the 
name  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven ;  because  it  is  through  it  that 
we  gain  the  right  of  sharing  Christ's  kingdom.  At  first  then 
it  was  addressed  to  few  persons,  and  within  a  narrow  range, 
but  afterwards  it  widened  its  influence,  and  spread  abroad 
unto  all  nations.  For  at  first  it  was  spoken  in  Juda?a  only, 
where  also  the  blessed  disciples  were  very  few  in  number :  but 
when  Israel  disobeyed,  the  commandment  was  given  to  the 
Mat.  holy   apostles,   "  having   gone  to   make   disciples   of  all   the 

ma.  19.    (,  nationS)  &c>"     A.s  therefore  a  grain  of  mustard  seed  is  far 

-   r  These   three    passages,    all    of  manner  in  which  extracts  are  strung 

which  are  taken  from  the  same  MS.  together  in  the  Catenae,  as  it  is  quite 

A.,  compared  also  with  the  different  impossible  for  any  writer  to  have  so 

arrangement  in  the  Aurea  Catena,  repeated  himself, 
may  serve   as   an   instance   of  the 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  457 

inferior  in  size  to  the  seeds  of  other  plants,  but  shoots  up  to  a 
great  height,  far  beyond  what  is  usual  among  herbs,  so  as  for 
it  even  to  become  the  lodging  of  many  sparrows,  so  also  the 
kingdom  of  heaven,  even  the  new  and  sacred  preaching  of  sal- 
vation, by  which  we  are  guided  into  every  good  work,  and 
learn  Him  Who  both  by  nature  and  verilv  is  God,  being  at 
first  addressed  to  but  few  persons,  and  as  it  were  small  and 
limited,  shot  up  afterwards  into  rapid  growth,  and  became  the 
refuge  of  those  who  fled -to  it  for  shelter,  and  who  may  be 
compared  to  sparrows,  because  human  things  are  but  of  small 
measure  in  comparison  with  God. 

The  law  of  Moses  was  given  to  the  Israelites :  but  inasmuch 
as  the  inhabitants  of  earth  could  not  be  saved  by  the  shadow 
which  alone  it  contained  and  its  material  service,  as  a  necessary 
consequence  the  saving  preaching  of  the  Gospel  sprang  up,  and 
is  spread  abroad  unto  all  under  heaven. 

And  this  the  letter  of  the  Mosaic  law  has  signified  to  us  in 
an  enigma :    for  it  runs  thus,  "And  the  Lord  spake  untoNumTx.  r. 
"  Moses,  saying,  Thou  shall  make  unto  thyself  two  trumpets 
"  of  beaten  metal,  of  silver  shalt  thou  make  them,  and  they 
"  shall  be  unto  thee  to  call  the  synagogue  together,  and  to 
"  move  the  camp."     And  soon  afterwards,  "And  the  priests, 
"  the  sons  of  Aaron,  shall  sound  the  trumpets,  and  it  shall  be 
"  a  perpetual  law  for  your  generations."  By  this  then  thou  art 
intended  to  understand  both  the  preparatory  training  of  the  law, 
and  the  perfectness  attained  to  in  Christ  by  the  gospel  mode  of 
life,  and  the  teaching  which  surpasses  shadows  and  types.    The 
law  then  is  a  trumpet,  and  equally  so  is  the  saving  preaching 
of  the  Gospel ;  for  by  this  name  does  the  prophet  Isaiah  also     . 
make  mention  of  it,  saying,  "  And  it  shall  come  to  pass  on  is>  j^vii. 
"  that  day  that  they  shall  sound  with  the  great  trumpet/'  r3- 
For  in  very  deed  a  great  trumpet  sounded  forth  by  the  voice 
of  the  holy  apostles,  not  setting  at  nought  the  first  [trumpet], 
but s  containing  it  also  within  it ;  for  they  ever  prove  what  they  From  the 
say  concerning  Christ  by  the  law  and  the  prophets,  making  S 
use  of  the  testimonies  of  older  times.  2'i. 

There  were  then  two  trumpets  made  of  beaten  silver,  in 
which  the  silver  signifies  splendour ;  for  every  word  of  God  is 

9  The  Syriac  commences  again  at  these  words,  forming  part  of  Sermon 
98. 

3* 


458  COMMENTARY  UPON 

glorious,  having  in  it  none  of  the  darkness  of  the  world :  and 
the  hammering  out  of  the  metal  shewed  that  the  sacred  and 
divine  trumpet,  that  is,  both  the  old  and  new  preaching,  would 
advance  and  grow  onward :  for  that  which  is  hammered  out 
advances  as  it  were  continually  onward,  and  extends  in  breadth 
and  length.  For  at  Christ's  rising:  for  the  inhabitants  of  earth, 
both  the  ancient  law  was  to  advance  unto  its  spiritual  interpre- 
tation ;  for  so  we  preach  it  who  have  attained  unto  spiritual 
illumination  in  Christ :  and  the  message  of  the  Gospel  was  to 
spread  until  it  embraced  the  whole  world.  And  to  the  priests 
the  law  gave  the  use  of  the  trumpets  to  command  the  people  : 
but  Christ  gave  the  ministers  of  the  new  proclamations,  by 
whom  are  meant  the  holy  apostles,  the  command  to  preach 
Him  and  His  precepts.  For  they  proclaim  His  mystery,  using 
as  it  were  two  trumpets,  both  preachinrg  Him,  as  having  been 
Luke  i.  -:.  "  from  the  beo-inning  eyewitnesses  and  ministers  of  the  Word," 
and  adding,  in  confirmation  of  their  words,  the  true  testimonies 
of  the  law  and  the  prophets. 

And  it  is  no  difficult  thing  to  see,  that  the  message  of  the 
Gospel  preaching,  being  small  at  first,  was  soon  to  leap  forth 
as  it  were  unto  great  iucrease,  inasmuch  as  God  had  foretold 
Is.  xi.  9.     of  it  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  "  that  the  whole  earth  has  been 
"  filled  with  the  knowledge  of  the  Lord,  as  the  deep  waters 
"  that  cover  the  seas."     For  the  preaching   of  salvation  is 
everywhere  poured  forth  like  a  sea,  and  its  onward  course  is 
irresistible.     And  this  too  the  God  of  all  clearly  told  us  by  the 
Amoa  v.     voice  of  the  prophet,  "  And  judgment  shall  roll  as  the  waters, 
*4-  "  and  righteousness  as  an  impassable  flood."     For  He  gives 

the  names  of  judgment  and  righteousness  to  the  gospel  mes- 
sage, and  grants  us  the  assurance  that  it  shall  roll  over  the 
world  like  waters  and  as  a  flood,  whose  rushing  streams,  as  it 
violently  pours  along,  no  man  can  stay. 

And  the  same  method  of  explanation  will  hold  good  of  the 
kingdom  of  God  being  also  compared  unto  leaven.  -For  the 
leaven  is  small  in  quantity,  yet  forthwith  it  seizes  upon  the 
whole  mass,  and  quickly  communicates  to  it  its  own  properties. 
And  the  word  of  God  operates  in  us  in  a  similar  manner :  for 
when  admitted  within  us,  it  makes  us  holy  and  without  blame, 
and  pervading  our  mind  and  heart,  it  renders  us  spiritual,  that 
?  Thes.  v     ^  pauj  ga^  f4  Qur  wh0je  ^dy  anj  Spirit  and  soul  may  be 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  459 

"  kept  blameless  in  the  day  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ."     And 

that  the  divine  word  is  poured  out  even  into  the  depth  of  our 

understanding,  the  God  of  all  clearly  shews,  where  He  says  by 

one  of  the  holy  prophets,  cc  Behold  the  days  come,  saith  the  Jer.  xxxl 

"  Lord,  and  I  will  accomplish  upon  the  house  of  Israel  and  3I" 

"  upon  the  house  of  Judah  a  new  covenant,  not  according  to 

"  the  covenant  which  I  made  with  their  fathers,  in  the  day 

"  that  I  took  them  by  the  hand  to  bring  them  out  of  the  land 

"  of  Egypt,  because  they  have  not  continued  in  My  covenant, 

"  and  I  have  also  rejected  them,  saith  the  Lord.     But  this  is 

"  the  covenant  which  I  will  make  with  them,  after  those  days, 

"  saith  the  Lord,  I  will  put  My  laws  in  their  mind,  and  will 

"  write  them  on  their  hearts." 

"We  receive  therefore  the  rational  and  divine  leaven  in  our 
mind  and  Understanding,  that  by  this  precious  and  holy  and 
pure  leaven  we  may  be  found  spiritually  unleavened,  as  having  &(vfiot  v<m- 
in  us  none  of  the  wickedness  of  the  world*,  but  being  rather  j^r  Vg  __ 
pure  and  holy  and  partakers  of  Christ ;  by  Whom  and  with 
Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the 
Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


*  Mai  adds  here  probably  from  "  mind,  transforms  (fieraaroixfiot) 

some  other  work  of  S.  Cyril,  "  For  "  both  soul  and  body  and  spirit  into 

"  the  life  giving  energy  of  the  Gos-  "  its  own  properties." 
"  pel   teaching   entering    into    the 


3N2 


460  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  XCIX. 

C.  xiii.  22-  ^nci  jje  went  about  among  the  cities  and  villages  teaching ; 
and  journeyed  towards  Jerusalem.  And  one  said  unto 
Him,  Lord,  are  they  few  that  be  saved  ?   And  He  said 

evpas  unto  them;  Strive  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  door:  for  many. 

ttvktis  s.  I  saV  unt0  y°ui  witt  se(ik  t°  enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able, 

directly  that  tlie  master  of  the  house  ariseth,  and  shutteth 
the  door :  and  ye  begin  to  stand  outside,  and  to  knock  at 

KvpiebisGs.  the  door,  saying,  Lord,  open  to  us;  and  He  shall  answer 
and  say  unto  you,  I  know  you  not  whence  ye  are.  Then  ye 
will  begin  to  say,  We  have  eaten  and  drunk  in  Thy  pre- 
sence, and  Tliou  hast  taught  in  our  streets :  and  He  will 

om.inasB.  say,  I  tell  you,  I  know  you  not,  whence  ye  are;  depart 
from  me,  all  ye  workers  of  iniquity.  There  shall  be  weep- 
ing and  gnashing  of  teeth,  tvhen  ye  shall  see  Abraham,  and 
Isaac,  and  Jacob,  and  all  the  prophets,  in  the  kingdom  of 
God,  and  ye  yourselves  cast  out.  And  they  shall  come 
from  the  east,  and  from  the  west,  and  from  the  north,  and 
from  the  south,  and  shall  sit  down  to  meat  in  the  kingdom 
of  God.  And  lo  I  there  are  last  that  shall  be  first,  and 
first  that  shall  be  last. 

A ,  SHIP  is  guided  to  the  right  port  by  means  of  the  helm  ; 
but  the  word  of  God  piloteth  the  soul  of  man,  and  leadeth  him 
without  risk  of  error  to  every  thing  that  is  necessary  for  sal- 
Ho9.xiv.2.  vation.  For  so  spake  one  of  the  holy  prophets  ;  "  Take  with 
"  you  words :"  even  those  which  are  inspired  by  the  Holy 
Ghost :  for  no  man  of  sense  will  say,  that  it  means  the  words 
of  the  wise  of  this  world.  For  their  words  lead  men  unto  the 
pit  of  destruction,  by  bringing  polytheism  into  the  world,  and 
by  inciting  unto  carnal  pleasure,  and  to  the  desire  of  the 
world's  vain  distractions :  but  the  words  of  God  point  out  the 
pathway  to  a  better  life,  and  beget  in  us  an  earnestness  which 
makes  us  cheerfully  advance  unto  the  duty  of  performing  all 
those  things,  by  means  of  which  we  are  made  partakers  of 
eternal  life. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  461 

Let  us  listen  therefore  to  the  Saviour's  words,  which  He 
addressed  unto  those  who  wanted  to  learn,  whether  they  be  few 
who  are  saved :  and  to  whom  the  Saviour  answered,  "  Strive 
"  to  enter  in  by  the  strait  door."     Now  this  reply  may  seem 
perhaps,  to  wander  from  the  scope  of  the  question.     For  the 
man  wanted  to  learn,  whether  they  be  few  who  are  saved  : 
but  He  described  unto  him  the  way  whereby  he  might  be 
saved  himself,  saying,  "  Strive  to  enter  in  by  the  strait  door." 
What  reply  then  do  we  make  to  this  objection?  We  answer  as 
follows;  that  it  was  the  custom  of  our  common  Saviour  Christ 
to  meet  His  questioners,  not  of  course  according  to  what  might 
seem  good  to  them,  but  as  having  regard  to  what  was  useful 
and  necessary  for  His  hearers.     And  this  He  especially  did 
when  any  one  wanted  to  learn  what  was  superfluous  and  un- 
edifying.     For  what  good  was  there  in  wishing  to  learn,  whe- 
ther there  be  many  or  few  that  be  saved  ?  What  benefit  re- 
sulted from  it  to  the  hearers?  On  the  contrary  it  was  a  neces- 
sary and  valuable  thing  to  know  in  what  way  a  man  may 
attain   to   salvation.      He  is  purposely  silent  therefore  with 
respect  to  the  useless  question  which  had  been  asked  Him,  but 
proceeds  to  speak  of  what  was  essential,  namely,  of  the  know- 
ledge necessary  for  the  performance  of  those  duties  by  which 
men  can  enter* in  at  the  strait  and  narrow  door.     For  this  He 
has  also  taught  us  in  another  place,  saying  ;  "Enter  in  at  the  Mat.  vii. 
"  strait  door  :  for  wide  is  the  door,  and  broad  is  the  way  that I3- 
"  leadeth  to  destruction,  and  many  are  they  that  go  in  thereby. 
"  For  strait  is  the  door,  and  narrow  is  the  way  that  leadeth 
"  unto  life,  and  few  are  they  that  find  it." 

Now  I  consider  it  my  duty  to  mention  why  the  door  is 
narrow,  through  which  a  man  goeth  unto  life.  Whosoever 
then  would  enter  must  of  necessity  first  before  everything 
else  possess  an  upright  and  uncorrupted  faith  :  and,  secondly,  a 
spotless  morality,  in  which  is  no  possibility  of  blame,  according 
to  the  measure  of  human  righteousness.  For  so  the  prophet 
David  also  somewhere  says,  very  excellently  framing  his  suppli- 
cations unto  God,  "  Judge  me,  0  Lord,  according  to  my  right-  Pa.  vii.  8. 
"  eousness  ;  and  according  to  my  innocency  requite  me."  For 
the  innocency  and  righteousness  of  the  holy  angels,  being  m 
proportion  to  their  nature  and  glory,  is  entirely  distinct  from 
that  which  belongs  to  the  inhabitants  of  earth  :  for  theirs  is  of 


462  COMMENTARY  UPON 

a  lower  kind,  and  inferior  in  every  respect,  just  as  they  are 
inferior  to  them  also  in  nature.  Nevertheless  those  who  wish 
to  live  holily  cannot  do  so  without  labour :  for  constantly,  so  to 
speak,  the  pathway  that  leadeth  unto  virtue  is  rugged  and 
steep,  and  for  most  men  too  difficult  to  walk  upon.  For  labours 
spring  up  before  us  and  we  have  need  altogether  of  forti- 
tude and  patience,  and  nobleness  of  conduct:  yea,  moreover, 
and  of  a  mind  that  cannot  be  prevailed  upon  dissolutely  to 
take  part  in  base  pleasures,  or  to  be  led  by  irrational  impulses 
into  carnal  lust.  He  who  has  attained  unto  this  in  mind  and 
spiritual  fortitude  will  enter  easily  by  the  strait  door,  and  run 

Prov.  xvi.  along  the  narrow  way.  For  it  is  written,  that  "  by  labours  a 
"  man  laboureth  for  himself,  and  violently  gaineth  the  mastery 
"  over  his  destruction."  Thou  hearest  how  the  prophet  plainly 
saith,  that  he  gaineth  the  mastery  over  his  destruction  by  vio- 

Mat. xi.12.  lence;  for  as  the  Lord  himself  again  said,  "The  kingdom  of 
"  heaven  is  gained  bv  violence,  and  the  violent  seize  it." 

"  For  wide  is  the  door,  and  broad  the  way  that  bringeth 
"  down  many  to  destruction."  And  what  are  we  to  under- 
stand by  its  broadness  ?  It  means  an  unrestrained  tendency  to 
carnal  lust ;  a  base  and  pleasure  loving  life  ;  luxurious  feast- 
ings,  and  revellings  and  banquetings,  and  unresisted  inclina- 
tions unto  every  thing  which  is  condemned  by  the  law,  and 
displeasing  to  God :  a  stdffnecked  mind  that  will  not  bow  to  the 
yoke  of  the  law  :  a  life  accursed,  and  relaxed  in  all  dissolute- 
ness, thrusting  from  it  the  divine  law,  and  utterly  unmindful  of 
the  sacred  commandments :  wealth  and  the  vices  that  spring 
from  it,  scorn  and  pride,  and  the  vain  imagining  of  transitory 
boastings.  From  all  such  things  must  those  withdraw  who 
would  enter  in  by  the  strait  door,  and  be  with  Christ,  and  keep 
festival  with  Him. 

And  that  such  as  are  not  thus  minded  cannot  walk  upon 
this  way,  He  shewed  at  once  by  a  plain  example.  For  those 
who  were  too  late,  and  so  to  say,  did  not  arrive  at  the  feast, 
their  lot  was  to  be  at  once  rejected.  "  For  when,"  He  says, 
"  the  master  of  the  house  entereth  in,  and  shutteth  the  door, 
"  and  they  begin  to  say  from  without,  Lord,  open  to  us ;  he  will 
"  say,  I  know  you  not  whence  ye  are."  For  in  the  character 
as  it  were  of  some  householder,  who  has  gathered  many  of  his 
neighbours  to  his  house  and  table,  and  has  afterwards  entered 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  463 

in  with  his  guests  and  closed  the  door,  He  says  that  those  who 
subsequently  knock,  shall  have  for  answer,  "  I  know  you  not 
"whence  ye  areu:"  and  though,  He '  says,  ye  importune, 
saying,  "  we  have  eaten  before  Tb.ee '  and  drunk ;  and  Thou 
"  hast  taught  in  our  streets;  ye  shall  hear  none  the  less,  I 
"  know  you  not  whence  ye  are.  Depart  far  from  Me,  all  ye 
"  workers  of  iniquity."  For  the  light  has  no  communion  at 
all  with  the  darkness  :  nor  can  any  one  be  near  unto  the  per- 
fectly pure  God  who  is  held  by  the  pollutions  of  sin,  and  whose 
stain  is  not  yet  washed  away. 

We  must  however  next  inquire  who  we  are  to  understand 
by  those  who  say  unto  Christ,  '  We  have  eaten  and  drunk  in 
'  Thy  presence,  and  Thou  hast  taught  in  our  streets  V  Such 
an  assertion  then  would  suit  the  Israelites,  to  whom  also  Christ 
said,  "  ye  shall  see  Abraham,  and  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  and  all  the 
"  prophets  in  the  kingdom  of  God,  and  you  yourselves  cast 
"  out."  But  how  then  were  thev  eating  and  drinking  before 
God  ?  I  answer,  by  performing  the  service  enacted  in  the  law  : 
for  when  offering  unto  God  sacrifices  by  the  shedding  of  blood, 
they  ate  and  made  merry.  And  they  heard  also  in  their  syna- 
gogues the  writings  of  Moses,  interpreting  God's  messages  :  for 
constantly  he  prefaced  his  words  with,  '  Thus  saith  the  Lord."1 
These  then  are  they  who  say,  "  We  have  eaten  and  drunk  in 
"  Thy  presence,  and  Thou  hast  taught  in  our  streets."  But 
the  worship  by  the  shedding  of  blood  is  not  sufficient  for  justi- 
fication, nor  verily  does  a  man  wash  away  his  stains  by  having 
become  a  hearer  of  the  divine  laws,  if  he  does  nothing  of  what 
has  been  commanded. 

And  in  another  way,  as  long  as  they  refused  to  accept  the 
faith,  which  justifieth  the  wicked,  nor  would  follow  the  evan- 
gelic commands,  by  means  of  which  it  is  possible  to  practice  the 
excellent  and  elect  life,  how  could  they  enter  the  kingdom  of 
God  ?  The  type  therefore  profiteth  not :  for  it  justifieth  no 
man,  and  it  is  a  thing  impossible  for  the  blood  of  bulls  and  of 
goats  to  take  away  sins. 

u  This  extract  in  Mai  from  B,  C,  of  course  knows  who  they  are ;  but 

and  D,  ends  in  a  manifest  interpo-  it  signifies  "friendship,"  that  God 

lation,  to  the  effect  that  by  knowing  does  not  acknowledge  them  among 

them  is  not  meant  absolute  know-  His  people, 
ledge,  for  God  as  being  omniscient 


CI 


4G4  COMMENTARY  UPON 

With  the  abovenamed,  thou  mayest  number  certain  others 
also  as  able  to  say  to  the  Judge  of  all,  "  we  have  eaten  and 
drunk  in  Thy  presence,  and  Thou  hast  taught  in  our  streets." 
And  who  again  are  these  ?,  Many  have  believed  in  Christ,  and 
celebrate  the  holy  festivals  in  His  honour ;  and  frequenting 
the  churches  they  also  hear  the  doctrines  of  the  Gospel :  but 
they  lay  up  in  their  mind  of  the  truths  of  Scripture  absolutely 
nothing  And  it  is  with  difficulty  that  the  practice  of  virtue 
is  brought  with  them  even  to  this  extent,  while  of  spiritual 
fruitfulness  their  heart  is  quite  bare.  These  too  shall  weep 
bitterly,  and  gnash  their  teeth  ;  for  the  Lord  shall  deny  them 
Mat.  vii.  also.  For  He  has  said,  that  "  not  every  one  that  saith  unto 
"  Me,  Lord,  Lord,  shall  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven, 
"  but  he  that  doeth  the  will  of  My  Father  Who  is  in  heaven." 

But  that  the  Jews  were  about  to  fall  utterly  from  their  rank 
of  being  in  a  spiritual  sense  His  household,  and  that  the  mul- 
titude of  the  Gentiles  should  enter  in  their  stead,  He  shewed 
by  saying,  that."  there  shall  come  from  the  east  and  from  the 
"  west,  from  the  north  and  from  the  south,  many  who  received 
"  the  call,  and  shall  rest  with  the  saints  ;  but  they  shall  be 
"  driven  away  :  and  whereas  they  once  had  the  first  rank, 
"  they  shall  now  take  the  second,  by  reason  of  others  being 
"  preferred  before  them."  Which  also  happened ;  for  the 
Gentiles  have  been  honoured  far  above  the  Jewisn  herd.  For 
it  was  £uiltv  both  of  disobedience  and  of  the  murder  of  the 
Lord:  but  they  honoured  the  faith  that  is  in  Christ;  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion, 
with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen*. 

*  Mai  has  collected  three  extracts  ther  this  confusion  is  owing  to  Mai 

under  v.  39,  of  which  the  first  from  or    the   Catena    itself,    I    have    no 

A  and  B,  after  correctly  giving  the  means  of  knowing :   if  to  the  Ca- 

passage,  "  Many  shall  rest  with  the  tena,  it  would  shew  that  its  extracts 

"  6aints,"   (read    o-uvavcmavo-ovTat),  must  have  been  gathered  at  second 

as  far  as  "the  Jewish  herd,"  then  hand.      The  reading  is  here   cor- 

adds  a  general  summary  of  S.  Cy-  rectly  crvvavcma-ucrovTaj.,  for  avvtKfv- 

ril's   explanation   in  the  Catenist's  tnvrcu.     The  third  extract  Mai  per- 

own  words,  with  a  reference  possibly  ceived  could  not  really  belong  to 

also  to  the  De  Ador.  Spir.  p.  170.  this  place,  and  referred  it  to  the  lost 

The    second  extract  from  A,  only  commentary  upon   the    parable   of 

repeats  the  first  sentence  or  two  of  the  labourers   in    the   vineyard    in 

this  extract,  but  commences  its  quo-  Mat.  xx.     It  is  really  taken  from 

tation  higher  up  at  the  words,  "  But  the  Glaphyra,   page   268   B,  (erro- 

"  that  the  Jews  were  about."  Whe-  neously  paged  264.) 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  46.5 


SERMON   C. 

C.  xiii.  31- 
That  same  hour  there  drew  near  certain  Pharisees,  saying  35. 

unto  Him,  Depart,  and  go  hence  :  for  Herod  desireth  to  ?£?    eg*. 
kill  thee.   And  He  said  unto  them,  Go  ye,  and  tell  this  fox, 
Behold  I  cast  out  devils,  and  I  do  cures  today  and  to- 
morrow, and  on  the  third  I  shall  be  perfected.  Nevertheless  add.  hn*p* 
I  must  walk  today  and  tomorrow  and  the  day  afterward  :    ' 
for  it  cannot  be  that  a  prophet  perish  out  of  Jerusalem. 
Jerusalem,  Jerusalem,  that  killeth  the  prophets,  and  stoneth  itpov<ra\)ift. 
them  that  are  sent  unto  her,  how  often  would  I  have  ga-  ter 
thered  thy  children,  as  a  hen  gather eth  her  chickens  under 
her  wings,  and  ye  would  not.     Behold  your  house  is  aban- 
doned for  you :  and  I  say  unto  you,  that  ye  shall  not  see  add.  ep^i 
Me,  until  ye  say,  Blessed  is  He  That  cometh  in  the  name  jLi„  si  ^. 

of  the  Lord.  7»  J- 

om.  8t»  b. 

add.  3t« 

THE  Pharisaic  crew  was  always,  so  to  speak,  wicked  and  GT*. 
designing,  and  eager  for  fraud,  gnashing  their  teeth  at  Christ, 
whenever  He  was  regarded  with  admiration,  and  with  their 
heart  consumed  by  the  fire  of  envy.  And  yet  how  was  it  not 
rather  their  duty  as  being  the  people's  guides,  and  set  over 
the  ordinary  multitude,  to  lead  them  on  unto  the  confession  of 
Christ's  glory,  as  being  the  purpose  both  of  the  enactment  of 
the  law,  and  of  the  preaching  of  the  holy  prophets.  But  this 
in  their  great  wickedness  they  did  not  do :  yea !  rather  in 
every  way  they  resisted  Him,  and  provoked  Him  incessantly 
to  anger;  and  therefore  Christ  said  unto  them,  "Woe  unto  Luke  xi.5*. 
"  you,  Scribes  and  Pharisees,  hypocrites :  for  ye  have  taken 
"  away  the  key  of  knowledge  :  ye  enter  not  in  yourselves,  and 
"  those  that  were  entering  ye  have  hindered."  For  one  can 
see  that  they  had  fallen  into  such  a  state  of  malice,  and  into  a 
disposition  so  contrary  to  the  love  of  God,  that  they  were  not 
willing  for  Him  even  to  dwell  in  Jerusalem,  lest  He  should 
benefit  men,  partly  by  filh'ng  them  with  wonder  at  His  divine 
miracles,  and  partly  by  shedding  upon  them  the  light  of  the 

3° 


466  COMMENTARY  UPON 

accurate  vision  of  God  bv  means  of  the  teaching  of  truths 
superior  to  those  of  the  law. 

Such  are  the  thoughts  to  which  we  are  here  led  by  the  pur- 
port of  the  lessons  now  set  before  us.  "  For  in  that  same  hour, 
"  it  says,  certain  Pharisees  drew  near,  and  said  unto  Him, 
"  Depart  and  go  hence :  for  Herod  desireth  to  kill  Thee." 
Come,  then,  and  let  us  fix  the  scrutinizing  eye  of  the  mind  on 
what  is  here  said  by  them.  Let  us  accurately  examine  which 
of  the  two  is  the  case,  whether  the  speakers  are  to  be  reckoned 
among  those  who  love  Him,  or  among  those  who  would  oppose 
Him.  But,  as  it  appears,  there  is  no  difficulty  whatsoever  in 
perceiving  that  they  were  His  thorough  opponents.  For 
Christ,  for  instance,  raised  the  dead  from  the  grave,  employ- 
ing therein  a  power  such  as  belongs  to  God :  for  He  cried, 
Johnxi.43.  "  Lazarus,  come  forth :"  and  to  the  widow's  son,  "  Young  man, 
Lukevu.14  u  1  gay  unt0  thee,  arise."  But  they  made  the  miracle  food  for 
John  xi.  47.  their  envy,  and  even  said,  when  gathered  together,  "  What  do 
"  we,  because  this  man  doeth  many  miracles  ?  If  we  thus  leave 
"  Him  alone,  the  Romans  will  come,  and  take  away  our  people 
"  and  our  land."  And  then,  even  then,  it  was  that  Caiaphas, 
planning  wicked  murder  against  Him,  said ;  u  As  for  you,  ye 
"  know  nothing  at  all,  that  it  is  expedient  for  you  that  one 
"  man  die  for  the  people,  and  not  that  the  whole  people 
"  perish." 

And  they  resisted  Him  also  in  other  ways  ;  at  one  time 
treating  Him  with  scorn,  and  mocking  His  miraculous  power, 
and  venturing  even  to  accuse  His  godlike  authority,  saying, 
that  whatever  was  done  was  wrought  by  the  help  of  Beelzebub : 
and  at  another  even  endeavouring  to  give  Him  up  to  Caesar's 
satellites.  For  as  though  He  prohibited  the  Israelites  from 
paying  tax  unto  Caesar,  they  drew  near  to  Him  in  treachery 
Lukexx.22.  and  guile,  saying,  "  Is  it  lawful  to  give  tribute  unto  Caesar  or 
'■'  not  V  Can  those  then  who  laid  for  Him  all  kinds  of  snares ; 
who,  in  their  audacity  and  hardihood,  did  not  even  abstain 
from  murder  ;  who,  being  cunning  for  wickedness,  attacked 
Him  with  remorseless  violence,  and  readily  practised  all  such 
arts  as  those  do  who  hate  utterly  ;  how,  I  say,  can  such  be 
reckoned  among  those  who  love  Him  ? 

Why  then  did  they  draw  near,  saying,  "  Depart  hence  :  for 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  467 

"  Herod  wishes  to  kill  Thee :"  and  what  object  had  they  in  so 
doing  ?     The  Evangelist  tells  us  this,  by  saying,  "  That  same 
"  hour  they  drew  near  to  Him."    And  what  is  the  meaning  of 
this  carefulness  of  language  ?    Why  was  there  this  exactitude  ? 
or  what  hour  does  he  mean  as  that  in  which  the  Pharisees  said 
these  things  to  Jesus  ?  He  was  occupied  in  teaching  the  Jewish 
multitudes,  when  some  one  asked  Him  whether  there  be  many 
that  are  saved.     He  passed  by  the  question,  however,  as  un- 
profitable, and  turned  to  that  which  was  fitting  for  Him  to  tell, 
the  way,  namely,  by  which  men  must  walk  to  become  heirs  of 
the  kingdom  of  heaven.     For  He  said,  "  Strive  to  enter  in  at 
"  the  strait  door :  and  told  them  that  if  they  refuse  so  to  do, 
"  they  will  see  Abraham  and  Isaac  and  Jacob,  and  all  the  pro- 
"  phets  in  the  kingdom  of  God,  and  themselves  cast  out."  And 
He  added  thereunto,  that  "  whereas  they  had  been  the  first, 
"  they  should  be  the  last,"  upon  the  calling  namely  of  the 
heathen.     These  remarks  goaded  the  mind  of  the  Pharisees 
unto  auger :  they  saw  the  multitudes  already  repenting,  and 
receiving  with  eagerness  faith  in  Him ;  and  that  they  needed 
now  but  a  little  more  instruction  to  learn  His  glory  and  the 
great  and  adorable  mystery  of  the  incarnation.  As  being  likely 
therefore  to  lose  their  office  of  being  chiefs  of  the  people,  and 
as  already  fallen  and  expelled  from  their  authority  over  them, 
and  deprived  of  their  profits, — for  they  were  fond  of  wealth, 
and  covetous,  and  given  to  lucre, — they  made   pretence   of 
loving  Him,  and  even  drew  near,  and  said,  "  Depart  and  go 
"  hence  :  for  Herod  desireth  to  kill  Thee."     But,  0  stony- 
hearted Pharisee,  hadst   thou  been  wise ;    hadst   thou  been 
well  acquainted  with  the  law  of  the  most  wise  Moses ;  hadst 
thou  really  fixed  thy  mind  upon  the  declarations  of  the  holy 
profits;   it  could  not  have  escaped  thee  that  there  was  no 
possibility  of  thy  being  undetected  in  feigning  a  false  show  of 
affection,  while  thy  mind  was  full  of  gall.     He  was  not  a  mere 
man,  and  one  of  those  like  unto  us,  and  so  liable  to  deception ; 
but  God  in  our  likeness :  God  Who  understandeth  everything, 
and  "  knoweth  secrets,'1  as  it  is  written,  and  "  trieth  the  hearts  Ps.xliv.  21. 
"  and  reins ;"  "  to  Whom  all  things  are  naked,  and  spread  g^^  9' 
"  open,"  and  from  Whom  nothing  is  hid.     But  thou  knewest 
not  this  precious  and  mighty  mystery:  thou  thoughtest  that 

302 


468  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Job  thou  couldst  deceive  even  Him  Who  saith  ;  "  Who  is  this  that 

tm  *'  "  hideth  from  Me  his  mind,  and  shutteth  up  words  in  his  heart, 
"  and  thinketh  that  from  Me  he  hideth  them  ?" 

What  then  does  Christ  answer  to  these  things?  He  re- 
plied to  them  gently,  and  with  His  meaning  veiled,  as  was  His 
wont :  "  Go  and  tell,  He  says,  this  fox."  Attend  closely  to 
the  force  of  the  expression :  for  the  words  used  seem  forsooth 
to  be  directed,  and  to  have  regard,  as  it  were,  to  the  person  of 
Herod :  but  they  really  rather  refer  to  the  craftiness  of  the 
Pharisees.  For  while  He  would  naturally  have  said,  "  Tell  that 
"  fox,"  He  does  not  do  so,  but  using  very  skilfully  a  middle 
sort  of  expression,  He,  so  to  speak,  pointed  to  the  Pharisee, 
who  was  close  beside  Him,  and  said,  "  this  fox."  And  He 
compares  the  man  to  a  fox :  for  it  is  constantly  a  very  crafty 
animal,  and,  if  1  may  so  speak,  malicious,  such  as  were  the 
Pharisees. 

But  what  did  He  bid  them  say  ?  "  Behold,  I  cast  out  devils, 
"  and  do  cures  today  and  tomorrow,  and  the  third  I  shall  be 
"perfected."  Thou  seest  that  He  declares  His  intention  of 
performing  what  He  knew  would  grieve  the  troop  of  Pha- 
risees :  for  they  drive  Him  from  Jerusalem,  lest  by  the  display 
of  miracles  He  should  win  many  unto  faith  in  Him.  But  in- 
asmuch as  their  purpose  herein  did  not  escape  Him  as  being 
God,  He  declares  His  intention  of  performing  what  they  hated, 
and  says,  that  "  He  shall  also  rebuke  unclean  spirits,  and  de- 
"  liver  the  sick  from  their  sufferings,  and  be  perfected;"  which 
means,  that  of  His  own  will  He  would  endure  the  passion  upon 
the  cross,  for  the  salvation  of  the  world.  He  knew,  therefore, 
as  it  appears,  both  how  and  when  He  would  endure  death  in 
the  flesh. 

The  Pharisees,  however,  imagined  that  the  power  of  Herod 
would  terrify  Him,  and  humble  Him  unto  mean  fears,  al- 
though He  is  Lord  of  powers,  and  begets  in  us  spiritual  bra- 
Mat,  x.  78.  very  by  His  words,  "  Fear  not  them  who  kill  the  body,  but 
"  cannot  kill  the  soul/'  And  that  He  too  makes  no  account 
of  the  violence  of  men  He  shewed,  saying,  "  But  I  must  walk 
"  today  and  tomorrow  and  the  day  after."  And  in  saying, 
"  I  must,"  He  does  not  imply  that  an  inevitable  necessity,  so 
to  speak,  was  laid  upon  Him,  but  rather  that  by  the  power  of 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  469 

His  own  will,  freely  and  without  danger  He  would  go  wherever 
He  chose,  and  traverse  Judasa  without  any  one  opposing  Him 
or  plotting  Him  ill,  until  of  His  own  accord  He  received  His 
consummation  upon  the  precious  cross. 

Let  not  therefore  those  murderers  of  the  Lord  pride  them- 
selves, or  superciliously  vaunt  themselves  against  Him.  Thou 
didst  not  win  a  victory  over  One  Who  fled  from  suffering. 
Thou  didst  not  seize  One  unwilling.  Thou  didst  not  prevail 
over  One  "Who  refused  to  be  caught  in  the  meshes  of  thy  craf- 
tiness.  Of  His  own  will  He  consented  to  suffer,  as  being  well 
assured  that  by  the  death  of  His  flesh  He  would  abolish  death, 
and  return  again  to  life.  For  He  arose  from  the  dead,  having 
raised  up  with  Him  the  whole  nature  of  man,  and  having 
fashioned  it  anew  unto  the  life  incorruptible. 

But  He  shews  that  Jerusalem  is  guilty  of  the  bloocl  of  many 
saints,  declaring,  "  that  it  is  not  possible  for  a  prophet  to 
perish  out  of  her."  And  what  follows  from  this?  That  they 
were  about  to  fall  from  being  members  of  God's  spiritual  fa- 
mily ;  that  they  were  about  to  be  rejected  from  the  hope  of 
the  saints,  and  entirely  deprived  of  the  inheritance  of  those 
blessings  which  are  in  store  for  them  who  have  been  saved  by 
faith.  For  that  they  were  forgetful  of  God's  gifts,  and  intract- 
able, and  slothful  unto  everything  that  might  have  profited 
them,  He  shewed,  saying;  "  Jerusalem,  Jerusalem,  that  killeth 
"  the  prophets,  and  stoneth  them  that  are  sent  unto  her,  how 
"  often  would  I  have  gathered  thy  sons,  as  a  hen  gathereth 
"  her  cliickens  under  her  wings,  and  ye  would  not :  behold 
"  your  house  is  abandoned  unto  you."  For  He  taught  them 
by  the  most  wise  Moses,  and  ordained  for  them  the  law  to 
direct  them  in  their  conduct,  and  be  their  ruler  and  guide  in 
the  life  worthy  of  admiration,  and  which  though  it  was  but  as 
yet  in  shadows,  nevertheless  possessed,  the  type  of  the  true 
worship :  He  admonished  them  by  the  holy  prophets :  He 
would  have  had  them  under  His  wings,  under  the  protection, 
that  is,  of  His  power  :  but  they  lost  blessings  thus  valuable  by 
being  evil-disposed  and  ungrateful,  and  despisers. 

"  But,"  saith  He,  "ye  shall  not  see  Me  henceforth  until  ye 
u  say,  Blessed  is  he  that  cometh  in  the  Name  of  the  Lord." 
And  what  again  is  this  ?    The  Lord  withdrew  from  Jerusalem, 


470  COMMENTARY  UPON 

and  left  as  unworthy  of  His  presence  those  who  said,  "  Depart 
"  and  go  hence."  And  afterwards  having  traversed  Judaea, 
and  saved  many,  and  performed  miracles  which  no  words  can 
adequately  describe,  He  returned  again  to  Jerusalem.  And 
then  it  was,  even  then,  that  He  sat  upon  a  foal  and  an  ass, 
while  vast  multitudes  and  roun^  children,  holding  up  branches 

v  "o  or 

of  palm-trees,  went  before  Him,  praising  Him,  and  saying, 
Mat.xxi.9.  "  Hosanna  to  the  Son  of  David.  Blessed  is  He  That  cometh 
"  in  the  Name  of  the  Lord."  Having  left  them  therefore  as 
being  unworthy,  He  says  that  He  will  then  barely  be  seen  by 
them  when  the  time  of  His  passion  has  arrived.  For  then 
again  He  went  up  to  Jerusalem,  and  entered  amid  praises,  and 
at  that  very  time  endured  His  saving  passion  in  our  behalf, 
that  by  suffering  He  might  save,  and  renew  unto  incorruption 
the  inhabitants  of  the  earth.  For  God  the  Father  has  saved 
us  by  Christ :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father 
be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and 
ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  471 


SERMON   CI. 

And  it  came  to  pass,  when  He  had  gone  into  the  house  of  one  C.  xiv.  1-6. 
of  the  chief  Pharisees  on  the  sabbath  day  to  eat  bread,  that 
they  watched  Him.     And  behold  there  was  a  certain  man 
before  Him  who  had  the  dropsy.   And  Jesus  answered  and 
spake  unto  the  lawyers  and  Pharisees,  saying;  Is  it  lawful  g*£" 
to  heal  on  the  sabbath  day  or  no  ?     And  they  were  silent.  (i  %  Gj. 
And  He  took  him,  and  healed  him,  and  sent  him  away.  JJ*^*' 
And  He  answered  them,  saying ;   Which  of  you  shall  have  Kpte*\s  B. 
a  son  or  an  ox  fall  into  a  pit,  and  will  not  immediately  J^*  Gs 
draw  him  out  on  the  sabbath  day  ?  And  they  could  not  re- 
turn Him  an  answer  to  these  things. 

AGAIN"  the  Lord  worketh  miracles,  and  exercising  a  divine 
and  supreme  power,  performs  His  accustomed  acts,  and  mani- 
fests His  glory.  He  benefits  then  in  more  ways  than  one  the 
intractable  and  contentious  Pharisee.  For  just  as  maladies  of 
more  than  usual  violence  will  not  yield  to  the  skill  of  physi- 
cians, but  require  the  main  force  of  persons  of  blunter  feelings  : 
so  also  the  human  mind,  that  has  turned  aside  to  wickedness, 
rejects  all  that  could  benefit  it,  directly  that  it  has  once  be- 
come the  victim  of  an  uncontrollable  tendency  to  disobedience, 
beino-  brought  into  this  state  by  unreproved  departures  from 
the  right  path.  7 

And  that  this  is  undeniably  true,  any  one  may  see  who  will 
give  his  attention  to  the  lessons  here  set  before  us.  For  a 
Pharisee,  of  higher  rank  than  usual,  invited  Jesus  to  a  ban- 
quet :  and  He,  although  He  knew  their  malice,  went  with  him, 
and  dined  in  their  company.  And  He  submitted  to  this  act  of 
condescension,  not  to  honour  His  inviter,  but  rather  to  benefit 
those  in  whose  company  He  was,  by  such  words  and  miraculous 
deeds  as  might  lead  them  to  the  acknowledgment  of  the  true 
service,  even  that  which  is  taught  us  by  the  gospel.     For  He 

y  Cramer's  Catena  contains  a  summary  of  this  Sermon,  not  found  by 
Mai  in  his  MSS. 


472  COMMENTARY  UPON 

knew  that  even  against  their  will  He  would  make  them  eye- 
witnesses both  of  His  power,  and  of  His  more  than  human 
glory,  if  perchance  even  so  they  might  believe  that  He  is  God 
and  the  Son  of  God,  Who  assumed  indeed  our  likeness,  but 
continued  unchanged,  nor  ceased  to  be  that  which  He  had 
been. 

He  became  the  guest  then  of  His  inviters,  to  fulfil,  as  I  said, 
a  necessary  duty :  "  but  they,  it  says,  watched  Him."  And 
for  what  reason  did  they  watch  Him,  and  on  what  account  ? 
To  see  forsooth  whether  He  would  disregard  the  honour  due 
to  the  law,  and  so  do  something  or  other  forbidden  on  the 
sabbath  day.  But,  0  senseless  Jew,  understand  that  the 
law  was  a  shadow  and  type,  waiting  for  the  truth :  and  the 
truth  was  Christ,  and  His  commandments.  Why  then  dost 
thou  arm  the  type  against  the  truth?  why  settest  thou  the 
shadow  in  array  against  the  spiritual  interpretation?  Keep  thy 
sabbath  rationally :  but  if  thou  wilt  not  consent  so  to  do,  then 
art  thou  cut  off  from  that  sabbath  keeping  which  is  well 
pleasing  to  God,  and  knowest  not  the  true  rest,  which  He 
requires  of  us  Who  of  old  spake  the  law  of  Moses.  Let  us 
cease  from  our  sins ;  let  us  rest  from  our  offences  ;  let  us  wash 
away  our  stains ;  let  us  abandon  the  impure  love  of  the  flesh  ; 
let  us  flee  far  from  covetousness  and  extortion ;  and  from  dis- 
graceful gains,  and  the  love  of  lucre.  Let  us  first  gather  pro- 
visions for  our  souls  for  the  way,  the  meat  that  will  suffice  us 
in  the  world  to  come :  and  let  us  apply  ourselves  to  holy 
works,  thereby  keeping  the  sabbath  rationally.  Those  whose 
office  it  was  to  minister  among  you  according  to  the  law  used 
to  offer  unto  God  the  appointed  sacrifices,  even  upon  the  sab- 
bath :  they  slew  the  victims  in  the  temple,  and  performed 
those  acts  of  service  which  were  laid  upon  them :  and  no  man 
rebuked  them,  and  the  law  itself  was  silent.  It  did  not  there- 
fore forbid  men  ministering  upon  the  sabbath.  This  then  was 
a  type  for  us :  for,  as  I  said,  it  is  our  duty,  keeping  the  sabbath 
in  a  rational  manner,  to  please  God  by  a  sweet  spiritual  savour. 
And,  as  I  have  already  before  said,  we  render  this  when  ceasing 
from  sins,  we  offer  unto  God  as  a  sacred  oblation  a  life  holy 
and  worthy  of  admiration,  steadily  advancing  unto  all  virtue. 
For  this  is  the  spiritual  sacrifice  well  pleasing  unto  God. 

But  if,  having  nought  of  this  in  thy  mind,  thou  cleavest 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  473 

solely  to  the  grossness  of  the  legal  Scripture,  abandoning  the 
truth  as  something  fhou  canst  not  attain  to,  listen  unto  God, 
Who  tells  thee  by  the  voice  of  the  prophet  Isaiah;  "  The  heart  is.  vi.  to. 
"  of  this  people  is  waxed  gross,  their  eyes  they  have  closed, 
"  and  made  their  ears  heavy,  lest  they  should  see  with  their 
"  eyes,  and  hear  with  their  ears,  and  understand  with  their 
"  heart,  and  should  be  converted,  and  I  should  heal  them." 
For  how  were  not  they  heavy  and  without  understanding.,  and 
of  a  mind  past  helping,  who  when  they  might  have  perceived 
that  He  was  the  Christ  by  His  teaching  being  superior  to  the 
law,  and  by  the  wonderful  works  that  He  wrought,  were  obdu- 
rate, and  regarded  only  their  own  preconceived  idea  of  what 
was  right :  or  rather  that  only  which  brought  them  down  to 
the  pit  of  destruction  ? 

But  what  was  the  miracle  of  which  they  were  spectators  ? 
There  was  a  certain  man  before  Him  who  had  the  dropsy:  the 
Lord  therefore  asks  the  lawyers  and  Pharisees,  whether  it  is 
lawful  to  heal  on  the  sabbath  day  or  not  ?  "  But  they,  it  says, 
"  were  silent."  But  why,  0  lawyer,  wast  thou  silent?  Quote 
something  from  the  scriptures ;  shew  that  the  law  of  Moses 
ever  blamed  the  doing  good  on  the  sabbath :  prove  to  us 
that  it  wishes  us  to  be  hardhearted  and  unmerciful,  because  of 
the  rest  for  our  bodies ; — that  it  forbids  kindness,  in  order  that 
we  may  honour  the  sabbath.  But  this  thou  canst  not  prove 
from  any  part  of  it.  And  as  they  were  silent  from  malice, 
Christ  refutes  their  immitigable  shamelessness  by  the  con- 
vincing arguments  which  He  uses.  For  "  whose  son  of  you," 
He  says,  "  or  whose  ox  shall  fall  into  a  pit,  and  he  will  not 
"  immediately  draw  him  out  on  the  sabbath  day  ?"  If  the  law 
forbids  the  shewing  mercy  on  the  sabbath,  why  dost  thou  thy- 
self take  compassion  on  that2  which  has  fallen  into  the  pit? 
Trouble  not  thyself  about  thy  son's  danger  upon  the  sabbath ; 
rebuke  the  sting  of  natural  affection,  which  incites  thee  to  feel 
a  father's  love.  Commit  thy  child  with  joy  to  the  grave,  that 
thou  mayest  honour  the  Giver  of  the  law,  as  knowing  that  He 

z  The  reading  both  of  Cr.  and  fore  of  ovov  for  rbv  made  by  Mai  in 

Mai's  Codd.   rbv   els   (ppeap   Kara-  his   text,  like  conjectural  emenda- 

necrovTa,   is  further    supported    by  tions  generally,  is  an  error, 
the  Syriac :  the  substitution  there- 


474  COMMENTARY  UPON 

is  harsh  and  unmerciful.  Let  thy  friend  be  in  danger,  but 
pay  not  thou  the  slightest  heed  thereto  :  nay  though  thou  near- 
est a  young  child  weeping,  and  asking  for  help,  say  to  it,  Die: 
such  is  the  will  of  the  law.  But  thou  wilt  not  assent  to  such 
reasonings;  thou  wilt  stretch  out  thv  hand  to  one  who  is  dis- 
tressed,  esteeming  him  of  more  account  than  the  honour  due  to 
the  law,  or  rather  than  a  senseless  rest,  even  if  thou  wilt  not  as 
yet  acknowledge  that  the  sabbath  ought  to  be  kept  in  a  spi- 
ritual manner.  The  God  of  all  ceaseth  not  to  be  kind  :  He  is 
good  and  loving  unto  men  :  He  instituted  not  the  law  of  Moses 
as  the  mediator  of  harshness,  nor  appointed  it  as  a  teacher  of 
cruelty,  but  rather  to  lead  thee  on  to  the  love  of  thy  neighbour. 
How  then  was  it  fitting  that  a  commandment  thus  venerable 
and  worthy  of  admiration  should  by  the  will  of  God  lose  its 
force  upon  the  sabbath  day?  Why  therefore  wast  thou  silent, 
0  lawyer  ?  Confessedly  because  thou  hadst  nothing  to  say. 
For  the  force  of  truth  is  something  great,  and  invincible,  able 
to  confound  the  envious  mind,  and  to  muzzle  the  faultfinding 
tongue. 

Paying  then  no  further  heed  to  the  envyings  of  the  Jews, 
He  delivers  from  his  malady  the  man  afflicted  with  the  dropsy, 
and  tyrannized  over  by  an  incurable  disease a.  Thou  hast  seen 
0  Jew,  the  miracle  :  extol  then  the  Worker  of  it.  Understand 
His  might,  and  the  gloriousness  of  His  dominion  :  acknowledge 
that  He  is  God :  offer  Him  thy  faith :  be  not  obdurate ;  but  as 
Joel  U.  13.  the  prophet  Jeremiah  saysb,  "  Rend  your  hearts,  and  not 
"  your  garments."  Expand  thy  mind  :  open  the  eye  of  thine 
heart :  understand  that  the  acts  which  He  works  are  those  of 
Deity,  even  though  in  appearance  He  be  a  man  like  unto  us. 
Recognize  therefore  Him  Who  for  our  sakes  bore  our  likeness, 
but  even  so  was  far  above  us  :  or  rather  far  above  all  creation 
by  His  ineffable  generation  from  God  the  Father.  For  He  is 
the  Son  of  Him  Who  transcends  all,  but  though  He  was  Lord  He 


a  Mai  from  A  interpolates  here  that  the  sight  of  his  misery  might 

an  example  of  extremely  minute  cri-  awaken  His  compassion, 

ticism  to  the  effect  that   the   man  b  This   discrepancy   is   noted  in 

did   not   venture  to  aek  Christ  to  the  margin,  which  says,  "  This  text 

heal  him  for  fear  of  the  Pharisees,  "  is  found  in  Joel." 
but  stood  before  Him  in  the  hope 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  475 

took  the  form  of  the  sLave,  that  He  might  make  the  slave  like 
unto  Himself:  yet  He  did  not  cease  to  be  God,  but  remains 
the  Same,  Whom  angels  worship,  and  principalities,  and 
thrones,  and  lordships.  The  Seraphim  praise  Him :  and  let  us 
also  serve  Him  in  faith,  mounting  upward  by  His  aid  to  the  lot 
of  the  saints  ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father 
be  praise  and  dominion  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and 
ever,  Amen. 


3  p  2 


476'  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON    CII. 


C.  xiv.  7- 
i  r. 


fiOVS  S. 


And  He  spake  a  parable  unto  them  which  were  bidden  pre- 
venting0 how  they  chose  the  foremost  seats :  saying  unto 

om  ei'r  yd-  them,  When  thou  art  bidden  of  any  one,  seat  not  thyself  at 
the  head  of  the  seat,  lest  a  more  honourable  man  than  thou 
be  bidden  of  him ;  and  when  he  that  bade  thee  and  him 
cometh,  he  say  unto  thee,  Give  this  man  place ;  and  then 
thou  begin  with  shame  to  take  the  lowest  place.  But  when 
thou  art  bidden,  go  seat  thyself  in  the  lowest  place,  that 
when  he  that  bade  thee  cometh,  he  may  say  unto  thee, 
Friend,  go  up  higher ;  then  shalt  thou  have  honour  before 

om.  irdvTw  all  who  sit  with  thee  at  meat.  For  whosoever  exalteth 
himself  shall  be  abased,  and  he  that  humbleth  himself  shall 
be  exalted. 


GTj 


NEVER  does  the  Saviour  cense  from  doing  some  act  or 
other  replete  with  benefit,  guiding  by  admonitions  and  coun- 
sels all  who  draw  near  unto  Him  into  propriety  of  conduct,  and 
teaching  them  that  sobriety  which  becometh  saints,  that  as 

i  Tim.  iii.  Paul  says,  "  the  man  of  God  may  be  perfect,  complete  unto 
"  every  good  work."  Seizing  therefore  every  opportunity. 
however  slight,  for  His  words,  He  wove  for  us  admonitions 
well  worthy  of  our  attention,  therein  resembling  an  active  hus- 
bandman ;  for  whatsoever  is  liable  to  blame  and  reprehension, 
and  covers  with  utter  infamv  those  who  are  omiltv  of  it,  this 
He  cuts  away  from  our  minds,  and  plants,  so  to  speak,  every 

i  Cor.  Hi.  9.  fruit  of  virtue:  for  "we,  as  Scripture  says,  are  God's  hus- 
"  bandry." 

"What  benefit  then  He  has  here  too  discovered  for  US',  we 
learn  from  the  passage  now  read.  For  He  was  dining  on  the 
sabbath  day  with  one  of  the  Pharisees,  at  his  special  request. 

c  The  reading  in   the   Greek    19  "  places  at  the  top  of  the  seats." 

en-t^w,  which  is  almost  universally  The  Syriac  translator  however  has 

taken  with  tov  vow  understood,  in  understood  it  in  its  literal  sense  of 

the  sense  of 'noticing,' 'observing;'  'preventing,'  'holding  back,'  and 

and  so  the  Peschito  paraphrases  it,  the    Philoxenian  renders   it   in    the 

"  because   He   saw  them  choosing  same  way. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  477 

And  his  purpose  in  so  doing,  and  motive  we  explained  unto 
you  when  last  we  met  together.  But  inasmuch  as  He  saw  cer- 
tain of  those  who  were  invited  foolishly  seizing  the  uppermost 
seats  as  a  thing  of  importance,  and  worth  the  taking,  and  that 
they  were  eager  after  vainglory,  for  the  benefit  both  of  them 
and  us  He  utters  an  urgent  warning,  saying  ;  "  When  thou 
"  art  bidden  of  any  one,  seat  not  thyself  at  the  head  of  the 
"  seat,  lest  a  more  honourable  man  than  thou  be  bidden  of 
"  him,  and  when  he  that  bade  thee  and  him  cometh,  he  say 
"  unto  thee,  Give  this  man  place  ;  and  then  thou  begin  with 
"  shame  to  take  the  lowest  place." 

Now  such  things  may  seem  perchance  to  some  to  be  but  tri- 
fling matters,  and  not  worthy  of  much  attention.  But  when 
any  one  fixes  upon  them  the  eye  of  his  mind,  he  will  then 
learn,  from  what  blame  they  deliver  a  man,  and  how  great 
orderliness  they  produce  in  him.  For  in  the  first  place  to 
hurry  inconsiderately  after  honours  neither  suitable,  nor  due 
to  us,  shews  us  to  be  foolish,  rude,  and  arrogant,  seizing 
what  is  not  fitting  for  us,  but  for  others  rather,  who  are 
greater  than  and  superior  to  ourselves.  Whoever  he  be 
that  thus  acts,  is  hated,  and  often  too  becomes  an  object  of 
ridicule,  when  he  has  to  restore  to  others,  and  that  often 
against  his  will,  the  honour  which  in  no  respect  belongs  unto 
him.  "  For  when,  He  says,  a  more  honourable  man  than  thou 
"  cometh,  he  that  bade  thee  and  him  will  say,  Give  this  man 
"  place."  0  !  what  great  ignominy  is  there  in  having  so  to 
do  !  It  is  like  a  theft,  so  to  speak,  and  the  restitution  of  the 
stolen  goods.  He  must  restore  what  he  has  seized ;  for  he 
had  no  right  to  take  it.  But  the  modest  and  praiseworthy 
man,  who  might  without  fear  of  blame  have  claimed  the  dig- 
nity of  sitting  among  the  foremost,  seeks  it  not,  but  yields  to 
others  what  might  be  called  his  own,  that  he  may  not  even 
seem  to  be  overcome  by  vainglory ;  and  such  an  one  shall 
receive  honour  as  his  due  :  for  he  shall  hear,  He  says,  him  who 
bade  him  say,  "  Come  up  hither." 

A  modest  mind  therefore  is  a  great  and  surpassing  good  : 
for  it  delivers  those  who  possess  it  from  blame  and  contempt, 
and  from  the  charge  of  vaingloriousness.  '  But  yes  !  says  the 
'  lover  of  vainglory,  I  wish  to-be  illustrious  and  renowned,  and 
'  not  despised  and  neglected,  and  numbered  among  the  un- 


478  COMMENTARY  UPON 

# 

'  known.'  If  however  thou  desirest  this  transitory  and 
human  glory,  thou  art  wandering  away  from  the  right  path, 
by  which  thou  mightest  become  truly  illustrious,  and  attain  to 
i  Pet.  i.  14,  such  praise  as  is  worthy  of  emulation.  For  it  is  written,  "  All 
"  flesh  is  grass,  and  all  the  glory  of  man  as  the  flower  of 
"  grass."  And  the  prophet  David  also  blames  those  who  love 
Ps.raexix.6.  temporal  honours ;  for  he  also  thus  spake  of  them,  ';  Let  them 
"  be  as  the  grass  upon  the  housetops,  which  withereth  before 
"  it  is  plucked  up."  For  just  as  the  grass  that  springs  up 
upon  the  housetops  has  no  deep  fixed  root,  and  for  this  reason 
is  easily  parched  up  ;  so  he  who  values  worldly  honour,  after 
he  has  been  for  a  short  time  conspicuous,  and,  so  to  speak,  in 
flower,  sinks  at  last  into  nothingness. 

If  then  any  one  wish  to  be  set  above  others,  let  him  win  it 

by  the  decree  of  heaven,  and  be   crowned  by  those  honours 

which  God  bestows.     Let  him  surpass  the  many  by  having  the 

testimony  of  glorious  virtues ;  but  the  rule  of  virtue  is  a  lowly 

mind  that   loveth  not  boasting :   yea !    it  is  humility.     And 

this  the  blessed  Paul  also  counted  worthy  of  all  esteem :  for 

he  writes  to  such  as  are  eagerly  desirous  of  saintly  pursuits, 

Col.  iii.  12.  "  Love  humility."     And  the  disciple  of  Christ  praises  it,  thus 

Jam  esi.  9.  writing  ;  "  Let  the  poor  brother  glory  in  his  exaltation  :  and 

"  the  rich  in  his  humiliation,  because  as  the  flower  of  the  grass 

41  he  passeth  away."     For  the  moderate  and  bridled  mind  is 

Pa.  Ii.  17.    exalted  with  God  :  for  "  God,  it  says,  will  not  despise  the  con- 

"  trite  and  abased  heart." 

But  whosoever  thinks  great  things  of  himself,  and  is  su- 
percilious, and  elate  in  mind,  and  prides  himself  on  an  empty 
loftiness,  is  rejected  and  accursed.     He  follows  a  course  the 
Mat.  xi.29.  contrary  of  Christ's,  Who  said ;  "  Learn  of  Me,  for  I  am  meek 
1  Pet.  v.  5.  «  and  lowly  in  heart."     "  For  the  Lord,  it  says,  resisteth  the 
"  proud,  but  giveth  grace  to  the  humble."     The  wise  Solomon 
also  shews  in  many  places  the  safety  of  the  humble  mind  ;  at 
Ecclus.  i.    one  time  saying,  "  Exalt  not  thyself,  that  thou  fall  not:"  and 
Prov  xvii.  a^  ar>otber  time,  he  figurately  declares  the  same  thing ;  "  He 
x9-  "  that  maketh  his  house  high,  seeketh  an  overthrow."     Such 

a  one  is  hated  of  God,  and  very  justly,  as  having  mistaken 
himself,  and  senselessly  aimed  above  the  limits  of  his  nature. 
For  upon  what  ground,  I  pray,  does  man  upon  earth  think 
great  things  of  himself?    For  certainly  his  mind  is  weak,  and 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  479 

easily  led  into  base  pleasures :  his  body  is  tyrannized  over  by 
corruption  and  death  :  and  the  duration  of  his  life  is  short  and 
limited.  Nor  is  this  all,  for  naked  were  we  born,  and  there- 
fore riches,  and  wealth,  and  worldly  honour  come  to  us  from 
without,  and  are  not  really  ours  :  for  they  beloug  not  to  the 
properties  of  our  nature.  For  what  reason  therefore  is  the 
mind  of  man  puffed  up  ?  What  is  there  to  exalt  it  to  super- 
ciliousness and  boasting  ?  Were  any  one  but  to  regard  his  state 
with  understanding  eyes,  he  would  then  become  like  Abraham, 
who  mistook  not  his  nature,  and  called  himself  ff  dust  and  Gen.  xviH. 

"  ashes."     And  like  another  also  who  savs  ;  "  Quit  man  who  V:         , 

/  ^  Job.  ixv.o. 

"  is  rottenness,  and  the  son  of  man  who  is  a  worm."  But  he 
who  is  a  worm  and  rottenness  ;  this  dust  and  ashes :  this  verv 
nothingness  becomes  great  and  admirable  and  honourable 
before  God,  by  knowing  himself;  for  so  he  is  crowned  by  God 
with  honour  and  praise  :  for  the  Saviour  of  all  and  Lord  giveth 
grace  to  the  humble :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen.d 

d  As  has  frequently  been  the  case  ril,  or  possibly  because  remarks  of 

before,  the  latter  part  of  the  sum-  their  own,  or  pieces  given  anony- 

mary  of  this  homily  in  Mai  is  not  mously  came  in  time  to  be  referred 

found  in  the  Syriac,  either  because  to  the  father,  whose  real  words  they 

the  Catenists  generally  appended  at  follow.     At  all  events  in  the  present 

the  end  of  their  extracts  such  short  case  Cramer  edits  this  passage  with 

passages  as  they  found  bearing  upon  a  break  between,  and  gives  the  lat- 

the  subject  in  other  works  of  S.  Cy-  ter  portion  anonymously. 


430  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON   CIII. 

c.  xiv.  i7.  Then  said  He  also  to  him  that  bade  Him,  When  thou  makest 
a  dinner  or  a  supper,  call  not  thy  friends,  nor  thy  brethren, 
neither  thy  kinsmen,  nor  thy  rich  neighbours ;  lest  they  also 
bid  thee  again,  and  a  recompense  be  made  thee.  But  when 
thou  makest  a  feast,  call  the  poor,  the  maimed,  the  lame, 

Ka\rv(p\ovr  and  the  blind.  And  thou  shall  be  blessed,  because  they 
cannot  recompense  thee  :  for  thou  shalt  be  recompensed  at 
the  resurrection  of  the  just. 

REMARKABLE  indeed  is  the  beauty  of  the  mind  of  man : 
and  it  shews  itself  in  various  ways,  and  is  conspicuous  in  a 
diversity  of  manners.     For  just  as  those  who  are  skilled  in 
delineating  forms  in  pictures  cannot  by  one  colour  attain  to 
perfect  beauty  in  their  painting,  but  rather  use  various  and 
many  kinds  of  hues ;  so  also  the  God  of  all,  Who  is  the  Giver 
and  Teacher  of  spiritual  beauty,  adorns  our  souls  with  that 
manifold  virtue  which  consists  in  all  saintlike  excellence   of 
living,  in  order  to  complete  in  us  His  likeness.     For  in  His 
rational  creatures  the  best  and  most  excellent  beauty  is  the 
likeness  of  God,  which  is  wrought  in  us  by  the  exact  vision  of 
God,  and  by  virtue  perfected  by  active  exertion.     Consider 
therefore  how  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  makes  our  souls  beautiful 
by  every  spiritual  adornment.     For  here  He  had  commanded 
the  Pharisees  and  lawyers,  or  rather,  the  Scribes,  to  think  lowly 
of  themselves,  and  to  cultivate  a  mind  free  from  the  love  of 
vainglory,  bidding  them  not  to  seize  upon  the  foremost  seats. 
For  He  was  dining  with  them,  that  being  in  their  company  He 
might  benefit  them  even  against  their  will.     And  after  them 
He  next  addressed  him  who  had  invited  them,  and  assembled 
them  to  the  entertainment,  saying,  "  When  thou  makest  a 
"  dinner  or  a  supper,  call  not  thy  friends,  nor  thy  brethren, 
"  neither  thy  kinsmen  nor  thy  rich  neighbours  :  but  rather  the 
"  lame,  and  the  blind,  and  the  maimed." 

Would  He  then  produce  in  us  a  morose  state  of  mind  ?  Is  it 
His  will  that  we  be  unsociable,  and  unloving,  so  as  not  even  to 
deem  our  friends  and  relatives  worthy  of  that  affection  which 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  481 

especially  is  fitting  and  due  to  them  ?  Are  we  to  pay  no  regard 
to  those  who  are  near  us  in  affection  and  love  ?  Does  He 
forbid  the  rights  of  hospitality  ?  But  how  is  it  not  absurd  and 
ignorant  to  imagine  that  He  contradicts  His  own  laws  ?  What 
then  does  He  wish  to  teach  ?  Something  perhaps  like  what 
follows ;  Those  who  possess  great  store  of  wealth  make  much 
account,  so  to  speak,  of  a  constant  display  and  ostentation. 
For  oftentimes  they  bring  men  to  banquet  with  them,  and 
make  entertainments  at  vast  cost,  with  curiously  prepared 
viands,  and  such  as  do  not  escape  the  blame  of  prodigality. 
And  this  it  is  their  custom  to  do,  in  order  to  gain  the  praises 
and  applause  of  their  guests.  And  in  receiving  the  praises 
of  their  flatterers,  as  the  wages,  so  to  speak,  of  their  extrava- 
gance, they  rejoice  greatly,  as  though  they  had  gained  some- 
thing of  value.  For  it  is  the  habit  of  flatterers  to  praise  even 
those  things  which  deserve  blame. 

For  what  good  is  there  in  such  prodigal  abundance  beyond 
what  necessity  requires  ?  For  as  Christ  Himself  somewhere 
said,  "  Few  things  are  needful,  or  one,"  for  the  necessary  ap-  Luke  x. 42. 
peasing  of  the  wants  of  the  body.  That  we  may  escape  therefore 
the  danger  of  losing  the  reward  of  our  outlay,  by  expending  our 
wealth  in  such  pursuits  as  will  bear  good  fruit,  He  has  com- 
manded us  to  invite  the  poor,  and  the  maimed,  and  the  blind, 
and  those  who  are  suffering  under  other  bodily  maladies ;  that 
by  our  liberality  in  so  doing,  we  may  attain  to  the  hope  that 
cometh  from  above  from  God. 

The  lesson  therefore  which  He  teaches  us  is  love  unto  the 
poor,  which  is  a  thing  precious  in  the  sight  of  God.    Dost  thou 
feel  pleasure  in  being  praised  when  thou  hast  any  friends  or 
relatives  feasting  with  thee  ?  I  tell  thee  of  something  far  better  : 
angels  shall  praise  thy  bounty,  and  the  rational  powers  above, 
and  holy  men  as  well :  and  He  too  shall  accept  it  Who  tran- 
scends all,  and  Who  loveth  mercy  and  is  kind.  Lend  unto  Him 
fearing  nothing,  and  thou  shalt  receive  with  usury  whatever 
thou  gavest :  "  for  he,  it  says,  who  hath  pity  on  the  poor  Prov.  xix. 
"  lendeth  unto  God."     He  acknowledgeth  the  loan,  and  pro-  I7' 
miseth  repayment.     "  For  when  the  Son  of  man,  He  saith,  Mat.  xxv. 
"  shall  come  in  the  glory  of  His  Father,  with  the  holy  angels,  3I' 
"  and  shall  sit  upon  the  throne  of  His  glory,  He  shall  set  the 
"  sheep  upon  His   right  hand,  and  the  goats  upon  His  left. 

3  Q 


4852  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  And  He  shall  say  to  them  on  His  right  hand,  Come  ye 
"  blessed  of  My  Father,  inherit  the  kingdom  prepared  for  you 
"  from  the  foundations  of  the  world :  for  I  was  hungry  and  ye 
"  gave  Me  meat:  I  was  thirsty  and  ye  gave  Me  drink  :  I  was 
"  naked  and  ye  covered  Me :  sick  and  ye  visited  Me  :  in 
"  prison,  and  ye  came  unto  Me.  And  to  this  He  added,  Verily 
"  I  say  unto  you,  that  whatsoever  ye  have  done  to  one  of  these 
"  little  ones,  ye  have  done  unto  Me."  The  outlay  therefore  is 
not  unfruitful :  rather  shall  compassion  upon  the  poor  make  thy 
wealth  breathe  forth  a  sweet  savour.  Purchase  the  grace  that 
cometh  from  God ;  buy  for  thy  friend  the  Lord  of  heaven 
and  earth :  for  verily  we  oftentimes  purchase  men's  friendship 
with  large  sums  of  gold,  and  if  those  of  high  rank  are  recon- 
ciled unto  us,  we  feel  great  joy  in  offering  them  presents  even 
beyond  what  we  can  afford,  because  of  the  honour  which 
accrues  to  us  from  them.  And  yet  these  things  are  but  trans- 
itory, and  quickly  fade  away,  and  are  like  the  phantasies  of 
dreams. 

But  to  be  members  of  God's  household,  must  we  not  count 
that  as  a  thing  worth  the  gaining,  and  esteem  it  as  of  the  highest 
importance  ?  For  certainly  after  the  resurrection  from  the  dead 
we  must  stand  in  Christ's  presence ;  and  there  a  recompense 
shall  of  necessity  be  made  to  the  compassionate  and  mer- 
ciful :  but  a  condemnation  commensurate  with  their  deeds 
shall  be  the  lot  of  those  who  were  harsh  and  without  mutual- 
Jameaii.  love ;  for  it  is  written,  "that  there  is  judgment  without  mercy 
"  for  those  who  have  shewed  no  mercy."  And  if  so,  how  is  it 
not  the  proof  and  perfection  of  a  sound  mind,  that  before  we 
descend  to  the  pit  of  torment  we  should  take  forethought  for 
our  life  ?  For  come,  and  let  us  discuss  this  among  ourselves. 
Suppose  that  for  some  cause  or  other  which  the  law  condemned 
they  had  dragged  us  before  the  judges,  and  so  a  sentence 
such  as  our  offences  deserved  had  been  passed  upon  us  after 
our  conviction ;  should  we  not  with  pleasure  offer  up  our 
wealth  to  escape  from  all  torment  and  punishment  ?  And 
how  can  there  be  any  doubt  of  this?  For  oneself  is  better. than 
possessions,  and  life  than  wealth.  Now  we  are  guilty  of  many 
sins,  and  must  give  an  account  to  the  Judge  of  whatsoever  we 
have  done  ;  and  why  then  do  we  not  deliver  ourselves  from 
judgment  and  the  everlasting  fire  while  time  permits?  And  the 


[3 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  483 

way  in  which  to  deliver  ourselves  is  to  live  in  virtue  ; — to  com- 
fort the  brethren  -who  are  grieved  with  poverty,  and  open  our 
hand  wide  to  all  who  are  in  need,  and  to  sympathize  with  the 
sick. 

For  tell  me  what  is  harder  than  poverty,  that  implacable 
beast  of  prey,  that  bane  which  no  admonition  can  charm  away, 
that  worst  of  maladies,  or  rather  more  cruel  than  any  malady  ? 
"We  therefore  must  give  a  helping  hand  to  those  who  are  suf- 
fering under  it :  we  must  open  wide  to  them  our  heart,  and  not 
pass  by  their  lamentation.  For  suppose  a  savage  beast  of  prey 
had  sprung  upon  some  wayfarer,  would  not  any  one  who  wit- 
nessed the  occurrence  seize  up  any  thing  that  came  to  hand,  a 
stone  for  instance,  or  stick,  and  drive  away  the  beast  that  was 
mercilessly  rending  and  tearing  the  man  fallen  beneath  its 
blow?  Who  is  so  hardhearted  and  full  of  hatred  to  mankind 
as  to  pass  by  one  thus  miserably  perishing?  And  must  not  thou 
own,  that  poverty,  as  I  said,  is  more  cruel  than  any  beast  of 
prev  ?  Aid  therefore  those  who  are  fallen  under  it :  incline 
thine  ear  to  the  poor,  and  listen  to  him,  as  it  is  written,  "  For  Prov.  xxi. 
"  he,  it  saith,  who  stoppeth  his  ears  that  he  may  not  hear  the  r3' 
"  feeble,  he  also  shall  cry,  and  there  shall  be  none  to  listen." 
Give  that  thou  mayest  receive:  hear  that  thou  mayest  be 
heard :  sow  thy  little  that  thou  mayest  reap  much.  And  be- 
sides, the  pleasure  of  the  body  is  short  and  temporary,  and 
ends  in  rottenness :  but  almsgiving  and  charity  to  the  poor 
crown  those  who  practise  them  with  glory  from  God,  and  lead 
them  to  that  incorruptible  happiness  which  Christ  bestows  on 
those  who  love  Him  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen. 


3  ai 


484 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


om.  lravra 

B. 

«'£«A0eiV  teal 
15  uv  Gy. 
om.  Kcd 
BST. 


SERMON   CIV. 

(J.  xiv.  15-  And  when  one  of  them  that  reclined  at  table  with  Him  heard 
*4'  these  things,  he  said  unto  Him,  Blessed  is  he  that  shall  eat 

bread  in  the  kingdom  of  God.  But  He  said  unto  him,  A 
certain  man  made  a  great  supper,  and  bade  many.  And 
sent  his  seii'ant  at  supper  time  to  say  to  them  that  were 
bidden,  Come,  for  lo  !  all  things  are  ready.  And  they  at 
once  began  all  of  them  to  make  excuse.  Tlie  first  said  unto 
him,  I  have  bought  a  field,  and  I  must  needs  go  to  see  it : 
I  pray  thee  permit  me  to  be  excused.  And  another  said,  I 
have  bought  five  yoke  of  oxen,  and  I  go  to  examine  them  : 
I  pray  thee  permit  me  to  be  excused.  And  another  said, 
I  have  taken  a  wife,  and  therefore  I  cannot  come.  And 
when  the  servant  returned,  he  told  his  lord  these  things. 
Then  the  master  of  the  Iwuse  was  angry,  and  said  to  his 
servant,  Go  out  quickly  into  the  streets  and  marketplaces 
of  the  city,  and  bring  in  hither  the  poor,  and  the  maimed, 
and  the  blind,  and  the  lame.  And  the  servant  said,  Lord, 
what  thou  commandest  is  done,  and  yet  there  is  room.  And 
the  lord  said  to  his  servant,  Go  out  into  the  highways  and 
hedges,  and  compel  them  to  come  in,  that  my  house  may  be 
filled.  For  I  say  unto  you,  that  none  of  those  men  that 
were  bidden  shall  taste  of  my  supper. 

AGAIN,  the  purport  of  the  lessons  laid  before  na  obliges  me 
to  say,  that  the  fruit  of  good  works  is  praiseworthy.  For  not. 
unrewarded  is  the  toil  of  the  saints,  as  they  strenuously  labour 
to  lead  that  life  which  is  truly  worthy  of  admiration  both  with 
Heb. vi.io.  God  and  men.  For  the  wise  Paul  writes,  "For  God  is  not 
"  unrighteous  to  forget  your  labour  and  your  love,  which  ye 
"  have  shewed  unto  His  Name."  And  again  in  another  place  he 
uses  similar  words,  "  For  the  lightness,  he  says,  of  our  present 
"  affliction  worketh  for  us  abundantly  and  in  a  higher  degree 
"  an  eternal  greatness  of  glory,  when  we  look  not  at  the  things 
"  which  are  seen,  but  at  those  which  are  not  seen  ;  for  the  things 
"  which  are  seen  are  those  of  time,  but  the  things  which  are  not 
'*  seen  are  for  eternity."     For  the  things  of  time  are  those  of 


TV<p\ovs  Kal 

BST. 
X««A..  Kal 

TV<p.    Gf. 

5  <VeTa£as 

BS. 

&>s  fir.  GTj. 

Sov\ov  aii- 

rov  S. 

om.  fiov  B. 


t  Cor.  iv 
*7- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  485 

earth ;  and  these  we  say  are  what  arc  here  called  "  the  things 
"  which  are  seen :"  but  those  which  are  to  come,  and  which  at 
present  are  not  seen,  but  consist  in  those  hopes  which  are  with 
God,  are  stored  up  for  us  in  mansions  that  cannot  be  shaken. 

And  who  they  are  for  whom  these  things  are  prepared,  and 
unto  whom  they  will  be  given,  the  Saviour  has  here  shewn, 
pourtraying  as  in  a  picture  by  the  parable  set  before  us.  the 
nature  and  efficacy  of  the  dispensation.  It  is  necessary  how- 
ever for  me  first  to  say  what  was  the  occasion  which  led  to 
this  discourse. 

Our  Lord  then  was  feasting  at  a  certain  Pharisee's,  in  com- 
pany with  many  others  assembled  there,  the  friends  of  him 
who  had  bidden  them  to  the  entertainment,  and  the  sharers 
of  his  sentiments.  There  again  the  Saviour  of  all,  to  bene- 
fit those  who  were  gathered  there, — for  He  loveth  mercy 
rather,  and  not  honour  and  vainglory ; — perfected  him  that 
invited  them,  by  not  permitting  him  to  make  lavish  expense, 
or.  aim  at  what  was  beyond  his  means,  to  gain  the  praise 
of  men.  For  He  said,  "When  thou  makest  a  dinnner  or  a 
"  supper,  call  not  thy  friends,  nor  thy  brethren,  nor  further, 
"  any  others  who  are  rich  and  thy  neighbours  :  but  rather  the 
"  poor,  and  the  maimed,  and  the  blind.  For  those,  He  said, 
"  who  so  act  shall  be  blessed  at  the  resurrection  of  the  just." 
Upon  which  one  of  those  who  were  reclining  with  them  at 
meat,  on  hearing  words  thus  excellent,  said,  "  Blessed  is  he 
"  that  shall  eat  bread  in  the  kingdom  of  God."  Probably 
however  this  man  was  not  as  yet  spiritual,  but  rather  animal,  ^vxntSt. 
nor  fitted  to  understand  correctly  what  was  spoken  by 
Christ :  for  he  was  not  one  of  those  who  believed,  nor  had 
he  as  yet  been  baptized.  For  he  supposed  that  the  rewards  ™<^™- 
of  the  saints,  for  their  mutual  labours  of  love,  would  be  in  M"' 
things  pertaining  to  the  body.  Because  then  they  were  too 
dull  in  heart  to  comprehend  a  precise  idea,  Christ  frames  for 
them  a  parable  which  with  sufficient  appositeness  sets  forth  the 
nature  of  the  dispensation  about  to  be  instituted  for  their  sakes  : 
and  says,  "A  certain  man  made  a  great  supper,  and  bade  many. 
"  And  he  sent  his  servant  at  supper  time  to  say  to  them  that 
"  were  bidden,  Come,  for  lo !  all  things  are  ready." 

And  here  let  us  first  of  all  inquire,  what  was  the  reason  why 
it  is  rather  to  a  supper  than  a  dinner  that  the  guests  were 


486  COMMENTARY  UPON 

invited ;  or  rather,  even  before  this,  who  is  to  be  understood 
by  the  man  who  sent  one  to  invite  to  the  supper ;  and  who  also 
is  the  inviter,  and  who  in  tine  they  are  who  were  invited,  but 
despised  the  summons. 

By  the  man  therefore  is  to  be  understood  God  the  Father. 
For  similitudes  are  formed  to  represent  the  truth,  and  are  by- 
no  means  the  truth  themselves.     He  therefore,  the  Creator  of 
the  universe,  and  the  Father  of  glory,  made  a  oreat  supper, 
that  is,  a  festival  for  the  whole  world,  in  honour  of  Christ.    In 
the  last  times  then  of  the  world,  and  so  to  speak,  at  this  our 
world's  setting,  the  Son  arose  for  us :  at  which  time  also  He 
suffered  death  for  our  sakes,  and  gave  us  His  flesh  to  eat,  as 
being  the  bread  from  heaven,  Which  giveth  life  to  the  world. 
Towards  evening  also,  and  by  the  light  of  torches,  the  lamb  was 
sacrificed,  according  to  the  law  of  Moses.     And  therefore  with 
good  reason  the  invitation  that  is  by  Christ  is  called  a  supper. 
And  next,  who  is  he  that  was  sent,  and  who  it  also  says  was 
a  slave?  Perchance  Christ  Himself:  for  though  God  the  Word 
is  by  nature  God,  and  the  very  Son  of  God  the  Father,  from 
Whom  He  was  manifested,  yet  He  emptied  Himself,  to  take 
the  form  of  a  slave.     As  being  therefore  God  of  God  He  is 
Lord  of  all ;  but  one  may  justly  apply  the  appellation  of  a 
slave  to  the  limits  of  His  humanity.  Yet  though  He  had  taken,  as 
I  said,  the  form  of  a  slave,  He  was  even  so  Lord  as  being  God. 
And  when  was  He  sent  ?  At  supper  time,  it  says.     For  it 
was  not  at  the  commencement  of  this  world  that  the  only- 
begotten  Word  of  the  Father  descended  from  heaven,  and 
was  in  form  like  unto  us ;   but  rather  when  the  Omnipotent 
Himself  willed  it,  even  in  these  latter  times,  as  also  wo  have 
already  said. 

And  what  was  the  nature  of  the  invitation  ?  "  Come:  for  lo! 
"  all  things  are  ready."  For  God  the  Father  has  prepared  in 
Christ  for  the  inhabitants  of  earth  those  gifts  which  are  be- 
stowed  upon  the  world  through  Him,  even  the  forgiveness  of 
sins,  the  cleansing  away  of  all  defilement,  the  communion  of  the 
Holy  Ghost,  the  glorious  adoption  as  sons,  and  the  kingdom  of 
heaven.  Unto  these  blessings  Christ  invited  bv  the  command- 
ments  of  the  gospel  Israel  before  all  others.  For  somewhere 
Ps.  Li.  6.  He  has  even  said  by  the  voice  of  the  Psalmist  ;  "  But  I  have 
"  been  set  as  a  king  by  Him ;  that  is,  by  God  the  Father ; 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  487 

"  upon  Zion  His  holy  mount,  to  preach  the  commandment  of 

"'  the  Lord."     And  again,  "  I  was  not  sent  but  unto  the  lost  Mat.  xv. 

"  sheep  of  the  house  of  Israel." 

And  their  determination  then,  was  it  for  their  own  good? 
Did  they  regard  with  admiration  the  gentleness  of  Him  Who 
bade  them,  and  the  office  of  Him  Who  ministered  the  call  1  oixovoul* 
Not  so  :  for  "  they  began,  it  says,  all  of  them  at  once  to  make 
"  excuse :"  that  is,  as  with  one  purpose,  without  any  delay, 
they  made  excuse.  "  For  the  first  said,  I  have  bought  a  field, 
"  and  I  must  needs  go  to  see  it :  I  pray  thee,  permit  me  to  be 
"  excused.  And  another  said,  I  have  bought  five  yoke  of 
"  oxen,  and  I  go  to  examine  them :  I  pray  thee,  permit  me  to 
"  be  excused.  And  another  said,  I  have  taken  a  wife,  and 
"  therefore  I  cannot  come."  Thou  perceivest  that  by  sense- 
lessly giving  themselves  up  to  these  earthly  matters,  they 
cannot  see  things  spiritual ;  for  being  overcome  by  the  love  of 
the  flesh,  they  are  far  from  holiness,  and  are  covetous  and 
greedy  after  wealth.  They  seek  those  things  which  are  below, 
but  make  no  account,  no  not  in  the  slightest  degree,  of  those 
hopes  which  are  stored  up  with  God.  Far  better  would  it 
have  been  instead  of  earthly  fields  to  gain  the  joys  of  paradise : 
and  instead  of  transitory  tillage,  for  this  was  the  object  of  the 
yokes  of  oxen,  to  gather  the  fruits  of  righteousness.  For  it  is 
written,  "Sow  for  yourselves  righteousness  ;  gather  as  vintage  Hoa.  x.  n. 
"  the  fruit  of  life."  Was  it  not  their  duty  rather,  instead  of 
the  carnal  procreation  of  children,,  to  have  chosen  spiritual 
fruitfulness  ?  For  the  one  is  subject  unto  death  and  corrup- 
tion :  the  other  is  an  eternal  and  abiding  affluence  for  the 
saints. 

When  then  the  householder  heard  their  refusal,  he  was 
angry,  it  says ;  and  commanded  that  from  the  streets  and 
marketplaces  of  the  city  there  should  be  gathered  the  poor, 
and  the  maimed,  and  the  blind,  and  the  lame.  And  who  then 
are  to  be  understood  by  those  who  for  the  sake,  as  I  said,  of 
lands,  and  tillage,  and  the  carnal  procreation  of  children, 
refused  to  come?  Certainly  it  must  be  those,  who  stood  at  the 
head  of  the  Jewish  synagogue ;  men  with  wealthy  purses,  the 
slaves  of  covetousness,  with  their  mind  set  on  lucre,  on  which 
they  lavished  all  their  earnestness.  For  so  to  speak  throughout 


488  COMMENTARY  UPON 

the  whole  of  inspired  Scripture,  one  may  see  them  blamed  for 
this  very  thing. 

Those  then  who  were  superior  in  station  to  the  mass  of  the 
common  people  did  not  submit  themselves  to  Christ,  when 

Mat.xi.29.  saving  unto  them,  "Take  My  yoke  upon  you:"  they  rejected 
the  invitation  :  they  did  not  accept  the  faith ;  they  remained 
away  from  the  feast ;  and  scorned  the  great  supper  by  their 
hardened  disobedience.  For  that  the  scribes  and  Pharisees 
did  not  believe  in  Christ,  is  manifest  by  what  He  says  unto 

Lukesi.52.  them,  "  Ye  have  taken  away  the  key  of  knowledge:  ye  enter 
"  not  in  yourselves  :  and  those  that  are  entering  ye  have  hin- 
"  dered."  In  their  stead  therefore  those  were  called  who 
were  in  the  streets  and  market-places,  who  belonged,  that  is, 
to  the  Jewish  common  people,  whose  mind  was  sickly,  and 
infirm,  and  dark,  and  halting  :  for  such  one  may  consider  to  be 
4  blind  and  lame.  But  they  became  strong  and  whole  in  Christ : 
they  learnt  to  walk  uprightly,  and  received  the  divine  light 
into  their  mind.  And  that  a  multitude  of  the  Jews  not  easy 
to  number  believed,  one  may  learn  from  the  Acts  of  the 
Apostles  e. 

When  then  those,  it  says,  who  were  in  the  streets  had  been 
called,  he  whose  office  it  was  to  bid  them  to  the  supper  said  to 
the  householder,  "  Still  there  is  room.  And  the  lord  said  to 
"  his  servant,  Go  out  into  the  hierhwavs  and  hedges,  and  com- 
"  pel  them  to  come  in,  that  my  house  may  be  filled.  For.  I  say 
"  unto  you,  that  no  one  of  those  men  that  were  bidden  shall 
"  taste  of  my  supper." 

Here  observe,  I  pray,  the  calling  of  the  Gentiles  after  that 
the  Israelites  had  entered  by  faith.  For  in  old  time  the  Gen- 
tiles were  boorish  in  mind,  and  uncultivated  in  understanding, 
and  so  to  say,  outside  the  city,  as  living  in  lawlessness,  and 
more  like  cattle  than  men,  and  with  little  use  of  reason.  And 
on  this  account  he  who  invites  to  the  supper  is  sent  unto  the 
highways,  outside  the  city,  and  to  the  hedges  in  the  fields : 

e  Mai  adds  here  a  passage  either  there  can  be  little  doubt  both  from 

from  A.  or  E.,  bringing  proofs  from  the  matter,  and  the  language  of  this 

the  Acts,  both  that  multitudes  of  extract,  that  it  is  a  gloss  of  the  Ca- 

the  common   people   believed,  and  tenist  himself, 
that  the  rulers  rejected  Christ :  but 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  489 

moreover  he  is  commanded  by  him  who  sent  him  not  merely  to 
invite,  and  offer  them  exhortation  only,  but  even  to  compel 
them.     And  yet  in  all  men  faith  is  a  voluntary  act,  and  by 
attaining  unto  it  of  their  own  free  will,  men  are  acceptable 
unto  God,  and  largely  endowed  with  His  gifts.     How  then  are 
men  compelled  ?  Yes,  this  also  was  said  advisedly.     For  it  was 
necessary,  absolutely  necessary  for  the  Gentiles,  as  being  fet- 
tered by  an  intolerable  tyranny,  and  fallen  under  the  yoke  of 
the  devil,  and  caught,  so  to  speak,  in  the  indissoluble  meshes 
of  their  sins,  and  utterly  ignorant  of  Him  Who  by  nature  and 
verily  is  God,  that  their  calling  should  be  very  urgent,  resem- 
bling the  use  of  force,  that  they  might  be  able  to  look  up  unto 
God,  and  taste  the  sacred  doctrines,  and  leave  off  their  former 
error,  and  spring  away  as  it  were  from  the  hand  of  Satan.  For 
Christ  also  said,  "  ]NTo  man  can  come  unto  Me  except  My  Father  John  vi.44. 
"Who  sent  Me  drag  him."  But  dragging f implies  that  the  call- 
ing is  an  act  of  power  such  as  God  only  can  exercise.    And  the 
blessed  David  is  also  found  addressing  God  in  similar  terms 
respecting  them,  "  With  bridle  and  bit  shalt  Thou  restrain  the  P3.xxxi;.o. 
"  jaws  of  those  that  draw  not  near  unto  Thee."     Thou  seest 
how  the  God  of  all  as  with  a  bridle  turns  unto  Himself  those 
who  fiercely  have  departed  from  Him  :  for  He  is  good  and 
loving  unto  mankind,  and  willeth  that  all  men  should  be  saved, 
and  come  unto  the  knowledge  of  the  truth. 

The  chiefs  therefore  of  the  Israelitish  populace  remained 
aloof  from  the  supper,  as  being  obdurate  and  proud  and  dis- 
obedient, and  scorned  so  surpassing  an  invitation,  because  they 
had  turned  aside  to  earthly  things,  and  fixed  their  mind  upon 
the  vain  distinctions  of  this  world.  But  the  vulgar  multitude 
was  called  in,  and  after  them  immediately  and  without  delay 
the  Gentiles.  For  when  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  arose  from  the 
dead,  He  cried  out  unto  the  holy  apostles  saying,  "  All  power  Mat  xxviii. 
"  is  given  unto  Me  in  heaven  and  in  earth  :  go  make  disciples 
"'of  all  nations,  baptizing  ye  them  in  the  name  of  the  Father, 
"  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost :  and  teaching  ye 
"  them  to  observe  all  those  things  that  I  have  commanded 
"  you :  and  lo  !  I  am  with  you  every  day  even  unto  the  end  of 
"  the  world." 

f  For  A«'£ir,  the  reading  in  Mai,  the  Syriac  evidently  read  «X|ty. 

3R 


490  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  CV. 

C.  xiv.  35-  j^n(i  great  multitudes  went  with  Him :  and  He  turned  and 
said  unto  them ;   Whosoever  cometh  unto  Me,  and  hateth 
not  his  father  and  his  mother,  and  his  wife,  and  his  chil- 
dren, and  his  brethren,  and  his  sisters :  yea,  and  his  own 
Kttl  3<rny  oi>      self  also,  he  cannot  be  My  disciple.     And  whosoever  doth 
taraolv  ol      noi  oear  his  cross,  and  come  after  Me,  cannot  be  My  dis- 
B-  ciple.     For  which  of  you,  that  wisheth  to  build  a  tower, 

sitteth  not  down  first,  and  counteth  the  cost,  to  see  whether 
ds  aTraona-  he  have  sufficient  to  finish  it  ?  Lest  when  he  has  laid  the 
to  irpbs  ott.  foundation,  and  is  not  able  to  finish  it,  all  that  behold  it 
*•  begin  to  mock  him,  saying,  This  man  began  to  build,  and 

was  not  able  to  finish.     Or  what  king  going  to  make  war 
with  another  king,  sitteth  not  down  first  and  considereth, 
whether  he  be  able  with  ten  thousand  to  meet  him  that 
cometh  against  him  with  twenty  thousand  ?    And  if  he  be 
xpiirptu  S.      not,  while  the  other  is  yet  afar  off,  he  sendeth  ambass- 
sadors,  and  asketh  conditions  of  peace.     So  therefore  every 
one  of  you  that  for saketh  not  all  his  possessions,  cannot  be 
om.  olv  Gs.      My  disciple.     Salt  therefore  is  good  :  but  if  the  salt  have 
Bt.  no  savour,  with  what  shall  it  be  seasoned.9  It  is  useful  nei- 

ther for  the  land,  nor  yet  for  the  dunghill:  they  cast  it  out. 
He  that  hath  ears  to  hear,  let  him  hear. 

THOSE  who  command  warlike  armies,  and  have  won  for 
themselves  martial  glory,  whenever  the  time  for  battle  has 
arrived,  instruct  the  troops  under  their  orders  in  what  way, 
arraying  themselves  manfully  against  the  phalanxes  of  the 
enemy,  they  will  gain  a  triumphant  victory.  And  the  Saviour 
of  all,  imitating  the  skilfulness  of  those  here  mentioned,  very 
clearly  shews  unto  all  who  would  follow  Him,  the  pathway  of 
spiritual  manfulness :  that  advancing  with  unrcstrainable  impe- 
tuosity unto  every  triumph  of  piety,  and  exerting  a  stern  and 
irresistible  earnestness,  they  may  win  by  a  just  decree  the 
right  of  being  with  Him,  and  following  Him. 

This  lesson  then  clearly  teaches  us,  what  sort  of  persons  He 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  491 

would  have  us  to  be.  "  For  whosoever  cometh  unto  Me,  He 
"  says,  and  hateth  not  his  father  and  his  mother,  and  his  wife 
"  and  his  children,  and  his  brethren,  and  his  sisters,  yea,  and 
"  his  own  self  also,  cannot  be  My  disciple."  '  What  then,  0 
f  Lord,  some  perchance  may  say,  dost  Thou  despise  the  laws  of 
'  natural  affection  ?  Dost  Thou  command  us  to  hate  one  an- 
'  other,  and  to  disregard  the  love  that  is  due  to  fathers  from 
'  their  sons,  to  wives  from  their  husbands,  to  brethren  from 
'  their  brethren  ?  Shall  we  make  those  enemies  who  are  mem- 
1  bers  of  the  same  household ;  and  those,  whom  it  is  our  duty 
'  rather  to  love,  must  we  count  as  foes,  in  order  that  we  may 
'  be  with  thee,  and  be  able  to  follow  thee?' 

This  is  not  what  the  Saviour  means.  Away  with  so  vain  a 
a  thought.  For  He  Who  commands  even  those  who  are  vio- 
lent enemies  to  be  gentle,  and  forgiving  to  all  who  would  do 
them  wrong  :  for,  "  Love,  He  says,  your  enemies :  and  pray  Mat.  v.  44. 
"  for  them  that  spoil  you :"  how  could  He  wish  us  to  hate 
those  who  are  born  of  the  same  family,  and  to  disregard  the 
honour  due  to  parents,  and  think  nothing  of  despising  our 
brethren ;  yea  !  and  our  own  children  also,  and  even  our  own 
self?  For  He,  Who  has  pronounced  condemnation  even  upon 
those  who  disregard  the  law  of  mutual  love,  could  not  wish  His 
friends  to  cherish  a  savage,  and  so  to  speak,  a  desperate  state 
of  minds.  What  however  He  does  wish  to  teach  in  these  com- 
mands is  plain  to  those  who  can  understand  from  what  is  said 
in  another  place  expressly  upon  the  same  subject.  "For  he  Mat.  x. 37. 
"  that  loveth,  He  saith,  father  or  mother  more  than  Me,  is  not 
"  worthy  of  Me :  and  he  that  loveth  son  or  daughter  more 
"  Me,  is  not  worthy  of  Me/'  By  adding  then  "  more  than 
"  Me,"  it  is  plain  that  He  permits  us  to  love,  but  not  more 
than  we  do  Him.  For  He  demands  for  Himself  our  chief 
affection ;  and  that  very  justly :  for  the  love  of  God  in  those 
who  are  perfect  in  mind  has  something  in  it  superior  both  to 

s  The  continuation  of  this  pas-  expressions  in  it  incline  me  to  the 

sage  in  Mai  does  not  belong  to  the  opinion  that  it  belongs  to  the  Ca- 

commentary.     It  is  little  more  than  tenist  himself.     Part  of  it  is  given 

a  string  of  texts  to  prove  the  duty  in   Cramer  anonymously,   but   the 

of  loving  our  relatives,  and  our  own  passage  against  suicide  occurs  again 

life   also,  that  we   may  use  it   to  in  the  Aurea  Catena,  and  is  there 

Christ's   honour,  and   one  or  two  ascribed  to  Cyril. 

3  R  2 


492  COMMENTARY  UPON 

the  honour  due  to  parents,  and  to  the  natural  affection  felt  for 
children. 

We  must  explain  however  what  the  occasion  was  which 
directed  our  Lord's  words  to  this  subject.  The  passage  then 
read  from  the  Gospel  at  our  last  meeting  described  the  cele- 
bration of  a  great  supper,  unto  which  many  were  invited  by 
him  who  save  the  feast.  But  thev  were  men  indifferent  to  it : 
for  "  they  made  excuse,  it  says,  with  one  accord,  and  said,  one 
"  that  he  had  bought  a  field,  and  must  needs  go  to  see  it : 
"  and  another,  that  he  had  bought  five  yoke  of  oxen :  and  a 
"  third  again,  that  he  had  married  a  wife/'  and  by  employing 
these  feigned  excuses,  they  vexed  him  who  invited  them.  We 
are  therefore  given  most  clearly  to  understand,  that  when  God 
calls  us  unto  Him,  to  make  us  partakers  of  His  bounty,  we 
must  disregard  the  lusts  that  are  of  the  flesh,  and  minister  to 
the  flesh,  and  set  no  value  whatsoever  upon  the  things  of  this 
world,  but  exerting  all  our  force  must  advance  unto  those 
things  which  will  never  have  to  be  abandoned,  and  which  fill 
us  with  all  blessedness,  as  God  bestows  with  bounteous  hand 
upon  us  His  gifts,  and  like  one  welcoming  us  to  a  costly  ban- 
quet, admits  us  to  the  right  of  rejoicing  with  the  rest  of  the 
saints  in  the  hope  of  future  blessings.  For  the  things  of  earth, 
are  but  of  little  value  and  last  only  for  a  time,  and  belong  to 
the  flesh  solely,  which  is  the  victim  of  corruption :  but  those 
things  which  are  divine  and  spiritual  constantly  and  without 
ceasing  accompany  those  who  have  once  been  counted  worthy 
of  receiving  them,  and  reach  onwards  to  unending  worlds. 
What  value  therefore  will  men  of  sense  set  upon  earthly  farms, 
or  the  love  of  carnal  pleasure,  or  the  respect  due  to  kins- 
men in  the  flesh,  if  it  be  laid  down  that  for  love's  sake  unto 
Christ,  we  must  disregard  all  these  things  that  have  been 
named  ?  For  many  instances  have  there  been  of  men  desirous 
of  a  blameless  life,  who  even  after  touching,  so  to  speak,  the 
dust  of  the  palaestra,  and  making  trial  of  the  combats  therein, 
and  all  but  attaining  to  the  right  of  receiving  the  crown  of  the 
heavenly  calling,  have  been  drawn  backward,  as  it  were,  either 
from  regard  to  relatives,  or  from  being  too  weak  to  bear  a 
struggle  of  endurance,  or  from  being  entangled  in  the  snares  of 
carnality,  and   foolishly  preferring   present   pleasure   to   the 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  493 

blessings  laid  up  in  hope.  Many  too  the  fear  of  death  has 
terrified,  and  when  the  season  called  them  unto  persecutions, 
that  being  proved  they  might  receive  the  crown  of  incor- 
ruption,  they  have  denied  the  faith,  have  avoided,  that  is,  the 
duty  of  suffering  patiently,  and  having  shewn  themselves  weak 
and  cowardly,  have  fallen  from  their  steadfastness.  To  work 
in  us  therefore  a  mind  incapable  of  being  broken,  and  make  us 
careless  of  every  worldly  matter  for  our  love  of  Him,  He  com- 
mands us  to  hate  even  our  relatives  according  to  the  flesh,  and 
our  own  self  also,  if,  as  I  have  just  said,  the  season  call  us 
thereto. 

And  next  He  uses  two  examples,  to  encourage  unto  an  in- 
vincible fortitude  those  who  are  His  friends,  and  to  establish 
in  an  unwavering  zeal  those  whose  desire  it  is  to  attain  to  ho- 
nours by  patience  and  endurance.  "  For  if,  saith  He,  any  one 
"  wish  to  build  a  tower,  he  reckoneth  first  if  he  have  means 
"  sufficient  to  finish  it,  lest  when  he  has  laid  the  foundation, 
"  and  is  not  able  to  finish  it,  men  laugh  at  him."  For  those 
whose  choice  it  is  to  lead  a  glorious  and  blameless  life  ought  to 
store  up  beforehand  in  their  mind  a  zeal  sufficient  thereunto, 
and  to  remember  him  who  says,  "  My  son,  if  thou  draw  Ecclus.ii.i. 
"  near  to  serve  the  Lord,  prepare  thyself  for  every  temptation: 
"  make  thy  heart  straight,  and  endure/'  But  those  who  have 
no  such  zeal,  how  will  they  be  able  to  reach  the  mark  that  is 
set  before  them  ? 

"  Or  what  king,  He  saith,  wishing  to  make  war  with  another 
"  king,  doth  not  consider  with  himself,  whether  with  his  ten 
"  thousand  he  can  prevail  over  one  who  is  more  mighty  than 
"  himself?"  And  what  does  this  mean  ?  "  Our  wrestle  is  not  Eph.  vi.  12. 
"  against  blood  and  flesh,  but  against  governments  ;  against 
"  empires ;  against  the  worldholders  of  this  darkness ;  against 
"  wicked  spirits  in  the  heavenly  regions."  We  have  too  a 
crowd,  as  it  were,  of  other  enemies,  the  carnal  mind,  the  law 
that  rages  in  our  members,  passions  of  many  kinds,  the  lust  of 
pleasure,  the  lust  of  the  flesh,  the  lust  of  wealth,  and  others : 
with  these  we  must  wrestle  ;  this  is  our  savage  troop  of  ene- 
mies. How  therefore  shall  we  conquer  ?  By  believing  that 
"  in  God  we  shall  do  valiantly,  as  Scripture  saith,  and  He  Ps.  Ix.  12. 
"  shall  bring  to  naught  those  that  oppress  us."  In  this  confi- 
dence one  of  the  holy  prophets  said,  "  Behold  the  Lord  helpcth  Is.  l.  9. 


494 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


"  me  :  who  shall  make  me  ashamed  1"  And  the  divine  David 
Ps.  xxvii.  i.  also  sings,  "The  Lord  is  my  light,  and  my  Saviour:  whom 
"  shall  I  fear  ?  The  Lord  is  the  helper  of  my  life,  at  whom 
"  shall  I  tremble  ?"  For  He  is  our  strength,  and  by  Him  we 
shall  gain  victory :  for  He  has  given  unto  us  to  tread  upon  ser- 
pents and  scorpions,  and  upon  all  the  power  of  the  enemy .  As 
therefore  He  says,  "  Salt  is  good :  but  if  the  salt  be  tasteless, 
"  with  what  can  it  be  seasoned  ?  It  is  cast  out,"  He  says. 
"  Let  there  be  therefore,  He  proceeds,  salt  in  you/'  that  is,  the 
divine  words  which  bring  salvation  :  but  which  if  we  despise, 
we  become  without  savour,  and  foolish,  and  utterly  useless. 
Such  things  must  the  congregation  of  the  saints  cast  out,  by 
the  gift  unto  them  of  mercy  and  love  from  Christ,  the  Saviour 
of  us  all ;  by  Whom  and  with  "Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever, 
Ainen.h 


h  Two  short  extracts  upon  this 
verse  are  also  referred  to  Cyril,  one 
by  Mai  from  A.  and  C,  saying, 
"  that  as  neither  bread  nor  fish  are 
"  eatable  without  salt,  so  the  soul, 
"  without  apostolic  teaching  and 
"  wisdom,  is  tasteless  and  without 
"  scent,  and  not  sweet  before  God." 
And  the  other  by  Corderius,  to  the 
effect,  that  "  the  earth  is  that  which 
"  is  capable  of  being  benefited,  and 
"  the  dunghill  that  which  benefits 
"  it  :    to   be   rejected   therefore   as 


"  tasteless  salt  signifies  the  being 
"  able  neither  to  profit  others,  nor 
"  be  profited  oneself."  Neither  of 
these  passages  could  possibly  be 
Cyril's  ;  and  the  latter,  even  the 
most  obtuse  person,  would  at  once 
refer  to  Theophylact.  How  entirely 
Cyril's  principles  of  explanation 
differ  from  those  of  Theophylact 
any  one  may  see  by  referring  to  the 
rules  laid  down  by  the  former  in 
the  introduction  to  Sermon  cviii. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  495 


SERMON   CVI. 

Now  all  the  publicans  and  sinners  used  to  draw  near  unto  C.xv.i-io- 
Him  to  hear  Him.     And  the  Pharisees  and  Scribes  mur-  add.  rf  BT. 
mured,  saying,   This   man   receiveth   sinners,  and  eateth 
with  them.    And  He  spake  this  parable  unto  them,  saying, 
What  man  of  you  having  a  hundred  sheep,  and  having 
lost  one  of  them,  doth  not  leave  the  ninety  and  nine  in  the 
wilderness,  and  go  after  that  which  is  lost,  until  he  find  it. 
And  ivhen  he  hath  found  it,  he  layeth  it  on  his  shoidders, 
rejoicing.  And  when  he  hath  come  home,  he  calleth  together 
his  friends  and  his  neighbours,  saying  unto  them,  Rejoice 
with  me:  for  I  have  found  my  sheep  ivhich  was  lost.   I  say 
unto  you,  that  likewise  there  shall  be  joy  in  heaven  over 
one  sinner  that  repenteth,  more  than  over  ninety  and  nine 
just  persons  who  need  no  repentance.  Or  what  woman  hav- 
ing ten  drachms,  if  she  lose  one  of  them,  doth  not  light  a 
lamp,  and  sweep  the  house,  and  search  diligently  till  she 
find  it.  And  when  she  hath  found  it,  she  calleth  her  friends 
and  her  neighbours  together,  saying,  Rejoice  with  me  :  for 
I  have  found  the  drachm  ivhich  I  had  lost.  Likewise  I  say 
unto  you,  that  there  is  joy  before  the  angels  of  God  over  one 
sinner  that  repenteth. 

YE  have  no  doubt  attended  here  also  to  what  has  been  read; 
ye  have  wondered  with  me  at  the  Saviour's  words :  have  ye 
also  understood  it  thoroughly  and  spiritually,  and  fixed  the 
searching  eye  of  the  mind  upon  its  profounder  interpretation  ? 
Has  the  sense  of  what  has  been  said  been  caught  by  you  ?  Or 
possibly  has  the  word,  after  having  rung  in  your  hearing, 
flown  away,  and  nothing  settled  there  that  would  be  to  your 
profit.  But  as  I  imagine,  in  that  ye  are  believers,  and  love  in- 
struction, the  Saviour  illumineth  your  understanding.  For  He 
it  is  "  Who  revealeth  the  deep  things  of  darkness,  and  putteth  i  Cor.  iv.  5. 
"  the  light  of  understanding  in  the  hearts  of  those  that  love 
"  Him/ 

The  two  parables  then  that  follow  close  upon  one  another 
depict  to  us  an  image  of  the  divine  gentleness,  being  both  of 


496  COMMENTARY  UPON 

similar  meaning,  and,  so  to  say,  at  concord  with  one  another. 
But  the  senseless  Jew  is  openly  reproved,  for  refusing  in  every 
way  to  understand  the  great  and  profound  mystery  of  the  In- 
carnation.    From  him  it  was  completely  hidden,  that  God  the 

Johniii.17.  Father  sent  the  Son  from  heaven,  not  "  to  judge  the  world," 
as  He  Himself  declares,  but  that  the  world  might  be  saved 
through  Him.  In  what  manner  then  was  it  fitting  for  the  world 
to  be  saved,  which  had  been  caught  in  the  meshes  of  sin, 
and  proved  eniilty  of  the  charge  of  wickedness,  and  that  was 
subject  to  a  cruel  tyrant,  even  Satan?  Was  it  by  demanding 
of  it  punishment,  for  having  fallen  into  transgression  and  sin  ? 
Or  was  it  not  rather  by  helping  it,  in  that  God  is  long-suf- 
fering, and  ready,  so  to  speak,  to  cover  over  in  forgetfulness 
those  things  wherein  man  had  transgressed,  and  to  renew  unto 
holiness  of  life  those  who  knew  not  how  to  live  uprightly  ? 

Tell  me  therefore,  0  Pharisee,  why  thou  murmurest,  because 
Christ  disdained  not  to  be  with  publicans  and  sinners,  but  pur- 
posely provided  for  them  this  means  of  salvation  ?  To  save 
men  He  yielded  Himself  to  emptiness,  and  became  in  fashion 
like  unto  us,  and  clothed  Himself  in  human  poverty.  And  dost 
thou  then  blame  the  dispensation  of  the  Only-begotten  in  the 
flesh  ?  Dost  thou  find  fault  with  His  humbling  Himself  from 
above  in  heaven,  Who  transcends  all  ?  Nay,  leavest  thou  not 
the  very  Incarnation  without  censure  ?  And  yet  the  holy  pro- 
phets wondered  at  the  beautiful  skill  of  the  mystery.     For  the 

Ps.  xlvii.  7.  prophet  David  in  the  Psalms  declares,  "  Sing  ye  with  under- 
"  standing  :  God  hath  set  a  Kino;  over  all  the  nations."     And 

Hab.  Hi.  1.  the  prophet  Habakkuk  says,  "  That  he  heard  His  hearing, 
"  and  was  afraid  :  and  that  he  considered  also  His  doings,  and 
"  was  astonished."  How  therefore  art  thou  not  ashamed  of 
Warning  those  things  which  thou  oughtest  to  have  admired  I 
Wouldest  thou  have  the  Lord  of  all  stern  and  inexorable,  or 
good  rather  and  kind  to  men  ?  The  family  upon  earth  had 
gone  astray :  it  had  wandered  from  the  hand  of  the  chief  shep- 
herd :  and  therefore  He  Who  feedeth  the  flocks  above  in  hea- 
ven, became  like  unto  us,  that  He  might  make  us  also  dwell  in 
His  folds  : — that  He  might  unite  us  to  those  who  had  never 
gone  astray,  and  drive  from  us  the  beast  of  prey,  and  ward  off 
like  some  impious  band  of  robbers  those  impure  demons,  who 
had  led  astray  all  beneath  the  sky. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  497 

He  sought  therefore  that  which  was  lost :  and,  to  shew  that 
the  Jewish  fault-finding  on  this  account  was  vain,  He  saith 
unto  them,  "  What  man  of  you  having  a  hundred  sheep,  and 
"  having  lost  one  of  them,  doth  not  leave  the  ninety  and  nine 
"  in  the  wilderness,  and  go  to  seek  that  which  is  lost.  And  if  it 
"  chance  to  be  found,  he  rejoiceth  in  it,  He  saith,  more  than 
"  in  those  that  went  not  astray."     Understand  from  this,  my 
beloved,  the  wide  extent  of  the  Saviour's  kingdom,  and  the 
multitude  past  numbering   of  His   subjects,  and   the   skilful 
plan  of  the  dispensation  to  usward.     For  the  sheep,  He  says, 
are  a  hundred,  so  making  the  number  of  His  subjects  mount 
up  to  a  multitude  complete  and  altogether  perfect.     For  con- 
stantly, so  to  speak,  a  hundred  is  a  perfect  number,  being 
composed  of  ten  times  ten.1    And  we  have  learnt  also  from  the 
divinely-inspired  Scripture,  that  a  "  thousand  thousands  miu-  Dan.vii.io. 
"  ister  to  God,  and  ten  thousand  times  ten  thousand  stand 
"  around  His  lofty  throne."     The  sheep  therefore  are  a  hun- 
dred :  and  of  them  one  has  gone  astray,  even  the  family  upon 
earth  ;  which  also  the  chief  Shepherd  of  all  sought,  having  left 
in  the  wilderness k  those  ninety  and  nine.     Was  it  therefore 
because  He  had  no  regard  for  the  many,  that  mercy  was 
shewn  to  the  one  only  ?    No !  not  because  He  had  no  regard 
for  them ;  that  were  impossible :  but  because  they  are  in  se- 
curity, guarded  by  His  Almighty  hand.   It  was  right  therefore 
that  mercy  should  rather  be  shewn  to  that  which  was  lost,  that 
evidently  nothing  might  be  wanting  to  that  other  multitude, 
but  the  one  being  restored  thereto,  the  hundred  might  regain 
its  beauty. 

The  search  therefore  after  that  which  was  lost  was  no  act  of 
contempt  towards  those  who  had  not  erred,  but  one  of  grace 
and  mercy  and  love  to  mankind  fit  for  the  supreme  and  trans- 
cendent nature  to  bestow  on  His  fallen  creatures. 

For  come,  and  let  us  examine  the  matter  by  the  help  also  of 
another  example,  in  order  that  we  may  at  all  times  defend  the 
incomparable  gentleness  of  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  us  all.  For 
let  it  be  supposed  that  in  one  house  there  are  many  inmates,  of 

1  Compare  what  is  said  on  c.  xii.     here  in  Mai,  explaining  the  wilder- 
33.  •  "  nes8  as  that  lofty  and  heavenly 

k  A  single   line   is   interpolated     "  region  which  is  full  of  serenity." 

33 


498  COMMENTARY  UPON 

whom  it  so  chances  that  one  falls  ill.  For  whom  then  are  those 
skilled  in  healing  summoned?  Is  it  not  for  him  onlv  who  has 
fallen  ill  ?  But  it  is  not  through  any  disregard  of  the  many, 
that  those  who  have  been  called  in  to  heal  attend  only  to  hiin 
who  is  sick,  and  give  him  the  benefit  of  their  skill,  as  the  time 
and  his  need  require.  In  like  manner  therefore  it  was  worthy, 
right  worthy  of  God,  Who  ruleth  over  all,  to  stretch  out  His 
saving  hand  to  that  which  had  gone  astray.  The  wild  beast 
had  seized  it:  it  had  led  the  family  upon  earth  astray  from  the 
pasture,  and  had  hurried  it  into  all  misery.'  The  chief  Shepherd 
saved  it :  for  He  sought  that  which  had  wandered,  and  has 
established  for  us  a  fold,  unassailable  and  impregnable  against 
wild  beasts  and  robbers,  even  the  Church;  in  admiration  of 
Is.  xxvi.  i.  which  we  may  say,  in  the  words  of  the  prophet,  "  Behold,  we 
"  have  a  strong  and  secure  city :  He  will  place  (for  us)  a  wall 
"  and  rampart." 

And  the  sense  of  the  parable  which  immediately  follows  is 
exactly  similar,  in  which,  He  says,  that  '  a  woman  who  had 
'  ten  drachms  lost  one  of  them,  and  haying  lit  a  lamp  and 
'  found  it,  rejoiced  greatly  therein,  and  made  it  a  reason  for 
'  special  joy.'  By  the  former  parable  therefore,  in  which  the 
wandering  sheep  signified  the  family  upon  earth,  we  learnt, 
that  we  are  the  property  of  God  over  all,  in  that  He  it  is  Who 
brought  into  existence  those  things  which  previously  had  no 
Ps.  c.  3.  existence.  For  "  He  made  us,  and  not  we  ourselves,"  as  it  is 
Ps.  xcv.  7.  written.  And  "  He  is  our  God,  and  we  are  the  people  of  His 
"  pasture,  and  the  sheep  of  His  hand."  And  by  this  second 
parable,  in  which  that  which  was  lost  is  compared  to  a  drachma, 
and  that  again  as  one  out  of  ten,  that  is  of  a  perfect  number, 
and  of  a  sum  complete  in  the  reckoning  ; — for  the  number  ten 
also  is  perfect,  being  the  close  of  the  series  from  the  unit  up- 
wards ; — it  is  clearly  shewn,  that  we  are  in  the  royal  likeness 
and  image,  even  that  of  God  over  all.  For  the  drachma  is,  I 
suppose,  the  denarius,1  on  which  is  stamped  the  royal  likeness. 

1  The  Greek  has  simply  i/d/ita/ia,  gold  coin   a  dinar,   i.  e.    denarius. 

a  coin  ;    and   possibly   the    Syriac  As  the  denarius  and  drachma  were, 

meant  nothing  more  by  calling  it  a  however,  really  equivalent  in  value, 

denarius;   for   the   use   of   Roman  I   have    retained    the   Syriac    ren- 

money  was  so  general  in  the  East,  dering. 
that  to  this  day  the  Arabs  call  their 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  499 

That  we  then  who  had  fallen,  and,  so  to  speak,  been  lost,  have 
been  found  by  Christ,  and  transformed  by  holiness  and  right- 
eousness into  His  image,  how  can  any  one  doubt,  when  the 
blessed  Paul  has  thus  written,  "  But  we  all,  with  open  face  2C0r.iii.1S. 
"  beholding  as  in  a  mirror  the  glory  of  the  Lord,  are  changed 
"  into  the  same  image,  from  glory  to  glory,  as  of  the  Lord  the 
"  Spirit/'  And  he  sends  to  the  Galatians  also  in  these  words, 
"  My  children,  of  whom  I  am  again  in  travail,  until  Christ  is  Gal.  iv.  19. 
"  formed  in  you." 

A  search  then  was  made  for  that  which  had  fallen,  for  which 
purpose  the  woman  lighted  a  lamp.  For  we  were  found,  as  I 
said,  by  the  wisdom  of  God  the  Father,  Which  is  the  Son, 
when  the  divine  and  intellectual  light  shone  upon  us,  and  the 
sun  arose,  and  "  the  day  star  ascended,  and  the  day  dawned,"  2  Pet.  i.19. 
according  to  the  Scripture.  For  God  also  has  somewhere  said 
by  one  of  the  holy  prophets  of  Christ  the  Saviour  of  us  all, 
"  My  righteousness  quickly  approacheth,  and  My  mercy  to  be  Is.  lxii.  1. 
"  revealed,  and  My  salvation  shall  burn  as  a  lamp."  And  He 
saith  of  Himself,  at  one  time,  "  I  am  the  light  of  the  world :"  John  viii. 
and  again  at  another,  "  I  am  come  a  light  into  this  world  :  he  johnxii.46. 
"  that  followeth  Me  shall  not  walk  in  darkness,  but  shall 
"  possess  the  light  of  life."  By  the  light  therefore  that  which 
was  lost  is  saved,  and  there  was  joy  thereby  to  the  powers 
above.  For  they  rejoice  even  in  one  sinner  that  repenteth,  as 
He  hath  taught  us  Who  knoweth  all  things.  If  they  then 
keep  festival  over  one  who  is  saved,  in  unison  altogether  with 
the  divine  purpose,  and  laud  with  never-ceasing  praises  the 
Saviour's  gentleness,  with  how  great  joy  must  they  be  filled, 
when  all  beneath  the  heaven  is  saved,  and  called  by  faith  in 
Christ  to  the  acknowledgment  of  the  truth,  having  put  off  the 
pollutions  of  sin,  and  loosed  its  neck  from  the  bonds  of  death, 
and  escaped  from  blame,  even  the  blame  of  its  wandering  and 
fall !  For  all  these  things  we  gain  in  Christ :  by  Whom,  and 
with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion  with 
the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


3s  2 


jOO 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON   CVII. 


C.  xv.  li- 
an- 
as* BS. 
nal  GT*. 


XopraaBri- 
vat  iit  B. 
ytfAcraj.  r^v 
KOtKlav  ai/- 
rod  airb 
GST*. 


om.  kol\ 
BGT. 


om.  koI  BT. 
add.  iroi-q- 
<r6v  at  (i»r 
tva  rSiv  fit- 

ffdltDV  (TOuB. 

om. Tax" 
GTj. 

ipiptrt  BT. 
iveyKavrts 
GSj. 


A  olv  war. 
GSt. 

6  Si  w.  BT. 


And  He  said,  A  certain  man  had  two  sons :  and  the  younger 
of  them  said  to  his  father,  Father,  give  me  the  portion  of 
thy  goods  that  cometh  to  me.  And  he  divided  unto  them 
his  substance.  And  not  many  days  after,  the  younger  son 
gathered  every  thing  together,  and  journeyed  into  a  far 
country,  and  there  scattered  his  goods  by  riotous  living. 
And  when  he  had  spent  all,  there  arose  a  mighty  famine  in 
that  land,  and  he  began  to  be  in  want.  And  he  went  and 
joined  himself  to  a  citizen  of  that  country,  who  sent  him 
into  his  fields  to  feed  swine.  And  he  desired  to  fill 
his  belly  with  the  husks  which  the  swine  were  eating  : 
and  no  man  gave  unto  him.  And  when  he  came  to  himself, 
he  said,  How  many  hired  servants  of  my  father  have  bread 
in  abundance,  and  I  perish  here  with  hunger.  I  will  arise 
and  go  to  my  father,  and  will  say  unto  him,  Father,  I  have 
sinned  against  heaven,  and  before  thee,  and  am  no  more 
worthy  to  be  called  thy  son :  make  me  as  one  of  thy  hired 
servants.  And  he  arose  and  went  to  his  father.  And  while 
he  was  yet  a  great  way  off,  his  father  saw  him,  and  his 
bowels  yearned,  and  he  ran  and  fell  on  his  neck,  and  kissed 
him.  And  his  son  said  unto  him,  My  father,  I  have  sinned 
against  heaven  and  before  thee,  and  am  no  more  worthy  to 
be  called  thy  son.  But  his  father  said  to  his  servants, 
Bring  forth  quickly  the  chief  robe,  and  clothe  him:  and 
put  a  ring  on  his  hand,  and  shoes  on  his  feet.  And  bring 
the  fatted  calf,  and  kill  it,  and  we  will  eat,  and  be  merry  : 
for  this  my  son  was  dead,  and  is  alive :  and  was  lost,  and 
is  found.  And  they  began  to  be  merry. — Now  his  elder  son 
was  in  the  field,  and  as  he  came  and  drew  near  to  the 
house,  he  heard  the  sound  of  music  and  rejoicing.  And  he 
called  one  of  the  servants,  and  asked  him  what  these  things 
meant.  And  he  said  unto  him,  Thy  brother  is  come,  and 
thy  father  hath  killed  the  fatted  calf,  because  he  hath  re- 
ceived him  sound.  And  he  was  angry,  and  woidd  not  go 
in :  therefore  came  his  father  out,  and  besought  him.     But 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  501 

he  answered  and  said  to  his  father,  Lo  I  all  these  years  do  »  M 
I  serve  thee,  and  never  have  transgressed  thy  command- 
ment, and  thou  never  gavest  me  a  kid,  that  I  might  make 
merry  with  my  friends.  But  when  this  thy  son,  who  hath 
eaten  up  thy  wealth  with  harlots,  is  come,  thou  hast  killed 
for  him  the  fatted  calf.  And  he  said  unto  him,  My  son, 
thou  art  ever  with  me :  and  all  that  is  mine  is  thine.  But 
it  was  fitting  to  make  merry  and  be  glad :  for  this  thy 
brother  was  dead,  and  is  alive :  and  was  lost,  and  is 
found. 

I  HEIR   one  of  the   holy  prophets  trying  to  win   unto 
repentance  those  who  are  far  from  God,  and  saying,  "  Re-  Hos.  xiv.i. 
«  turn,  0  Israel,  to  the  Lord  thy  God:  for  thou  hast  become       ^ 
«  weak  in  thy  iniquity.     Take  with  you  words,  and  return  to 
«  the  Lord  our  God.""  What  sort  of  words  then  did  he,  under 
the  influence  of  the  Spirit,  command  them  to  take  with  them? 
Or  were  they  not  such  as  become  those  who  wish  to  repent ; 
such  namely,  as  would  appease  God,  Who  is  gentle,  and  loveth 
mercy.     For  He  even  said  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets,  "  Re-  Jer.  lii.  «. 
«  turn  ye  returning  children,  and  I  will  heal  your  breaches." 
And  yet  again  by  the  voice  of  Ezekiel,  "  Return  ye  altogether  Ez.  xviii. 
«  from  your  wickednesses,  0  house  of  Israel.    Cast  away  from 
"  you  all  your  iniquities  which  ye  have  committed,  that  they  be 
«  not  to  you  for  a  punishment  of  iniquity.     For  I  have  no 
"  pleasure  in  the  death  of  the  sinner,  as  that  he  should  turn 
»  from  his  evil  way  and  live."    And  the  same  truth  Christ  here 
also  teaches  us,  by  this  most  beautifully  composed  parable,  which 
I  will  now  to  the  best  of  my  ability  endeavour  to  discuss,  briefly 
gathering  up  its  broad  statements,  and  explaining  and  defend- 
ing the  ideas  which  it  contains. 

It  is  the  opini6n  then  of  some,  that  by  the  two  sons  are  sig- 
nified the  holy  angels,  and  we  the  dwellers  upon  earth:  and 
that  the  elder  one,  who  lived  soberly,  represents  the  company 
of  the  holy  angels,  while  the  younger  and  profligate  son  is  the 
human  race.  And  there  are  some  among  us  who  give  it  a  dif- 
ferent explanation,  arguing  that  by  the  elder  and  well  con- 
ducted son  is  signified  Israel  after  the  flesh:  while  by  the 
other,  whose  choice  it  was  to  live  in  the  lust  of  pleasures,  and 
who  removed  far  from  his  father,  is  depicted  the  company  of 


502  COMMENTARY  UPON 

the  Gentiles.  With  these  explanations  I  do  not  agree :  but  I 
would  have  him  who  Ioveth  instruction,  search  after  that  which  is 
Prov.  ix.  9.  true  and  unobjectionable.  What  then  I  say  is  as  follows,  "  giving 
"  occasions  to  the  wise,  and  to  the  just  offering  knowledge,"  as 
Scripture  commands:  for  thev  will  examine  for  a  fitting  meaning: 
the  explanations  proposed  to  them.  H  then  we  refer  the  up- 
right son  to  the  person  of  the  holy  angels,  we  do  not  find  him 
speaking  such  words  as  become  them,  nor  sharing  their  feelings 
towards  repentant  sinners,  who  turn  from  an  impure  life  to 
that  conduct  which  is  worthy  of  admiration.  For  the  Saviour 
Luke  xv.  7.  of  all  and  Lord  saith,  that  "  there  is  joy  in  heaven  before  the 
"  holy  angels  over  one  sinner  that  repenteth."  But  the  son, 
who  is  described  to  us  in  the  present  parable  as  being  accept- 
able unto  his  father,  and  leading  a  blameless  life,  is  represented 
as  being  angry,  and  as  even  having  proceeded  so  far  in  his 
unloving  sentiments  as  to  find  fault  with  his  father  for  his 
natural  affection  for  him  who  was  saved.  "  For  he  would  not, 
"  it  says,  go  into  the  house,"  being  vexed  at  the  reception  of 
the  penitent  almost  before  he  had  come  to  his  senses,  and  be- 
cause there  had  even  been  slain  the  calf  in  his  honour,  and  his 
father  had  made  for  him  a  feast.  But  this,  as  1  said,  is  at 
variance  with  the  feelings  of  the  holy  angels  :  for  they  rejoice 
and  praise  God  when  they  see  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth 
being  saved.  For  so  when  the  Son  submitted  to  be  born  in 
the  flesh  of  a  woman  at  Bethlehem,  they  carried  the  joyful 
Luke ii.  10.  news  to  the  shepherds,  saying,  "Fear  ye  not:  for  behold  I 
"  bring  you  glad  tidings  of  great  joy  that  shall  be  to  all  the 
"  people,  that  there  is  born  to  you  today  in  the  city  of  David 
"  a  Saviour  Who  is  Christ  the  Lord."  And  crowning  with 
lauds  and  praises  Him  Who  was  born,  they  said,  "  Glory  to 
"  God  in  the  highest,  and  upon  earth  peace,  and  among  men 
"  good-will." 

But  if  any  one  say,  that  Israel  according  to  the  flesh  is 
meant  bv  the  virtuous  and  sober  son,  we  are  again  prevented 
from  assenting  to  this  opinion  by  the  fact,  that  in  no  way  what- 
soever is  it  fitting  to  say  of  Israel  that  he  chose  a  blameless 
life.  For  throughout  the  whole  of  the  inspired  Scripture,  so 
to  say,  we  may  see  them  accused  of  being  rebels  and  dis- 
obedient. For  they  were  told  by  the  voice  of  Jeremiah, 
Jer.  ii.  5.    "  What  fault  have  your  fathers  found  in  Me,  that  they  have 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  508 

"  wandered  far  from  Me,  and  have  gone  after  vanities,  and 
"  become  vain  1 "  And  in  similar  terms  God  somewhere  spake 
by  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  "  This  people  draweth  near  unto  Me ;  ia.  xxix. 
"  with  their  lips  they  honour  Me,  but  their  heart  is  very  far  I3> 
"  from  Me  :  but  in  vain  do  they  fear  Me,  teaching  as  doctrines 
the  commandments  of  men.""  And  how  then  can  any  one  apply 
to  those  who  are  thus  blamed  the  words  used  in  the  parable  of 
the  virtuous  and  sober  son  ?  For  he  said,  "  Lo  !  all  these  years 
"  do  I  serve  thee,  and  never  have  I  transgressed  thy  com- 
"  mandment."  But  they  would  not  have  been  blamed  for  their 
mode  of  life,  had  it  not  been  that  transgressing  the  divine 
commandments,  they  betook  themselves  to  a  careless  and  pol- 
luted mode  of  life. 

And  yet  again, — for  I  think  it  right  to  mention  this  also, — 
some  would  refer  to  the  person  of  our  Saviour  that  fatted  calf 
which  the  father  killed  when  his  son  was  called™  unto  con- 
version. But  how  then  could  the  virtuous  son,  who  is  described 
as  wise  and  prudent,  and  constant  in  his  duty,  and  whom  some 
even  refer  to  the  person  of  the  holy  angels,  treat  it  as  a  reason 
for  anger  and  vexation  that  the  calf  was  slain  ?  For  one  can 
find  no  proof  of  the  powers  above  being  grieved  when  Christ 
endured  death  in  the  flesh,  and,  so  to  speak,  was  slain  in  our 
behalf.  Rather  they  rejoiced,  as  I  said,  in  seeing  the  world 
saved  by  His  holy  blood.  And  what  reason  too  had  the  vir- 
tuous son  for  saying  "thou  never  gavest  me  a  kid."  For  what 
blessing  is  wanting  to  the  holy  angels,  inasmuch  as  the  Lord 
of  all  has  bestowed  upon  them  with  bounteous  hand  a  plentiful 
supply  of  spiritual  gifts?  Or  of  what  sacrifice  stood  they  in 
need  as  regards  their  own  state  ?  For  there  was  no  necessity 
for  the  Emmanuel  to  suffer  also  in  their  behalf.  But  if  any 
one  imagine,  as  I  have  already  said  before,  that  the  carnal 
Israel  is  meant  by  the  virtuous  and  sober  son,  how  can  he  say 
with  truth  "  thou  never  gavest  me  a  kid  ? "  For  whether  we 
call  it  calf  or  kid,  Christ  is  to  be  understood  as  the  sacri- 
fice offered  for  sin.  But  He  was  sacrificed,  not  for  the  Gen- 
tiles only,  but  that  He  might  also  redeem  Israel,  who  by  reason 
of  his  frequent  transgression  of  the  law  had  brought  upon 

m  For  KocKiptvov,  which  Mai  has,  the  Syriac  must  have  read  «acX>j- 
ptvov. 


504  COMMENTARY  UPON 

himself  great  blame.     And  the  wise  Paul  bears  witness  to  this, 
Heb.  xiii.    saying,  "For  this  reason  Jesus"  also,  that  He  might  sanctify 
"  the  people  by  His  blood,  suffered  outside  the  gate." 

What  then  is  the  object  of  the  parable  ?  Let  us  examine  the 
occasion  which  led  to  it ;  for  so  we  shall  learn  the  truth.  The 
blessed  Luke  therefore  had  himself  said  a  little  before  of  Christ 
Luke  xv.  i.  the  Saviour  of  Us  all,  "  And  all  the  publicans  and  sinners  drew 
"  near  unto  Him  to  hear  Him.  And  the  Pharisees  and  Scribes 
"  murmured  saving:,  This  man  receiveth  sinners  and  eateth 
"  with  them."  As  therefore  the  Pharisees  and  Scribes  made 
this  outcry  at  His  gentleness  and  love  to  man,  and  wickedly 
and  impiously  blamed  Him  for  receiving  and  teaching  men 
whose  lives  were  impure,  Christ  very  necessarily  set  before 
them  the  present  parable,  to  shew  them  clearly  this  very 
thing,  that  the  God  of  all  requires  even  him  who  is  thoroughly 
steadfast,  and  firm,  and  who  knows  how  to  live  holily,  and  has 
attained  to  the  highest  praise  for  sobriety  of  conduct,  to  be 
earnest  in  following  His  will,  so  that  when  any  are  called  unto 
repentance,  eveu  if  they  be  men  highly  blameable,  he  must 
rejoice  rather,  and  not  give  way  to  an  unloving  vexation  on 
their  account. 

For  we  also  sometimes  experience  something  of  this  sort. 
For  some  there  are  who  live  a  perfectly  honourable  and  con- 
sistent life,  practising  every  kind  of  virtuous  action,  and  ab- 
staining from  every  thing  disapproved  by  the  law  of  God, 
and  crowning  themselves  with  perfect  praises  in  the  sight  of 
God  and  of  men :  while  another  is  perhaps  weak  and  trodden 
down,  and  humbled  unto  every  kind  of  wickedness,  guilty  of 
base  deeds,  loving  impurity,  given  to  covetousness,  and  stained 
with  all  evil.  And  yet  such  a  one  often  in  old  age  turns  unto 
God,  and  asks  the  forgiveness  of  his  former  offences :  he  prays 
for  mercy,  and  putting  away  from  him  his  readiness  to  fall 
into  sin,  sets  his  affection  on  virtuous  deeds.  Or  even  per- 
haps when  about  to  close  his  mortal  life,  he  is  admitted  to 
divine  baptism,  and  puts  away  his  offences,  God  being  merciful 
unto  him.     And  perhaps  sometimes  persons  are  indignant  at 

n  Mai,  who  has  extracted  this  in  thi9  place :  the  Syriac  translator 
passage  from  two  of  his  codices,  A  however  must  have  found  the  ordi- 
and  E,  says  that  they  both  read  vlit     nary  reading  'Irjcrovt  in  his  copy. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  505 

this,  and  even  say,  '  This  man,  who  has  been  guilty  of  such 
'  and  such  actions,  and  has  spoken  such  and  such  words,  has 
'  not  paid  unto  the  judge  the  retribution  of  his  conduct,  but 
'  has  been  counted  worthy  of  a  grace  thus  noble  and  ad- 
'  mirable :  he  has  been  inscribed  among  the  sons  of  God,  and 
'  honoured  with  the  glory  of  the  saints/  Such  complaints 
men  sometimes  give  utterance  too  from  an  empty  narrowness 
of  mind,  not  conforming  to  the  purpose  of  the  universal 
Father.  For  He  greatly  rejoices  when  He  sees  those  who 
were  lost  obtaining  salvation,  and  raises  them  up  again  to  that 
which  they  were  in  the  beginning,  giving  them  the  dress  of 
freedom,  and  adorning  them  with  the  chief  robe,  and  putting  a 
ring  upon  their  hand,  even  the  orderly  behaviour  which  is 
pleasing  to  God  and  suitable  to  the  free. 

It  is  our  duty,  therefore,  to  conform  ourselves  to  that  which 
God  wills  :  for  He  heals  those  who  are  sick ;  He  raises  those 
who  are  fallen ;  He  gives  a  helping  hand  to  those  who  have 
stumbled ;  He  brings  back  him  who  has  wandered ;  He  forms 
anew  unto  a  praiseworthy  and  blameless  life  those  who  were 
wallowing  in  the  mire  of  sin ;  He  seeks  those  who  were  lost ; 
He  raises  as  from  the  dead  those  who  had  suffered  the  spiritual 
death.  Let  us  also  rejoice :  let  us,  in  company  with  the  holy 
angels,  praise  Him  as  being  good,  and  loving  unto  men ;  as 
gentle,  and  not  remembering  evil.  For  if  such  is  our  state  of 
mind,  Christ  will  receive  us,  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to 
God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever,  Amen.0 


0  Mai    not    only   contains    the  only  placed  here  conjecturally,  be- 

whole  of  the  above  homily,  with  the  ing  taken  from  a  catena  upon  the 

exception  of  the  first  and  last  para-  prophets  :  it  does,  however,  helong 

graphs,  but  also  very  considerable  to  the  commentary  elsewhere.    And 

collections  besides  :  of  these,  how-  the  rest  are  short  extracts,  gathered 

ever,  the  first  (p.  341.)  is  cited  by  possibly  from  S.  Cyril's  other  works, 

Macarius  expressly  from  Cyril  on  with  the  exception  of  that  from  E. 

the  Psalms,  and  is  retained  by  Mai  f.  238,  which  belongs  to  the  com- 

here,    simply    "  quia    psalmus    ad  mentary  on  the  Lord's  Prayer,  and 

"  quem  pertinet  non   nominatur."  is  given  by  Mai  iisdem  verbis  in 

The  second,  (p.  345.)   similarly  is  p.  263. 


3  T 


oOG 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


C.  xvi.  i_o. 

om.  koI  S. 
om.  aiiTuu 
BT. 


om.  nai 
GTf. 


6  5«  BST. 
Hal  Gr. 
ra  ypdfj.ua- 
ra  BT. 

om.  «oi  BT. 

to  7pauua- 
to  BT. 


^/t  A  f  71-77  S. 
^cAefri-pBT. 

Gs. 


John  viii. 

12. 

JoLnxii.46, 


SERMON    CVIII. 

And  He  said  unto  His  disciples,  There  was  a  certain  rich 
man,  who  had  a  steward,  and  they  accused  him  of  scat- 
tering his  goods.  And  he  called  him,  and  said  unto  him, 
What  is  this  that  I  hear  of  thee?  Give  up  the  account  of 
thy  stewardship  :  for  thou  canst  be  no  longer  steward. 
And  the  steward  said  within  himself,  What  shall  I  do,  for 
my  lord  taketh  away  from  me  the  stewardship?  I  cannot 
dig:  and  to  beg  I  am  ashamed.  I  am  resolved  what  to  do, 
that  when  I  am  removed  from  the  stewardship,  they  may 
receive  me  into  their  houses.  So  he  called  each  one  of  his 
lord's  debtors,  and  said  unto  the  first ;  How  much  owest 
thou  unto  my  lord?  And  he  said,  A  hundred  baths  of 
oil.  And  he  said  unto  him,  Take  thy  writing,  and  sit 
doivn,  and  write  fifty  quickly.  And  afterwards  he  spake 
to  the  second,  And  how  muck  owest  thou?  And  he  said, 
A  hundred  corsV  of  wheat.  And  he  said  unto  him,  Take 
thy  writing,  and  write  eighty.  And  the  lord  praised  the 
unjust  steward,  because  he  had  done  wisely  :  for  the  chil- 
dren of  this  world  are  wise  in  their  generation  more  than 
the  children  of  light.  And  I  say  unto  you,  Make  for  your- 
selves friends  of  the  unrighteous  mammon :  that  when  it 
has  failed^  they  may  receive  you  into  eternal  tabernacles. 

OUR  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  revealing  His  glory  to  the  Jewish 
multitudes,  or  rather  to  all  those  who  have  believed  on  Him, 
said  ;  "lam  the  light  of  the  world :"  and  again,  "  I  am  come 
"  a  light  into  this  world."  For  He  fills  the  mind  of  those  who 
fear  Him  with  a  divine  and  intellectual  light,  that  they  may 


P  The  bath  contained  about  se- 
ven gallons  and  a  half :  while  the 
cor  was  equal  to  ten  baths. 

1  In  the  text  the  diacritic  mark, 
which  distinguishes  the  perfect  from 
the  present  tense,  is  wanting;  but 
in  the  quotation  in  the  next  sermon 
it  is  added :  similarly  the  Peschito 


also  has  the  equivalent  for  ticking,  and 
so  has  the  Philox.  in  the  margin,  and 
in  the  text  eK/Mirrjrf.  Their  authority 
therefore  is  entirely  in  favour  of  the 
past  tense,  as  is  also  that  of  Barsa- 
libi,  who  reads  in  the  text  cuaol'i 
and  in  the  margin  i^Vt. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  507 

not  wander  from  the  right  way  by  walking  in  gloom  and  dark- 
ness ;  but  may  rather  know  how  to  advance  uprightly  in  every 
good  work,  and  in  whatsoever  aids  a  man  in  leading  a  saintly 
life.  He  would  have  us  therefore  to  be  good,  and  ready  to 
communicate,  loving  one  another,  and  merciful,  and  adorned 
with  the  honours  of  charity.  Most  wisely  therefore  did  He 
prepare  for  us  the  present  parable  :  which  we  being  anxious 
to  explain  to  the  best  of  our  ability,  of  necessity  speak  as  fol- 
lows to  those  who  love  instruction. 

The  parables  then  indirectly  and  figuratively  explain  to  us 
much  that  is  for  our  edification,  provided  only  we  consider 
their  meaning  in  a  brief  and  summary  manner.  For  we  are 
not  to  search  into  all  the  parts  of  the~parable  in  a  subtil  and 
prying  way,  lest  the  argument  by  its  immoderate  length  weary 
with  superfluous  matter  even  those  most  fond  of  hearing,  and 
tire  men  with  a  crowd  of  words.  For  if,  for  instance,  any 
one  were  to  undertake  to  explain,  who  is  to  be  regarded 
by  us  as  the  man  who  had  a  steward,  who  was  accused 
unto  him ;  or  who  possibly  it  is  that  accused  him ;  and  who 
too  those  are  who  owed  the  debts,  and  subtracted  a  portion 
from  them ;  and  for  what  reason  one  is  said  to  have  owed  oil, 
and  the  other  wheat ;  he  will  render  his  discourse  at  once  ob- 
scure and  redundant.  All  the  parts  of  the  parable  therefore 
are  not  necessarily  and  in  every  respect  useful  for  the  expla- 
nation of  the  things  signified,  but,  so  to  speak,  have  been 
taken  to  form  an  image  of  some  important  matter,  which 
figuratively  sets  forth  some  lesson  for  the  profit  of  the 
hearers. 

The  sense  therefore  of  the  present  parable  is  something  like 
the  following  :  "  The  God  of  all  willeth  that  all  men  should  be  i  Tim.  ii.  4. 
"  saved,  and  come  to  the  knowledge  of  the  truth."  For  this 
reason  "  He  also  gave  the  law  for  a  help,"  according  to  the  i3.  viii.  20. 
expression  of  the  prophet.  And  the  law  in  such  passages  we 
say  means,  not  of  course  that  which  was  ministered  by  Moses, 
but  rather  the  whole  inspired  Scripture,  by  means  of  which 
we  learn  the  path  which  leads  straight  unto  every  good  and 
saving  thing.  The  Lord  of  all  therefore  requires  Us  to  be 
thoroughly  constant  in  our  exertions  after  virtue,  and  to  fix 
our  desires  upon  the  better  and  holy  life,  setting  ourselves  free 

3  T  2 


508  COMMENTARY  UPON 

from  the  distractions  of  the  world,  and  from  all  love  of  riches, 

and  of  the  pleasure  which  wealth  brings,  that  we  may  serve 

Him  continually,  and  with  undivided  affections.     For  He  also 

Pd. xlvuio.  says  by  the  harp  of  the  Psalmist;   "  Be  constant/  and  know 

"  that  I  am  God."     And  further,  by  His  own  mouth,  the  Sa- 

Luke  xii.    viour  of  all  says  to  those  who  possess  worldly  riches,  w  Sell 

33"  "  your  possessions,  and  give  alms :  make  for  you  purses  that 

"  grow  not  old :    a  treasure  for  ever,  unfailing  in  heaven." 

Now  the  commandment  is  indeed  for  our  salvation,  but  the 

mind  of  man  is  very  weak,  fixed  constantly,  so  to  speak,  upon 

things  which  are  of  earth  chiefly,  and  unwilling  to  withdraw 

itself  from  the  delight  of  riches.     It  loves  vain  boasting ;  is 

soothed  much  by  the  praises  of  flatterers  ;  longs  for  beautiful 

equipments,  and  counts  nothing  better  than  temporal  honour. 

And  knowing  this,  the  Saviour  has  Himself  somewhere  said  of 

Luke  xviii.  them,  "  How  hardly  shall  they  that  have  riches  enter  into  the 

*4'  "kingdom  of  God!"     And  further,  "that  it  is  easier  for  a 

"  camel  to  go  through  the  eye  of  a  needle,  than  a  rich  man 

"  into  the  kingdom  of  God.'1     For  as  long  as  a  man  lives  in 

wealth  and  pleasure,  he  is  careless  about  piety  to  God.     For 

wealth  renders  men  contemptuous,  and  sows  in  the  minds  of 

those  that  possess  it  the  seeds  of  all  voluptuousness. 

Is  there  then  no  way  of  salvation  for  the  rich,  and  no  means 
of  making  them  partakers  of  the  hope  of  the  saints  ?  Have 
they  fallen  completely  from  God's  grace  ?  Is  hell  and  the  fire 
necessarily  prepared  for  them,  such  as  is  the  fitting  lot  of  the 
devil  and  his  angels  ?  Not  so  :  for  lo  !  the  Saviour  has  shewn 
them  a  means  of  salvation  in  the  present  parable.  They  have 
been  entrusted  with  worldly  wealth  by  the  merciful  permission 
of  Almighty  God  : s   according  nevertheless  to  His  intention 

r  The  Greek  is  ^oKao-are,  which,  "  has     given     them    this    worldly 

however,  frequently  bears  the  sense  "  wealth  :     whereas    according    to 

given  it  by  the  Syriac  translator,  of  "  H'13  intention  they  have  been  ap- 

devoting  oneself  entirely  to   some  "  pointed  as  stewards,  &c."     His 

object.  next   sentence  is   an  interpolation, 

8  Mai  punctuates  this   sentence  ascribing  to  Cyril  a  false  etymology, 

so  as  to  give  it  an  entirely  different  "  and  they  are  called  stewards,  be- 

sense,   and    produce   an   antithesis  "  cause  they  distribute  to  every  one 

between  it  and  what  follows;  "they  "  his  due,"  napa  r<3  ra  olxila  <*a- 

."  feel  sure  that  God  in  His  mercy  oru  vtfit iv. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE. 


509 


they  have  been  appointed  stewards  for  the  poor.     But  they 
discharge  not  their  stewardship  rightly,  in  that  they  scatter, 
so  to  speak,  what  has  been  given  them  of  the  Lord:  for  they 
waste  it  solely  on  their  pleasures,  and  purchase  temporal  ho- 
nours, not  remembering  God,  Who  says,  "Thou  shalt  open  Deut.*r. 8. 
«  wide  thy  mercy  unto  thy  brother,  even  to  him  that  hath 
«  need  of  thee."     Nor  moreover  Christ  Himself,  the  Saviour 
of  us  all,  Who  savs,  "  Be  ye  merciful,  even  as  your  Father  Lukevi.36. 
«  Who  is  in  heaven  is  merciful/'     But  they,  as  I  said,  make 
no  account  whatsoever  of  shewing  mercy  to  their  brethren 
but  study  only  their  own  pride.     And  this  it  is  which  accuseth 
them  before  the  Lord  of  all.  And  of  course  upon  the  approach 
of  death  they  must  cease  from  their  stewardship,  withdrawing 
them  as  it  does  from  human  affairs.     For  the  net  of  death  no 
man  can  escape  from.  What  therefore  would  Christ  have  them 
to  do  ?    It  is,  that  while  they  are  yet  in  this  world,  if  they  are 
unwilling  to  divide  all  their  wealth  among  the  poor,  that  at 
least  they  should  gain  friends  by  a  part  of  it ;  and  numerous 
witnesses  to  their  charitableness,  even  those  who  have  received 
well  at  their  hands  :  that  when  their  earthly  wealth  fails  them, 
they  may  gain  a  place  in  their  tabernacles.     For  it  is  impos- 
sible for  love  to  the  poor  ever  to  remain  unrewarded.  Whether 
therefore  a  man  give  away  all  his  wealth,  or  but  a  part,  he  will 
certainly  benefit  his  soul. 

It  is  an  act  therefore  that  becometh  the  saints,  and  is  worthy 
of  perfect  praises,  and  that  wins  the  crowns  above,  to  set  no 
store  by  earthly  wealth,  but  distributing  it  among  those  that 
are  in  need,  to  gather  rather  that  which  is  in  heaven,  and  ob- 
tain purses  that  grow  not  old,  and  possess  a  treasure  that  fail- 
ed not :  and  next  in  order  comes  the  employment  of  a  sort  ot 
artifice,  so  as  to  obtain  those  for  friends  who  are  especially 
near  unto  God,  by  giving  them  some  portion  of  their  wealth, 
and  comforting  the  many  who  are  afflicted  with  poverty,  that 
so  they  mav  share  what  is  theirs.  And  something  of  this  sort 
the  very  wise  Paul  also  advises,  saying  unto  those  who  love 
wealth  :  «  Let  your  abundance  be  for  their  want,  that  their  J^or.  vu, 
"  abundance  also  may  be  for  your  want." 

It  is  our  duty  therefore,  if  we  are  right-minded;  if  we  fax 
the  eye  of  the  mind  on  what  will  be  hereafter;  if  we  remember 


510  COMMENTARY  UVON 

iCor.v.  10.  the  sacred  Scripture,  which  says  plainly,  "that  we  shall  all  be 
"  manifested  before  the  judgment  seat  of  Christ,  that  each  one 
"  may  receive  retribution  for  the  things  done  by  means  of  the 
"  body,  according  to  that  he  hath  done,  whether  good  or  bad;" 
if  we  fear  the  cruel  and  unappeasable  flame ;  to  remember  God, 
Who  requires  us  to  shew  mercy  upon  the  brethren,  to  suffer 
with  those  that  are  sick,  to  open  our  hand  wide  to  those  that 
are  in  need,  and  to  honour  the  saints,  of  whom  Christ  says, 

Mat.  x.  40.  "  He  that  receiveth  you  receiveth  Me :  and  he  that  receiveth 
"  Me,  receiveth  Him  That  sent  Me/'  For  that  mercy  towards 
the  brethren  is  not  without  profit  and  benefit,  the  Saviour 

Mat.  x.  42.  Himself  teaches  us,  saying ;  "  Whosoever  shall  give  only  a 
"  cup  of  cold  [water]  to  drink  in  the  name  of  a  disciple,  shall 
"  not  lose  his  reward."  For  the  Saviour  of  all  is  bounteous  in 
giving  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever, 
Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  511 


SERMON   CIX. 

He  that  is  faithful  in  little,'  is  faithful  also  in  much;  and  C.xvi.  ro- 
he  that  is  unjust  in  little,  is  unjust  also  in  much.  If  there- 
fore ye  have  not  been  faithful  in  the  unrighteous  mammon, 
who  will  give  you  the  true  ?  And  if  ye  have  not  been  faith- 
ful in  that  which  is  another's,  who  will  give  you  that  which 
is  your  own  ?  No  servant  can  serve  two  lords :  for  either  foirtpov  B. 
he  will  hate  the  one,  and  love  the  other :  or  he  will  honour 
the  one,  and  despise  the  other.  Ye  cannot  serve  God  and 
mammon. 

THE  most  distinguished  and  experienced  teachers,  when 
they  wish  to  fix  any  important  doctrine  deep  in  the  minds  of 
their  disciples,  omit  no  kind  of  reasoning  able  to  throw  light 
upon  the  chief  object  of  their  thoughts ;  at  one  time  weaving 
arguments  together,  at  another  employing  apposite  examples, 
and  so  gathering  from  every  quarter  whatever  is  serviceable 
for  their  use.  And  this  we  find  Christ  also,  Who  is  the  Giver 
unto  us  of  all  wisdom,  doing  in  many  places.  For  oftentimes 
He  repeats  the  very  same  arguments  upon  the  subject,  what- 
ever it  may  be,  that  the  mind  of  those  who  hear  may  be  led  on 
to  an  exact  understanding  of  His  words.  For  look  again,  I 
pray,  at  the  purport  of  the  lessons  set  before  us :  for  so  thou 
wilt  find  our  words  to  be  true.  "  He  that  is  faithful  in  little," 
He  says,  "  is  faithful  also  in  much :  and  he  that  is  unjust  in 
"  little,  is  unjust  also  in  much." 

Before,  however,  I  proceed  further,  I  think  it  would  be  use- 
ful to  consider,  what  was  the  occasion  of  a  discourse  such  as 
this,  and  from  what  root  it  sprung  :  for  so  the  sense  of  what  is 

t  The  Syriac,  like  the  Semitic  ancient  times;  for  Clemens  Rom. 
languages  generally,  possesses  no  says  in  his  2nd  Ep.  ad  Cor.  8.  A<7« 
degrees  of  comparison;  and  though  6  Kupios  iv  r<5  {vayye\«s  ti  to  jxi- 
occasionally  it  employs  a  periphrasis  kPov  ovk  i-njp^axf,  to  fitya  tis  v/xii/ 
to  express  them,  it  more  frequently  d«,<m;  and  Jacobson  quotes  there 
neglects  them  altogether.  There  from  lrensus,  "  Si  in  modico  fide- 
are,  however,  evident  traces  of  the  "  les  non  fuistis,  quod  magnum  est 
positive  having  been  read  in  very  "  quis  dabit  vobis  ? " 


512  COMMENTARY  UPON 

said  will  become  very  evident.     Christ  then  was  teaching  the 
rich  to  feel  especial  delight  in  shewing  kindness  to  the  poor, 
and  in  opening  their  hand  to  whoever  are  in  need,  so  laying  up 
treasures  in  heaven,  and  taking  forethought  for  the  riches  that 
are  in  store.     For  He  said,  "  Make  for  yourselves  friends  of 
"  the  unrighteous  mammon :  that  when  it  has  failed,  they  may 
"  receive  you  into  eternal  tabernacles."     But  as  being  God  by 
nature,  He  well  knew  the  slothfulness  of  the  human  mind  in 
every  earnest  and  good  work.     It  escaped  not  His  knowledge, 
that  men,  in  their  greediness  after  wealth,  giving  up  their 
mind  to  the  love  of  lucre,  and  being  tyrannized  over  by  this 
passion,  become  hard-hearted  and  unsympathizing  with  afflic- 
tion, and   shew  no   kindness  whatsoever  to  the   poor,  even 
though  they  have  heaped  up  much  wealth  in  their  stores. 
That  those  therefore  who  are  thus  minded,  have  no  share  in 
God's  spiritual  gifts,   He  shews   by  most  evident  examples, 
and  says,   "He  that  is   faithful  in  little,  is  faithful   also   in 
"  much  :  and   he   that   is   unjust  in   little,  is  unjust  also   in 
"  much/'     0  Lord,  explain  unto  us  the  meaning  :  open  Thou 
the  eye  of  our  heart.     Listen  therefore  while  He  explains 
clearly  and  exactly  what  He  said.     "  If  therefore  ye  have  not 
"  been  faithful  in  the  unrighteous  mammon,  who  will  give  vou 
"  the  true  f"  The  little  therefore  is  the  unrighteous  mammon  : 
that  is,  worldly  wealth,  gathered  often  by  extortion  and  covet- 
ousness.     But  those  who  know  how  to  live  virtuously,  and 
thirst  after  the  hope  that  is  in  store,  and  withdraw  their  mind 
from  earthly  things,  and  think  rather  of  those  things  that  are 
above,  utterly  disregard  earthly  wealth ;  for  it  offers  nothing 
but  pleasures,  and  voluptuousness,  and  base  carnal  lusts,  and 
splendour  that  profiteth  not,  but  is  transitory  and  vain.     And 

iJohnii.i6.  so  one  of  the  holy  apostles  teaches  us,  saying,  "  That  all  that  is 
"  in  the  world  is  the  lust  of  the  flesh,  and  the  lust  of  the  eyes, 
"  and  the  pride  of  the  world."  But  such  things  as  these  are 
absolutely  nothing  to  those  who  lead  a  sober  and  virtuous  life  : 
for  they  are  trifling,  and  temporary,  and  full  of  impurity,  and 
provocative  of  the  fire  and  judgment,  and  scarcely  reaching  to 
the  end  of  the. life  of  the  body,  even  if  they  do  not,  when  any 
danger  suddenly  befalls  those  that  possess  them,  unexpectedly  de- 
part away.  Christ's  disciple  therefore  rebukes  the  rich,  saying, 

James  v.  i.  "  Come  now,  ye  rich  men,  weep,  and  lament  over  the  miseries 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  513 

"  that  are  coming  upon  you.  Your  wealth  is  decayed,  your 
"  garments  are  motheaten.  Your  gold  and  your  silver  are 
"  rusted,  and  the  rust  of  them  shall  be  your  testimony. "  How 
then  are  the  gold  and  silver  rusted  ?  By  being  stored  up  in 
excessive  abundance;  and  this  very  thing  is  the  witness  against 
them  before  the  divine  judgment  seat,  of  their  being  unmer- 
ciful. For  having  gathered  into  their  treasuries  a  great  and 
unnecessary  abundance,  they  made  no  account  of  those  who 
were  in  need,  although  it  was  in  their  power,  had  they  so 
wished,  to  do  good  easily  to  many ;  but  they  were  not  "  faith- 
"  ful  in  the  little." 

But  in  what  way  men  may  become  faithful,  the  Saviour 
Himself  next  taught  us :  and  I  will  explain  how.  A  certain 
Pharisee  besought  Him  to  eat  bread  with  him  on  the  sabbath 
day,  and  Christ  consented:  and  having  gone  there,  He  sat 
down  to  meat :  and  there  were  many  others  also  feasting  with 
them.  And  none  of  them  by  any  means  resembled  men  who 
possessed  nothing,  but,  on  the  contrary,  they  were  all  persons 
of  distinction,  and  great  haughtiness,  and  lovers  of  the  fore- 
most seats,  and  thirsting  after  vainglory,  being  clothed  as  it 
were  in  the  pride  of  wealth.  What  then  said  Christ  to  His 
inviter  ?  "  When  thou  makest  a  dinner  or  a  supper,  call  not  Luke  xW. 
"  thy  friends,  nor  thy  brethren,  neither  thy  kinsmen,  nor  thy  I2- 
"  rich  neighbours,  lest  they  also  invite  thee  again,  and  a  re- 
"  compense  be  made  thee.  But  when  thou  makest  a  feast,  call 
"  the  poor,  the  maimed,  the  lame,  and  the  blind.  And  thou 
"  shalt  be  blessed,  because  they  cannot  recompense  thee ;  for 
"  thou  shalt  be  recompensed  at  the  resurrection  of  the  just." 
This  then  I  think  is  a  man's  being  faithful  in  little,  that  he 
have  pity  upon  those  who  are  in  need,  and  distribute  assistance 
from  his  means  to  such  as  are  in  extreme  distress.  Bat  we, 
despising  a  way  thus  glorious  and  sure  of  reward,  choose  one 
dishonourable  and  without  reward,  by  treating  with  contempt 
those  who  are  in  utter  poverty,  and  refusing  even  sometimes 
to  admit  their  words  into  our  ears;  while,  on  the  other  hand, 
we  luxuriously  provide  a  costly  table,  either  for  friends  who 
live  in  pomp,  or  for  those  whose  habit  it  is  to  praise  and 
flatter,  making  our  bounty  an  occasion  for  indulging  our  love 
of  praise.  But  this  was  not  God's  purpose  in  permitting  us  to 
possess  wealth.     If  therefore  we  are  unfaithful  in  the  little,  by 

3U 


514  .COMMENTARY  UPON 

not  conforming  ourselves  to  the  will  of  God,  and  bestow  the  best 
portion  of  ourselves  upon  our  pleasures  and  our  boasts,  how  can 
we  receive  from  Him  that  which  is  true  ?  And  what  is  this  ? 
The  abundant  bestowal  of  those  divine  gifts  which  adorn  man's 
soul,  and  form  in  it  a  godlike  beauty.  This  is  the  spiritual 
wealth,  not  that  fattens  the  flesh,  which  is  held  by  death,  but 
rather  that  saves  the  soul,  and  makes  it  worthy  of  emulation, 
and  honourable  before  God,  and  that  wins  for  it  true  praises. 

It  is  our  duty  therefore  to  be  faithful  unto  God,  pure  in 
heart,  merciful  and  kind,  just  and  holy :  for  these  things  im- 
print in  us  the  outlines  of  the  divine  likeness,  and  perfect  us  as 
heirs  of  eternal  life.     And  this  then  is  that  which  is  true. 

And  that  this  is  the  purport  and  view  of  the  Saviour's  words, 
any  one  may  readily  learn  from  what  follows.  For  He  said, 
"  If  ye  have  not  been  faithful  in  that  which  is  another's,  who 
"will  give  you  that  which  is  your  own?"  And  again,  we 
say  that  which  is  another's  is  the  wealth  we  possess.  For  we 
were  not  born  with  riches,  but,  on  the  contrary,  naked ;  and 

iTim.vi. 7.  can  truly  affirm  in  the  words  of  Scripture,  "that  we  neither 
"  brought  anything  into  the  world,  nor  can  carry  anything 
"  out.     For  the  patient  Job  also  has  said  something  of  this 

Job  i.  ix.  kind:  "Naked  was  I  born  from  my  mother's  womb;  naked 
"  also  shall  I  go  onwards."  It  is  therefore  no  man's  own  by 
richt  of  nature  that  he  is  rich,  and  lives  in  abundant  wealth : 
but  it  is  a  thing  added  on  from  without,  and  is  a  chance  mat- 
ter ;  and  if  it  cease  and  perish,  it  in  no  respect  whatsoever 
harms  the  definitions  of  human  nature.  For  it  is  not  by 
virtue  of  our  being  rich  that  we  are  reasonable  beings,  and 
skilful  in  every  good  work  :  but  it  is  the  property  of  our  nature 
to  be  capable  of  these  things.  That  therefore,  as  I  said,  is 
another's  which  is  not  contained  in  the  definitions  of  our  nature, 
but,  on  the  contrary,  is  manifestly  added  to  us  from  without. 
But  it  is  our  own,  and  the  property  of  human  nature  to  be 
fitted  for  every  good  work :  for  as  the  blessed  Paul  writes, 

Eph.  ii.  10.  "  We  have  been  created  unto  good  works,  which  God  hath 
"  before  prepared,  that  we  should  walk  in  them." 

When  therefore  any  are  unfaithful  in  that  which  is  another's, 
in  those  things  namely,  which  are  added  unto  them  from  with- 
out, how  shall  they  receive  that  which  is  their  own?  How,  that 
is,  shall  they  be  made  partakers  of  the  good  things  which  God 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  515 

gives,  which  adorn  the  soul  of  man,  and  imprint  upon  it  a 
divine  beauty,  spiritually  formed  in  it  by  righteousness  and 
holiness,  and  those  upright  deeds  which  are  done  in  the  fear  of 
God. 

Let  such  of  us  then  as  possess  earthly  wealth  open  our 
hearts  to  those  who  are  in  need ;  let  us  shew  ourselves  faithful 
and  obedient  to  the  laws  of  God,  and  followers  of  our  Lord's 
will  in  those  things  which  are  from  without,  and  not  our  own, 
that  we  may  receive  that  which  is  our  own,  even  that  holy  and 
admirable  beauty  which  God  forms  in  the  souls  of  men,  fashion- 
ing them  like  unto  Himself,  according  to  what  we  originally 
were. 

And  that  it  is  a  thing  impossible  for  one  and  the  same  person 
to  divide  himself  between  contraries,  and  still  be  able  to  live 
blamelessly,  He  shews  by  saying,  "No  man  can  serve  two 
"  lords :  for  either  he  will  hate  the  one,  and  love  the  other, 
"  or  he  will  honour  the  one,  and  despise  the  other."  And  this 
indeed  is  a  plain  and  evident  example,  and  very  suitable  for 
the  elucidation  of  the  subject  before  us.  For  that  which 
follows  is,  so  to  speak,  the  conclusion  of  the  whole  argu- 
ment :  "  for  ye  cannot  serve  God  and  mammon."  For  if,  He 
says,  a  man  be  a  slave  of  two  masters,  of  diverse  and  contrary 
wills,  and  whose  minds  are  irreconcilable  with  one  another, 
how  can  he  please  them  both  ?  For  being  divided  in 
endeavouring  to  do  that  which  each  one  approves,  he  is  in 
opposition  to  the  will  of  both :  and  so  the  same  person  must 
inevitably  appear  bad  and  good.  If  therefore,  He  says,  he 
determine  to  be  true  to  the  one,  he  will  hate  the  other,  and  set 
him  of  course  at  nought.  It  is  not  therefore  possible  to  serve 
God  and  mammon.  For  the  unrighteous  mammon,  by  which 
wealth  is  signified,  is  a  thing  given  up  to  voluptuousness,  and 
liable  to  every  reproach,  engendering  boasting,  and  the  love  of 
pleasure,  making  men  stiffnecked,  the  friends  of  the  wicked, 
and  contemptuous :  yea,  what  base  vice  doth  it  not  produce  in 
them  that  possess  it  ? 

But  the  goodwill  of  God  renders  men  gentle,  and  quiet,  and 
lowly  in  their  thoughts;  longsuffering,  and  merciful,  and  of 
exemplary  patience,  not  loving  lucre,  nor  desirous  of  wealth-, 
content  with  food  only  and  raiment,  and  especially  fleeing  from 
"  the  love  of  money,  which  is  the  root  of  all  evils :"  joyfully  JjJSm*  n' 

3  U3 


516  COMMENTARY  UPON 

undertaking  toils  for  piety's  sake ;  fleeing  from  the  love  of 
pleasure,  and  earnestly  shunning  all  feeling  of  wearisomeness 
in  good  works,  while  constantly  they  value,  as  that  which  wins 
them  reward,  the  endeavour  to  live  uprightly,  and  the  practice 
of  all  soberness.  This  is  that  which  is  our  own,  and  the  true. 
This  God  will  bestow  on  those  who  love  poverty,  and  know  how 
to  distribute  to  those  who  are  in  need  that  which  is  another's, 
and  comes  from  without,  even  their  wealth,  which  also  has  the 
name  of  mammon. 

May  it  then  be  far  from  the  mind  of  each  of  us  to  be  its 
slaves,  that  so  we  may  freely  and  without  hindrance  bow  the 
neck  of  our  mind  to  Christ  the  Saviour  of  us  all ;  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion 
with  the  Holv  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  517 


SERMON    CX. 

And  the  Pharisees,  who  were  lovers  of  money,  heard  all  these  C.  xvi.  14- 
things,  and  they  derided  Him.  And  He  said  unto  them,  Ye 
are  they  who  justify  yourselves  before  men,  but  God  know- 
eth  your  hearts :  for  that  which  is  high  among  men,  is  an 
abomination  before  God.  The  law  and  the  prophets  until  KVPiov  B- 
John :  thenceforth  the  kingdom  of  God  is  preached,  and 
every  one  taketh  it  by  force.  And  it  is  easier  for  heaven 
and  earth  to  pass  away,  than  for  one  point u  of  the  law  to 
fail. 

THE  love  of  money,  ray  brethren,  is  a  most  wicked  passion, 
and  not  easy  to  abandon.  For  when  Satan  has  planted  this 
malady  in  a  man's  soul,  he  next  proceeds  to  blind  him,  nor 
does  he  permit  him  to  listen  to  the  words  of  exhortation,  lest 
there  be  found  for  us  a  wav  of  healing:,  able  to  save  from 
misery  those  who  are  ensnared  thereby.  And  observe  again, 
I  pray,  how  true  my  words  upon  this  subject  are  from  the 
instance  even  of  the  Pharisees.  For  they  were  lovers  of  riches, 
and  enamoured  of  gain,  and  regarded  a  bare  sufficiencv  with 
contempt.  For  even,  so  to  speak,  throughout  the  whole  of  the 
divinely  inspired  Scripture,  one  may  see  them  blamed  on  this 
very  account.  For  it  is  said  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah  to  the 
mother  of  the  Jews,  I  mean,  Jerusalem,  "  Thy  princes  are  Is.  i.  23. 
"  rebellious,  the  partners  of  thieves :  loving  bribes,  pursuing 
"  after  reward  :  they  judge  not  the  fatherless,  neither  do  they 
"  regard  the  widow's  suit."  And  the  prophet  Habbakuk  also 
said,  "  How  long,  0  Lord,  shall  I  cry  unto  thee,  and  Thou  wilt  Hab.  i.  2. 
"  not  hear  ?  and  shout  unto  Thee,  being  oppressed,  and  Thou 
"  wilt  not  deliver?  Judgment  is  before  me,  and  the  judge  hath 
"  taken  a  bribe :  therefore  is  the  law  of  none  avail,  and  judg- 
"  ment  cometh  not  forth  unto  completion :  for  the  wicked  pre- 
"  vaileth  over  the  righteous,  therefore  doth  judgment  come 
"  forth  perverted."  For  as  being  lovers,  as  I  said,  of  lucre, 
they  repeatedly  gave  judgment  on  the  matters  before  them, 

u  By  ^1;JB»  apex,  Gr.  iccpaia,  is     Hebrew    letter,    namely,    the   *  in 
meant  the   smallest   portion  of  a     \,  to,  b,  Sec. 


518  COMMENTARY  UPON 

not  according  to  what  was  agreeable  to  the  laws  of  God,  but, 

on  the  contrary,  iniquitously,  and  in  opposition  to  God's  will. 

Moreover,  the  Saviour  Himself  rebuked  them,  thus  saying, 

Mac.  xxiii.  "  Woe  unto  you,  Scribes  and  Pharisees,  hypocrites  :  who  tithe 

*3"  "  anise,  and  mint,  and  cummin ;  and  have  omitted  the  weightier 

"  matters  of  the  law,  judgment,  mercy  and  faith."     For  as  the 

law  had  set  apart  for  them  the  right  of  receiving  tithes  of  every 

one,  they  extended  the  exactness  of  the  search  after  them 

down  to  the  most  insignificant  vegetables,  while  they  made  but 

slight  account  of  the  weightier  matters  of  the  law,  that  is,  of 

those  commandments  which  were  of  necessary  obligation  and 

for  men's  good. 

"  Because  therefore  the  Pharisees,  it  says,  were  lovers  of 
"  money,  they  derided  Jesus,"  for  directing  them  by  His  salu- 
tary doctrines  to  a  praiseworthy  course  of  conduct,  and  ren- 
dering them  desirous  of  saintly  glories.  For  it  was  their  duty, 
He  tells  them,  to  sell  their  possessions,  and  make  distribution 
to  the  poor ;  so  would  they  possess  in  heaven  a  treasure  that 
could  not  be  plundered,  and  purses  that  could  not  be  harmed, 
and  wealth  that  would  not  have  to  be  abandoned.  And  why  then 
did  they  deride  Him  ?  For  certainly  the  doctrine  was  salutary, 
a  pathway  of  hope  in  things  to  come,  and  a  door  leading  unto 
the  life  incorruptible :  for  they  were  being  taught  by  Him  the 
manners  of  true  prosperity,  and  learning  how  they  must  seize 
the  crown  of  the  heavenly  calling  ;  how  too  they  might  become 
partakers  with  the  saints,  and  children  of  the  city  that  is  above, 
the  Jerusalem  which  is  in  heaven,  and  which  is  truly  free,  and 
Gal.  iv.  16.  the  mother  of  the  free.  For  as  the  blessed  Paul  writes,  "  Je- 
"  rusalem,  which  is  our  mother  and  is  above,  is  free."  And 
why  then  did  they  mock  Him  ? 

Let  us  see  the  cause  of  their  wickedness.  The  passion  of 
avarice  had  possession  of  their  heart,  and  their  mind  being 
tyrannized  over  by  it  was  in  subjection  even  against  its  will ; 
humbled  under  the  power  of  wickedness,  and  bound  as  it  were 
by  inevitable  bonds.  For  so  the  writer  of  Proverbs  somewhere 
Prov.v.  12.  says,  "that  every  man  is  bound  by  the  cords  of  his  sins." 
For  as  the  more  virulent  diseases  of  the  body  do  not  admit  of 
the  remedies  of  medicine,  and  flee  away  as  it  were  from  heal- 
ing ;  and  if  any  one  apply  that  which  is  naturally  adapted  to 
do  good,  are  irritated  the  more,  and  grow  angry,  however 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  519 

gently  treated  by  the  art :  so  also  those  passions  to  which  the 
souls  of  men  are  liable,  are  sometimes  obdurate,  and  refuse  to 
listen  to  admonition,  and  will  not  hear  a  single  word  that  sum- 
mons them  to  depart  from  evil,  and  directs  them  into  a  better 
course.  And  as  horses  that  are  hard-mouthed  and  unmanage- 
able, and  excessively  spirited  will  not  obey  the  reins ;  so  also 
the  mind  of  man  when  under  the  influence  of  passion,  and 
thorouo-b.lv  inclined  to  turn  aside  unto  evil,  is  disobedient  and 
intractable,  and  rejects  with  hatred  the  being  healed. 

When  therefore  the  Saviour  of  all  had  expended  upon  them 
many  words,  but  saw  that  they  would  not  change  from  their 
crafty  purposes  and  passions,  but  preferred  rather  to  abide  in 
their  innate  folly,  He  betakes  Himself  at  leugth  to  sterner  re- 
proofs, the  very  occasion  calling  them  thereto.  He  shews  there- 
fore that  they  are  hypocrites,  and  liers  in  wait  among  the  al- 
tarsx,  and  eager  after  the  glory  due  to  righteous  and  good  men, 
without  being  such  in  reality :  not  being  in  earnest  in  meriting 
the  approval  of  God,  but  hunting  on  the  contrary  eagerly  after 
the  honours  which  come  from  men.  He  said  therefore,  "Ye  are 
"  they  which  justify  yourselves  before  men  ;  but  God  knoweth 
"  your  hearts:  for  that  which  is  high  among  men,  is  an  abomi- 
"  nation  before  God."  This  He  is  found  also  in  another  place 
saying  unto  them  ;  "  How  can  ye  believe,  who  receive  honour  John  v.  44. 
"  one  of  another,  and  seek  not  the  honour  that  cometh  from 
"  the  one  God."  For  the  God  of  all  crowns  with  praises  unto 
righteousness  those  who  are  truly  good :  but  those  who  love 
not  virtue,  but  are  hypocrites,  steal  perchance  by  their  own 
votes  solely  the  reputation  of  being  honourable.  But  no  one, 
0  worthy  sirs,  some  perchance  may  say,  crowns  himself;  and 
the  man  is  justly  ridiculed,  who  devises  praises  for  himself: 
for  it  is  written,  "  Let  thy  neighbour  praise  thee,  and  not  thy  Prov.xxvii. 
"  own  mouth  :  a  stranger,  and  not  thy  own  lips."  But  though  "' 
hypocrites  may  be  able  possibly  to  remain  undetected,  and 
seize  the  honours  which  men  bestow,  "  yet  God,  He  says, 

x  In  the  Greek  /3ayioXdxov? :  i.  e.  "  gulosos  victimarum  appetitores," 

persons  capable  of  committing  any  Just  above  be  translates   a-Kefipara 

meanness  for  gain ;  the  Syriac  trans-  by  cogitationes,  but  its  employment 

lation  has  at  least  the  merit  of  being  in  many  other  places  justifies  the 

literal,  which  Mai's  wants,  though  sense    given    it    in    the   Syriac   of 

equally  curious;  for  he  renders  it  ' tricks,'  'artifices.' 


520  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  knoweth  vour  hearts."  The  Jud^e  cannot  be  deceived  ;  He 
seeth  the  depth  of  our  mind  ;  He  knoweth  who  is  the  true 
combatant,  and  who  steals  by  fraud  the  honour  which  an- 
other truly  deserves  :  and  while  He  honoureth  him  who  is 
Ps.  liii.  5.  truly  just,  He  "  scattereth  the  bones  of  the  men-pleasers," 
according  to  the  Psalmist's  expression.  For  the  desire  of 
pleasing  men  is  constantly,  so  to  speak,  the  nurse,  and  head, 
and  root  of  that  accursed  pride  which  is  hated  alike  by  God 
and  men.  For  he  who  is  the  victim  of  this  passion  lusteth 
after  honour  and  praise  :  and  this  is  hateful  unto  God:  for  He 
hateth  the  proud,  but  acceptcth  and  sheweth  mercy  to  him 
who  loveth  not  glory,  and  is  lowly  in  mind. 

And  when  Christ  had  crushed  them  with  these  reproofs  He 
added  thereto  yet  something  more;  even  that  which  they  were 
about  to  suffer  by  reason  of  their  disobedience  and  wickedness; 
"  For  the  law,  He  says,  and  the  prophets  until  John  :  thence- 
"  forth  the  kingdom  of  God  is  preached,  and  every  one  taketh 
"  it  by  force.  And  it  is  easier  for  heaven  and  earth  to  pass 
"  away,  than  for  one  point  of  the  law  to  fall."  Again  does  He 
conceal  in  obscurity  that  which  would  give  them  pain,  and  veils, 
so  to  speak,  the  prediction  of  those  things  that  were  about  to 
happen  to  all  who  would  not  obey  Him.  For  Moses,  He 
says,  and  with  him  the  company  of  the  holy  prophets,  before 
announced  the  import  of  My  mystery  to  the  inhabitants  of 
earth :  both  the  law  declaring  by  shadows  and  types  that  to 
save  the  world  I  should  even  endure  the  death  of  the  flesh, 
and  abolish  corruption  by  rising  from  the  dead ;  and  the  pro- 
phets also  speaking  words  of  the  same  import  as  the  writings  of 
Moses.  It  is  nothing  strange  therefore,  He  says,  or  that  was 
not  known  before,  that  ye  spurn  My  words,  and  despise  every- 
thing that  would  avail  for  your  good.  For  the  word  of  pro- 
phecy concerning  Me,  and  you,  extends  until  the  holy  Baptist 
Johry  but  "from  the  days  of  John,  the  kingdom  of  heaven  is 
"  preached,  and  every  one  taketh  it  by  force."  And  by  the 
kingdom  of  heaven  He  here  means  justification  by  faith,  the 
washing  away  of  sin  by  holy  baptism,  sanctificatiou  by  the 
Spirit,  worshipping  in  the  Spirit,  the  service  that  is  superior  to 
shadows  and  types,  the  honour  of  the  adoption  of  sons,  and 
the  hope  of  the  glory  about  to  be  given  to  the  saints. 

The  kingdom  of  heaven  therefore,  He  says,  is  preached,  for 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  521 

the  Baptist  has  stood  forth  in  the  midst  saying,  "  Prepare  ye  Luke  Hi.  4. 

*4  the  way  of  the  Lord:"  and  has  shewn,  that  lo!  He  is  already 

near,  and  as  it  were  within  the  doors,  even  the  true  Lamb  of 

God,  Who  beareth  the  sin  of  the  world.    Whosoever  therefore 

is  a  hearer  and  lover  of  the  sacred  message  taketh  it  by  force  : 

by  which  is  meant,  that  he  uses  all  his  earnestness  and  all  his 

strength  in  his  desire  to  enter  within  the  hope.  For,  as  He  saith 

in  another  place,  "  The  kingdom  of  heaven  is  taken  by  violence  Mat.xi.  12. 

"  and  the  violent  seize  upon  it." 

"  And  it  is  easier,  He  says,  for  heaven  and  earth  to  pass 
"  away,  before  the  clay  that  God  commandeth  this  to  be,  than 
"  for  one  point  of  the  law  to  fall."  Now  sometimes  by  the 
word  law  He  signifies  collectively  the  whole  divinely  inspired 
Scripture,  the  writings,  that  is,  of  Moses  and  the  prophets. 
What  then  did  it  foretell,  which  must  also  necessarily  reach 
its  accomplishment  ?  It  foretold,  that  by  reason  of  their  exces- 
sive unbelief  and  immorality,  Israel  would  fall  from  being  of 
God's  family,  even  though  he  be  the  eldest  son  :  and  that 
Jerusalem  would  be  thrust  away  from  His  indulgence  and  His 
love.  For  so  He  spake  concerning  it  by  the  voice  of  Jere- 
miah Y,  "Behold!  I  will  hedge  up  her  way  with  stakes,  and  Hoj.  U. 6. 
"  block  up  her  ways,  and  she  shall  not  find  her  path."  For 
the  way  of  those  who  fear  God  is  straight,  nor  is  there  any 
steep  part  therein,  but  all  is  level  and  well  beaten.  But  the 
path  of  the  mother  of  the  Jews  is  hedged  up  with  stakes,  in 
that  the  way  of  piety  has  been  rendered  impassable  for  them. 

And  that  they  were  darkened  in  mind,  and  did  not  accept 
the  light  of  the  glory  of  Christ,  —for  they  knew  Him  not; — He 
before  proclaimed  saying  unto  the  multitude  of  the  Jews ;  "  I  Hos.  iv.  5. 
"  have  likened  thy  mother  unto  the  night.  My  people  is  like 
"  unto  one  that  hath  no  knowledge.  Because  thou  hast  re- 
"  jected  knowledge,  therefore  will  I  reject  thee  from  being  My 
"  priest.  And  thou  hast  forgotten  the  law  of  thy  God,  and  I 
"  will  forget  thy  children."  Thou  hearest  that  the  multitude 
of  the  disobedient  are  very  justly  compared  unto  darkness  and 
the  night :  for  the  intellectual  day  star,  and  the  Sun  of  right- 

y  Mai  reads  here  'Qo-rjf  correctly,  in  the  N.  T.  and  the  fathers,  than 
but  probably  it  is  a  later  correction,  for  the  minor  prophets  to  be  quoted 
for  nothing  is  more  common  both     under  Jeremiah's  name. 

3  x 


522  COMMENTARY  UPON 

eousness  arises  and  shines  in  the  mind  and  heart  of  those  who 
believe :  but  the  mind  of  those  who  treat  with  contumely  a 
grace  so  splendid  and  worthy  of  our  possessing,  is  blackened  in 
darkness,  and  intellectual  gloom.  And  thus  much  then  con- 
cerning those  things  which  the  company  of  the  holy  prophets 
before  announced  respecting  Israel. 

But  unto  those  who  have  acknowledged  the  revelation  of  the 
glory  of  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all,  God  the  Father  promised  by 
Zech.  x.tj.  one  of  the  holy  prophets,  thus  saying ;  "  And  I  will  strengthen 
"  them  in  the  Lord  their  God,  and  in  the  name  of  their  God 
"  they  shall  be  established2. "  And  in  accordance  with  this 
the  Psalmist  also  says  in  the  Spirit  unto  our  Lord  Jesus 
Ps.  ixxxix.  Christ :  "  They  shall  walk,  0  Lord,  in  the  light  of  Thy  coun- 
"  tenance  :  and  in  Thy  Name  shall  they  rejoice  all  the  day. 
"  For  thou  arc  the  glory  of  their  strength,  and  in  Thy  right- 
"  eousness  shall  our  horn  be  exalted."  For  we  glory  in 
Christ,  and  as  being  justified  by  Him  are  exalted,  having  cast 
off  the  abasement  of  sin,  and  living;  in  the  excellence  of  everv 
virtue,  we  have  been  enriched  also  with  the  exact  and  unadul- 
terate  knowledge  of  the  doctrines  of  truth.  For  this  God  pro- 
Is.  xlii.  16.  raised  us  where  He  says  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  "  And  I  will 
"  lead  the  blind  by  a  way  that  they  know  not :  and  in  paths 
"  which  they  have  not  known  I  will  make  them  walk.  I  will 
"  make  their  darkness  to  be  light,  and  all  their  steep  places  to 
"  be  smooth."  For  we,  who  were  once  blind,  have  been  en- 
lightened, and  travel  in  an  unwonted  pathway  of  righteousness; 
while  those  who  boasted  of  the  law  as  their  schoolmaster,  have 
Johnxii.40.  become  darkened.  For  as  Christ  Himself  said*;  "Darkness 
'  "  hath  blinded  their  eyes:  and  blindness  in  part  hath  happened 
"  unto  Israel,  that  seeing  they  might  not  see,  and  hearing  they 
might  not  hear."  For  they  sinned  against  the  holy  prophets  ; 
and  even  ventured  to  lift  their  hands  against  Him  Who  was 
calling  them  to  salvation  and  life.  Even  though  therefore,  He 
says,  ye  be  disobedient,  and  though  ye  foolishly  deride  My 
words,  which  would  guide  you  in  the  attainment  of  that  which 
is  useful  and  becoming,  yet  this  conduct,  He  says,  was  not 

r  Tliere  is  a  strange  diversity  raKavx^aovrai,  they  shall  glory  . 
here  in  the  readings;  Mai  has  {map-  whereas  the  Syriac  must  have  read 
£ou(7t   they  shall  he ;   the  Sept.   kq-      KaTatrrqdTjaovrai. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  523 

unforeknown,  but  already  had  been  declared  by  the  law  and 
the  prophets.  And  it  is  a  thing  impossible  for  the  words  of 
God  to  fail  of  their  accomplishment :  for  He'  declared  that 
which  He  knew  must  altogether  and  necessarily  happen. 

Unbelief  therefore  brings  upon  men  destruction,  as  also  does 
the  stretching  out  of  the  haughty  neck  of  the  mind  from  exces- 
sive pride  against  Christ  the  Saviour  of  us  all ;  by  Whom  and 
with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with 
the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


3x2 


524 


COMMENTARY   UPON 


SERMON   CXI. 


C.  xvi.  19- 
3»- 

Til  %v  bv.  A. 

hs  Gs. 

om  twv  \!/i- 
\iuiV  BT. 


i-Jip3.K(  S. 


add.  tjtir)  S. 

CLire\a0ts 
<rv  Br.   om. 

av  GST. 
add.  avrov 
S. 

w5f  BTS. 
55«  y. 
iuB.  M 
GSTs. 
om.  oi  B. 
om  oZv  S. 
om.  yap  S. 


\tyti  8t 
ai/roj  ST. 
om.  St  B. 
om.  auTci 
Gj. 


i  Chron.  i. 

10. 


i?<^  there  was  a  certain  rich  man,  and  lie  was  clothed  in 
purple  and  fine  linen,  feasting  sumptuously  every  day. 
And  a  certain  poor  man  whose  name  was  Lazarus  had 
been  laid  at  his  gate,  full  of  sores ;  and  desiring  to  satisfy 
himself  with  the  crumbs  which  fell  from  the  rich  man's 
table  :  moreover  the  dogs  came  and  licked  his  sores.  And 
it  came  to  pass  that  the  poor  man  died,  and  the  angels 
carried  him  to  Abrahams  bosom.  And  the  rich  man  also 
died,  and  was  buried.  And  in  Hades,  having  lifted  up 
his  eyes,  being  in  torment,  he  saw  Abraham  afar  off,  and 
Lazarus  in  his  bosom.  And  he  cried  out  and  said,  Father 
Abraham,  have  mercy  on  me,  and  send  Lazarus,  that  he 
may  dip  the  tip  of  his  finger  in  water,  and  cool  my  tongue: 
for  behold  !  I  am  tormented  in  this  fame.  But  Abraham 
said,  Son,  remember  that  thou  receivedst  thy  good  things  in 
thy  life  time;  and  Lazarus  in  like  manner  his  evil  things: 
but  now  he  is  comforted  here,  and  thou  art  tormented. 
And  besides  all  this,  between  us  and  you  a  great  gulf  is 
placed,  so  that  those  who  would  pass  f-om  hence  to  you 
cannot ;  nor  can  those  pass  who  would  come  from  thence 
unto  us.  And  he  sdid,  I  pray  thee,  father,  to  send  him  to 
my  father's  house:  I  have  five  brethren ;  that  he  may  tes- 
tify u7ito  them,  lest  they  also  come  unto  this  place  of  tor- 
ment. But  Abraham  said  unto  him,  They  have  Moses  and 
the  prophets:  let  them  hear  them.  But  he  said,  Nay, 
father  Abraham  :  but  if  one  go  unto  them  from  the  dead 
they  will  repent.  But  he  said  unto  him,  If  they  hear  not 
Moses  and  the  prophets,  they  ivould  not  be  persuaded  even 
though  one  rose  from  the  dead. 

WHEN  Solomon  was  offering  up  prayers  in  behalf  of  his 
kingdom,  he  somewhere  said  unto  God,  "  Give  me  wisdom, 
"  even  that  which  abideth  by  Thy  throne.'"  And  God  praised 
him  for  earnestly  desiring  such  blessings  as  these  ;  for  there 
is  nothing  better  for  men  than  sacred  gifts  :  of  which  one 
worthy  of  our  acceptance,  and  that  perfects  in  blessedness 
those  who  have  been  counted  worthy  of  it,  is  the  wisdom  which 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  525 

God  bestows.     For  it  is  the  sight  of  the  mind  and  heart,  and 
the  knowledge  of  every  good  and  profitable  thing. 

And  it  is  our  duty  also  to  be  enamoured  of  such  gifts  as 
these :  that  being  counted  worthy  thereof  we  may  rightly  and 
without  error  approach  the  Saviour's  words.  For  this  is 
useful  for  us  unto  spiritual  improvement,  and  leads  unto  a 
praiseworthy  and  blameless  life.  Come  therefore,  that  being 
made  partakers  of  the  wisdom  which  is  from  above,  we  may 
examine  the  meaning  of  the  parable  now  set  before  us. 

It  is  necessary  however,  I  think,  in  the  first  place  to  mention, 
what  was  the  occasion  which  led  to  His  speaking  of  these 
things ;  or  what  Christ  intended  to  illustrate  in  so  excellently 
sketching  and  describing  the  parable  set  before  us.  The 
Saviour  therefore  was  perfecting  us  in  the  art  of  well-doing, 
and  commanding  us  to  walk  uprightly  in  every  good  work, 
and  to  be  in  earnest  in  adorning  ourselves  with  the  glories 
which  arise  from  virtuous  conduct.  For  He  would  have  us  be 
lovers  one  of  another,  and  ready  to  communicate :  prompt  to 
give,  and  merciful,  and  careful  of  shewing  love  to  the  poor, 
and  manfully  persisting  in  the  diligent  discharge  of  this  duty. 
And  He  especially  admonished  the  rich  in  this  world  to  be 
careful  in  so  doing,  and  to  guide  them  into  the  way  which  ' 
altogether  becometh  the  saints,  He  said,  "  Sell  your  possessions,  Luke  xii. 
"  and  give  alms  :  make  you  purses  that  grow  not  old  ;  a  trea-  33' 
"  sure  that  faileth  not  for  ever  in  heaven."  Now  the  com- 
mandment indeed  is  beautiful,  and  good,  and  salutarv :  but  it 
did  not  escape  His  knowledge,  that  it  is  impossible  for  the 
majority  to  practise  it.  For  the  mind  of  man  has  ever  been, 
so  to  speak,  infirm  in  the  discharge  of  those  duties  which 
are  arduous  and  difficult :  and  to  abandon  wealth  and  posses- 
sions and  the  enjoyment  which  they  give,  is  not  a  thing  very 
acceptable  to  any,  inasmuch  as  the  mind  is  early  clothed  and 
entangled,  as  it  were,  in  indissoluble  cords,  which  bind  it  to  the 
desire  of  pleasure. 

As  being  therefore  good  and  loving  unto  men,  He  has  pro- 
vided for  them  a  special  kind  of  help,  lest  eternal  and  never- 
ending  poverty  should  follow  upon  wealth  here,  and  everlasting 
torment  succeed  to  the  pleasures  of  the  present  time.  "  For  Lukexvi.9. 
"  make  for  yourselves  friends,  He  says,  of  the  unrighteous 
"  mammon  :  that  when  it  has  failed,  they  may  receive  you  into 


526  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  eternal  tabernacles/'  And  this  then  is  the  advice  of  One 
providing  them  with  something  which  they  can  do.  For  if, 
He  says,  ye  cannot  be  persuaded  to  give  up  this  pleasure- 
loving  wealth,  and  to  sell  your  possessions,  and  make  distri- 
bution to  those  who  are  in  need,  at  least  be  diligent  in  the 
practice  of  inferior  virtues."  "  Make  for  yourselves  friends  of 
"  the  unrighteous  mammon  :"  that  is,  do  not  consider  your 
riches  as  belonging  to  yourselves  alone ;  open  wide  your  hand 
to  those  who  are  in  need :  assist  those  in  poverty  and  pain  : 
comfort  those  who  have  fallen  into  extreme  distress :  condole 
with  those  who  are  in  sorrow,  or  oppressed  with  bodily  mala- 
dies, and  the  want  of  necessaries :  and  comfort  also  the  saints 
who  embrace  a  voluntary  poverty  that  they  may  serve  God 
without  distraction.  Nor  shall  your  so  doing  be  unrewarded. 
For  when  your  earthly  wealth  abandons  you,  as  ye  reach 
the  end  of  your  life,  then  shall  they  make  you  partakers  of 
their  hope,  and  of  the  consolation  given  them  by  God.  For 
He  being  good  and  kind  to  man,  will  lovingly  and  bountifully 
refresh  those  who  have  laboured  in  this  world:  and  more  espe- 
cially such  as  have  wisely  and  humbly  and  soberly  borne  the 
heavy  burden  of  poverty.  And  somewhat  similar  advice  the 
wise  Paul  also  gives  to  those  who  live  in  wealth  and  abundance 
i  Cor.  viii.  respecting  those  in  misery  :  "  Your  abundance  shall  be  to 
"  supply  their  falling  short :  in  order  that  also  their  abun- 
"  dance  may  supply  your  falling  short."  But  this  is  the 
advice  of  one  who  enjoins  that  simply  which  Christ  spake ; 
"  Make  to  yourselves  friends  of  the  unrighteous  mammon  :" 
so  that  the  commandment  is  well  worthy-  of  our  admiration. 

And  that  our  refusal  so  to  act  will  cause  our  ruin,  and  bring 
us  down  to  the  inextinguishable  flame,  and  to  an  unavailing 
remorse,  He  plainly  shews  by  weaving  for  us  the  present  para- 
ble. "  For  there  was  a  certain  rich  man,  He  says,  and  he  was 
"  clothed  in  purple  and  fine  linen,  feasting  sumptuously  every 
"  day.  And  a  certain  poor  man  whose  name  was  Lazarus  had 
"  been  cast  down  at  his  gate,  full  of  sores." 

Here  observe,  I  pray,  and  mark  accurately  the  Saviour's 

words.     For  while  it  was  easy  to  have  said,  "  That  there  was 

"  such  and  such  a  rich  man  whoever  it  might  bea,"  He  does 

not  say  so,  but  simply  calls  him  a  rich  man :  while  He  men- 

.*  The  Catenist  adds,  "as  was  done  in  the  case  of  Job." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  527 

tions  the  poor  man  by  name.     What  conclusion  therefore  must 

we  draw?  That  the  rich  man  as  being  uncom passionate  was 

nameless  in  God's  presence:  for  He  has  somewhere  said  by  the 

voice  of  the  Psalmist,  concerning  those  who  do  not  fear  Him, 

"  I  will  not  make  mention  of  their  names  with  My  lips :"  while,  Ps.  xvi.  4. 

as  I  said,  the  poor  man  is  mentioned  by  name  by  the  tongue 

of  God. 

But  let  us  look  at  the  pride  of  the  rich  man  puffed  up  for 
things  of  no  real  importance  ;  "  he  was  clothed,  it  says,  in 
"  purple  and  fine  linen,"  that  is,  his  study  was  to  deck  himself 
in  beautiful  attire,  so  that  his  raiment  was  of  great  priee,  and 
he  lived  in  never-ceasing  banquetings  ;  for  such  is  the  meaning 
of  his  feasting  every  day:  besides  which  it  adds  that  he  feasted 
sumptuously,  that  is,  prodigally.  All  the  luxury  therefore  of 
that  rich  man  consisted  in  things  of  this  sort:  in  clothing  clean, 
delicate,  and  embroidered  with  linen,  and  dyed  with  purple,  so 
as  to  gratify  the  eyes  of  beholders.  And  what  is  the  result  1 
Differing  but  little  from  the  figures  in  statuary  and  painting, 
the  rich  man  is  indeed  admired  by  those  who  are  destitute  of 
sense,  but  his  heart  is  full  of  pride  and  haughtiness :  he  has 
high  thoughts  of  himself  and  is  boastful,  and  while  there  is 
nothing  of  excellence  in  his  mind,  he  makes  variously  coloured 
hues  a  reason  for  his  empty  pride.  His  delight  is  in  expensive 
banquets ;  in  music  and  revellings ;  he  has  numerous  cooks, 
who  labour  to  provoke  gluttony  by  carefully  prepared  meats  : 
his  cupbearers  are  beautifully  attired;  he  has  singing  men  and 
singing  women,  and  the  voices  of  flatterers.  Such  were  the 
things  in  which  the  rich  man  lived ;  for  the  disciple  of  Christ 
certifies  us.  saving,  "  that  all  that  is  in  the  world  is  the  lust  of  i  John  ii. 
"  the  flesh,  and  the  lust  of  the  eyes,  and  the  pride  of  the  l 
"  world." 

Meanwhile  Lazarus,  bound  fast  by  sickness  and  poverty,  was 
cast  down,  He  says,  at  his  gate.  For  the  rich  man  dwelt  in 
lofty  halls,  and  spacious  mansions  nobly  built:  whereas  the  poor 
man  was  not  so  much  laid  as  cast  down,  thrown  there  in 
neglect,  and  not  deemed  worthy  of  any  account.  Cut  off  from 
compassion  and  care,  he  would  fain,  to  satisfy  his  hunger,  have 
gathered  the  worthless  morsels  that  fell  from  the  rich  man's 
table0.     He  was  tormented  moreover  by  a  severe  and  incu- 

b  The  following  passage  is  found  neither  by  the  principal  MS.  nor 
in  MS.  14,725,  but  is  acknowledged     the  Greek;  besides  the  late  date  of 


528 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


rable  malady  ;  "  Yea,  even  the  dogs,  it  says,  licked  his  sores," 
and  that,  as  it  seems,  not  to  injure  him,  but  rather,  so  to  speak, 
as  sympathizing  with  him,  and  tending  him  :  for  with  their 
tongues  they  allay  their  own  sufferings,  removing  with  them 
that  which  pains  them,  and  gently  soothing  the  sore. 

But  the  rich  man  was  more  cruel  than  the  beasts ;  for  he 
felt  neither  sympathy  for  him  nor  compassion  ;  but  was  full  of 
all  mercilessness.  And  what  the  result  was,  the  outline  of  the 
parable  teaches  us  in  what  follows  •  but  it  is  too  long  to  tell  it 
now.  For  lest  my  discourse  should  prove  more  than  suffi- 
cient for  my  hearers,  and  a  fatigue  beyond  due  measure  to  him 
who  speaks,  stopping  now  from  a  due  regard  for  the  good  both 
of  myself  and  you,  I  will  speak  to  you  again  upon  these  things 
at  our  next  meeting,  if  Christ  our  common  Saviour  grant  me 
the  ability  so  to  do :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for 
ever  and  ever,  Amenc. 


the  MS.,  which  is  on  paper  of  the 
thirteenth  century,  I  have  little 
douht  of  its  spuriousness,  from, 
first,  its  extremely  rhetorical  style ; 
secondly,  the  strangeness  of  several 
of  its  words  :  and  thirdly,  the  diffi- 
culties in  its  grammar.  .  It  is  how- 
ever as  follows ; 

"  He  desired  verily  to  satisfy  him- 
self with  the  morsels  which  re- 
mained over  from  the  rich  man's 
table,  and  nu  one  gave  unto  him. 
O  the  meanness  of  life!  For  the 
rich  man  was  set  in  manifold  en- 
joyments, and,  the  poor  man  had 
nothing,  and  was  withering  in  the 
woe  of  poverty :  and  from  the  ex- 
cessiveness  of  his  want  his  person 
was  exposed  to  the  hailstones.  He 
had  no  lands  nor  cornfields  to 
bring  him  increase :  he  had  no 
vineyards  nor  trees  to  bear  him 
fruits,  but  was  cast  down,  exposed 
to  the  sun,  and  day  and  night  his 
couch  was  the  dunghill.  Poor  La- 
zarus was  cast  down  at  the  rich 
man's  door  :  he  was  not  cast  down 
at  a  distance,  but  close  by,  lest,  were 


he  removed  far  away,  some  excuse 
might  be  found  for  the  rich  man's 
cruelty." 

c  Of  the  extracts  gathered  by  Mai, 
thefirst  is  theonlyone  not  recognised 
by  the  Syriac.  It  starts  the  question, 
whether  this  parable,  expressly  men- 
tioning Lazarus  by  name,  and 
thereby  giving  some  colour  to  the 
tradition,  that  he  was  an  actual  per- 
son, may  he  taken  as  a  proof,  that 
the  retribution  of  men's  good  or 
evil  deeds  take3  place  immediately 
after  death.  This  Cyril  answers  in 
the  negative,  shewing  from  Scrip- 
ture that  the  judgment  does  not 
take  place  till  after  the.  resurrection. 
This  Mai  says  requires  "  a  some- 
"  what  more  accurate  explanation 
"  on  account  of  the  fatal  error  of 
"  the  Greeks,  that  the  reward  of 
"  human  actions  is  delayed  until 
"  after  the  resurrection."  But  his 
explanation  is  in  fact  an  attempt  at 
a  refutation  of  S.  Cyril's  doctrine  : 
for  the  extract  really  is  S.  Cyril's, 
being  the  sixteenth  chapter  against 
the  Anthropomorphitae. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  529 


SERMON   CXIL    ' 

The  same  subject  continued. 

THE  blessed  prophet  Isaiah  has  somewhere  introduced  those  c.  xvi.  i$- 
who  by  faith  in  Christ  have  been  won  unto  life,  as  calling  out 3I' 
eagerly,  so  to  speak,  unto  one  another,  and  saying ;  "  Come,  let  Is.  ii.  3. 
"  us  go  up  unto  the  mountain  of  the  Lord,  and  unto  the  house 
"  of  the  God  of  Jacob,  and  they  shall  teach  us  His  way,  and 
"  we  will  walk  in  it."     Now  by  the  mountain  here  we  affirm  to 
be  meant  not  any  earthly  mountain  ;  for  to  imagine  this  would 
be  foolish  :  but  rather  the  church  which  Christ  has  rescued  for 
Himself.    For  it  is  high  and  conspicuous  to  people  everywhere, 
and,  so  to  say,  exalted,  because  there  is  nothing  in  it  which 
brings  men  down  to  earth.     For  those  who  dwell  within  it  care 
nothing:  for  the  things  of  earth,  but  rather  desire  those  things 
that  are  above  :  and,  as  the  Psalmist  says,  "  They  are  exalted  Ps.  xlvii.  9. 
"  far  above  the  earth  ;"  as  being  altogether  brave  and  cou- 
rageous, and    practising   uninterrupted   endeavours   after   all 
things  whatsoever  which  please  God. 

And  such  we  believe  you  to  be;  and  your  earnest  desire 
after  instruction  is  a  plain  proof  thereof.  For  ye  have  come  of 
course  to  seek  the  fulfilment  of  the  promise  given  unto  you  : 
but  neither  have  we  forgotten  what  we  promised,  but  pay  our 
debt,  adding  on  to  what  has  been  already  said  that  which  is 
still  wanting  to  the  parable  of  Lazarus  and  the  rich  man. 

"  For  it  came  to  pass,  He  says,  that  Lazarus  died,  and  was 
"  carried  by  angels  to  Abraham's  bosom :  and  the  rich  man 
"  also  died,  and  was  buried/'  Observe  carefully  the  Saviour's 
words.  For  of  the  poor  man,  He  says,  that  he  was  carried  by 
angels  to  Abraham's  bosom :  but  of  the  rich  man  there  is 
nothing  of  the  sort,  but  only  that  he  died  and  was  buried. 
For  those  who  have  hope  towards  God  find  in  their  departure 
from  the  world  a  deliverance  from  anguish  and  pain.  And 
something  like  this  Solomon  also  has  taught  us,  saying,  "  In  the  Wis.  iii.2. 
"  sight  of  men  they  seemed  to  die,  and  their  departure  was 
"  considered  an  injury  and  their  going  from  among  us  a  break- 
"  ing  to  pieces  :  but  they  are  at  peace,  and  their  hope  is  full  of 

3  Y 


530  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  immortality."  For  there  is  given  unto  them  a  measure  of 
consolation  commensurate  with  their  labours  :  or  even  perhaps 
one  which  surpasses  and  exceeds  their  toils:  for  Christ  has  some- 
Luke  vi. 38.  where  said,  that  "good  measure,  pressed  down,  and  heaped 
"  up,  and  running  over  shall  they  give  into  your  bosom."  For 
like  as  ships  that  sail  upon  the  sea  stand  the  shock  of  savage 
waves,  and  struggle  with  the  violence  of  mighty  winds,  but 
afterwards  arriving  at  tranquil  havens  fit  for  their  rest,  cease 
there  from  tossing ;  so  in  like  manner  I  think  that  the  souls  of 
men,  when  they  emerge  from  the  turbulence  of  earthly  things, 
enter  the  mansions  that  are  above,  as  into  a  haven  of  sal- 
vation. 

"  Lazarus  then,  He  says,  was  carried  by  the  holy  angels 
"  unto  Abraham's  bosom  :  but  the  rich  man  died  and  was 
"  buried."  For  to  that  rich  man  who  had  shewn  himself  harsh 
and  unmerciful  the  separation  from  the  body  was  death.  For 
he  was  iroinsr  from  pleasure  to  torment :  from  glorv  to  shame  : 
from  light  to  darkness.  Such  were  the  things  that  the  rich 
man  must  suffer,  who  had  been  voluptuous,  and  close-handed, 
and  unready  for  mercy.  And  to  torment  him  the  more  now 
that  he  dwells  in  Hades,  he  beheld,  it  says,  Lazarus  in  the 
bosom  of  Abraham :  and  made  supplication  that  he  might  be 
sent  to  drop  a  little  water  upon  his  tongue  :  for  he  was  tor- 
mented, it  says,  as  in  a  fierce  flame.  And  what  reply  does  the 
patriarch  Abraham  make  ?  "  Son,  thou  receivedst  thy  good 
"  things  in  thy  life :  and  Lazarus  his  evil  things."  Thou  wast 
enamoured,  He  says,  of  these  temporal  things  ;  thou  wast  clad 
in  fine  linen  and  purple  d  ;~thou  wast  boastful  and  haughty  ;  all 
thy  time  was  spent  in  luxury ;  thou  offe^edst  up  thy  wealth  to 
thy  appetite  and  to  flatterers  ;  but  thou  never  once  calledst  to 
mind  the  sick  and  sorrowful :  tbou  hadst  no  compassion  on 
Lazarus  when  thou  sawest  him  thrown  down  at  thy  portals. 
Thou  beheldest  the  man  suffering  incurable  misery,  and  a  prey 
to  intolerable  griefs  :  for  two  maladies  at  once  possessed  him, 

d  The  rest  of  the  translation  is  XCI,   beginning    with    the   words, 

from  the  Cod.  14,725,  referred  to  "  Withdraw    your    attention    from 

above.     It  is  a  volume  of  miscel-  "  these  temporal  things."  Cf.  p.  421. 

laneous  sermons,  containing  of  S.  In  the  main  MS.  the  rest  of  this 

Cyril's  only  the  two  upon  this  para-  sermon,  and  the  whole  of  the  four 

ble,  made  up  into  one,  and  ending  following,  have  perished, 
with  the  latter  portion  of  Sermon 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  531 

each  worse  than  the  other,  the  cruel  pain  of  his  ulcers,  and 
the  want  of  the  necessaries  of  life.  The  very  beasts  soothed 
Lazarus,  because  he  was  in  pain ;  "  the  dogs  licked  his  sores/' 
but  thou  wast  more  hard-hearted  than  the  beasts.  "  Thou 
"  hast  received  therefore,  He  says,  thy  good  things  in  thy  life, 
"  and  Lazarus  his  evil :  and  now  here  he  is  comforted,  and 
"  thou  art  tormented  f  and,  as  the  sacred  Scripture  saith, 
"  they  shall  have  judgment  without  mercy  who  have  wrought  Jamesii.  13 
"  no  mercy/''  Thou  wouldst  have  been  a  partner  with  Laza- 
rus, and  a  portion  of  his  consolation  would  have  been  given 
thee  by  God,  if  thou  hadst  admitted  him  to  be  a  partner  of  thy 
wealth.  But  this  thou  didst  not  do,  and  therefore  thou  alone 
art  tormented  :  for  such  is  the  fitting  punishment  of  the  unmer- 
ciful, and  of  those  whose  mind  feels  no  sympathy  for  the  sick. 

Let  us  therefore  make  for  ourselves  friends  of  the  unright- 
eous mammon  :  let  us  listen  to  Moses  and  the  prophets  calling 
us  unto  mutual  love  and  brotherly  affection :  let  us  not  wait 
for  any  of  those  now  in  Hades  to  return  hither  to  tell  us  the 
torments  there :  the  sacred  Scripture  is  necessarily  true  :  we 
have  heard,  that  "  Christ  shall  sit  upon  the  throne  of  His  Mat.  xxv. 
"  glory  to  judge  the  world  in  righteousness,  and  that  He  shall  3I' 
"  set  the  sheep  indeed  on  His  right  hand,  but  the  goats  on 
""  His  left.  And  to  those  on  His  right  hand  He  shall  say, 
"  Come,  ye  blessed  of  My  Father,  inherit  the  kingdom  pre- 
"  pared  for  you  from  before  the  foundations  of  the  world  :  for 
"  I  was  hungry,  and  ye  gave  Me  to  eat ;  and  thirsty  also,  and 
"  ye  gave  Me  to  drink :  I  was  naked,  and  ye  clothed  Me ;  in 
"  prison,  and  ye  came  unto  Me."  But  upon  those  upon  the 
left  hand  He  shall  lay  a  heavy  condemnation,  saying,  "  Go  to 
"  the  eternal  fire  prepared  for  the  devil  and  his  angels.''  And 
the  charge  against  them  is,  that  they  have  done  the  very  op- 
posite of  that  for  which  the  saints  were  praised.  "  For  I  was 
"  hungry,  and  ye  gave  Me  not  to  eat ;  and  thirsty,  and  ye 
"  gave  Me  not  to  drink :  for  inasmuch  as  ye  did  it  not,  He 
"  says,  to  one  of  these  little  ones,  ye  did  it  not  to  Me." 

But  to  this  perhaps  some  one  will  object,  that  there  are 
many  kinds  of  well  living ;  for  virtue  is  diversified,  so  to  speak, 
and  manifold  :  why  therefore,  having  omitted  those  other 
kinds,  does  He  make  mention  only  of  love  to  the  poor  ?  To 
this  we  reply,  that  the  act  is  better  than  any  other  kind  of 

3  y  2 


532  COMMENTARY  UPON 

well  doing :  for  it  works  in  our  souls  a  certain  divine  likeness 
which  moulds  us,  so  to  speak,  after  God's  image.     For  Christ 

Lukevi. 36.  also  has  said,  "Be  ye  merciful,  as  your  Father  also  in  heaven 
"  is  merciful."  He  who  is  quick  to  shew  mercy,  and  compas- 
sionate and  kind,  is  ranked  with  the  true  worshippers ;  for  it 

James i. 2 7.  is  written,  that  "a  pure  and  unpolluted  sacrifice  to  God  the 
"  Father  is  this,  to  visit  orphans  and  widows  in  their  poverty, 
"  and  that  a  man  keep  himself  unspotted  from  the  world." 

Heb.  xiii.  And  the  wise  Paul  also  has  somewhere  written,  "  But  alms  and 
"  communication  forget  not  :  for  with  such  sacrifices  God  is 
"  content."  For  He  loveth  not  the  incense  of  the  legal  wor- 
ship,  but  requireth  rather  the  pleasantness  of  the  sweet  spi- 
ritual savour.  But  the  sweet  spiritual  savour  unto  God  is  to 
shew  pity  unto  men,  and  to  maintain  love  towards  them.    This 

Rom.xiii.S.  also  Paul  adviseth  us,  saying,  '*  Owe  no  man  anything,  but 
"  that  ye  love  one  another :"  and  the  daughter  of  love  is  pity 
for  poverty. 

Come  therefore,  ye  rich,  cease  from  transitory  pleasure :  be 
earnest  after  the  hope  that  is  set  before  you :  clothe  yourselves 
with  mercy  and  kindness :  hold  out  the  hand  to  them  that  are 
in  need  :  comfort  those  who  are  in  necessity :  count  as  your 
own  the  sorrows  of  those  who  are  in  extreme  distress.  *  * 
****** 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  533 


SERMONS   CXIII— CXVI. 

It  is  impossible  but  that  offences  come.  c.  xvii.  i. 

WHAT  are  the  offences  which  Christ  mentions  as  being  in  From  Mai. 
every  way  certain  to  happen  ?  Offences  then  are  of  two  kinds  : 
for  some  are  against  the  glory  of  the  Supreme  Being,  and 
assail  That  Substance  Winch  transcends  all,  as  far  at  least  as 
regards  the  purpose  of  the  contrivers  of  them  :  while  other 
offences  happen  from  time  to  time  against  ourselves,  and  pro- 
ceed no  further  than  to  the  injury  of  some  of  the  brethren, 
who  are  our  partners  in  the  faith.  For  whatever  heresies  have 
been  invented,  and  every  argument  which  opposes  itself  to  the 
truth,  resist  really  the  glory  of  the  supreme  Godhead,  by 
drawing  away  those  who  are  caught  therein  from  the  upright- 
ness and  exactness  of  the  sacred  doctrines.  And  such  were  the 
offences  concerning  which  the  Saviour  Himself  again  some- 
where said,  "  Woe  to  the  world  because  of  offences !  for  it  Mat.  xviii. 
"  must  needs  be  that  offences  come :  but  woe  to  that  man  by  "' 
"  whom  the  offence  cometh."  For  offences  of  this  kind,  caused 
I  mean  by  unholy  heretics,  are  not  levelled  against  some  single 
individual,  but  are  aimed  rather  against  the  world,  that  is, 
against  the  inhabitants  of  the  whole  earth.  And  the  inventors 
of  such  offences  the  blessed  Paul  rebukes,  saying,  "  But  in  thus  i  Cor.  viii. 
"  sinning  against  the  brethren,  and  wounding  their  weak  con- 
"  science,  ye  sin  against  Christ/'  And  that  such  offences  might 
not  prevail  over  the  faithful,  God  somewhere  spake  unto  those 
who  are  the  ambassadors  of  the  upright  word  of  truth,  and 
skilful  in  teaching  it,  saying,  "  Go  through  My  gates,  and  Is.  bcii.  10. 
"  make  a  pathway  for  My  people,  and  cast  away  the  stones 
"  out  of  the  way.'1  And  the  Saviour  has  attached  a  bitter 
penalty  against  those  who  lay  such  stumblingblocks  in  men's 
road. 

Perhaps,  however,  these  are  not  the  offences  here  referred 
to,  but  those  rather,  which  very  frequently  from  human 
infirmity  happen  between  friends  and  brethren :  and  the  ac- 
companying discourse  which  immediately  follows  these  opening 


534  COMMENTARY  UPON 

remarks,  and  which  speaks  of  our  pardoning  the  brethren  in 
case  they  ever  sin  against  us,  leads  us  to  the  idea  that  these 
were  the  offences  meant.  And  what  then  are  these  offences  ? 
Mean  and  annoying  actions,  I  suppose ;  fits  of  anger,  whether 
on  orood  ^rounds  or  without  justification;  insults;  slanders 
verv  frequently ;  and  other  stumblingblocks  akin  and  similar 
to  these.  Such,  He  says,  must  needs  come.  Is  this  then  be- 
cause God,  Who  governs  all,  obliges  men  to  their  commission  ? 
Away  with  the  thought :  for  from  Him  comes  nothing  that  is 
evil,  yea !  rather  He  is  the  fountain  of  all  virtue.  Why  then 
Jamesui.^.  must  they  happen  ?  Plainly  because  of  our  infirmity  :  "  for  in 
"  many  things  we  all  of  us  stumble,"  as  it  is  written.  Never- 
theless there  will  be  woe,  He  says,  to  the  man  who  lays  the 
stumblingblocks  in  the  way:  for  He  does  not  leave  indifference 
in  these  things  without  rebuke,  but  restrains  it  rather  by  fear 
of  punishment.  Nevertheless  He  commands  us  to  bear  with 
patience  those  who  occasion  them. 

Ver.  4.  If  seven  times  in  the  day  he  sin  against  thee. 

For  if,  He  savs,  he  who  sins  against  thee  repent  and  ac- 
knowledge his  fault,  thou  shalt  forgive  him  :  and  that  not  once 
only,  but  very  many  times.  For  we  must  not  shew  ourselves 
deficient  in  mutual  love,  and  neglect  forbearance,  because  any 
one  is  weak,  and  again  and  again  offends;  but  must  rather 
imitate  those  whose  business  it  is  to  heal  our  bodily  maladies, 
and  who  do  not  tend  a  sick  man  once  only  or  twice,  but  just  as 
often  as  he  chances  to  fall  ill.  For  let  us  remember  that  we 
also  are  liable  to  infirmities,  and  overpowered  by  our  passions  : 
and  such  being  the  case,  we  pray  that  those  whose  duty  it  is 
to  rebuke  us,  and  who  posse'ss  the  authority  to  punish  us,  may 
shew  themselves  kind  to  us  and  forgiving.  It  is  our  duty 
therefore,  having  a  common  feeling  for  our  mutual  infirmities, 
Gal.  vi.  i.  «  to  bear  one  another's  burdens ;  for  so  we  shall  fulfil  the  law 
"  of  Christ/'  And  observe  also,  that  in  the  Gospel  according 
Mat.  xviii.  to  Matthew,  Peter  makes  the  inquiry,  u  How  oft  shall  my  bro- 
"'  "  ther  sin  against  me,  and  I  forgive  Him  V     And  thereupon 

the  Lord  tells  the  Apostles,  '  that  though  he  sin  seven  times  in 
1  the  day ;  that  is,  frequently,  and  shall  as  often  acknowledge 
'  his  fault,  thou  shalt  forgive  him.' 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  535 

The  Apostles  said  unto  the  Lord,  Add  unto  us  faith.         Ver.  5. 

That  which  necessarily  gives  joy  to  the  soul  of  the  saints  is 
not  the  possession  of  transitory  and  earthly  goods ;  for  they 
are  corruptible,  and  easily  lost ;  but  of  such  rather  as  render 
those  that  receive  them  reverend  and  blessed,  even  the  spiritual 
graces  which  are  God's  gift.    And  of  these  one  of  special  value 
is  faith,  by  which  I  mean  the  having  been  brought  unto  a  belief 
in  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  us  all :  which  also  Paul  recognised  as 
being  the  chief  of  all  our  blessings  ;  for  he  said,  that  "  without  Heb.  xi.6. 
"  faith  it  was  impossible  ever  to  have  pleased e  (God)  :  for  by 
"  it  the  elders  obtained  their  testimony.'"     Observe  therefore 
the  holy  apostles  emulating  the  conduct  of  the  saints  of  old 
time.    For  what  do  they  ask  of  Christ  ?    "Add  unto  us  faith," 
They  do  not  ask  faith  simply,  lest  thou  shouldst  imagine  them 
to  be  without  faith  ;  but  they  rather  ask  of  Christ  an  addition 
to  their  faith,  and  to  be  strengthened  therein.   For  faith  partly 
depends  upon  ourselves,  and  partly  is  the  gift  of  the  divine 
grace  :  for  the  commencement  of  it  depends  upon  ourselves, 
and  to  maintain  confidence  and  faith  in  God  with  all  our  power; 
but  the  confirmation  and  strength   necessary  for  this  comes 
from  the  divine  grace:  for  which  reason,  because  all -things 
are  possible  with  God,  the  Lord  says,  that  "  all  things  are  pos-  Markix.23. 
"  sible  unto  him  that  believeth.1'     For  the  power  which  comes 
unto  us  through  faith  is  of  God.  And  knowing  this,  the  blessed 
Paul  also  says  in  the  first  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians :   "  For  to  iCor.xii.8. 
"  one  is  given  through  *the  Spirit  the  word  of  wisdom  :  and  to 
"  another  the  word  of  knowledge  according  to  the  same  Spirit: 
"  and  to  another  faith  in  the  same  Spirit."     Thou  seest  that 
he  has  placed  faith  also  in  the  catalogue  of  spiritual  graces. 
And  this  the  disciples  requested  they  might  receive  of  the' Sa- 
viour, contributing  also  that  which  was  of  themselves  :  and  He 

e  It   is  to  be   noticed,  that  the  '  to   please  God  by  our  conduct.' 

Sept.  use  evaptcTTiOi  as  the  equiva-  In  Heb.  xi.  6,  'Ei/w^  is  understood 

lent    of  "pnnrr,    in    Gen.   v.    22,  before  evapeaTrjuat,  and  the  correct 

and   elsewhere.     Hence    St.  Paul's  translation  is ;  "  but  without  faith 

assertion,    that   "Enoch    had   this  "Enoch   could    not    have    pleased 

"  testimony,  that  he  pleased  God,"  "  G°d  by  his  conduct;"  or,  to  retain 

and  also  the  means  of  arriving  at  the  word  used  in  the  O.T.,  "could 

the  full  force  of  the  word,  namely,  "  not  have  walked  with  Him." 


536  COMMENTARY  UPON 

granted  it  unto  them  after  the  fulfilment  of  the  dispensation, 
by  the  descent  upon  them  of  the  Holy  Ghost :  for  before  the 
resurrection  their  faith  was  so  feeble, f  that  they  were  liable 
even  to  the  charge  of  littleness  of  faith. 

For  the  Saviour  of  all  was  sailing  once,  for  instance,  with  the 
holy  apostles  upon  the  lake  or  sea  of  Tiberias,  and  purposely 
permitted  Himself  to  fall  asleep  :  and  when  a  violent  storm 
agitated  the  surge,  and  raised  a  mighty  wave  against  the  ves- 
sel, they  were  greatly  troubled,  so  that  they  even  roused  the 
Luke  viii.    Lord  from  sleep,  saying,  "  Master,  save  us,  we  perish."     And 
He,  it  says,  arose,  and  rebuked  the  waves,  and  changed  the 
savageness  of  the  tempest  into  a  calm.  But  He  greatly  blamed 
the  holy  apostles,  saying,  fk  Where  is  your  faith?"     For  they 
ought  not  to  have  been  troubled  in  any  respect  whatsoever, 
when  the  Sovereign  of  the  universe  was  present  with  them,  at 
Whom  all  His  works  tremble  and  shake.     And  if  we  must  add 
a  further  and  similar  example,  I  will  mention  one.     He  corn- 
Mat,  xiv.    manded  the  holy  apostles  to  go  on  board  the  vessel,  and  pre- 
cede Him  unto  the  opposite  side  of  the  lake  :  and  they  of 
John  vi.  19.  course  did  to.  And  when  they  had  rowed,  it  says,  about  thirty 
furlongs,  they  see  Jesus  walking  on  the  sea,  and  were  greatly 
terrified,  imagining  that  they  saw  a  spectre.     But  when  He 
called  out  unto  them,  saying,  "  It  is  I :  be  not  afraid ;"  Peter 
said,  "  If  it  be  Thou,  bid  me  come  unto  Thee  on  the  water  : 
"  and  He  said,  Come."     And  having  leaped  down  from  the 
ship,  he  began  to  walk  unto  Him.     But  when,  it  says,  he  saw 
the  wind  and  the  wave,  he  was  terrified :  and  beginning  to 
sink,  he  cried  out,  "  Lord,  help  me  :"  and  He  saved  him  in 
his  danger,  but  again  rebuked  him,  saying,  "0  thou  of  little 
"  faith,  wherefore  didst  thou  doubt?"   And  that  at  the  season 
of  the  passion,  when  the  band  of  soldiers,  and  wicked  officers, 
came  to  seize  Jesus,  they  all  forsook  Him  and  fled,  and  Peter 
also  denied  Him,  being   terrified  at   a  maidservant,  is  well 
known. 

Thou  hast  seen  the  disciples  while  still  possessed  of  but  little 
faith:  now  wonder  at  them  when  they  had  obtained  an  increase 

'  For  edpaia,  which  Mai  violently  not  of  unfrequent  occurrence  in  S. 
translates  segnis,  I  imagine  that  the  Cyril :  or  that  a  negative  has  been 
reading  ought  to  be  d8pavfjs,  a  word      omitted  by  the  copyist. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  537 

of  their  faith  from  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  us  all.  He  commanded 
them  "  not  to  depart  from  Jerusalem,  but  to  wait  for  the  Fa-  Acts  i.  +. 
"  ther's  promise,"  until  they  should  be  clothed  with  power 
from  on  high.  But  when  the  power  from  on  high  had  de- 
scended upon  them  in  the  shape  of  fiery  tongues,  even  the 
grace  which  is  through  the  Holy  Ghost,  then  indeed  they  be- 
came bold  and  manly  and  fervent  in  the  Spirit,  so  as  even  to 
despise  death,  and  to  count  as  nothing  the  dangers  with  which 
they  were  threatened  from  unbelievers;  yea,  and  then  too 
thev  became  able  to  work  miracles. 

But  that  to  be  confirmed  in  the  faith  is  a  great  and  special 
grace,  the  Lord  shews  by  saying,  "  If  ye  have  faith  as  a  grain  Ver.  6. 
"  of  mustard  seed,  hot,  that  is,  and  fervent,  ye  might  have  said 
"  to  the  sycamine  tree,  Be  thou  uprooted  in  the  sea,  and  it 
«  would  have  obeyed  you."  For  he  who  confides  in  Christ 
trusts  not  to  his  own  strength,  but  rather  assigns  to  Him  the 
power  of  performing  all  things.  From  Him  then  confessedly 
comes  the  accomplishment  of  all  good  things  in  men's^  souls: 
but  they  nevertheless  must  prepare  themselves  to  receive  this 
great  grace.  For  if  the  power  of  faith  remove  that  which  is 
fixed  and  rooted  in  the  ground,  one  may  say  absolutely  that 
there  is  nothing  so  immovable  as  that  faith  cannot  shake  it,  if 
its  removal  be  required.  The  earth  accordingly  was  shaken  Acts  hr.3i. 
when  the  apostles  were  praying,  as  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles 
record :  and  so,  on  the  other  hand,  faith  stays  those  things 
which  are  in  motion,  as  the  rapid  course  of  a  running  river,  joa.  iii.  16. 
and  the  ceaseless  way  of  the  lights  which  move  in  heaven.  Jos.  x.  13. 
This,  however,  we  must  carefully  notice,  that  God  does  not 
excite  an  empty  astonishment  or  vain  wondering,  but  that 
such  things  are  far  from  the  divine  Substance,  Which  is  free 
from  pride  and  boasting,  and  altogether  true,  for  the  sole  good 
and  safety  of  mankind.  And  this  I  say,  that  no  one  may  ex- 
pect from  sacred  faith  and  the  divine  power  useless  changes, 
for  instance,  of  the  elements,  or  the  removal  of  mountains  and 
plants ;  nor  give  way  to  impiety,  as  though  the  word  were  not 
true,  if  these  things  come  not  so  to  pass :  nor  again  count  faith 
weak,  if  it  cannot  accomplish  such  things.  Let  the  thing  be 
but  useful  for  some  real  benefit,  and  the  power  will  not  be 


wanting. 


3  7- 


538  COMMENTARY  UPON" 

Vcr.  7.  But  which  of  you  having  a  servant  ploughing  or  feeding 

cattle. 

In  the  verses  which  precede  a  long  and  important  discourse 
has  been  addressed  to  us  by  the  Lord,  to  shew  unto  us  the 
paths  which  lead  unto  honour,  and  to  manifest  the  glories  of 
the  blameless  life,  that  making  progress  therein,  and  advancing 
zealously  unto  whatsoever   is  admirable  we  may  attain  unto 

Phil.iii.14.  "  the  prize  of  our  high  calling."  But  since  it  is  the  nature  of 
the  mind  of  man  ever  to  be  carried  away  unto  vaingloriousness, 
and  to  be  afflicted  most  readily  with  a  tendency  thereto ;  and 
since  a  pretext  for  this  fault  is  often  given  by  the  being  distin- 
guished before  God  for  some  of  the  noblest  virtues ;  and  since 
it  is  a  sin  grievous  and  hateful  unto  God  : — for  the  serpent,  the 
author  of  evil,  leads  men  sometimes  into  such  a  state  of  mind, 
as  for  them  to  imagine  perhaps  that  God  even  owes  them  the 
highest  honours,  when  their  life  is  glorious  and  distinguished  : 
— to  draw  us  away  from  such  passions,  He  sets  before  us  the 
purport  of  the  lessons  which  have  just  been  read,  teaching  us 
thereby,  under  the  form  of  an  example,  that  the  might  of 
sovereign  authority  demands  everywhere  of  its  slaves  sub- 
jection as  a  debt.  For  the  lord,  He  says,  will  not  acknowledge 
any  gratitude  to  the  slave,  even  if  all  that  is  due  be  done  by 
him,  according  to  what  becomes  the  condition  of  a  slave. 

Here  observe,  I  pray,  that  the  disciples,  yea,  all  who  are 
subject  to  the  sceptre  of  Christ  the  Saviour  of  us  all,  are 
encouraged  unto  industry,  but  that,  not  as  though  they  ren- 
dered unto  Him  their  service  as  a  favour,  but  as  discharging 
the  debt  of  obedience  incumbent"  upon  slaves.  And  hereby  the 
accursed  malady  of  vainglory  is  done  away.  For  if  thou  doest 
that  which  is  thy  due,  why  pridest  thou  thyself?  Seest  thou 
not  that  if  thou  dischargest  not  thy  debt,  there  is  danger  :  and 
that  if  thou  dost  discharge  it,  no  gratitude  is  owed  thee  ? 
Which  truth  that  admirable  servant  Paul  having  well  learnt 

1  Cor.  be.  and  understood,  says,  "  If  I  preach  the  gospel,  I  have  no  cause 
"  of  boasting ;  for  a  necessity  is  laid  upon  me  :  but  woe  unto 

Rom.  i.  14.  "  me  if  I  preach  not  the  gospel."  And  again,  "  I  am  a  debtor, 
"  he  says,  of  the  preaching  of  the  doctrine,  both  to  Greeks  and 
"  barbarians,  both  to  wise  and  foolish."  If  therefore  thou  hast 
done  well,  and  hast  kept  the  divine  commands,  and  hast  obeyed 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  539 

thy  Lord,  ask  not  honour  of  God  as  thy  due,  but  rather  draw 
near,  supplicating  for  the  gifts  of  His  bounty.  Bear  in  mind  ^wn^a. 
that  also  among  us,  masters  acknowledge  no  gratitude  when 
any  of  their  slaves  perform  their  appointed  service,  though 
often  by  their  bounty  they  gain  the  goodwill  of  their  faithful 
servants,  and  so  beget  in  them  a  more  ready  alacrity.  Simi- 
larly God  demands  of  us  the  service  of  slaves,  using  the  right 
of  His  sovereign  authority :  but  as  being  good  and  bountiful, 
He  promises  also  rewards  to  those  who  labour.  And  the 
greatness  of  His  bounty  far  surpasses  the  labours  of  His  sub- 
jects, as  Paul  shall  prove  unto  you,  writing,  "  The  sufferings  of  Rom.  viii. 
"  the  present  season  are  not  worthy  to  the  glory  about  to  be 
"  revealed  upon  us."  Yea!  though  we  are  slaves,  He  calls  us 
sons,  and  crowns  us  with  the  honour  which  becometh  children. 
And  observe  that  each  one,  having  first  attended  to  his  own 
flesh,  so  must  take  charge  of  the  good  of  others :  for  he  "  who  iTim.iii.5. 
"  cannot  govern  his  own  house  well,  how  shall  he  take  care  of 
"  the  church  ? " 

Ten  lepers  met  him.  Ver-  «• 

Again  the  Saviour  manifests  unto  us  His  glory,  and  by 
working  godlike  miracles,  endeavours  to  win  senseless  Israel 
unto  faith,  obdurate  though  he  was,  and  unbelieving.  What 
argument  then  will  avail  him  at  the  day  of  judgment  for 
refusing  to  accept  salvation  through  Christ?  Especially  when 
they  themselves  heard  His  words,  and  were  eyewitnesses  of 
His  ineffable  miracles  ?  For  which  reason  He  said  Himself  of 
them,  "  If  I  had  not  come  and  spoken  unto  them,  they  had  not  John  xv. 
"  had  sin."  And  again,  "If  I  had  not  done  among  them  the  2' 
"  works  which  no  other  man  did,  they  had  not  had  sin,  but 
"  now  they  have  both  seen  and  hated  both  Me  and  My  Father." 
The  cleansing  of  the  lepers,  as  I  said  just  above,  was  a  plain 
demonstration  (of  His  miraculous  power) :  for  by  the  law  of 
Moses  they  were  shut  out  of  the  cities  and  villages,  as  being 
impure. 

This  then  will  suffice,  I  suppose,  for  introductory  remarks. 
The  lepers  then  having  met  the  Saviour,  earnestly  besought 
Him  to  free  them  from  their  misery,  and  called  Him  Master, 
that  is,  Teacher. 

No  one  pitied  them  when  suffering  this  malady  :  but  He  Who 

3  L  2 


•540  COMMENTARY  UPON 

had  appeared  on  earth  for  this  very  reason,  and  had  become 
man  that  He  might  shew  pity  unto  all,  He  was  moved  with 
compassion  for  them,  and  had  mercy  upon  them. 

Ver.  i4.       ]je  sa{ci  un(0  them,  Go  and  shew  yourselves  unto  the  priests. 

And  why  did  He  not  rather  say,  "I  will,  be  ye  cleansed ;"  as 
Luke  v.  13.  he  did  in  the  case  of  another  leper  ;  but  commanded  them  rather 
to  shew  themselves  unto  the  priests  ?  It  was  because  the  law 
gave  directions  to  this  effect  to  those  who  were  delivered  from 
Lev.  xivvp.  leprosy :  for  it  commanded  them  to  shew  themselves  to- the 
priests,  and  to  offer  a  sacrifice  for  their  cleansing.  He  com- 
manded them  therefore  to  go,  as  being  already  healed,  and,  that 
they  might,  so  to  speak,  bear  witness  to  the  priests,  as  the  rulers 
of  the  Jews,  and  ever  envious  of  His  glory,  that  wonderfully, 
and  beyond  their  hope,  they  had  been  delivered  from  their  mis- 
fortune by  Christ's  willing  that' they  should  be  healed.  He  did 
not  heal  them  first,  but  sent  them  to  the  priests,  because  the 
priests  knew  the  marks  of  leprosy,  and  of  its  being  healed. 
He  sent  them  to  the  priests,  and  with  them  He  sent  also  the 
healing.  What  however  was  the  law  of  leprosy,  and  what  the 
rules  for  its  purification,  and  what  the  meaning  of  each  of  the 
particulars  commanded  by  the  law,  we  have  more  fully  de- 
scribed at  the  commencement  of  our  Saviour's  miracles  as 
Lukev.  1*.  recorded  by  Luke,  and  referring  thither  such  as  are  anxious 
for  learning,  let  us  now  proceed  to  what  follows.  The  nine 
then,  as  being  Jews,  falling  into  a  thankless  forgetfulness,  did 
not  return  to  give  glory  to  God :  by  which  He  shews  that 
Israel  was  hard  of  heart,  and  utterly  unthankful :  but  the 
stranger, — for  as  being  a  Samaritan  he  was  of  foreign  race, 
having  been  brought  thither  from  Assyria :  for  the  phrase  is 
Lukexvii.  not  without  meaning,  "in  the  middle  of  Samaria  and  Galilee  :" 
IX*  — returned  with  a  loud  voice  to  glorify  God.     It  shews  there- 

fore that  the  Samaritans  were  grateful,  but  that  the  Jews, 
even  when  benefited,  were  ungrateful. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  541 


SERMON  CXVII. 

And  having  been  asked  by  the  Pharisees  when  the  kingdom  axvii.  zo- 
of  God  cometh,  He  answered  and  said  unto  them,   The  prom  the 
kingdom  of  God  cometh  not  by  patchings;  neither  shall s^apa: 
they  say,  Lo  !  here,  or  Lo  I  there  :  for  behold  !  the  kingdom  t^^WS. 
of  God  is  within  you.    And  He  said  unto  the  disciples,  *  **" 
The  days  will  come,  when  ye  shall  desire  to  see  one  of  the 
daijs  of  the  Son  of  man,  and  shall  not  see  it.     And  if  they  *«i  »»  S. 
shall  say  unto  you,  Lo !  here,  or  Lo!  there,  go  ye  not,  h&ta* 
neither  run  thither.     For  as  the  lightning  that  lighteneth  Ss^  ^  {ioS 
from  under  heaven  giveth  light  to  that  which  is  under  A««GS». 
heaven,  so  shall  the  Son  of  man  be  in  His  day.     But  first  ^.*«IB*. 
He  must  suffer  many  things,  and  be  rejected  by  this  gene-  JJV^g 
ration.     And  as  it  ivas  in  the  days  of  Noah,  so  shall  it  B. 
also  be  in  the  days  of  the  Son  of  man.     They  were  eating, 
and  drinking,  and  were  taking  wives,  and  being  made  the  add^ol 
wives  of  men,  until  the  day  that  Noah  entered  into  the 
ark;  and  the  flood  came,  and  destroyed  them  all.  Likewise 
also  as  it  was  in  the  days  of  Lot :  they  were  eating  and  add^ol 
drinking;  they  were  buying  and  selling;  they  were  plant- 
ing, were  building :  but  on  the  day  that  Lot  went  out  of 
Sodom,  there  rained  fire  and  brimstone  from  heaven,  and 
destroyed  them  all    So  shall  it  be  in  the  day  when  the  Son 
of  man  is  revealed. 

AGAIN  is  the  Pharisee  fighting  against  God,  nor  feels 
that  he  is  kicking  against  the  pricks  :  for  while  assuming  the 
appearance  of  being  anxious  to  learn,  he  makes  a  mock  at 
divine  mysteries  so  holy,  that  «  the  angels  desire  to  look  into  ,  Pet.i.n. 
"  them,"  according  to  the  word  of  the  blessed  Peter.  For  this 
reason  "blindness  in  part  hath  happened  unto  Israel,"  and  r^.^. 
darkness  hath  blinded  their  eyes.  For  that  they  were  dark 
and  blind,  so  as  even  often  to  make  the  mystery  of  Christ  an 
occasion  of  ridicule,  any  one  may  learn  from  what  "has  now 
been  read  to  us.  For  they  drew  near  asking  Him,  and  saying, 
«  When  will  the  kingdom  of  God  come?"  Moderate  thy  pride, 
0  foolish  Pharisee  :  desist  from  a  mockery  that  exposes  thee  to 


542  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Johniii.18.  heavv  and  inevitable  guilt.  "  For  he,  it  savs,  that  believeth 
11  not  the  Son,  is  condemned  already,  because  he  hath  not  be- 
"  lieved  in  the  Name  of  the  Son  of  God."  For  the  divine 
Moses  shewed  before  by  type  and  shadow  that  the  Word  is 
the  world's  way  and  door  of-  salvation,  in  that  though  He  is 
God,  He  appeared  in  human  form,  and  endured  the  death  of 
the  flesh  for  the  sake  of  the  whole  earth.  And  the  declarations 
also  of  the  holy  prophets  agree  with  what  was  said  by  Moses. 
For  they  foretold  that  He  would  come  in  due  time  in  form 
like  unto  us.  And  this  also  came  to  pass  :  for  He  was  mani- 
fested to  those  upon  earth,  having  assumed  the  form  of  a 
slave ;  but  even  so  He  retained  His  natural  lordship,  and 
power,  and  glory  such  as  befitteth  God,  as  is  proved  by  the 
splendour  of  the  works  He  wrought.  But  thou  didst  not  believe 
in  Him  :  thou  didst  not  accept  justification  by  His  means,  in 
that  thou  wast  obdurate  and  proud.  And  after  this  thou  askest, 
"  When  the  kingdom  of  God  shall  come?" 

As  I  said  therefore,  he  mocks  at  a  mystery  thus  truly  holy 
and  worthy  of  admiration.  For  because  the  Saviour  of  all  in 
His  public  discourses  spake  from  time  to  time  of  the  kingdom 
of  God,  therefore  these  miserable  men,  in  contempt  of  Him, — 
or  perhaps  even  having  it  in  their  mind  that  being  entrapped 
by  their  malice,  He  will  have  to  endure  the  death  upon  the 
cross, — ask  in  mockery,  "  When  the  kingdom  of  God  will 
"  come ';"  as  much  as  to  say,  that  before  this  kingdom  which 
Thou  talkest  about,  the  cross  and  death  will  seize  Thee.  What 
therefore  does  Christ  reply?    Again  He  displays  His  long- 

1Pet.ii.23.  suffering  and  incomparable  love  unto  man  :  for  "  being  reviled, 
"  He  revileth  not  again :  suffering,  He  threateneth  not."  He 
does  not  therefore  harshly  chide  them,  nor  yet  because  of  their 
wickedness  does  He  deign  to  give  them  an  answer  to  their 
question,  but  says  that  only  which  is  for  the  benefit  of  all  men, 
that  "  the  kingdom  of  God  cometh  not  by  watchings :  for 
,  -  "  behold!  the  kingdom  of  God  is  within  you."  \ For  ask  not, 
He  says,  about  the  times  in  which  the  season  of  the  kingdom 
of  heaven  shall  again  arise  and  come :  but  rather  be  in  earnest, 
that  ye  may  be  found  worthy  of  it,  for  "  it  is  within  you,"  that 
is,  it  depends  upon  your  own  wills,  and  is  in  your  own  power, 
whether  or  not  you  receive  it.  For  every  man  who  has 
attained  to  justification  by  means  of  faith  in  Christ,  and  is 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  543 

adorned  by  all  virtue,  is  counted  worthy  of  the  kingdom  of 

heaven  s. 

Having  therefore  made  this  plain  to  all  men,  He  now  trans- 
fers His  words  to  the  holy  disciples,  to  whom  as  His  true 
companions  He  says,  "The  days  will  come  when  ye  shall 
«  desire  to  see  one  of  the  days  of  the  Son  of  man,  and  shall 
"  not  see  it."  Is  the  Lord  then  in  so  speaking  working 
cowardice  in  His  disciples?  Does  He  enervate  them  before- 
hand, and  make  them  without  heart  for  the  endurance  of  those 
persecutions  and  temptations  which  they  would  have  to  bear  ? 
This  is  not  His  meaning,  but  the  contrary :  for  He  would  have 
them  prepared  for  all  that  can  grieve  men,  and  ready  to  endure 
patiently,  that  so  being  approved,  they  may  enter  the  king- 
dom of  God.  He  forewarns  them  therefore  that  before  His 
advent  from  heaven,  at  the  consummation  of  the  world,  tribu- 
lation and  persecution  will  precede  Him,  so  that  they  will  wish 
to  see  one  of  the  days  of  the  Son  of  man ;  that  is,  one  such  as 
those  when  they  were  still  going  about  with  Christ,  and  con- 
versing with  Him.  And  yet  the  Jews  even  then  were  guilty 
of  no°  little  violence  against  Him.  They  stoned  Him  with 
stones :  they  persecuted  Him  not  once  only,  but  oftentimes : 
they  led  Him  to  the  brow  of  the  hill,  that  they  might  throw 
Him  down  from  the  precipice  :  they  vexed  Him  with  re- 
proaches and  calumnies,  and  there  was  no  form  of  wickedness 
which  the  Jews  did  not  practise  against  Him.  How  then  did 
He  say  that  the  disciples  would  desire  to  see  one  of  His  days  ? 
It  was  because,  by  comparison  with  the  greater  evils,  the  less 
are,  so  to  speak,  desirable. 

But  that  He  will  descend  from  heaven  in  the  latter  times  of 
the  world,  not  obscurely  nor  secretly,  but  with  godlike  glory, 
and  as  "  dwelling  in  the  light  which  no  man  can  approach  i  Tim.  vi. 
"  unto,"  He  declared,  saying,  that  His  coming  shall  be  as  the 
lightning.     He  was  born  indeed  in  the  flesh  of  a  woman,  to 

e  Mai  has  a  very  curious  interpo-  «  it  not,  and  thought  that  at  some 

lation  here,  ■  For  as  a  matter  of  fact  « time  or  other  from  outside  of  them 

'  the  kingdom  of  heaven  is  outside  •  it  would  come  to  have  a  local  ex- 

*  those  men  from  whose  hearts  pro-  « istence,  John  shews  where  he  says, 
'  ceed"  evil  thoughts  :  but  virtually  '  "There  standeth  One  among  you, 
« it  is  within  all  men.  For  that  the  ■  "Whom  ye  know  not,"  meaning 
'  kingdom  of  God  was  even  within  *  Christ.' 

•  the  Pharisees,  though  they  knew 


544  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Phil.  ii.  7.   fulfil  the  dispensation  for  our  sakes,  and  for  this  reason  He 
emptied   Himself,   and   made   Himself  poor,   and   no   longer 
shewed  Himself  in  the  glory  of  the  Godhead :  for  the  season 
itself,  and  the  necessity  of  the  dispensation,  summoned  Him  to 
this  humiliation.     But  after  the  resurrection  from  the  dead, 
having  ascended  to  heaven,  and  sat  down  with  God  the  Father, 
He  shall  descend  again,  not  with  His  glory  withdrawn,  nor  in 
the  meanness  of  human  nature,  but   in  the  majesty  of  the 
Father,  with  the  companies  of  the  angels  guarding  Him,  and 
standing  before  Him  as  God  and  Lord  of  all.     He  shall  come 
therefore  as  the  lightning,  and  not  secretly. 
CNor  must  we  believe  any  one  saying,  "  Lo !  Christ  is  here, 
"  or  lo !  He  is  there.     But  first  He  must  suffer  many  things, 
"  and  be  rejected  by  this  generation."     He  cuts  away  another 
expectation  from  the  heart  of  the  disciples :  for  they  supposed, 
that  when  He  had  gone  round  about  Judasa,  and  afterwards 
been  in  Jerusalem,  that  He  would  immediately  manifest  the 
kingdom  of  God.     They   even  drew  near  to  Him  and  said, 
Act3  i.  6.    "  Lord,  wilt  Thou  at  this  time  restore  the  kingdom  to  Israel  ?" 
Yea,  even  the  mother  of  Zebedee's  sons,  expecting  that  this 
Matt.  xx.    would  be  the  case,  drew  near  and  said,  "  Lord,  say  that  my 
"  two  sons  shall  sit,  the  one  on  Thy  right  hand,  and  the  other 
"  on  Thy  left,  in  Thy  kingdom."     That   they  might  know 
therefore  that  He  was  about  first  to  undergo  His  saving  pas- 
sion, and  to  abolish  death  by  the  death  of  His  flesh,  and  put 
away  the  sin  of  the  world,  and  bring  to  nought  the  ruler  of 
this  world,  and  so  to  ascend  unto  the  Father,  and  in  due  time 
P3.xcvi.13.  to  appear  to  "judge  the  world  in  righteousness,"  He  says,  that 
"  He  must  first  suffer  many  things." 

And  to  shew  that  He  will  appear  unexpectedly,  and  with  no 
man  knowing  it,  and  the  end  of  the  world  come,  He  says,  that 
the  end  shall  be  "  as  it  was  in  the  days  of  Noah  and  Lot.  For 
"  they  were  eating,  He  says,  and  drinking :  and  were  taking 
"  wives,  and  being  made  the  wives  of  men  :  they  were  selling 
"  and  buying,  and  building ;  but  the  coming  of  the  waters 
"  destroyed  the  one,  while  the '  others  were  the  prey  and  food 
"  of  brimstone  and  fire."  What  therefore  is  signified  by  this  ? 
That  He  requires  us  to  be  always  watchful,  and  ready  to  make 
our  defence  before  the  tribunal  of  God.  For  as  Paul  says, 
iCor.v.io.  "  We  are  all  about  to  be  revealed  before  the  judgment-seat  of 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  HUKE.  545 

"  Christ,  that  every  man  may  receive  a  retribution  for  the 
"  tilings  that  are  by  the  body,  according  to  that  he  hath  done, 
"  whether  good  or  bad/1  "  Then  shall  He  set  the  sheep  on  Mat.  xxv. 
"  His  right  hand,  and  the  goats  on  His  left :  and  He  shall  say  33' 
"  unto  the  sheep,  Come,  ye  blessed  of  My  Father,  inherit  the 
*"  kingdom  prepared  for  you  from  the  foundations  of  the 
"  world."  But  upon  the  goats  He  will  utter  a  terrible  sen- 
tence ;  for  He  will  send  them  to  the  flame  that  shall  never  be 
appeased. 

If  therefore,  0  Pharisee,  thou  desirest  to  be  accounted 
worthv  of  the  kingdom  of  God,  become  one  of  the  sheen. 
Offer  unto  Christ  the  fruit  of  faith  in  Him,  and  the  praise  of 
holy  conduct,  even  that  which  is  by  the  Gospel.  But  if  thou 
continuest  to  be  a  goat,  that  is,  one  unfruitful,  and  destitute 
both  of  faith  and  good  works,  why  dost  thou  enquire  when 
the  kingdom  of  God  will  come  ?  For  it  concerns  not  thee. 
Fear  rather  because  of  the  torment  which  is  decreed  against  the 
unbelieving,  and  the  unappeasable  flame  appointed  for  those 
who  sin  against  Christ :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen. 


4^ 


54G  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON    CXVIII. 

C.  xvii.  3 1  _  In  that  day,  he  ivho  is  upon  the  housetop,  and  his  goods  in 

the  house,  let  him  not  go  down  to  carry  them  away  :  and 

he  who  is  in  the  field,  let  him  in   like  manner  not  return 

back.      Remember  Lot's  wife.      Whosoever  shall  seek  to 

rtpiiroir,-         save  his  life  shall  lose  it :  and  whosoever  shall  lose  it.  shall 

o-atrdaiBT.       §ave  ^  alive.     I  tell  you,  in  that  night  there  shall  bt  two 

U  5'  avBS.      men  in  one  bed  :  the  one  shall  be  taken,  and  the  other  left. 

■  o.jtt,v        Two  women  shall  be  grinding  at  a  mill  together  ;  the  one 

om.^«*B.      shall  be  taken,  and  the  other  left.     And  they  answer  and 

v  de  BT.  saV  unto  Him,    Where,  Lord  ?   And  He  said  unto  them, 

add.  S6o  Where  the  body  is,  there  will  also  the  eagles  be  gathered. 

lh  mtlaKri-  THE  sacred  Scripture  has  somewhere  said,  "  Prepare  thy 
Hfiaerai,  "  works  for  thv  departure,  and  make  thyself  ready  for  the 
a<ptdr]ff(Tai  neld.  jNow  by  our  departure  1  imagine  is  meant  our  going 
*■       ,       from  tins  world,  and  removal  hence.     For  this  time  must  of 

om.  leal  s. 

Prov.  xxiv.  course  overtake  every  one  :  for,  as  the  Psalmist  says,  "  What 

*/■  '•  man  is  there  that  shall  live  and  not  see  death,  and  that  can 

Pa.  Lxxxix.  ,  * 

48.  "  save  his  soul  from  the  hand  of  hell  V  For  the  nature  of  man 

was  condemned  in  Adam,  and  fell  away  unto  corruption,  be- 
cause he  foolishly  transgressed  the  commandment  given  him. 
But  those  who  are  careless  and  contemptuous,  lead  a  shameful 
and  pleasure-loving  life,  not  even  perhaps  admitting  into  their 
mind  the  thought  of  the  world  to  come,  and  the  hope  prepared 
for  the  saints,  nor  feeling  moreover  any  alarm  at  the  torment 
that  is  appointed  for  those  who  love  sin.  But  those  who  em- 
. brace  a  virtuous  life  rejoice  in  labours  for  probity's  sake,  bid- 
ding, so  to  speak,  farewell  to  the  desire  after  earthly  things,  and 
paying  but  slight  attention  to  the  vain  turmoil  of  the  world. 

To  a  purpose  thus  excellent,  and  a  proportionate  earnestness 
the  Saviour  bids  us  hold  fast,  thus  saying;  "  In  that  day  he 
"  who  is  upon  the  housetop,  and  his  goods  in  the  house,  let  him 
"  not  go  down  to  carry  them  away  :  and  he  who  is  in  the 
"  field,  let  him  in  like  manner  not  return  back."  He  was 
speaking  of  the  last  day,  that  is,  of  the  end  of  this  world; 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  547 

"  for  as  it  was,  He  said,  in  the  days  of  Noah  and  Lot ;  they 
'•'  were  eating,  and  drinking,  and  were  taking  wives,  and  being 
"made  the  wives  of  men,  until  the  tiood  came;  and  upon 
"  Sodom  fire  descended,  and  destroyed  them  all :  so  shall  it  be 
"  in  the  day  when  the  Son  of  man  is  revealed."  Strengthening 
them  therefore  for  the  remembrance  of  the  last  day.  and  the 
final  time,  He  commands  them  to  disregard  all  earthly  and 
temporal  matters,  and  look  only  unto  one  end,  the  duty  namely 
of  every  one  saving  his  soul.  "  He  therefore,  He  says,  that  is 
"  upon  the  housetop,  let  him  not  go  down  to  the  house  to 
"  carry  away  his  goods."  And  in  these  words  He  apparently 
means  the  man  who  is  at  ease,  living  in  wealth  and  worldly 
glory  :  for  always  those  that  stand  upon  the  housetops  are  con- 
spicuous in  the  eyes  of  them  who  are  round  about  the  house. 
If  therefore,  He  says,  there  be  any  one  in  this  condition,  let 
him  at  that  time  make  no  account  of  the  goods  stored  up  in 
his  house.  For  vain  henceforth  are  such  things,  and  unavailing 
to  his  advantage.  For.  as  it  is  written,  "Treasures  profit  not  Prov.  x. 2. 
"  the  wicked :   but  righteousness  delivereth  from  death." 

But  even  "  if  any  one  be.  He  says,  in  the  field,  in  like 
"  manner  let  him  not  return  back."  That  is,  if  any  one  be 
found  devoted  to  industry,  and  occupied  in  labours,  earnestly 
desirous  of  spiritual  fruitfulness,  and  gathering  the  wages  of 
virtuous  toil,  let  him  hold  firmly  to  this  diligence  :  "  let  him 
"  not  return  back  :"  for,  as  Christ  Himself  again  has  some- 
where said,  "  No  man  that  putteth  his  hand  to  the  plough,  and  Lukeix.6*. 
"  turneth  back,  is  fit  also  for  the  kingdom  of  heaven."  For  it 
is  our  duty  to  maintain  our  religious  exertions  without  waver- 
ing, and  to  persevere  in  them  with  undaunted  wills,  lest  wo 
suffer  some  such  fate  as  befel  the  woman  at  Sodom,  taking 
whom  as  an  example,  He  says,  "  Remember  Lot's  wife."  For 
when  she  had  been  rescued  from  Sodom,  but  would  afterwards 
have  returned,  she  became  a  pillar  of  salt,  became,  that  is, 
foolish  and  stonelike. 

On  that  day  therefore,  He  says,  and  at  that  time,  both  those 
who  are  accustomed  to  live  in  luxury  must  entirely  abstain 
from  such  pride,  and  readily  labour,  in  order  that  they  may 
save  themselves  :  and  in  like  manner  those  who  are  industrious, 
and  honour  useful  exertion,  must  bravely  hold  to  the  mark  that 
has  been  set  before  them.     "  For  whosoever  shall  seek  to  save 

4  A   2 


548  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  li is  life  shall  lose  it :  and  whosoever  shall  lose  it,  shall  save  it 
"  alive." 

But  the  way  in  which  a  man  loses  his  life  that  he  may  save 
it,  and  how  he  who  imagines  that  he  is  saving  loses  it,  Paul 

Gal.  v.  :4.  clearly  shews,  where  he  says  of  the  saints,  "  They  that  are 
"  Jesus  Christ's  have  crucified  the  flesh,  with  its  affections  and 
"  lusts."  For  those  who  have  really  become  true  [followers] 
of  Christ  our  common  Saviour,  crucify  their  flesh,  and  put  it  to 
death,  by  being  constantly  engaged  in  labours  and  struggles 
unto  piety,  and  by  mortifying  its  natural  desire.      For  it  is 

Col.iii.  5.  written,  "Mortify  your  members  that  are  upon  earth;  forni- 
"  cation,  uncleanness,  passion,  evil  lust,  and-  covetousness." 
But  those  who  love  a  voluptuous  course  of  life,  imagine  pro- 
bably that  they  are  gaining  their  soul  by  living  in  pleasure  and 

Gal.  vi.  3.  effeminacy  :  whereas  certainly  they  lose  it.  "  For  he  that 
•'  soweth,  it  says,  to  the  flesh,  shall  of  the  flesh  reap  cor- 
"  ruption." 

But  on  the  other  hand,  whosoever  loses  his  life  shall  of  a  cer- 
tainty save  it.  This  the  blessed  martyrs  did,  enduring  conflicts 
even  unto  blood  and  life,  and  placing  on  their  heads  as  their 
crown  their  true  love  unto  Christ.  But  those  who,  from  weak- 
ness of  resolution  and  mind,  denied  the  faith,  and  lied  from  the 
present  death  of  the  flesh,  became  their  own  murderers:  for 
they  will  go  down  into  hell  to  suffer  the  penalties  of  their 
wicked  cowardice.  For  the  Judge  shall  descend  from  heaven  : 
and  those  who  with  all  their  heart  have  loved  Him,  and  ear- 
nestly practised  entire  virtuousness  of  life,  He  will  call,  saying, 

Mat.  xxv.  "  Come,  ye  blessed  of  My  Father,  inherit  the  kingdom  pre- 
"  pared  for  you  from  the  foundations  of  the  world."  -  But 
those  who  have  led  careless  and  dissolute  lives,  nor  maintained 
the  glory  of  faith  in  Him,  on  them  will  He  pass  a  severe  and 
overwhelming  sentence,  saying  unto  them,  "  Depart,  ye  cursed, 
"  into  everlasting  fire." 

This  He  teaches  us  by  saying,  "  In  that  night  there  shall  be 
"  two  men  in  one  bed  :  one  shall  be  taken,  and  one  shall  be 
"  left.  Two  women  shall  be  grinding  at  a  mill  together,  the 
"  one  shall  be  taken,  and  the  other  left."  Now  by  the  two 
who  are  in  one  bed,  He  seems  to  hint  at  those  who  live  in  rest 
and  pleuty,  and  are  equal  to  one  another,  as  far  as  regards 
their  being  possessed  of  worldly  affluence  :  for  the  bed  is  the 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  549 

symbol  of  rest.  "  But  one  of  them,  He  says,  shall  be  taken, 
"  and  one  shall  be  left."  How,  or  in  what  manner  ?  It  is 
because  not  all  those  who  are  possessed  of  wealth  and  ease  in 
this  world  are  wicked  and  merciless.  For  what  if  a  man  be 
rich,  but  be  gentle  and  merciful,  and  not  destitute  of  the  praise 
of  compassion  upon  the  poor  ;  if  he  be  ready  to  share  his  wealth 
with  others,  and  affable  of  address;  thoroughly  liberal  and 
sober-minded ;  upright  in  the  faith,  and  of  an  urgent  zeal  for 
piety  ;  if  too,  according  to  the  Saviour's  expression,  he  have 
made  for  himself  friends  by  his  use  of  the  unrighteous  mammon, 
this  man  is  taken  :  but  the  other,  who  was  not  thus  minded, 
shall  be  left. 

"  Two  women,  He  says,  shall  be  grinding  at  a  mill ;  the  one 
"  shall  be  taken,  and  the  other  left."  And  by  these  again  He 
seems  to  mean  such  as  live  in  poverty  and  labour :  but  even 
in  these,  He  says,  there  is  a  certain  vast  difference.  For  some 
have  borne  the  burden  of  poverty  manfully,  honouring  a  sober 
and  virtuous  course  of  life  :  while  others  have  been  of  a  dif- 
ferent character,  crafty  for  every  wicked  practice,  and  the  con- 
trivers of  all  baseness.  There  will  be  therefore  even  in  their 
case  a  full  and  exact  investigation  of  their  manners,  and  he 
that  is  good  will  be  taken,  and  he  that  is  not  so  will  be  left. 

As  Christ  however,  our  common  Saviour,  had  used  the  ex- 
pression "  shall  be  taken,"  the  disciples  usefully  and  necessa- 
rily ask,  "  Whither,  Lord  ?  And  He  said  unto  them,  Where 
"  the  body  is,  there  will  also  the  eagles  be  gathered."     And 
what  does  this  mean  ?    By  the  use  of  a  common  and  very  plain 
fact,  He  hints  at  a  great  and  profound  mystery.     And  what  is 
this  ?  That  He  shall  descend  from  heaven  "  to  judge  the  world  Acts  xvii. 
"  in  righteousness."     But,  as  He  Himself  says,  "  He  will  send  Mat.  xxiv. 
"  His  angels,  and  they  shall  choose  the  righteous  and  the  holy  31- 
"  from  among  the  sinners,  and  bring  them  near  unto  Him :" 
but  those  others  they  will  leave  on  earth,  as  doomed  to  torment 
and  condemned  to  the  punishment  which  is  by  fire. 

Something  to  this  effect  the  very  wise  Paul  also  declares, 
where  he  writes,  "  For  I  say  unto  you,  that  we  who  are  left  jThess.iv. 
"  alive  shall  not  arrive  before  those  who  have  slept.    Suddenly,  r  Cor.  xv. 
"  in  the  twinkling  of  an  eye,  at  the  last  trump.     For  it  shall  5-- 
"  sound,  and  the  dead  in  Christ  shall  rise  incorruptible  :  and 
"  we  who  are  left  alive  shall  be  caught  up  together  with  them 


550  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  in  the  clouds  to  meet  the  Lord  in  the  air ;  and  so  shall  we 
"  ever  be  with  the  Lord." 

Just  therefore,  He  says,  as  when  a  dead  corpse  is  exposed, 
carnivorous  birds  assemble  unto  it ;  so  when  the  Son  of  man 
shall  appeal-,  then  certainly  shall  the  eagles,  even  those  who  fly 
aloft,  and  rise  superior  to  earthly  and  worldly  things,  hasten 
to  Him. 

And  He  calls  the  time  of  judgment  night,  because,  as  I  ima- 
gine, of  His  advent  being  unknown  and  unexpected.  For  we 
remember  also  one  of  the  holy  prophets  crying  out  to  them 

Amos  v.  who  love  sin,  and  saying,  "  Woe  unto  them  that  desire  the  day 
"  of  the  Lord  !  What  will  the  day  of  the  Lord  be  unto  you? 
"  and  it  is  darkness  and  not  light ;  and  thick  darkness  that 
"  hath  no  brightness  in  it."     And  again,  Christ  Himself  has 

John  ix.  4.  somewhere  said  to  the  holy  apostles  :  :'  I  must  work  the  works 
"  of  Him  That  sent  Me  while  it  is  day:  the  night  cometh, 
"  when  no  man  can  work."     And  one  also  of  the  holy  apostles 

1  Thess.  v.  wrote,  "  The  day  of  the  Lord  cometh  as  a  thief,"  that  is,  with- 
out beino-  foreknown. 

In  order  therefore  that  we  may  be  taken  by  Christ,  let  us 
abandon  all  earthly  anxieties,  and  devote  ourselves  to  every 
kind  of  good  work.  For  so  will  He  accept  us,  and  make  us 
His  own,  and  crown  us  with  honours  from  on  high  :  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion, 
with  the  Holr  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  551 


SERMON   CXIX. 

And  He  .spake  a  parable  unto  them,  to  the  intent  that  menq.  xviii.  r- 
ought  always  to  pray,  and  must  not  grow  weary  ;  saying,    ■ 
There  ivas  in  a  certain  city  a  judge,  who  feared  not  God,GTs.  add. 
neither  felt  shame  at  man.      And  there  was  a  widow  "'  ^1°" ;  s ' 
that  city,  and  she  came  to  hiin  and  said,  Avenge  me  of  my 
adversary.     And  he  would  not  for  a  time  :  but  afterwards  W^™ 
he  said  within  himself,  Though  I  fear  not  God,  and  have  ^^ow  s, 
no  reverence  for  man,  yet  because  this  widow  wearieth  me,  koI  a»ep. 
I  will  avenge  her,  lest  finally  she  annoy  me  by  her  coming.  0^  iv&  ' 
And  the  Lord  said,   Hear  what  the   unjust  judge  saith.R- 

OLKOIHTOV   S. 

And  shall  not  God  avenge  His  elect,  who  cry  unto  Him  day  Tpj>j  a{,Tiv 
and  night,  and  He  is  longsuffering  towards  them  ?    I  tell^-^ 
you  that  He  will  avenge  them  speedily.    Nevertheless,  when 
the  Son  of  man  cometh,  shall  He  find  faith  upon  the  earth? 

THE  fountain  of  every  blessing  is  Christ ;  "  Who  of  God  was  i  Cor.  i.  30. 
"  also  made  unto  us  wisdom :"  for  in  Him  we  are  made  wise, 
and  filled  with  spiritual  gifts.  Now  any  one  who  is  right- 
minded  will  affirm  that  the  knowledge  of  those  things  bv  means 
of  which  we  may  prosper  in  every  method  of  saintly  excellence 
of  life,  and  advance  in  virtue,  is  God's  gift,  and  one  well 
worthy  of  our  winning.  And  we  find  one  who  asked  it  of  God, 
saying,  "  Shew  me  Thy  ways,  0  Lord :  and  teach  me  Thy  Pa.  xxr.  4. 
"  paths."  Now  the  paths  which  lead  those  onward  to  an 
uncorrupt  life,  who  eagerly  advance  therein,  are  indeed  nume- 
rous ;  but  one,  which  especially  benefits  those  who  practise  it, 
is  prayer:  and  the  Saviour  was  Himself  careful  to  teach  us 
by  the  parable  now  set  before  us,  that  we  must  make  diligent 
use  of  it.  "  For  He  spake,  it  says,  a  parable  unto  them,  to  the 
"  intent  that  men  ought  always  to  pray,  and  must  not  grow 
"  weary." 

For  it  is,  I  affirm,  the  duty  of  those  who  set  apart  their  lives 
for  His  service,  not  to  be  sluggish  in  their  prayers,  nor  again 
to  consider  it  as  a  hard  a+kl  laborious  duty :  but  rather  to 
rejoice,  because  of  the  freedom  of  access  granted  them  by 
God ;  for  He  would  have  us  converse  with  Him  as  sons  with  a 


.5.52  COMMENTARY  UPON 

father.  Is  not  this  then  a  privilege  worthy  of  being  valued  by 
us  most  highly?  For  suppose  that  some  one  of  those  possessed 
of  great  earthly  power  were  easy  of  access  to  us,  and  were  to 
permit  us  to  converse  with  him  with  full  license,  should  we  not 
consider  it  as  a  reason  for  extraordinary  rejoicing?  What 
possible  doubt  can  there  be  of  this  ?  When  therefore  God  per- 
mits us  each  one  to  offer  our  addresses  unto  Him  for  whatever 
we  wish,  and  has  set  before  those  who  fear  Him  an  honour  so 
truly  great  and  worthy  of  their  gaining,  let  all  slothfulness 
cease  that  would  lead  men  to  an  injurious  silence  therein;  and 
rather  let  us  draw  near  with  praises,  and  rejoicing  that  we 
have  been  commanded  to  converse  with  the  Lord  and  God  of 
all,  having  Christ  as  our  Mediator,  Who  with  God  the  Father 
grants  us  the  accomplishment  of  our  supplications.  For  the 
2  Cor.  i.  i.  blessed  Paul  somewhere  writes,  "  Grace  be  unto  you,  and 
"  peace,  from  God  our  Father,  and  from  our  Lord  Jesus 
"  Christ."  And  He  somewhere  Himself  said  to  the  holy  apo- 
Johnxvi.  sties,  "Hitherto  ye  have  asked  nothing  in  My  Name:  ask,  and 
24'  "  it  shall  be  given  unto  you."     For  He  is  our  Mediator,  our 

Propitiation,  our  Comforter,  and  the  Bestower  of  every  request. 

i  Thess.  v.  It  is  our  dutv  therefore  to  "  prav  without  ceasing."  according 
i r.  * 

to  the  words  of  the  blessed  Paul,  as  well  knowing,  and  being 

thoroughly  assured,  that  He  Whom  we  supplicate  is  able  to 
James  i.  6.  accomplish  all  things.  "  For  let  a  man,  it  says,  ask  in  faith, 
"  in  nothing  divided  :  for  he  who  is  divided  is  like  a  wave  of 
"  the  sea,  troubled  and  blown  about  by  the  wind.  For  let  not, 
"  it  says,  that  man  think  that  he  will  receive  anything  of  the 
"  Lord.'"  For  he  that  is  divided  is  really  guilty  of  mockery  : 
for  if  thou  dost  not  believe  that  He  will  incline  unto  thee,  and 
gladden  thee,  and  fulfil  thy  request,  do  not  draw  near  to  Him 
at  all,  lest  thou  be  found  an  accuser  of  the  Almighty,  in  that 
thou  foolishly  art  divided.  We  must  avoid  therefore  so  base  a 
malady. 

But  that  God  will  incline  His  ear  to  those  who  offer  Him 
their  prayers,  not  carelessly  nor  negligently,  but  with  earnest- 
ness and  constancy,  the  present  parable  assures  us.  For  if  the 
constant  coming  of  the  oppressed  widow  prevailed  upon  the 
unjust  judge,  who  feared  not  God,  neither  had  any  shame  at 
men,  so  that  even  against  his  will  he  granted  her  redress,  how 
shall  not  He  Who  loveth  mercy,  and  hateth  iniquity,  and  Who 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  553 

ever  giveth  His  helping  hand  to  them  that  love  Him,  accept 
those  who  draw  near  to  Him  day  and  night,  and  avenge  them 
as  being  His  elect  ? 

But  come  now,  and  let  us  examine  who  it  is  that  offend 
against  them :  for  the  examination  of  this  question  will  beget 
much  that  is  of  profit  to  all  who  are  well  taught.  For  very 
many,  and  those  of  various  classes,  offend  against  the  saints. 
For  the  holy  ministers  and  teachers,  who  rightlv  divide  the 
word  of  truth,  are  assailed  by  all  who  are  the  truth's  enemies ; 
men  ignorant  of  the  sacred  doctrines,  and  estranged  from  all 
uprightness,  who  walk  in  the  crooked  path,  remote  from  the 
straight  and  royal  road.  Such  are  the  impure  and  polluted 
gangs  of  heretics,  whom  one  may  justly  call  the  gates  of  de- 
struction, the  snares  of  hell,  the  pitfalls  of  the  devil,  the  slough 
of  destruction.  These  bring  persecutions  and  distresses  upon 
such  as  walk  uprightly  in  the  faith ;  and  just  as  men  drunk 
with  wine,  and  unable  to  stand,  take  hold  often  of  those  near 
them,  that  they  may  not  fall  to  the  earth  alone,  so  also  these, 
as  being  lame  and  halt,  often  bring  to  ruin  with  them  those 
who  are  not  steadfast.  Against  such  men  must  all  who  are 
known  of  God  make  supplications,  imitating  the  holy  apostles, 
who,  calling  out  against  the  wickedness  of  the  Jews,  said,  "-And  Actsiv.  29 
"  now,  Lord,  behold  their  threatenings,  and  grant  unto  Thy 
"  servants  that  with  freedom  of  speech  they  may  declare  Thy 
"  word." 

But  perchance  some  one  will  say,  '  But  lo  !  Christ  somc- 
'  where  said  to  the  holy  apostles,  "Love  your  enemies:  pray  Lukevi.37, 
'  "  for  them  who  use  you  despitefully :"  how  then  can  we  cry 
'  out  against  them,  without  despising  the  divine  command  ? ' 
To  this  we  answer,  Shall  we  then  pray  that  boldness  and  power 
may  be  given  them  by  God,  that  they  may  more  strenuously 
attack  those  who  praise  His  doings,  not  permitting  them  to 
teach,  and  resisting  the  glory  of  Him  to  Whom  we  address  the 
supplication?  But  how  would  not  this  be  thorough  folly? 
Whenever  therefore  offences  are  committed  by  any  against  us 
personally,  let  us  immediately  even  count  it  our  glory  to  be 
forgiving  towards  them,  and  full  of  mutual  love;  and  imi- 
tating the  holy  fathers,  even  though  they  smite  and  scorn  us, 
yea,  even  though  they  inflict  violence  upon  us  of  every  kind,  let 
us  free  them  from  all  blame,  and  be  superior  both  to  wrath 

4  B 


55+  COMMENTARY  UPON 

and  vexation.  Such  glorving  becomes  the  saints,  and  is  pleasing 
to  God. 

But  when  any  sin  against  the  glory  of  God,  heaping  up  wars 
and  distresses  against  those  who  are  the  ministers  of  the  divine 
message,  then  indeed  let  us  at  once  draw  near  unto  God, 
beseeching  His  aid.  and  crvin!)-  out  against  those  who  resist 
His  glory  :  just  as  also  the  mighty  Moses  did ;  for  he  said, 

Num. x. 35.  »  ^\r\$G}  0  Lord,  and  let  Thine  enemies  be  scattered,  and  let 
"  all  those  who  hate  Thy  Name  flee  away."  And  the  prayer 
also  uttered  by  the  holy  apostles  shews,  that  it  is  not  with- 
out advantage  for  the  success  of  the  divine  message  for  the 
hand,  so  to  speak,  of  the  persecutors  to  be  weakened.  "  For 
"  behold,  they  say,  their  threatening^/'  that  is.  prove  their 
opposition  to  be  in  vain,  and  grant  unto  "  Thy  servants,  that 
"  with  freedom  of  speech  they  may  speak  Thy  word." 

But  that  men  would  make  merchandize  of  the  word  of  up- 
rightness, and  prevail  on  many  to  abandon  a  sound  faith,  in- 

Jer.  xxiii.  volving  them  in  the  inventions  of  devilish  error,  and  "  belching 
"  forth,  as  Scripture  saith,  things  out  of  their  own  hearts,  and 
"  not  out  of  the  mouth  of  the  Lord,"  He  foretold,  saying, 
"  When  the  Son  of  man  cometh,  shall  He  find  faith  upon  the 
"  earth  ?"  It  escaped  not  His  knowledge  :  how  could  it,  seeing 
that  He  is  God  Who  knoweth  all  things?   He  tells  us  then,  to 

Matt. xxiv.  use  his  own  words,  that  "the  love  of  many  will  grow  cold," 

iTim  iv  1  and  tnat  "m  tne  latter  times  some  shall  depart  from  a  cor- 
"  rect  and  blameless  faith,  going  after  seducing  spirits,  and 
"  giving  heed  to  the  false  words  of  men  who  arc  seared  in 
"  mind."  Against  whom  we  draw  near  unto  God  as  faithful 
servants,  praying  Him  that  their  wickedness,  and  their  at- 
tempts against  His  glory,  may  be  brought  to  no  eifect. 

And  others  also  there  are  who  wrong  the  servants  of  God, 
and  whom  we  may  without  sin  attack  in  prayer.  And  who 
again  are  these  ?  They  are  the  evil  and  opposing  powers,  and 
Satan  the  adversary  of  us  all,  who  fiercely  resists  those  who 
would  live  well ;  who  casts  into  the  pitfalls  of  wickedness  who- 
ever slumbers ;  who  plants  in  us  the  seeds  of  every  sin.  For 
with  his  satellites  he  presses  upon  us  furiously.     And  on  this 

Ps.  lxii.  3.  account  the  Psalmist  called  out  against  them,  saying,  "  How 
"  long  set  ye  yourselves  against  man?  and  ye  slay  all  of  you, 
"  as  it  were  a  leaning  wall,  and  a  bowing  fence."    For  just  as  a 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  55o 

wall  that  already  leans  on  one  side,  and  a  fence  that  bows  over 
as  having  been  loosened,  readily  fall  when  any  one  pushes  against 
them,  so  also  the  mind  of  man,  by  reason  of  its  own  great  in- 
clination of  itself  to  the  love  of  worldly  pleasures,  readily  falls 
into  them  whenever  any  one  draws  and  entices  it  thereto.  And 
this  is  Satan's  business :  and  therefore  we  say  in  oar  prayers 
to  Him  Who  is  able  to  save,  and  to  drive  away  from  us  that 
wicked  being,  "  Avenge  me  of  my  adversary/'  And  this  the 
Only-begotten  Word  of  God  has  indeed  done  by  having  become 
Man :  for  He  has  ejected  from  his  tyranny  over  us  the  ruler 
of  this  world,  and  has  delivered  and  saved  us,  and  put  us 
under  the  yoke  of  His  kingdom. 

Excellent  therefore  is  it  to  make  request  by  constant  prayer  ; 
for  Christ  will  receive  our  supplications,  and  fulfil  our  petitions  : 
by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be  praise  and 
dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen.h 


11  Mai  ascribes  here  to  S.  Cyril 
an  interpretation,  which  even  Theo- 
phylact,  from  whom  it  is  taken,  (p. 
474,)  characterises  as  curious  (Trepi- 
epyov).  According  to  it  the  widow 
represents  the  human  soul,  which 
having  divorced  her  first  husband 
the  devil,  is  therefore  persecuted  by 
him  as  her  adversary.  On  which  ac- 
count she  prays  to  God,  the  Judge  of 


injustice,  because  He  condemns  the 
unjust,  and  Who  fears  not  God, 
that  is,  Himself,  nor  regards  man, 
as  not  accepting  man's  person  :  but 
Who,  wearied  by  her  constant 
prayers,  at  length  delivers  her.  The 
rest  of  the  extract  is  equally  a  sum- 
mary of  what  follows  in  Theophy- 
lact,  but  contains  nothing  remark- 
able. 


4  B  2 


556  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  CXX. 

C.  xviii.  9-  And  He  spake  also  this  parable  unto  certain  who  trust  in 

**•  themselves  that  they   are   righteous,   and   despise   others. 

Two  men  went  up  unto  the  temple  to  pray,  the  one  a  Pha- 

*al<5*ap.S.      risee,  and  the  other  a  publican.     And  the  Pharisee  stood 

and  prayed  thus  to  himself :   God,  I  thank  Thee  that  1 

am  not  like  the  rest  of  mankind,  extortioners,  unjust,  adul- 

om.KalS.        terers,  or  as  this  publican.     I  fast  twice  in  the  week:  I 

A  5c  tca.         pay  tithe  of  all  that  I  gain.     But  the  publican,  standing 

?ia'  GT*  afar  °ff>  W0UM  not  Oft  UP  wen  h™  eVes  unt0  heaven,  but 

om.  «i  B.  smote  upon  his  breast,  saying,  God,  be  merciful  unto  me  the 

add.  8t«  S.  sinner.     I  tell  you  that  this  man  went  down  to  his  house 

fl  yap  i'om.  justified  rather  than  the  other.    For  every  one  that  exalteth 

^sLff*  himself  shall  be  abased,  and  he  that  abaseth  himself  shall 

vos  GST j.  J 

■nap  infivov      be  exalted. 


vos 

B 


YE  who  love  instruction,  and  are  eager  to  listen,  receive 
once  again  the  sacred  words :  delight  yourselves  in  the  honey 

Prov.  xvi.   of  wisdom  ;  for  so  it  is  written,  "  Good  words  are  honeycombs, 

*4-  "  and  their  sweetness  is  the  healing  of  the  soul."     For  the 

labour  of  the  bees  is  very  sweet,  and  benefits  in  many  ways  the 
soul  of  man :  but  the  divine  and  saving  (honey)  makes  those  in 
whom  it  dwells  skilful  in  every  good  work,  and  teaches  them 
the  ways  of  (spiritual)  improvement.  Let  us  therefore,  as  I 
said,  receive  again  in  mind  and  heart  the  Saviour's  words. 
For  He  teaches  us  in  what  manner  we  ought  to  make  our  re- 
quests unto  Him,  in  order  that  the  act  may  not  prove  un- 
rewarded to  them  who  practise  it ;  and  that  no  one  may  anger 
God,  the  Bestower  of  gifts  from  on  high,  by  means  of  those 
very  things  by   which   he  imagines  that  he  shall  gain  some 

Ecclea.  vii.  benefit.     For  it  is  written,  (i  There  is  a  righteous  man,  who 

*5-  i<  perisheth  in  his  righteousness." 

For  see,  I  pray,  an  instance  of  this  clearly  painted,  so  to 
speak,  in  the  parable  set  before  us.  One  who  prayed  is  con- 
demned because  he  did  not  offer  his  prayer  wisely.  "  For 
"  two  men,  it  says,  went  up  unto  the  temple  to  pray,  the  one  a 
"  Pharisee,  and  the  other  a  publican."     And  here  we  must 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  557 

admire  the  wise  arrangement  of  Christ  our  common  Saviour,  in 
all  things  whatsoever  He  does  and  says.  For  by  the  parable 
previously  read  to  us,  He  called  us  to  diligence,  and  to  the  duty 
of  offering  prayer  constantly:  for  the  Evangelist  said,  "And 
**  He  spake  unto  them  also  a  parable,  to  the  intent  that  men 
"  ou^ht  always  to  pray,  and  must  not  grow  weary."  Having 
then  urged  them  to  diligence  in  constant  prayer,  yet,  as  I  said, 
lest  by  doing  so  sedulously  but  without  discretion,  we  should 
enrage  Him  Whom  we  supplicate,  He  very  excellently  shews  us 
in  what  way  we  ought  to  be  diligent  in  prayer.  "  Two  men 
"  then,  He  says,  went  up  unto  the  temple  to  pray."  Observe 
here,  I  pray,  the  impartiality  and  entire  fairness  of  the  unerring- 
Nature  :  for  He  calls  those  who  were  praying  men,  since  He 
looks  not  so  much  at  wealth  or  power ;  but  regarding  their 
natural  equality,  He  considers  all  those  who  dwell  upon  earth 
as  men,  and  as  in  no  respect  different  from  one  another. 

And  what  then  was  the  manner  of  their  prayer?  "  The  Pha- 
"  risee,  it  says,  prayed  thus  to  himself.  God,  I  thank  Thee 
"  that  I  am  not  like  the  rest  of  mankind,  extortioners,  unjust, 
"  adulterers,  or  as  this  publican."  Many  at  once  are  the  faults 
of  the  Pharisee :  for  first  of  all  he  is  boastful,  and  without 
sense;  for  he  praises  himself,  although  the  sacred  Scripture 
cries  aloud,  "  Let  a  neighbour  praise  thee,  and  not  thy  own  Prov.xrvu. 
"  mouth :  a  stranger  and  not  thine  own  lips."  But,  0  excel-  *■ 
Jent  sir,  one  may  well  say  to  him,  Behold,  those  who  live  in 
the  practice  of  good  and  holy  actions,  as  any  one  may  see,  are 
not  very  reatiy  to  listen  to  the  words  of  flatterers  :  yea,  and 
even  if  men  extol  them,  they  often  are  covered  with  shame, 
and  drop  their  eyes  to  the  ground,  and  beg  silence  of  those 
that  praise  them.  But  this  shameless  Pharisee  praises  and 
extols  himself  because  he  is  better  than  extortioners,  and  the 
unjust,  and  adulterers.  But  how  did  it  escape  thy  notice,  that 
a  man's  being  better  than. the  bad  does  not  necessarily  and  of 
course  prove  him  to  be  worthy  of  admiration  :  but  that  to  vie 
with  those  who  habitually  excel,  is  a  noble  and  honourable 
thing,  and  admits  a  man  into  the  number  of  those  who  are 
justly  praised. 

Our  virtue  therefore  must  not  be  contaminated  with  fault, 
but  must  be  singleminded  and  blameless,  and  free  from  all 
that  can  bring  reproach.     For  what  profit  is  there  in  fasting 


5b8  COMMENTARY  UPON 

twice  in  the  week,  if  thy  so  doing  serve  only  as  a  pretext  for 
ignorance  and  vanity,  and  make  thee  supercilious  and  haughty, 
and  selfish  ?  Thou  tithest  thy  possessions,  and  makest  a  boast 
thereof:  but  thou  in  another  way  provokest  God's  anger,  by 
condemning  men  generallv  on  this  account,  and  accusing 
others;  and  thou  art  thyself  puffed  up,  though  not  crowned  by 
the  divine  decree  for  righteousness,  but  heapest,  on  the  con- 
trary, praises  upon  thyself.     "  For  I  am  not,  he  says,  as  the 

Pa.  cxli.  3.  «  rest  of  mankind."  Moderate  thyself,  0  Pharisee  :  "  put  a 
"  door  to  thy  tongue,  and  a  lock."  Thou  speakest  to  God 
Who  knoweth  all  things.  Await  the  decree  of  the  Judge. 
None  of  those  skilled  in  the  practice  of  wrestling  ever  crowns 
himself:  nor  does  any  man  receive  the  crown  of  himself, 
but  awaits  the  summons  of  the  arbiter.  Lower  thy  pride : 
for  arrogance  is  both  accursed  and  hated  by  God.  Although 
therefore  thou  fastest  with  puffed  up  mind,  thy  so  doing  will 
not  avail  thee :  thy  labour  will  be  unrewarded ;  for  thou 
hast  mingled  dung  with  thy  perfume.  Even  according  to  the 
law  of  Moses  a  sacrifice  that  had  a  blemish  was  not  capable 
of  being   offered    to   God :    for  it  was   said  unto  him,  "  Of 

Lev.  xxii.  "  sheep,  and  ox,  that  is  offered  for  sacrifice,  there  must  be 
"  no  blemish  therein."  Since  therefore  thy  fasting  is  ac- 
companied by  pride,  thou  must  expect  to  hear  God  saying, 

Is.  Iviii.  5.  "  This  is  not  the  fast  that  I  have  chosen,  saith  the  Lord." 
Thou  offerest  tithes :  but  thou  wrongest  in  another  wav  Him 
Who  is  honoured  bv  thee,  in  that  thou  conderanest  men  gene- 
rally.     This  is  an  act  foreign  to  the  mind  that  fears  God :  for 

Lukevi.37.  Christ  even  said,  "Judge  not,  and  ye  shall  not  be  judged: 
"  condemn  not,  and  ye  shall  not  be  condemned.1"'   And  one  also 

James  iv.  of  His  disciples  said,  "  There  is  one  Lawgiver,  and  Judge  : 
"  why  then  judgest  thou  thy  neighbour  ?"  No  man  because  he 
is  in  health  ridiculeth  one  who  is  sick  for  being  laid  up  and 
bedridden  :  rather  he  is  afraid,  lest  perchance  he  become 
himself  the  victim  of  similar  suffering's.  Nor  does  anv  man  in 
battle,  because  another  has  fallen,  praise  himself  for  having 
escaped  from  misfortune.  For  the  infirmity  of  others  is  not  a 
fit  subject  for  praise  for  those  who  are  in  health  :  nay.,  even  if 
any  one  be  found  of  more  than  usually  vigorous  health,  even 
then  scarcely  does  he  gain  glory  thereby.  Such  then  was  the 
state  of  the  self-loving  Pharisee. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  559 

But  what  of  the  publican  ?  He  stood,  it  says,  "  afar  off,"  not 
even  venturing,  so  to  speak,  to  raise  up  his  eyes  on  high. 
Thou  seest  him  abstaining  from  all  boldness  of  speech,  as  having 
no  right  thereto,  and  smitten  by  the  reproaches  of  conscience : 
for  he  was  afraid  of  being  even  seen  by  God,  as  one  who  had 
been  careless  of  His  laws,  and  had  led  an  unchaste  and  dissolute 
life.  Thou  seost  also  that  by  his  external  manner,  he  accuses 
his  own  depravity.  For  the  foolish  Pharisee  stood  there  bold 
and  broad,  lifting  up  his  eyes  without  scruple,  bearing  witness 
of  himself,  and  boastful.  But  the  other  feels  shame  at  his 
conduct :  he  is  afraid  of  his  Judge,  he  smites  upon  his  breast, 
he  confesses  his  offences,  he  shews  his  malady  as  to  the  Physi- 
cian, he  prays  that  he  may  have  mercy.  And  what  is  the 
result  ?  Let  us  hear  what  the  Judge  saith,  "  This  man,  He 
"  says,  went  down  to  his  house  justified  rather  than  the 
"  other." 

Let  us  therefore  "  pray  without  ceasing,"  according  to  the  i  Thess.  v. 
expression  of  the  blessed  Paul :  but  let  us  be  careful  to  do  so  x ' ' 
aright.     The  love  of  self  is  displeasing  to  God,  and  He  rejects 
empty   haughtiness   and  a   proud   look,   puffed   up   often    on 
account  of  that  which  is  by  no  means  excellent.     And  even  if 
a  man  be  good  and  sober,  let  him  not  on  this  account  suffer 
himself  to  fall  away  into  shameful  pride :  but  rather  let  him 
remember  Christ,  Who  says  to  the  holy  apostles,  "  When  ye  Luke  xvii. 
"  have  done  all  those  things,  those  namely  which  have  been  IO- 
"  commanded    you,    say,  We   are    unprofitable   servants,   we 
"  have  done  that  which  was  our  duty  to  do."    For  we  owe  unto 
God  over  all,  as  from  the  yoke  of  necessity,  the  service  of 
slaves,  and  ready  obedience  in  all  things  *.     Tea,  though  thou 
leadest  an  excellent  and  elect  life,  exact  not  wages  of  the 
Lord ;  but  rather  ask  of  Him  a  gift.     As  being  good,  He  will 
promise  it  thee :  as  a  loving  Father,  He  will  aid  thee.   Restrain 
not  thyself  then  from  saying,  "  God  be  merciful  to  me  the  sinner." 
Remember  Him  Who  says  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  "  Declare  is.  xliii.  »6. 
"  thou  thy  sins  first,  that  thou  may  est  be  justified  :"  remember 
too  that   He   rebukes   those    who  will   not  do  so,  and  says, 
"  Behold,  I  have  a  judgment  against  thee,  because  thou  sayest  Jer.  ii.  35. 

t  Mai  adds  here  a  few  lines  from     rical  to  belong  to  any  but  an  infe- 
A  and  E,  summing  up  the  parable     rior  writer, 
in  a  string  of  antitheses,  too  rheto- 


560  .    COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  I  have  not  sinned.11     Examine  the  words  of  the  saints:  for 

Prov. xviii.  one  saith,  "The  righteous  is  the  accuser  of  himself  in  the 

Ps.  xxx^-.  "  beginning  of  his  words.11     And  another  again,  "  I  said,  I  will 

"  confess  against  myself  my  transgression  unto  the  Lord :  and 

"  thou  forgavest  the  iniquity  of  my  heart." 

What  answer  then  will  those  make  to  this,  who  embrace  the 
new  tenets  of  Novatus,  and  say  of  themselves  that  they  are 
pure  ?  Whose  prayer  do  they  praise  ?  That  of  the  Pharisee, 
who  acquitted  himself,  or  that  of  the  Publican,  who  accused 
himself?  If  they  say  that  of  the  Pharisee,  they  resist  the 
divine  sentence  ;  for  he  was  condemned  as  being  boastful :  but 
if  that  of  the  Publican,  why  do  they  refuse  to  acknowledge 
their  own  impurity  ?  Certainly  God  justifies  those  who  know 
well  their  transgressions,  and  are  willing  to  confess  them :  but 
these  men  will  have  the  portion  of  the  Pharisee. 
Jame9iii.2.  We  then  say,  that  in  many  things  we  "all  of  us  offend," and 
that  no  man  is  pure  from  uncleanness,  even  though  his  life 
upon  earth  be  but  one  day.  Let  us  ask  then  of  God  mercy ; 
which  if  we  do,  Christ  will  justify  us:  by  Whom  and  with 
Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the 
Holv  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  561 


SERMON  CXXL 

And  they  brought  also  unto  Him  infants,  that  He  should  c.xviii.15- 
touch  them :  but  when  the  disciples  saw  them,  they  rebuked  rJ\  ,  ,  „ 
them.     But  Jesus  called  them  and  said.  Suffer  little  chil-  imrlnvv 


dren  to  come  unto  Me,  and  hinder  them  not ;  for  of  such  is  >. 


e7reTiu77craj/ 


the  kingdom  of  God.     Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  whoso-  Gs 
ever  shall  not  receive  the  kingdom  of  God  as  a  little  child,  ^J*j  * 
shall  not  enter  therein.  a"Th  *l*ev 

GSTj. 

EVERY  manner  of  benefit  does  Christ  weave  for  us,  and  opens  ZParo\iyuv 
wide  the  pathways  of  salvation.     For  His  purpose  is  to  save  B- 
the  dwellers  upon  earth,  and  produce  in  them  a  knowledge  of 
the  pursuits  of  piety,  and  make  them  skilful  in  all  virtue,  that 
they  may  be  acceptable,  being  filled  with  spiritual  fruitful ness. 
Let  us  see  therefore  what  benefit  He  begets  in  us  by  what  has 
just  been  read.  For  ye  have  heard  the  holy  Evangelist  saying, 
"  That  they  brought  unto  Him  infants  that  He  should  touch 
"  them  :  and  when  the  disciples  prevented  them,  He  took  them 
"  and  said,  Suffer  them  to  come  unto  Me,  and  hinder  them 
"  not :    for  of  such  is  the   kingdom  of  God."     It  was  their 
mothers  who  brought  the  babes,  desiring  His  blessing,  and 
begging  for  their  infants  the  touch  of  His  holy  hand.    But  the 
blessed  disciples  rebuked  them  for  so  doing,  not  because  they 
envied  the  babes,  but  rather  as  paying  to  Him  as  their  teacher 
a  due  respect,  and  preventing,  so  to  speak,  unnecessary  fatigues, 
and  as  setting  much  value  upon  order. 

And  infants  even  to  the  present  time  are  brought  near  and 
blessed  by  Christ  by  means  of  consecrated  hands  :  and  the 
pattern  of  the  act  continues  even  until  this  day,  and  descends 
unto  us  from  the  custom  of  Christ  as  its  fountain.  Only  the 
bringing  near  of  infants  takes  not  place  now  in  an  unbecoming 
or  disorderly  manner,  but  with  proper  order,  and  sobriety  and 
fear. k 

k  S.  Cyril  in  these  words  refers  in  the  ancient  church  immediately 
to  the  imposition  of  hands,  or  as  it  followed  baptism  even  in  the  case  of 
is  now  called  confirmation,  which     infants.     Cf.  Bingham's  Antiq.   B. 

4C 


562  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Since  then  Christ  has  said,  "  Suffer  the  little  children  to 
"  come  unto  Me,  and  hinder  them  not;  for  of  such  is  the  king- 
"  dom  of  God,"  come  then,  yea  come,  and  let  us  carefully  exa- 
mine, what  sort  of  persons  those  must  be,  who  desire  eternal 
life,  and  are  enamoured  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven.  For  some 
one  forsooth  may  say,  '  What  is  there  in  babes  that  is  worthy 
'  of  emulation  ?  Is  it  their  want  of  firmness  and  intelligence  ? 
'  And  how  then  is  it  not  incredible, -to  affirm  or  imagine  anything 
'  of  the  kind  ?'  Christ  however  does  not  wish  us  to  be  without 
understanding,  but  would  have  us  perfectly  know  every  thing 
that  is  useful  and  necessary  for  our  salvation.  For  wisdom  even 

Prov.  i.  4.  promises  that  she  will  give  "  to  them  that  are  simple,  craftiness, 
and  to  the  young  the  beginning  of  sense  and  understanding." 
And  she  is  found  also  in  the  book  of  Proverbs  like  one  that 

ProT.viii.4.  raiseth  her  voice  on  high  and  saith,  "  You,  0  men,  do  I 
"  beseech,  and  utter  my  voice  unto  the  sons  of  men  :  under- 
"  stand,  0  ye  simple  ones  craftiness,  and  ye  fools,  put  a  heart 
"  within  you."  It  follows  therefore,  that  the  fool  has  no  heart, 
and  is  deficient  in  craftiness ;  not  in  that  which  is  blamable| 
how  could  that  be  ?  but  in  that  which  is  praiseworthy.  But 
how  a  man  may  at  once  be  both  simple  and  crafty,  the  Saviour 

Mat.  1. 16.  Himself  elsewhere  explains  to  us,  saying,  "  Be  ye  crafty  as  ser- 
"  pents,  and   simple  as  doves."      And   similarly  the  blessed 

1  Cor. xiv.  Paul  also  writes,  "My  brethren,  be  ye  not  children  in  your 

20'  "  minds  :  but  in  wickedness  be  ye  babes,  and  in  your  minds 

"  grown  men." 

It  is  necessary  however  to  examine,  what  is  the  meaning  of 
being  babes  in  wickedness,  and  how  a  man  becomes  so,  but  in 
mind  a  grown  man.  A  babe  then,  as  knowing  either  very 
little,  or  nothing  at  all,  is  justly  acquitted  of  the  charge  of 
depravity  and  wickedness  :  and  so  it  is  also  our  duty  to  endea- 
vour to  be  like  them  in  the  very  same  way,  by  putting  entirely 
away  from  us  habits  of  wickedness,  that  we  too  may  be  re- 
garded as  men  who  do  not  even  know  the  pathway  which  leads 
unto  rmile,  but  who,  unconscious  of  malice  and  fraud,  live  in  a 
simple  and  innocent  manner,  practising  gentleness,  and  a  price- 
less humility,  and  readily  forbearing  from  wrath  and  spiteful- 

xii.  c.  I.  §.2.     The  passage  further     the  Latins  used  this  rite  of  imposi- 
proves,  that  the  Greeks  as  well  as      tion,  cf.  Antiq.  xii.  3.  §.5. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  563 

ness.     For  such  we  affirm  are  the  qualities  found  in  those  who 
are  still  babes. 

But  while  such  is  our  character  in  simplicity  and  innocence, 
we  must  be  perfect  in  mind  ;  having  our  understanding  firmly 
established  in  the  clear  knowledge  of  Him  Who  by  nature  and 
in  truth  is  the  Creator  of  the  Universe,  and  God  and  Lord  : 
acknowledging  along  with  Him  no  other  God  whatsoever,  new, 
and  falsely  so  named  :  and  avoiding  as  that  which  would  bring 
upon  us  perdition,  the  being  seduced  into  the  abandonment  of 
Him  by  the  adoption  of  the  customs  of  the  heathen.  Our  mind 
then  must  be  firmly  fixed,  so  to  speak,  and  safe,  and  unwavering 
in  holding  unto  the  living  and  true  God  :  and  we  must  further 
also  flee  far  away  from  other  pitfalls,  and  withdraw  from  the 
stumbling-blocks  of  the  devil ;  for  such  those  men  are,  who 
corrupt  the  orthodox  doctrine  respecting  God,  and  falsify  the 
truth,  and  lift  up  their  horn  on  high,  and  speak  wickedly 
against  God.  For  they  belch  forth  things  out  of  their  own 
heart,  and  lead  astray  the  souls  of  the  simple,  warring  against 
the  glory  of  the  Only-begotten  Son  of  God,  and  saying  that 
He  is  to  be  numbered  among  things  created,  whereas  it  was  by 
Him  that  they  all  were  brought  into  existence.  And  bringing 
down  severe  and  inevitable  condemnation  upon  their  own  heads, 
they  fear  not  to  say  the  very  same  things  also  against  the  Holy 
Ghost.  Whosoever  then  says  of  them  that  they  are  the  gates 
of  hell,  errs  not  from  the  mark.  And  the  wise  Paul  also  pro- 
tests unto  us,  that  we  must  turn  away  our  faces  from  such 
men  :  "  For  if,  he  says,  any  one  preach  unto  you  other  than  Gal.  i.  9. 
"  that  ye  have  received,  let  him  be  accursed." 

The  chief  perfection  therefore  of  the  mind  is  to  be 
established  in  the  faith,  and  for  our  understanding  to  be  un- 
corrupted  therein  :  and  the  second,  which  neighbours  upon  this 
chief  perfection,  and  is  akin  to  it,  and  its  constant  com-  <rw8Ponos. 
panion,  is  the  clear  knowledge  of  that  way  of  conduct  which 
pleases  God,  and  is  taught  us  in  the  Gospel,  and  is  perfect  and 
blameless.1     Those  who  travel  thereon  lead  a  life  of  simplicity 

» The  Catenists,who  have  summed  in  these  words ;  "  for  the  definition 
up  this  homily  in  very  few  lines,  "  of  philosophy  is  to  he  sincere,  but 
(cf.  Mai,  p.  378.  from  A.  B.  and  D.)  "  sagacious,"  ro  fitra  oWo-ewr 
give  the  purport  of  this  paragraph     a\a<rrov  fivai. 

4C2 


564  COMMENTARY  UPON 

and  innocence,  while  nevertheless  they  know  what  opinions 
thev  ought  to  hold,  and  what  acts  are  right  tor  them  to  do. 
These  enter  in  by  the  narrow  gate,  refusing  neither  those  la- 
bours which,  piety  unto  God  requires,  nor  such  as  are  necessary 
for  leading  a  glorious  life.  And  so  they  duly  advance  into  the 
broadness  of  the  abundance  which  is  to  God-ward,  and  rejoice 
in  His  gifts,  and  win  for  themselves  the  kingdom  of  heaven 
by  Christ ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father, 
be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and 
ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  565 


SERMON    CXXII. 

And  a  certain  ruler  asked  Him,  saying,  Good  Teacher,  what  C.  xviii. 
shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life?     And  Jesus  said  unto  l    *"' 
him,  Why  callest  thou  Me  good  ?    None  is  good,  but  one, 
God.     Thou  knoivest  the  commandments :  Thou  shalt  not 
kill;  thou  shalt  not  commit  adultery ;  thou  shalt  not  steal; 
thou  shalt  not  bear  witness  falsely ;  honour  thy  father  and 
thy  mother.     And  he  said,  All  these  have  I  kept  from  my  om.cn™  post 
youth.     And  when  Jesus  heard  these  things,  He  said  unto  ^"JaDra 
him ;   Yet  lackest  thou  one  thing  :  sell  all  that  thou  hast,  BT. 
and  distribute  to  the  poor,  and  thou  shalt  have  treasure  in 
heaven  :  and  come,  follow  Me.     And  when  he  heard  this, 
he  was  very  sorrowful :  for  he  was  very  rich.     And  Jesus 
seeing  it  said,  How  hardly  shall  they  that  have  gold  enter  add.  aM, 
into  the  kingdom  of  God  !     For  it  is  easier  for  a  camel  to  avrhv  V€pi. 
'enter  in  through  the  eye  of  a  needle,  than  for  a  rich  man  Xv™£v6' 
to  enter  the  kingdom  of  God.   And  they  that  heard  it  said,  XpU<rh  S. 
And  who  can  live?   And  He  said,  The  things  which  mre*™^™' 
impossible  with  men,  are  possible  with  God.  eltnropeiov 

r  rai  BT. 

TprifiaTOS 

THOSE  who  believe  that  the  Word,  Who  shone  forth  from  flex^BT. 

..      rpvfj.aXi.as 

the  very  substance  of  God  the  Father,  is  by  nature  and  verily  pa<Pis0s  Gs. 
God,  draw  near  to  Him  as  unto  an  omniscient  God,  Who,  as 
the  Psalmist  says,  "  trieth  the  hearts  and  reins ;"  and  seefch  all  Ps.  vii.  9. 
that  passes  in  us  :  "  for  all  things  are  naked,  and  spread  out  Heb.iv.13- 
"  before  His  eyes,"  according  to  the  expression  of  the  blessed 
Paul.  But  we  do  not  find  the  Jewish  multitudes  thus  disposed : 
for  they  with  their  princes  and  teachers  were  in  error,  and 
saw  not  with  the  eyes  of  their  mind  the  glory  of  Christ.     Ra- 
ther they  looked  upon  Him  as  one  like  unto  us :  as  a  mere 
man,  I  mean  ;  and  not  as  God  rather,  Who^had  become  man. 
They  approached  Him  therefore  to  make  trial  of  Him,  and  lay 
for  Him  the  nets  of  their  craftiness. 

And  this  thou  mayest  learn  by  what  has  now  been  read. 
For  a  ruler,  it  says,  asked  Him,  saying,  "  Good  teacher,  what 
"  shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life  ?"  And  Jesus  said  unto  him, 


566  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  Wliy  callest  thou  Me  good  ?  None  is  good  but  one,  God." 
Now  he,  who  is  here  called  a  Ruler,  and  who  fancied  himself 
to  be  learned  in  the  law,  and  supposed  that  he  had  been  accu- 
rately taught  therein,  imagined  that  he  could  convict  Christ 
of  dishonouring  the  commandment  spoken  by  the  most  wise 
Moses,  and  of  introducing  laws  of  His  own.  For  it  was  the 
object  of  the  Jews  to  prove  that  Christ  opposed  and  resisted 
the  former  commandments,  to  establish,  as  I  said,  new  laws,  of 
His  own  authority,  in  opposition  to  those  previously  existing, 
that  their  wicked  conduct  towards  Him  might  have  a  specious 
pretext.  He  draws  near  therefore,  and  makes  pretence  of 
speaking  kindly :  for  he  calls  Him  Teacher,  and  styles  Him 
Good,  and  professes  himself  desirous  of  being  a  disciple.  For 
"  what,  he  says,  shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life?'"'  Observe 
therefore  how  he  mixes  up  flattery  with  fraud  and  deceit,  like 
one  who  mingles  wormwood  with  honey :  for  he  supposed  that 
he  could  in  this  way  deceive  Him.  Of  such  men  one  of  the 
Jer.  is.  8.  holy  prophets  said,  "  Their  tongue  is  a  piercing  lance :  the 
"  words  of  their  mouth  are  deceitful.  To  his  neighbour  he 
"  speaketh  peacefully  :  but  there  is  enmity  in  his  soul."  And 
Ps.  x.  7.  again  the  wise  Psalmist  also  thus  speaks  of  them  :  "  Their 
Pa.  lv.  11.  "  mouth  is  full  of  cursing  and  bitterness."  And  again,  "  Their 
"  words  are  smoother  than  oil :  and  yet  are  they  spears." 

He  therefore  flatters  Jesus,  and  attempts  to  deceive  Him, 
making  pretence  of  being  well-disposed  to  Him.  And  what 
Job  v.  13.  does  the  Omniscient  reply,  "Who,  as  it  is  written,  taketh 
"the  wise  in  their  craftiness?0  "Why  callest  thou  Me 
"  good  ?  None  is  good  but  one,  God."  Thou  seest  how  He 
proved  at  once  that  he  was  neither  wise  nor  learned,  though 
the  ruler  of  a  synagogue  of  the  Jews.  For  if,  He  savs,  thou 
didst  not  believe  that  I  am  God,  and  the  clothing  of  the  flesh 
hath  led  thee  astray,  why  didst  thou  apply  to  Me  epithets 
suitable  to  the  supreme  nature  alone,  while  still  thou  supposedst 
Me  to  be  a  mere  man  like  unto  thyself,  and  not  superior  to  the 
limits  of  human  nature  ?  In  the  nature  that  transcends  all, 
even  in  God  only,  is  found  the  attribute  of  being  by  nature,, 
and  unchangeably  good :  but  the  angels,  and  we  upon  earth, 
are  good  by  resembling  Him,  or  rather  by  participation  of 
Ex.  tii.  14.  Him.  For  as  He  is  what  He  is,  and  this  is  His  Name,  and  His 
everlasting  memorial  for   all  generations  ;    but   we  exist  and 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  567 

come  into  being  by  being  made  partakers  of  Him  Who  really 
exists:  so  He  indeed  is  good,  or  the  o-ood  absolutely,  but  angels 
and  men  are  good,  only  by  being  made,  as  I  said,  partakers  of 
the  good  God.  Let  therefore  the  being  good  be  set  apart  as 
the  special  property  of  God  over  all  alone,  essentially  attached 
to  His  nature,  and  His  peculiar  attribute.  If.  however,  He 
says,  I  do  not  seem  to  thee  to  be  truly  God.  then  thou  hast 
ignorantly  and  foolishly  applied  to  Me  the  properties  and  vir- 
tues of  the  divine  nature,  at  the  very  time  when  thou  imaginest 
me  to  be  a  mere  man,  one  that  is  who  never  is  invested  with 
goodness,  the  property  of  the  unchangeable  nature,  but  only 
gains  it  by  the  assent  of  the  divine  will.  And  such  then  was 
the  purport  of  what  Christ  spake. 

But  those  perchance  will  not  assent  to  the  correctness  of  this 
explanation,  whose  minds  are  perverted  by  sharing  in  the  wick- 
edness of  Arius.  For  they  make  the  Son  inferior  to  the  supre- 
macy and  glory  of  God  the  Father :  or  rather,  they  contend 
that  He  is  not  the  Son ;  for  they  both  eject  Him  from  being 
by  nature  and  verily  God,  and  thrust  Him  away  from  having 
really  been  born,  lest  men  should  believe  that  He  is  also  equal 
in  substance  to  Him  Who  begat  Him.  For  they  assert,  as 
though  they  had  obtained  a  reason  for  their  blasphemy  from 
the  passage  now  before  us,  '  Behold,  He  has  clearly  and  ex- 
'  pressly  denied  that  He  is  good,  and  set  it  apart  as  something 
'  appropriate  to  God  the  Father  only:  but  verily  had  He  been 
'  equal  to  Him  in  substance,  and  sprung  from  Him  by  nature, 
'  how  would  not  He  also  be  good  as  being  God?' 

Let  this  then  be  our  reply  to  our  opponents.  Since  all  cor- 
rect and  exact  reasoning  acknowledges  a  son  to  be  consubstan- 
tial  with  the  father,  how  is  He  not  good,  as  being  God  ?  For 
He  cannot  but  be  God,  if  He  be  consubstantial  with  Him  Who 
is  by  nature  God.  For  surely  they  will  not  affirm,  however 
extreme  may  be  the  audacity  into  which  they  have  fallen,  that 
from  a  good  father  a  son  has  sprung  who  is  not  good.  For  to 
this  we  have  the  Saviour's  own  testimony,  Who  thus  speaks  ; 
"A  good  tree  cannot  bring  forth  evil  fruits."  How  from  a  good  Mat.vii.iS. 
root  has  there  shot  forth  an  evil  sprout?  Or  how  from  a  sweet 
fountain  can  there  flow  a  bitter  river  ?  Was  there  ever  a  time 
when  there  was  no  Father,  seeing  that  He  is  the  Father  eter- 
nallv  ?     But  He  is  the  Father,  because  He  has  begotten,  and 


568  COMMENTARY  UPON 

this  is  the  reason  why  He  bears  this  name,  and  not  as  being 
one  who  borrows  the  title  by  resemblance  to  some  other  per- 
son. For  from  Him  all  paternity  in  heaven  and  earth  is  named. 
We  conclude  therefore  that  the  fruit  of  the  good  God  is  the 
good  Son. 

Col.  i.  15.  And  in  another  way:  as  most  wise  Paul  says,  "  He  is  the 
"  image  of  the  invisible  God :"  and  the  image,  because  He  dis- 
plays in  His  own  nature  the  beauty  of  Him  Who  begat  Him. 
How  therefore  can  we  see  in  the  Son,  Who  is  not  good,  the 

Heb.  i.  3.  Father,  Who  is  by  nature  and  verily  good:  "  He  is  the  bright- 
"  ness  and  likeness  of  His  person  :*'  but  if  He  be  not  good,  as 
the  senseless  heretic  asserts,  but  the  Father  is  by  nature  good, 
it  is  a  brightness  different  in  nature,  and  that  possesses  not  the 
splendour  of  Him  Who  bade  it  shine.  And  the  likeness  too  is 
counterfeit,  or  rather  is  now  no  likeness  at  all:  for  it  represents 
not  Him  Whose  likeness  it  is,  if,  as  all  must  allow,  that  which 
is  not  good  is  the  contrary  of  that  which  is  good. 

And  much  more  might  one  say  in  opposition  to  them  upon 
this  point :  but  that  our  discourse  may  not  extend  to  an  unrea- 
sonable length,  and  be  burdensome  to  any,  we  will  say  no  more 
at  present,  and  hold  in  as  with  a  bridle  our  earnestness  in  this 
matter ;  but  at  our  next  meeting  we  will  continue  our  explana- 
tion of  the  meaning  of  this  passage  from  the  Gospel,  should 
Christ  once  again  assemble  us  here  :  by  Whom  and  with 
Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  dominion  with  the 
Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  569 

SERMON    CXXIII. 

THE    SAME    SUBJECT    CONTINUED. 

I  PERCEIVE  you  assembled  here  with  great  earnest- 
ness and  zeal  ;  and,  as  I  suppose,  ye  have  come  to  exact 
a  debt.  I  then,  for  my  part,  acknowledge  that  I  promised 
at  our  last  meeting  to  complete  what  was  wanting  to  my 
discourse :  and  I  have  come  to  pay  it  as  unto  children,  praying 
Christ,  our  common  Saviour,  to  impart  to  my  mind  His  divine 
light,  and  give  utterance  to  my  tongue,  that  I  may  benefit 
both  you  and  myself.  For  Paul  has  somewhere  writteu,  "  The  ?  Tim.  U.6. 
"  husbandman  who  laboureth  must  first  eat  of  the  fruits." 

Let  me  then  bring  back  to  your  remembrance  first  of  all 
what  has  already  been  considered,  and  then  we  will  proceed  to 
what  remains. 

The  blessed  Evangelist  therefore  said,  ;'  And  a  certain  ruler 
"  asked  Him,  saying,  Good  Teacher,  what  shall  I  do  to  inherit 
'*  eternal  life  ?  And  He  said  unto  him,  Why  callest  thou  Me 
"  good?  None  is  good,  but  one,  God  :"  aud  so  on  with  the 
rest  of  the  lesson.  Now  we  have  already  explained  what  is  the 
meaning  of  this  passage  in  the  Gospel,  and  enough  has  been 
said  to  you  upon  that  point :  for  we  shewed  both  that  by  na- 
ture and  verily  the  Son  is  good  as  also  He  is  Who  begat  Him ; 
and  that  the  answer,  "  Why  callest  thou  Me  good  ?  None  is 
"  good,  but  one,  God/'  was  spoken  relatively  to  the  questioner. 
Let  us  therefore  direct  our  inquiry  to  the  Scriptures  which 
follow. 

What  then  says  this  chief  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews  ? 
"What  shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life?'1  He  docs  not  ask 
with  a  view  to  learn  ;  for  then  his  question  would  have  been 
worthy  of  all  praise :  but  his  object  was  to  prove,  that  Christ 
did  not  permit  them  to  retain  the  Mosaic  commandments,  but 
led  rather  His  disciples  and  followers  unto  new  laws  enacted 
by  Himself.  For  on  this  pretext  they  rebuked  the  people 
under  their  charge,  saying  of  Christ,  our  common  Saviour, 
"  He  hath  a  devil,  and  is  mad  :  why  hear  ye  Him  V     For  John  x.  :o 

4  d     \ 


570  COMMENTARY  UPON 

they  said  that  He  had  a  devil,  and  was  mad.  on  the  supposi- 
tion that  He  had  set  up  his  own  laws  against  those  which  had 
been  given  from  above,  from  God.  True  rather  would  it  be 
to  affirm  of  them  that  they  had  a  devil,  and  were  utterly 
Mat.  v.  17.  mad,  for  resisting  the  Lord  of  the  law,  Who  had  come  not 
so  much  to  destroy  the  commandment  which  had  been  given 
of  old,  and  of  which  Moses  was  the  minister,  as  to  fulfil  it,  ac- 
cording to  His  own  words :  for  He  transformed  the  shadow 
into  the  truth. 

The  chief  of  the  synagogue  therefore  expected  to  hear 
Christ  say,  Cease,  0  man,  from  the  writings  of  Moses  ; 
abandon'the  shadow;  they  were  but  types,  and  nothing  more; 
draw  near  therefore  rather  to  My  commandments,  which  thou 
hast  in  the  Gospel :  but  He  did  not  so  answer,  because  He 
discerned  by  His  godlike  knowledge  the  object  of  him  who 
tempted  Him.  As  though  then  He  had  no  other  command- 
ments, but  those  only  given  by  Moses,  He  sends  the  man  unto 
them,  and  says,  "Thou  knowest  the  commandments."  And 
lest  he  should  say,  that  He  referred  to  His  own  command- 
ments, He  enumerates  those  contained  in  the  law,  and  says  ; 
"  Thou  shalt  not  kill :  thou  shalt  not  commit  adultery:  neither 
"  shalt  thou  bear  false  witness m."  And  what  reply  does  this 
cunning  schemer  in  wickedness  make,  or  rather  this  very  igno- 
rant and  senseless  person  ?  For  he  thought  that  even  though 
He  Whom  he  asked  was  God,  yet  nevertheless  he  could  easily 
cajole  Him  into  answering  whatever  he  chose.  But  as  the  sa- 
Prov.xii.27.  cred  Scripture  saith,  "The  prev  falleth  not  to  the  lot  of  the 
(Sept)     -crafty." 

For  though  he  had  shot  wide  of  his  mark,  and  missed  his 
prey,  he  yet  ventures  to  bait  for  Him  another  snare :  for  he 
said,  "All  these  have  I  kept  from  my  youth.-"  He  might  there- 
John  viii.    fore  well  hear  from  us  in  answer,  0  foolish  Pharisee,  "  thou 
I3'  "  bearest  witness  of  thyself;  thy  witness  is  not  true."     But 

omitting  now  this  argument,  let  us  see  in  what  way  Christ  re- 
pelled His  bitter  and  malignant  foe.    For  while  He  might  have 
Mat.  v.  3.   said,  "  Blessed  are  the  poor  in  spirit :  for  their's  is  the  kingdom 

m  Mai  adds  here  from  A.  a  short     the  law  forbids  every  kind  of  wick- 
summary  of  the  five  commandments      edness. 
quoted  by  our  Lord,  to  shew  that 


"     THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  571 

"  of  heaven :  blessed  are  the  meek :  blessed  are  the  pure  in 
"  heart :"  He  tells  him  nothing  of  this  kind,  but  because  he 
was  fond  of  lucre  and  very  rich,  He  proceeds  at  once  to  that 
which  would  grieve  him,  and  says,  "  Sell  all  that  thou  hast,  and 
"  give  to  the  poor,  and  thou  shalt  have  treasure  in  heaven; 
"  and  come,  follow  Me.;'  This  was  torture  to  the  heart  of  that 
covetous  man,  who  so  prided  himself  upon  his  keeping  of  the 
law.  It  proved  him  at  once  both  frail  and  weak,  and  alto- 
gether unfit  for  the  reception  of  the  new  message  of  the  gospel. 
And  we  too  learn  how  true  that  is  which  Christ  spake ;  "  No  ^at-  lx- 
"  man  puttetli  new  wine  into  old  wine-skins ;  else  the  skins 
"  burst,  and  the  wine  is  spilt :  but  new  wine  is  put  into  new 
"  wine-skins."  For  the  chief  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews 
proves  to  be  but  an  old  wine-skin,  that  cannot  hold  the  new 
wine,  but  bursts  and  becomes  useless.  For  he  was  saddened, 
although  he  had  received  a  lesson  that  would  have  won  for 
him  eternal  life. 

Bat  those  who  have  received  in  them  by  faith  Him  Who 
makes  all  things  new,  even  Christ,  are  not  rent  asunder  by 
receiving  from  Him  the  new  wine.  For  when  they  have  but 
newly  received  from  Him  the  word  of  the  gospel  message, 
which  gladdeneth  the  heart  of  man,  they  become  superior  to 
wealth  and  the  love  of  lucre :  their  mind  is  established  in 
courao-e :  they  set  no  value  on  temporal  things,  but  thirst 
rather  after  things  eternal :  they  honour  a  voluntary  poverty, 
and  are  earnest  in  love  to  the  brethren.  For,  as  it  is  written 
in  the  Acts  of  the  holy  Apostles,  "As  many  as  were  possessors  Actsiv.34. 
"  of  lands  or  houses  sold  them,  and  brought  the  prices  of  the 
"  things  that  were  sold,  and  laid  them  at  the  apostles'  feet ; 
"  and  distribution  was  made  unto  every  one  according  to  his 
"  need." 

As  the  ruler  therefore  was  too  infirm  of  purpose,  and  could 
not  be  pi*evailed  upon  even  to  listen  to  the  advice  of  selling  his 
possessions,  although  it  would  have  been  good  for  him,  and  full 
of  reward,  our  Lord  lays  bare  the  malady  which  has  its  lair  in 
the' rich,  thus  saying,  "  How  hardly  shall  they  that  have  riches 
"  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God  !  And  I  say  unto  you,  that  it  is 
"  easier  for  a  camel  to  enter  in  through  the  eye  of  a  needle, 
"  than  a  rich  man  into  the  kingdom  of  God."  Now ~  by  a 
camel  He  means  not  the  animal  of  that  name,  but  a  thick  cable 

4  D   2 


572  COMMENTARY  UPON 

rather :  for  it  is  the  custom  of  those  well  versed  in  navigation 
to  call  the  thicker  cables  "  camels." 

Observe  however,  that  He  does  not  altogether  cut  away  the 
hope  of  the  rich,  but  reserves  for  them  a  place  and  way  of  sal- 
vation. For  He  did  not  say  that  it  is  impossible  for  a  rich  man 
to  enter  in,  but  that  he  does  so  with  difficulty. 

When  the  blessed  disciples  heard  these  words,  they  objected, 
Bavine.  "And  who  can  live?"  And  their  plea  was  for  those 
who  had  wealth  and  possessions.  For  we  know,  they  say,  that 
no  one  will  ever  be  persuaded  to  abandon  his  wealth  and 
riches  :  "  Who  then  can  be  saved  ? "  But  what  does  the  Lord 
reply?  "  The  things  that  are  impossible  with  men,  are  possible 
"  with  God."  He  has  reserved  therefore  for  those  who  possess 
wealth  the  possibility  of  being  counted  worthy,  if  they  will,  of 
the  kingdom  of  God :  for  even  though  they  refuse  entirely 
to  abandon  what  they  have,  yet  it  is  possible  for  them  in 
another  way  to  attain  unto  honour.  And  the  Saviour  has 
Himself  shewed  us  how  and  in  what  way  this  can  happen, 
savins,  "  Make  to  yourselves  friends  of  the  unrighteous 
"  mammon  :  that  when  it  has  failed,  they  may  receive  you  into 
"  eternal  tabernacles."  For  there  is  nothing  to  prevent  the 
rich,  if  they  will,  from  making  the  poor  partakers  and  sharers 
of  the  abundance  which  they  possess.  What  hinders  him  who 
has  plentiful  possessions  from  being  affable  of  address,  and 
ready  to  communicate  to  others,  easily  prevailed  upon  to  give, 
and  compassionate,  and  full  of  that  generous  pity  which  is 
wellpleasing  to  God.     Not  unrewarded,  nor  unprofitable  shall 

James ii.     we  find  carefulness  in  this  respect;  for  "mercy  boasteth  over 

I3'  "  judgment,"  as  it  is  written. 

By  every  argument  therefore,  and  in  every  way  does  our 
common  Saviour  and  Lord  benefit  us :  by  Whom  and  with 
Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the 
Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  573 


SERMON  CXXIV. 


And  Peter  said,  Lo  we  have  left  all,  and  followed  Thee.  C.xviii. 
And  He  said  unto  them.  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  There  is  &*fa*in 
no  man  that  hath  left  house,  or  wife,  or  brethren,  or  parents, 


travra  teal 

or  children,  for  the  kingdom  of  God's  sake,  who  shall  not  ra'rsia 
receive  manifold  more  in  this  present  time,  and  in  the  world  ?GT"  „  ,« 

"  L  r)  you.  j]  a5. 

to  come  eternal  life.  f)  yw.  Gs. 

HE  Who  is  the  fountain  of  sacred  doctrines  causes  here  also 
a  healthful  stream  to  flow  for  us,  and  the  very  season,  as  it 
seems,  bids  us  say  unto  those  who  search  into  the  divine  words, 
"  Ye  who  thirst,  come  to  the  waters."     For  there  is  set  before  Is.  lv.  i. 
you  that  ye  may  partake  thereof  "the  torrent  of  pleasure,"  even 
Christ.     For  by  this  name  the  prophet  David  makes  mention 
of  Him,  saying  unto  God  the' Father  in  heaven  ;  "But  the  sons  Pa.  xxxvi. 
"  of  men  shall  trust  in  the  protection  of  Thy  wings  :  they  shall    ' 
"  be  satisfied  with  the  fatness  of  Thy  house,  and  Thou  shalt 
"  make  them  drink  of  the  torrent  of  Thy  pleasure.1'' 

And  what  the  stream  is  which  here  gushes  forth  for  us 
from  Him,  the  purport  of  the  evangelic  lessons  now  set  before 
us  clearly  teaches :  "  For  Peter,  it  says,  said  unto  Him,  Lo ! 
"  we  have  left  all  and  followed  Thee."  And  to  this  another 
Evangelist,  Matthew,  adds,  "  What  then  shall  we  have?"  Let  Mat.  six. 
us  however,  before  proceeding  to  any  of  the  other  points,  first  2~' 
enquire  into  the  occasion  which  brought  the  discourse  to  this 
present  subject. 

When  therefore  our  common  Saviour  Christ  said  unto  one  of 
the  chiefs  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews,  "  Go,  sell  all  that  thou 
"  hast,  and  give  to  the  poor,  and  thou  shalt  have  treasure  in 
"  heaven,  and  come,  follow  Me,"  the  disciples  ask,  What  they 
shall  have  from  God  who  keep  this  precept :  and  usefully  they 
take  upon  themselves,  as  representing  a  class,  the  outline  of  the  oIkovo/u- 
matter.  But,  as  I  imagine,  to  this  some  may  reply,  '  W^hat 
'  after  all  had  the  disciples  given  up  ?  for  they  were  men  who 
'  gained  the  necessaries  of  life  by  their  sweat  and  labour,  being 
'  by  trade  fishermen,  who  at  most  perhaps  owned  somewhere  a 
'  boat  and  nets  :  who  had  neither  well-built  houses,  nor  any 
1  other  possessions.     What  therefore  had  they  left,  or  for  what 


KUS. 


574  COMMENTARY  UPON 

'  did  they  ask  of  Christ  a  recompense  ?'  What  therefore  do  we 
answer  to  this  ?  Chiefly,  that  for  this  very  reason  they  made 
this  most  necessary  enquiry.  For  inasmuch  as  they  possessed 
nothing  but  what  was  trifling  and  of  slight  value,  thev  would 
learn  in  what  manner  God  will  requite,  and  gladden  with  His 
gifts  those  who  likewise  have  left  but  little  for  the  sake  of  the 
kingdom  of  God,  for  the  desire,  that  is.  of  being  counted  worthy 
of  the  kingdom  of  heaven  for  their  love's  sake  towards  Him. 
For  the  rich  man,  as  one  who  has  disregarded  much,  will  confi- 
dently expect  recompense :  but  he  who  possessed  but  little, 
and  abandoned  it,  how  was  it  not  right  to  ask,  what  hopes  he 
might  entertain  ?  For  this  reason,  as  representing  those  in  like 
condition  with  themselves,  in  respect  of  their  having  left  but 
little,  they  say,  "  Behold,  we  have  left  all  and  followed  Thee." 

And  it  is  further  necessary  to  observe  this  also ;  that,  cor- 
rectly considered,  the  pain  of  abandoning  is  the  same  whether 
it  be  of  much  or  little.  For  come  let  us  see  the  real  import  of 
the  matter  by  a  trifling  example.  Supposing  that  two  men 
had  to  stand  naked,  and  in  so  doing  the  one  stripped  himself  of 
raiment  of  great  price,  while  the  other  put  off  only  what  was 
cheap  and  easy  of  acquisition,  would  not  the  pain  of  the  naked- 
ness be  equal  in  both  eases  ?  What  possible  doubt  can  there  be 
upon  this  point  ?  As  far  therefore  as  regards  obedience  and 
good-will,  those  must  be  placed  upon  an  equal  footing  with  the 
rich,  who  though  differently  circumstanced,  yet  practised  equal 
readiness,  and  willingly  bore  the  selling  of  what  they  had. 
And  the  very  wise  Paul  also  takes  up  their  cause,  where  he 
i  Cor.  viii.  thus  wrote :  "For  if  there  be  a  ready  mind,  it  is  accepted 
"  according  to  what  a  man  hath,  and  not  according  to  what  he 
"  hath  not."  The  enquiry  therefore  of  the  holy  apostles  was 
not  an  unreasonable  one. 

What  then  said  Christ  unto  them,  Who  accepteth  not  per- 
sons ?  "  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  There  is  no  man  who  hath  left 
"  houses  or  brethren,  or  children,  or  parents,  for  the  kingdom 
"  of  God's  sake,  who  shall  not  receive  manifold  more  in  this 
"  present  time,  and  in  that  which  is  to  come  eternal  life." 
Worthy  of  God  is  the  declaration,  and  holy  and  admirable 
the  decree.  For  observe  how  He  raises  up  all  who  hear  to  an 
assured  hope,  promising  not  merely  the  fulness  of  the  boun- 
teous gift  which  is  bestowed  upon  the  saints,  but  confirming 


17 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  575 

His  promise  by  an  oath,  by  prefixing  to  His  declaration  the 
word  Verily,  which,  so  to  speak,  performs  the  part  of  an  oath. 
And  not  only  does  He  include  within  His  promises  those  who 
disregard  wealth,  but  those  also,  He  says,  who  leave  father  or 
mother,  or  wife  or  brethren,  for  the  kingdom  of  God's  sake, 
shall  receive  manifold  more  in  this  world,  and  in  that  which  is 
to  come  eternal  life. 

But  that  those  who  have  led  a  virtuous  life  necessarily  gain 
the  life  eternal,  there  can  be  no  doubt  whatsoever  :  some 
inquiry  is  however  necessary,  in  the  first  place,  as  to  who  they 
are  who  leave  father  and  mother,  and  wife,  and  brethren,  and 
houses :  and  secondly,  a  still  more  exact  examination  of  the 
way  in  which  those  who  thus  act  shall  receive  manifold  more 
in  this  world. 

Men  thersfore  leave  father  and  mother,  and  wife  and  bre- 
thren, and  oftentimes  count  for  nought  the  natural  affection 
due  to  the  ties  of  kindred,  for  love's  sake  unto  Christ.  And  in 
what  manner  they  do  so,  He  teaches  us  by  saying,  at  one  time, 
"  He  that  loveth  father  or  mother  more  than  Me  is  not  worthy  Mat.  x.  37. 
"  of  Me ;  and  he  that  loveth  son  or  daughter  more  than  Me  is 
"  not  worthy  of  Me  :"  and  at  another  time  again,  "  Think  not  Mat.  x.  34. 
"  that  I  am  come  to  send  peace  on  earth  ;  I  tell  you  nay,  I  am 
"  not  come  to  send  peace,  but  division :  for  I  am  come  to  divide 
"  a  man  from  his  father,  and  the  daughter  from  her  mother, 
"  and  the  daughter-in-law  from  her  mother-in-law."  For  when 
the  divine  message  of  the  gospel  is  catching  as  in  a  net  the 
whole  world' unto  faith  in  Him,  and  raising  it  up  unto  the  light 
of  the  true  knowledge  of  God,  there  are  those  who  would  readily 
enter  in,  did  they  not  suffer  from  an  injurious  shame,  as  being 
afraid  either  on  their  father's  account,  or  their  mother's,  and 
taking  too  much  into  consideration  their  anger  or  their  sorrow. 
For  if  these  arc  idolaters,  they  will  not  consent  that  their  sons 
or  daughters  should  yield  themselves  unto  Christ's  service,  and 
abandon  the  error  in  which  they  have  been  brought  up,  and 
which  has  become  habitual  with  them.  And  often  when  the 
sons  are  unbelieving  and  ill-disposed,  their  fathers  have  not 
the  courage  to  vex  them  by  hastening  unto  the  faith,  and 
seizing  the  salvation  which  is  by  Christ.  And  the  same  ex- 
planation may  be  given  respecting  brethren  with  brethren,  and 
the  daughter-in-law  with  her  mother-in-law,  and  the  latter 


576  COMMENTARY  UPON 

with  the  former.  But  those  who  are  strong  in  mind,  and  prefer 
nothing  to  the  love  of  Christ,  eagerly  grasp  the  faith,  and 
earnestly  endeavour  to  gain  admission  into  His  household  by  a 
spiritual  relationship,  heeding  nothing  the  wars,  or  rather 
divisions  which  will  follow,  with  those  who  are  their  kindred 
according  to  the  flesh.  And  in  this  way  then  men  leave  house 
and  kindred  for  Christ's  sake,  that  they  may  win  His  Name  n, 
being  called  Christians  ;  or  rather  for  His  glory's  sake,  for 
frequently  His  Name  means  His  glory. 

But  next  let  us  see,  in  what  way  one  who  leaves  house  or 
father  or  mother  or  brethren,  or  it  may  be  his  wife  even,  re- 
ceives manifold  more  in  this  present  time.  Shall  he  become 
the  husband  of  many  wives,  or  find  on  earth  many  fathers 
instead  of  one.  and  thus  have  his  earthly  kindred  greatly  mul- 
tiplied ?  This  is  not  what  we  say,  but  rather,  that  abandoning 
these  carnal  and  temporal  things,  he  shall  receive  what  is  far 
more  valuable,  and  so  to  speak,  manifold  times  as  much  as 
what  was  disregarded  by  him.  For  let  us  take,  if  you 
please,  the  holy  apostles  as  our  examples ;  and  we  say  then 
of  them,  that  they  were  men  not  distinguished  in  worldly  sta- 
tion, nor  skilled  in  eloquence,  nor  did  they  possess  a  polished 
tongue,  or  elegance  of  words  :  on  the  contrary  thev  were  un- 
trained  in  speech,  and  by  trade  fishermen,  who  gathered  by 
their  labour  the  means  of  life  :  but  whatever  they  had  they 
left,  that  they  might  be  the  constant  attendants  and  ministers 
of  Christ ;  nor  could  any  thing  hinder  them,  or  draw  them 
away  to  other  occupations,  or  worldly  pursuits.  -Having  left 
them  but  little,  what  did  they  gain  ?  They  were  filled  with  the 
Holy  Ghost :  they  received  power  over  unclean  spirits,  to  cast 
them  out :  they  wrought  miracles  :  the  shadow  of  Peter  healed 
those  that  were  sick :  they  became  illustrious  among  mankind 
everywhere  :  foremost  in  glory  ;  worthy  of  emulation,  and 
renowned,  b'»th  while  they  were  still  living,  and  afterwords  as 
well.  For  who  knows  not  those  who  taught  the  world  Christ's 
mystery  ?  Who  wonders  not  at  the  -crown  of  glory  that  was 
bestowed  upon  them  ? 

But  perchance  thou  sayest,  '  Shall  we  all  of  us  therefore 

a  As  usual,  the  reading  in  St.  "  for  the  kingdom  of  God's  sake," 
Matthew's  Gospel  was  present  in  St.  we  find,  "for  My  Name's  sake.'' 
Cyril's  mind;  for  there,  instead  of      (Mat.  xix.  29.) 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  577 

'  become  like  them  V    To  this  we  answer,  that  each  one  of  us 
also  who  have  believed  in  Christ  and  loved  His  Name,  if  he 
have  left  a  house  shall  receive  the  mansions  that  are  above : 
and  if  he  have  abandoned  a  father,  shall  gain  that  Father  Who 
is  in  heaven.     If  he  be  abandoned  by  his  brethren,  yet  will 
Christ  admit  him  to  brotherhood  with  Him.    If  he  leave  a  wife, 
he  shall  have  as  the  inmate  of  His  house  Wisdom  who  cometh 
down  from  above,  from  God.     For  it  is  written,  "Say  unto  Prov.vii.4. 
"  Wisdom  that  she  is  thy  sister,  and  make  Understanding  thy 
"  friend."     By  her  shalt  thou  bring  forth  beautiful  spiritual 
fruits,  by  means  of  which  thou  shalt  be  made  a  partaker  of  the 
hope  of  the  saints,  and  join  the  company  of  the  angels.     And 
though  thou  leave  thy  mother,  thou  shalt  find  another  incom- 
parably more  excellent, — even  "  the  Jerusalem  that  is  above,  Gal.  iv.  26. 
"  which  is  free,  and  our0  mother."     How  are  not  these  things 
manifold  times  more  than  those  that  were  left  ?     For  they 
were  but  transitory,  and  rapidly  do  they  waste,  and  lightly 
fail  us  utterly  !  for  as  the  dew,  and  like  a  dream,  so  they  pass 
away.     But  he  who  is  counted  worthy  of  these  things  becomes 
even  in  this  world  illustrious  and  enviable,  being  adorned  with 
glory  both  before  God  and  men.    Manifold  more  therefore  are 
these  thiugs  than  all  that  is  earthly  and  carnal,  and  the  Giver 
of  them  is  our  common  Lord  and  Saviour  :  by  Whom  and  with 
Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the 
Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 

0  The  Syriac  is  supported  by  the     MSS.   in  the  rejection  of  navruvj 
majority   of    the    more    important     "  all." 


4E 


578  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON    CXXV. 


C.  xviii.      And  He  took  the  twelve,  and  said  unto  them,  Behold,  we  go 
3'"34'  up  to  Jerusalem,  and  all  those  things  shall  be  accomplished 

which  are  written  in  the  prophets  of  the  Son  of  man.  For 
He  shall  be  delivered  up  to  the  heathen,  and  shall  be 
mocked,  and  shamefully  entreated,  and  spit  upon.  And 
when  they  have  scourged  Him,  they  shall  put  Him  to  death: 
and  on  the  third  day  He  shall  rise  again.  And  they  un- 
derstood none  of  these  things,  and  this  word  was  hid  from 
them,  and  they  knew  not  what  wa3  said. 

THE  blessed  prophet  David  has  spoken  one  of  those  things 
which  are  of  great  importance  for  our  benefit,  especially  as  it 
refers  to  what  is  of  constant  occurrence,  so  to  speak,  to  men's 

Ps.cxix.6o.  minds.  "  For  I  was  prepared,  he  says,  and  was  not  troubled." 
p  For  whatever  happens  unexpectedly,  whenever  it  is  of  a  serious 
character,  exposes  even  courageous  persons  to  agitation  and 
alarm,  and  sometimes  to  unendurable  terrors.  But  when  it  has 
been  mentioned  before  that  it  will  happen,  its  attack  is  easily 
averted.  And  this,  1  think,  is  the  meaning  of,  "  I  was  prepared, 
"  and  was  not  troubled." 

For  this  reason  the  divinely-inspired  Scripture  very  fitly 
says  unto  those  who  would  attain  unto  glory  by  leading  a 

Ecclus.il x.  course  of  holy  conduct,  "  My  son,  if  thou  drawest  near  to 
"  serve  the  Lord,  prepare  thyself  for  temptation.  Direct  thy 
"  heart,  and  endure."  For  it  does  not  so  speak  in  order  to 
produce  in  men  an  abject  slothfulness  which  will  win  no  reward, 
but  that  they  may  know  that  by  practising  patience  and  en- 
durance, they  will  overcome  the  temptations  which  befal  all 
who  would  live  virtuously,  and  prove  superior  to  every  thing 
that  could  harass  them.  And  so  here  also  the  Saviour  of  all,  to 
prepare  beforehand  the  disciples'  minds,  tells  them  that  He 
shall  suffer  the  passion  upon  the  cross,  and  death  in  the  flesh, 
as  soon  as  He  has  gone  up  to  Jerusalem.  And  he  added  too, 
that  He  should  also  rise,  wiping  out  the  pain,  and  obliterating 
the  shame  of  the  passion  by  the  greatness  of  the  miracle.    For 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  579 

glorious  was  it,  and  worthy  of  God,  to  be  able  to  sever  the 

bonds  of  death,  and  hasten  back  unto  life.     For  testimony  is  Rom.  L  4. 

borne  Him  by  the  resurrection  from  the  dead,  according  to 

the  expression  of  the  wise  Paul,  that  He  is  God  and  the  Son 

of  God. 

It  is  necessary,  however,  for  us  to  explain  what  the  benefit 
was  which  the  holy  apostles  received  from  having  learnt  the 
approach  of  those  things  which  were  about  to  happen.  By  this 
means  then  He  cuts  away  beforehand  both  unseemly  thoughts 
and  all  occasion  for  stumbling.  How,  you  ask,  or  in  what 
way  ?  The  blessed  disciples  then,  I  answer,  had  followed 
Christ,  our  common  Saviour,  in  His  circuit  through  Judaea  : 
thev  had  seen  that  there  was  nothing,  however  ineffable,  and 
worthy  of  all  wonder,  which  He  could  not  accomplish.  For 
He  called  from  their  graves  the  dead  when  they  had  already 
decayed :  to  the  blind  He  restored  sight :  and  wrought  also 
other  works,  worthy  of  God  and  glorious.  They  had  heard  Him 
say,  "  Are  not  two  sparrows  sold  for  a  farthing  ?  and  one  Mat.  x.  19. 
"  of  them  doth  not  fall  to  the  ground  without  your  Father." 
And  now  thev  who  had  seen  these  things,  and  been  emboldened 
by  His  woras  unto  courageousness,  were  about  to  behold  Him 
enduring  the  ridicule  of  the  Jews,  crucified,  and  made  a  mock 
of,  and  receiving  even  buffets  from  the  servants.  It  was  possible 
therefore,  that  being  offended  because  of  these  things,  they 
might  think  thus  within  themselves,  and  say :  He  Who  is  so 
great  in  might,  and  possesses  such  godlike  authority  ;  "Who 
performs  miracles  by  His  nod  alone ;  Whose  word  is  almighty, 
so  that  even  from  their  very  graves  He  raises  the  dead ;  Who 
says  too  that  His  Father's  providence  reaches  even  to  the 
birds  ;  Who  is  the  Only-begotten,  and  first-born :  how  did  He 
not  know  what  was  about  to  happen  ?  Is  He  too  taken  in 
the  nets  of  the  foe,  and  made  the  prey  of  His  enemies, 
Who  even  promised  that  He  would  save  us  ?  Is  He  then  dis- 
regarded and  despised  of  that  Father,  without  Whose  will  not 
even  a  tiny  bird  is  taken  ?  These  things  perchance  the  holy 
apostles  might  have  said  or  thought  among  themselves.  And 
what  would  have  been  the  consequence  ?  They  too,  like  the 
rest  of  the  Jewish  multitude,  would  have  become  unbelieving, 
and  ignorant  of  the  truth. 

4  E  2 


580  COMMENTARY  UPON 

That  they  might  therefore  be  aware  both  that  He  foreknew 
His  passion,  and  though  it  was  in  his  power  easily  to  escape, 
that  yet  of  His  own  will  He  advanced  to  meet  it,  He  told  them 
beforehand  what  would  happen.     In  saying  then,  "Behold,  we 
"  go  up  to  Jerusalem,"  He,  so  to  speak,  testified  urgently  and 
commanded  them  to  remember  what  had  been  foretold.     And 
He  added  necessarily,  that  all  these  things  had  been  foretold 
by  the  holy  prophets.     For  Isaiah,  as  in  the  person  of  Christ, 
la.  l.  6.       says  ;    "  I  have  given  My  back  to  scourgings,  and  My  cheeks 
u  to  buffetings :  and  My  face  I  have  not  turned  away  from  the 
"  shame  of  spittings."     Aud  again,  in  another  place,  He  says 
U.  liii.  7.    of  Him,  "  As  a  sheep  He  was  led  unto  the  slaughter,  and  was 
Is.  liii-  6.    "  silent,  as  a  lamb  before  its  shearer/'     And  again,  "  All  we 
"  like  sheep  have  gone  astray  :  every  one  hath  gone  astray  in 
"  his  path :  and  the  Lord  hath  delivered  Him  up  because  of 
"  our  sins."    And  again  the  blessed  David  also  in  the  twenty- 
first  P  Psalm,  painting  as  it   were  beforehand  the  sufferings 
upon  the  cross,  has  set  before  us  Jesus  speaking  as  one  that  lo ! 
Pa.  xxii.  6.  already  was  hanging  upon  the  tree,  "  But  I  am  a  worm,  and 
"  not  a  man  :  the  reproach  of  men,  and  a  thing  rejected  of  the 
"  people.     All  those  that  have  seen  Me,  have  derided  Me  : 
"  they  have  spoken  with  their  lips,  and  shaken  their  heads ; 
"  He  trusted  in  the  Lord  :  let  Him  deliver  Him."     For  some 
of  the  Jews  did  shake  their  wicked  heads  at  Him,  deriding 
Mat.  xxvii.  Him,  and  saying,  "  If  Thou  art  the  Son  of  God,  come  down 
4"  "  now  from  the  cross,  and  we  will  believe  Thee."     And  again 

P3.xxii.18.  He  said,  "  They  parted  My  garments  among  them,  and  upon 
"  My  vesture  they  cast  the  lot."     And  again  in  another  place 
P3.  lxix.21.  He  says  of  those  that  crucified  Him,  "  They  gave  gall  for  My 
"  food,  and  for  My  thirst  they  made  Me  drink  vinegar." 

Of  all  therefore  that  was  about  to  befal  Him,  nothing  was 
unforetold,  God  having  so  ordered  it  bv  His  Providence  for 
our  use,  that  when  the  time  came  for  it  to  happen,  no  one 
might  be  offended.  For  it  was  in  the  power  of  one  Who  knew 
beforehand  what  was  about  to  happen,  to  refuse  to  suffer  alto- 


P  In  the   Septuagint,  the   ninth      sequent  Psalms  are  numbered  one 
and  tenth  Psalms  are  incorporated      less  than  in  our  version, 
into  one,  and  therefore  all  the  sub- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  581 

gether.     No  man  then  compelled   Him  by  force,  nor  again 
were  the  multitudes  of  the  Jews  stronger  than  His  mi^ht :  but 
He  submitted  to  suffer,  because  He  knew  that  His  passion 
would  be  for  the  salvation  of  the  whole  world.  For  He  endured 
indeed  the  death  of  the  flesh,  but  rose  again,  having  trampled 
upon  corruption,  and  by  His  resurrection  from  the  dead,  He 
planted  in  the  bodies  of  mankind  the  life  that  springs  from 
Him.     For  the  whole  nature  of  man  in  Him  hastened  back  to 
incorruption.     And  of  this  the  wise  Paul  bears  witness,  savins:, 
at  one  time,  "  For  since  by  man  was  death,  by  man  was  also  rCor.xv.ai. 
the  resurrection  of  the  dead."     And  again,  "  For  as  in  Adam 
"  all  die,  so  also  in  Christ  shall  all  live."    Let  not  those  there- 
fore who  crucified  Him  indulge  in  pride  :  for  He  remained  not 
among  the  dead,  seeing  that  as  God  He  possesses  an  irresistible 
might :  but  rather  let  them  lament  for  themselves,  as  being 
guilty  of  the  crime  of  murdering  the  Lord.     This  the  Saviour 
also  is  found  saying  to  the  women  who  were  weeping  for  Him, 
"  Daughters  of  Jerusalem,  weep  not  for  Me,   but  weep  for  Luke  xxiii. 
"  yourselves,  and  for  your  children."     For  it  was  not  right  28' 
that  they  should  lament  for  Him,  Who  was  about  to  arise  from 
the  dead,  destroying  thereby  corruption,  and  shaking  death's 
dominion ;  but  more  fitly,  on  the  contrary,  would  they  lament 
over  their  own  afflictions. 

The  Saviour  of  all  then  declared  these  things  beforehand  to 
the  holy  apostles  :  "  but  they,  it  says,  understood  not  what 
"  was  said,  and  the  word  was  hid  from  them."     For  as  yet 
they  knew  not  accurately  what  had  been  before  proclaimed  by 
the  holy  prophets.     For  even  He  Who  was  first  among  the 
disciples  heard  the  Saviour  once  say  that  He  should  be  cru- 
cified, and  die,  and  arise  :   but  in  that  he  did  not  as  yet  under- 
stand the  depth  of  the  mystery,  he  resisted  it,  saying,  "  That  Mat.  xvi. 
"  be  far  from  Thee,  Lord :  this  shall  not  be  unto  Thee."    But  "" 
he  was  rebuked  for  so  speaking :  because  he  as  yet  knew  not 
the  purport  of  the  Scripture  inspired  of  God  relating  there- 
unto.    But  when  Christ  arose  from  the  dead,  He  opened  their  Luke  xxiv. 
eyes,  as  another  of  the  holy  Evangelists  wrote  ;  for  they  were  3I' 
enlightened,  being  enriched  with  the  abundant  participation  of 
the  Spirit.     For  they  who  once  understood  not  the  words  of 
the  prophets,  exhorted  those  who  believed  in  Christ  to  study 


582  COMMENTARY  UPON 

a  Pet.  i.  19.  their  words,  saying,  "  We  too  have  a  more  sure  prophetic 
"  word,  whereurito  ye  do  well  to  look,  as  unto  a  lamp  that 
"  shineth  in  a  dark  place,  until  the  day  shine  forth,  and  the 
"  light-star  arise  in  your  hearts."  And  this  has  also  reached  its 
fulfilment :  for  we  have  been  enlightened  in  Christ ;  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion, 
with  the  Holv  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  583 


SERMON   CXXVI. 

And   it   came   to  pass,   that  as  He  drew  near  unto  Jeri-  c.  xviii. 
cho,  a  certain  blind  man  sat  by  the  way  side  begging :  3o~43' 
and  hearing  a  multitude  passing  by,  he  asked  what   it 
meant.    And  they  told  him  that  Jesus  of  Nazareth  passeth 
by.     And   he   cried,  saying,  Jesus,  Son   of  David,  have 
mercy  upon  me.     And  they  who  went  before  rebuked  him 
that  he  should  hold  his  peace.     But  he  cried  out  so  much 
the  more,  Son  of  David,  have  mercy  upon  me.     And  Jesus 
stood  still,  and  commanded  that  they  shoidd  bring  him  to 
Him.     And  when  he  drew  near,  He  asked  him,  What  wilt  add.  \i-ywv 
thou  that  I  should  do  unto  thee  ?    And  he  said,  Lord,  that 
I  may  receive  my  sight.  And  Jesus  said  unto  him,  Receive 
thy  sight:  thy  faith  hath  made  thee  live.  And  immediately 
he  received  his  sight,  and  followed  Him,  glorifying  God. 
And  all  the  people  when  they  saw  it  gave  glory  to  God. 

WHOSOEVER  are  yet  without  understanding,  and  accept 
not  the  faith  in  Christ,  may  justly  have  that  said  unto  them 
which  was  spoken  by  the  voice  of  David,  "  Come  and  see  the  Ps.  xlvi.  8. 
"  works  of  God,  the  miracles  that  He  hath  put  upon  earth.11 
For  He  wrought  miracles  after  no  human  fashion,  though  He 
was  in  appearance  a  man  such  as  we  are ;  but  with  godlike 
dignity  rather,  for  He  was  God  in  form  like  unto  us,  since  He 
changed  not  from  being  what  He  was,  as  the  purport  of  the 
passage  now  read  from  the  Gospels  proves  to  us.  "  For  the 
"  Saviour,  it  says,  was  passing  by.  And  a  blind  man  cried 
"  out,  saying,  Son  of  David  have  mercy  on  me/'  Let  us  then 
examine  the  expression  of  the  man  who  had  lost  his  sight ;  for 
it  is  not  a  thing  to  pass  by  without  enquiry,  siuce  possibly  the 
examination  of  what  was  said  will  beget  something  highly  ad- 
vantageous for  our  benefit. 

In  what  character  then  does  he  address  to  Him  his  prayer : 
Is  it  as  to  a  mere  man,  according  to  the  babbling  of  the  Jews, 
who  stoned  Him  with  stones,  saying  in  their  utter  folly,  "  For  John  x.  $3. 
".  a  food  work  we  stone  Thee  not,  but  for  blasphemy ;  because 


584  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  that  Thou  being  a  man  makest  Thyself  God? "  But  must 
not  that  blind  man  have  understood  that  the  sight  of  the  blind 
cannot  be  restored  by  human  means,  but  requires,  on  the  con- 
trary, a  divine  power,  and  an  authority  such  as  God  only 
possesses  ?  for  with  God  nothing  whatsoever  is  impossible.  He 
drew  near  to  Him  therefore  as  to  the  Omnipotent  God ;  but 
how  then  does  he  call  Him  the  Son  of  David?  What  therefore 
can  one  answer  unto  this  ?  The  following  is  perhaps,  as  1  think, 
the  explanation.  As  he  had  been  brought  up  in  Judaism,  and 
■was  by  birth  of  that  race,  the  predictions  contained  iu  the  law 
and  the  holy  prophets  concerning  Christ  of  course  had  not 
escaped  his  knowledge.  He  had  heard  them  chant  that  pas- 
Pa.  cxxxii.  sage  in  the  book  of  the  P=alms :  "  The  Lord  hath  sworn  the 
"■  "  truth  unto  David,  and  will  not  reject  it,  that  of  the  fruit  of 

"  thy  loins  will  I  set  upon  thy  throne."     He  knew  also  that 
Is.  xi.  i.     the  blessed  prophet  Isaiah  had  said,  "  And  there  shall  spring 
"  forth  a  shoot  from  the  root  of  Jesse,  and  from  his  root  shall 
Mat.  i.  13.  "a  flower  grow  up."     And  again  this  as  well;  "Behold,  a 
4'  "  virgin  shall  conceive  and  brino-  forth  a  son,  and  thev  shall 
"  call  His  Name  Emmanuel,  which  being  interpreted  is,  God 
"  with  us/1     x\s  one  therefore  who  already  believed  that  the 
"Word,  being  God,  had  of  His  own  will  submitted  to  be  born  in 
the  flesh  of  the  holy  virgin,  he  draws  near  to  Him  as  unto 
God,  and  says,  "  Have  mercy  upon  me,  Son  of  David."     For 
Christ  bears  witness  that  this  was  his  state  of  mind  in  offer- 
ing his  supplication,  by  saying  unto  him,  "  Thy  faith  hath 
"  saved  thee." 

Let  those  then  be  ashamed  who  imagine  themselves  not  to 
2  Pet.  i.  9.  be  blind,  but  who,  as  the  wise  Peter  says,  are  "  sightless,  and 
"  havedarkness  in  their  mind."  For  they  divide  into  two  the 
one  Lord  Jesus  Christ :  even  Him  Wrho  is  the  Word  of  the 
Father,  [but*?  Who  became  a  man,  and  was  made  flesh.  For 
they  deny  that  He  Who  was  born  of  the  seed  of  David  was 
really  the  Son  of  God  the  Father  :  for  so,  they  say,  to  be  born 
is  proper  to  man  only,  rejecting  in  their  great  ignorance  His 
flesh,]  and  treating  with  contempt  that  precious  and  ineffable 
dispensation  by  which  we  have  been   redeemed :    and  even 

1  From  the  mutilated  state  of  the  MS.  the  text  of  this  passage  is  chiefly 
conjectural. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  585 

perhaps  foolishly  speaking  against  the  Only-begotten,  because 
He  emptied  Himself,  and  descended  to  the  measure  of  human 
nature,  and  was  obedient  unto  the  Father  even  unto  death, 
that  by  His  death  in  the  flesh  He  might  abolish  death,  might 
wipe  out  corruption,  and  put  away  the  sin  of  the  world.  Let 
such  imitate  this  blind  man :  for  he  drew  near  unto  Christ  the 
Saviour  of  all  as  unto  God,  and  called  Him  Lord  and  Son  of 
the  blessed  David.  He  testifies  also  to  His  glory  by  asking 
of  Him  an  act  such  as  God  only  can  accomplish.  Let  them 
wonder  also  at  the  constancy  wherewith  he  confessed  Him. 
For  there  were  some  who  rebuked  him  when  confessing  his 
faith ;  but  he  did  not  give  way,  nor  cease  his  crying,  but  bade 
the  ignorance  of  those  who  were  rebuking  him  be  still.  He 
was  justly  therefore  honoured  by  Christ :  for  he  was  called  by 
Him,  and  commanded  to  draw  near1".  Understand  from  this, 
my  beloved,  that  faith  sets  us  also  in  Christ's  presence,  and 
so  brings  us  unto  God,  as  for  us  to  be  even  counted  worthy  of 
His  words.  For  when  the  blind  man  was  brought  unto  Him, 
He  asked  him,  saying,  "  "What  wilt  thou  that  I  should  do  unto 
"  thee  ?"  Was  his  request  then  unknown  to  Him  ?  For  was  it 
not  plain  that  he  sought  deliverance  from  the  malady  that 
afflicted  him?  How  can  there  be  any  doubt  of  this?  He 
asked  him  therefore  purposely,  that  those  who  were  standing 
by,  and  accompanying  Him,  might  learn,  that  it  was  not 
money  he  sought,  but  rather  that  regarding  Him  as  God,  he 
asked  of  Him  a  divine  act,  and  one  appropriate  solely  to  the 
nature  that  transcends  all. 

When  then  he  had  declared  the  nature  of  his  request,  say- 
ing, "  Lord,  that  I  may  receive  my  sight :"  then,  yea !  then 
the  words  that  Christ  spake  were  a  rebuke  of  the  unbelief  of 
the  Jews :  for  with  supreme  authority  He  said,  "  Receive  thy 
"  sight."  Wonderful  is  the  expression  !  right  worthy  of  God, 
and  transcending:  the  bounds  of  human  nature  !  Which  of  the 
holy  prophets  ever  spake  ought  such  as  this  ?  or  used  words 
of  so  -great  authority  ?  For  observe  that  He  did  not  ask 
of  another  the  power  to  restore  vision  to  him  who  was  deprived 
of  sight,  nor  did  He  perform  the  divine  miracle  as  the  effect  of 

r  Mai  adds  from  A.  and  D.  "  that     "  Him  by  faith,  might  now  approach 
"  he  who  already  had  approached     "  Him  also  corporeally." 

4* 


586  COMMENTARY  UPON 

prayer  unto  God,  but  attributed  it  rather  to  His  own  power, 
and  by  His  almighty  will  wrought  whatever  He  would.  "  Re- 
"  ceive,  said  He,  thy  sight  ;"  and  the  word  was  light  to  him 
that  was  blind :  for  it  was  the  word  of  Him  Who  is  the  true 
light. 

And  now  that  he  was  delivered  from  his  blindness,  did  he 
neglect  the  duty  of  loving  Christ  ?  Certainly  not :  "  For  he 
"  followed  Him,  it  says,  offering  Him  glory  as  unto  God." 
He  was  set  free  therefore  from  double  blindness :  for  not  only 
did  he  escape  from  the  blindness  of  the  body,  but  also  as  well 
from  that  of  the  mind  and  heart :  for  he  would  not  have  glo- 
rified Him  as  God,  had  he  not  possessed  spiritual  vision.  And 
further,  he  became  the  means  of  others  also  giving  Him 
"  glory,  for  all  the  people,  it  says,  gave  glory  [tos  God. 
It  is  plain  therefore  from  this,  that  great  is  the  guilt  of  the 
scribes  and  Pharisees  ;  for  He  rebukes  them  for  refusing  to 
accept  Him  though  working  miracles,  while  the  multitude  glo- 
rified Him  as  God  because  of  the  deeds  which  He  wrought. 
No  such  praise  is  offered  on  their  part :  yea,  rather]  the  mi- 
racle is  made  an  occasion  of  insult  and  accusation ;  for  they 
said  that  the  Lord  wrought  it  by  Beelzebub :  and  by  thus  act- 
ing they  became  the  cause  of  the  destruction  of  the  people 
under  their  rule.     Therefore  the  Lord  protested  against  their 

Jer.xiiii.i.  wickedness  by  the  voice  of  the  prophet,  saying  ;  "  Alas  for  the 
"  shepherds,  who  destroy  and  scatter  the  sheep  of  My  inherit- 

Jer.  i.  xi.  "  ance."  And  again  ;  "  The  shepherds  have  become  foolish, 
"  and  have  not  sought  the  Lord :  therefore  did  none  of  the 
"  flock  understand,  and  were  scattered." 

Such  then  was  their  state :  but  we  are  under  the  rule  of  the 
chief  Shepherd  of  all,  even  Christ :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom 
to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy 
Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 

8  Again  the  MS.  is  so  mutilated,  as  to  render  the  text  chiefly  conjectural. 


,/:' 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  58^ 


SERMON   CXXVIL*  t?t 

Behold  a  man  named  Zacch&us.  Ver-  2. 

Zacch^us  was  chief  of  the  publicans,  a  man  entirely  aban-  From  Mai, 

it  iiii-  i-  &  Cramer. 

doned  to  covetousness,  and  whose  sole  object  was  the  increase 

of  his  gains :  for  such  was  the  practice  of  the  publicans,  though 

Paul  calls  it  "  idolatry,"  possibly  as  being  fit  only  for  those  who  Col.  iii.  5. 

have  no  knowledge  of  God.     And  as  they  shamelessly  made 

open  profession  of  this  vice,  the  Lord  very  justly  joined  them 

with  the  harlots,  thus  saying  to  the  chiefs  of  the  Jews,  "  The  Mat.  xxi. 

"  harlots  and  the  publicans  go  before  you  into  the  kingdom  of31, 

"  God."     But  Zacchasus  continued  not  among  their  number, 

but  was  counted  worthy  of  mercy  at  Christ's  hands :  for  He  it 

is  Who  calls  near  those  who  are  afar  off,  and  gives  light  to 

those  who  are  in  darkness. 

But  come  then,  and  let  us  see  what  was  the  manner  of 
Zacchaeus'  conversion.  He  desired  to  see  Jesus,  and  climbed 
therefore  into  a  sycomore  tree,  and  so  a  seed  of  salvation 
sprang  up  within  him.  And  Christ  saw  this  with  the  eyes  of 
Deity :  and  therefore  looking  up,  He  saw  him  also  with  the 
eyes  of  the  manhood,  and  as  it  was  His  purpose  for  all  men 
to  be  saved,  He  extends  His  gentleness  unto  him,  and  encou- 
raging him,  says,  "  Come  down  quickly."    Foru  he  had  sought 

t  The  first  half  of  this  Sermon  "  the  manhood."  The  passage  con- 
having  perished  in  the  Syriac,  its  sists  chiefly  of  a  play  upon  <rvKopo>- 
place  is  supplied  from  Mai,  p.  385.  pala,  "a  sycomore  tree,"  and  pcopos, 
and  Cramer,  p.  137.  "  foolish,"    suggested    by    a    mis- 

u  This  passage,   given    by   Mai  spelling,  which  probably  did   not 

from  B.,  but  omitted   by  Cramer,  exist  in  Cyril's   days,  as  the  tree 

in  whose  Catena  the  sense  is  car-  correctly   ia   avicopoped,   "  the   fig- 

ried  on  unbroken  to  the  next  para-  "  mulberry  :"  and  this  pun  is  no 

graph,  "  For  God  by  His  foreknow-  less   than  thrice   repeated,  first  in 

"  ledge  knew  what  would  happen,"  pwpdvas  ra  pfkij  «ri  ttjs  yfjs,  then 

cannot  possibly  be  S.  Cyril's,  but  in  ra  pcopa  rov  Koapov  f'£«Ae£aTo, 
belongs  to  some  less  earnest  writer,  •  and  finally  in  crvurj  prj  trotovo-a  o-uxa 

as  also,  in  my  opinion,  does  a  line  dX\d  papa.     I  am  aware  that  this 

above,    also    omitted    by   Cramer,  tree   has   met  with    much   of  this 

namely,  "  And  therefore  looking  up  treatment  at  the  hands  of  later  Fa- 

"  He  saw  him  also  with  the  eyes  of  thers  :    Theophylact,   for   instance, 

4  P  2 


588  COMMENTARY  UPON" 

to  see  Him,  but  the  multitude  prevented  him,  not  so  much 
that  of  the  people,  as  of  his  sins  ;  and  he  was  little  of  stature, 
not  merely  in  a  bodily  point  of  view,  but  also  spiritually  :  and 
in  no  other  way  could  he  see  Him,  unless  he  were  raised  up 
from  the  earth,  and  climbed  into  the  sycomore,  by  which 
Christ  was  about  to  pass.  Now  the  story  contains  in  it  an 
enigma:  for  in  no  other  wav  can  a  man  see  Christ  and  believe 
in  Him,  except  by  mounting  up  into  the  sycomore,  by  render- 
ing foolish  his  members  which  are  upon  the  earth,  fornication, 
uncleanness,  &c.  And  Christ,  it  says,  was  about  to  pass  by  the 
sycomore  :  for  having  taken  for  His  path  the  conversation 
which  is  by  the  law,  that  is,  the  fig  tree,  He  chose  the  foolish 
things  of  the  world,  that  is,  the  cross  and  death.  And  every 
one  who  takes  up  his  cross,  and  follows  Christ's  conversation, 
is  saved,  performing  the  law  with  understanding,  which  so  be- 
comes a  fig  tree  not  bearing  figs  but  follies ;  for  the  secret  con- 
duct of  the  faithful  seems  to  the  Jews  to  be  folly,  consisting  as 
it  does  in  circumcision  from  vice,  and  idleness  from  bad  prac- 
tice, though  they  be  not  circumcised  in  the  flesh,  nor  keep  the 

p.  487.  C.  says,  ava&alvti  an  <tvko-  this  kind  to  Cyril,  the  Syriac  has 

uopeav  rracrav  fjdovrjv  jiu>palvatv  :  and  uniformly  ignored  them,  and  I  have 

Gregory,  Moralia,  xxvii.  27.  Syco-  almost   always   been   successful   in 

moras  quippe   ficus  fatua  dicitur :  tracing  them  up  to  their  true  au- 

and  Bede,  cap.  78.  in  Lucam,  Syco-  thor.   To  a  writer  with  a  competent 

moras  namque  ficus  fatua  dicitur :  knowledge  of  Greek,  the  pun  upon 

but  no  instance  of  this  style  of  cri-  which  this  miserable  jingle  of  words 

ticism  will   be   found   in    S.  Cyril,  is   founded  would  not   even   have 

For  while  he  held  that  the  Old  Tes-  suggested  itself  :    and,  to  say  no- 

tament  was  entirely  typical  of  the  thing  of  several  other  difficulties, 

New,  and  therefore  saw  its  myste-  there   is    an   evident    bungling   in 

ries  shadowed  out  in  the  minutest  uniting  it  to  what  really  belongs  to 

occurrence,  and  simplest  phrase  con-  S.  Cyril,  as  any  one  may  see  by  the 

tained  in  the  law  and  the  prophets,  triple  repetition  of  virefifgaro  airov 

and    consequently  wherever    types  xaLP0>v>  and  by  comparing  with  this 

and  prophecies  are  concerned,  de-  passage  the  extract  given  on  v.  5. 

8cends  to  much  which  appears  to  by  Mai  from  A.  as  well  as  B.,  and 

us  to  be  laborious  trifl'iDg;  on  the  contained    also    by   Cramer.      Al- 

contrary,  in  his  treatment  of  the  though  therefore  I  have  held  myself 

New  Testament,   nothing   can    be  bound  to  follow  Mai,  so  far  as  to 

broader  and  more  sensible  than  his  admit  it  into  the  text,  not  having 
method  of  interpretation,   and    he  '  been  able  to  trace  it  to  its  real  au- 

himself    expressly    condemns    this  thor,   I  nevertheless   have  not  the 

minuteness  in  Serm.  cviii.     Wher-  slightest  hesitation  in  pronouncing 

ever  Mai  has  attributed  passages  of  it  spurious. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  589 

sabbath.  He  knew  therefore  that  he  was  prepared  for  obe- 
dience, and  fervent  for  faith,  and  ready  to  change  from  vice 
to  virtue ;  wherefore  also  He  calls  him,  and  he  will  leave  (the 
fig  tree)  to  gain  Him.  And  with  haste  he  came  down,  and 
received  Him  joyfully,  not  only  because  he  saw  Him  as  he 
wished,  but  because  he  had  also  been  called  by  Him,  and  be- 
cause he  received  Him  (to  lodge  with  him),  which  he  never 
could  have  expected. 

Zacchceus,  come  down  quickly  :  for  to-day  I  must  abide  at    Ver.  5. 
thy  house. 

This  was  an  act  of  divine  foreknowledge ;  for  He  well  knew 
what  would  happen.  He  saw  the  man's  soul  prepared  most 
readily  to  choose  a  holy  life,  and  converted  him  therefore  unto 
piety.  The  man  therefore  received  Jesus  joyfully  :  and  this  From  the 
was  the  commencement  of  his  turning  himself  unto  good,  of  his  s^nac- 
departure  from  his  former  faults,  and  of  his  manfully  betaking 
himself  unto  a  better  course. 

But  perchance  some  one  possibly  may  say  to  our  common 
Saviour  Christ,  '  What  dost  Thou,  0  Lord  1  Goest  Thou  to 
'  lodge  with  Zacchaeus  ?  and  deignest  Thou  to  abide  with  the 
'  chief  of  the  publicans  ?  He  hath  not  yet  washed  away  the 
1  stain  of  his  greedy  love  of  lucre  :  he  is  still  sick  with  covetous- 
'  ness,  the  mother  of  all  crimes  :  still  full  of  the  blame  of  rapine 
'  and  extortion.1  But  yes,  He  says,  I  indeed  know  this,  in  that 
I  am  God  by  nature,  and  see  the  ways  of  every  individual  upon 
earth.  And  more  than  this,  I  know  also  things  to  come.  I 
have  called  him  to  repentance,  because  he  is  ready  thereto : 
and  though  men  murmur,  and  blame  My  gentleness,  facts 
themselves  shall  prove  that  they  are  wrong.  "  For  Zacchaeus, 
"  it  says,  stood  up,  and  said  unto  the  Lord,  Behold,  the  half  of 
"  whatever  I  possess  I  give  unto  the  poor,  and  if  I  have  de- 
"  frauded  any  man,  I  make  fourfold  restoration." 

Thou  beholdest  his  repentance ;  his  rapid  change  unto  a 
better  course ;  his  haste  unto  piety  ;  the  bountifulness  of  his 
love  for  the  poor.  He  who  lately  was  a  publican,  or  rather 
the  chief  of  the  publicans,  given  up  to  covetousness,  and  set 
upon  gain,  at  once  becomes  merciful,  and  devoted  to  charity. 
He  promises  that  he  will  distribute  his  wealth  to  those  who  are 


590  COMMENTARY  UPON 

in  need,  that  he  will  make  restoration k  to  those  who  have 
been  defrauded :  and  he  who  was  the  slave  of  avarice,  makes 
himself  poor,  and  ceases  to  care  for  gains. 

Let  not  the  Jewish  multitudes  therefore  murmur  when 
Christ  saves  sinners;  but  let  them  answer  us  this.  Would 
they  have  physicians  succeed  in  effecting  cures  when  they 
visit  the  sick  ?  Do  they  praise  them  when  they  are  able 
to  deliver  men  from  cruel  ulcers,  or  do  they  blame  them,  and 
praise  those  who  are  unskilful  in  their  art  ?  But,  as  I  suppose, 
they  will  give  the  sentence  of  superiority  in  favour  of  those 
who  are  skilful  in  benefiting  such  as  suffer  from  diseases.  Why 
therefore  do  they  blame  Christ,  if  when  Zacchaeus  was,  so  to 
say,  fallen  and  buried  in  spiritual  maladies,  He  raised  him  from 
the  pitfalls  of  destruction  ? 

And  to  teach  them  this  He  says,  "  To-day  there  is  salvation 
"  for  this  house,  in  that  he  also  is  a  son  of  Abraham :"  for 
where  Christ  enters,  there  necessarily  is  also  salvation.  May 
He  therefore  also  be  in  us  :  and  He  is  in  us  when  we  believe : 
for  He  dwells  in  our  hearts  by  faith,  and  we  are  His  abode. 
It  would  have  been  better  then  for  the  Jews  to  have  rejoiced 
because  Zacchagus  was  wonderfully  saved,  for  he  too  was 
counted  among  the  sons  of  Abraham,  to  whom  God  promised 
Is.  lis.  20.  salvation  in  Christ  by  the  holy  prophets,  saying,  M  There  shall 
"  come  a  Saviour  from  Zion,  and  He  shall  take  away  iniquities 
"  from  Jacob,  and  this  is  my  covenant  with  them,  when  I  will 
"  bear  their  sins." 

Christ  therefore  arose,  to  deliver  the  inhabitants  of  the 
earth  from  their  sins,  and  to  seek  them  that  were  lost,  and  to 
save  them  that  had  perished.  For  this  is  His  office,  and,  so  to 
say,  the  fruit  of  His  godlike  gentleness.  Of  this  will  he  also 
count  all  those  worthy  who  have  believed  in  Him  :  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion, 
with  the  Holy  Ghost  for  everand  ever,  Amen. 

k  The  Catenist  adds,  that  fourfold      Ex.  xxii.  i,  and  enjoined  by  David 
restitution  was  enacted  by  the  law,      in  2  Sara.  xii.  6. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  591 


SERMON  CXXVIII. 

And   as   they   hear  these   things,  He   added  and  spake   a  c.  six.  1 1- 
parable,  because  He  was  nigh  unto  Jerusalem,  and  they  *"• 
thought  that  the  kingdom  of  God  was  about  immediately 
to  be  manifested.     He  said  there/ore,  A  certain  nobleman 
went  into  a  far  country,  to  receive  for  himself  a  kingdom, 
and  to  return.  And  when  he  had  called  ten  of  his  servants, 
he  gave  them  ten  minas*,  and  said  unto  them,  Traffic  until  I  &  £  BT. 
come.     But  his  citizens  hated  him,  and  sent  an  embassy 
after  him,  saying,  We  will  not  have  this  man  to  reign  over 
us.     And  it  came  to  pass  that  when  he  had  received  the 
kingdom  and  returned,  he  commanded  them  to  call  unto  om.  ko.1  S. 
him  those  servants,  to  whom  he  had  given  the  money,  that 
he  might  know  what  they  had  gained  by  trading.   And  the  r\  Suvpay- 
first  came  saying,  Lord,  thy  mina  hath  gained  ten  minas  bs/"t1s  t2 
more.     And  he  said  unto  him,  Well,  thou  good  servant :  -<TaT0  GTj- 
because  thou  hast  been  faithfd  in  a  little,  thou  shalt  have 
authority  over  ten  cities.     And  the  second  came,  saying, 
Lord,  thy  mina  hath  gained  jive  minas.    And  he  said  also 
unto  him,  And  thou  shalt  be  over  five  cities.     And  the  om.  <J  G-*. 
other  came,  saying,  Lord,  behold  thy  mina  that  I  had,  laid 
up  in  a  napkin.  For  I  was  afraid  of  thee,  because  thou  art 
a  hard  man ;  because  thou  takest  up  what  thou  layedst  not  add.  3-n  S. 
down,  and  reapest  what  thou  didst  not  sow.     And  he  said  om.  5e  T. 
unto  him,  Out  of  thy  mouth  will  I  judge  thee,  thou  wicked 
servant.     Thou  knewest  that  1  am  a  hard  man ;   that  I 
take  up  what  I  layed  not  down,  and  reap  what  I  did  not 
sow.     Why  didst  thou  not  give  my  money  to  the  table  [of  om.  kq)  S. 
the  moneychanger],    and   I  on   my   return  should   have^'^Lrj,' 
exacted  it  with  its  usury.     And  he  said  unto  those  that 
stood  before  him,  Take  from  him  the  mina,  and  give  it  to 
him  that  hath  ten  minas.     And  they  said  unto  him,  Lord, 
he  hath  ten  minas  !    For  I  say  unto  you,  that  unto  every  om.  yap  B. 
one  that  hath  shall  be  given  ;  but  f-om  him  that  hath  not, 

1  The  mina  was  worth  rather  more  than  4/. 


592  COMMENTARY  UPON 

om.  oir'  av-      even  that  which  he  hath  shall  be  taken  away  from  him. 
rov  b.  gUf  these  my  enemies,  who  would  not  that  I  should  reign 

BST.  over  them,  bring  hither  and  slay  before  me. 

(KtivOVS  Gt. 

9dA.ainovs  APPROACH  yet  once  again,  that  opening  widely  the  eye 
of  the  mind,  we  may  receive  the  light  of  the  sacred  doctrines, 
which  Christ  richly  sheds  on  those  who  love  Him.  For  He 
also  is  the  true  light,  Who  enlighteneth  angels,  and  princi- 
palities, and  thrones  and  dominions,  and  even  the  holy  sera- 
phim, and  also  shineth  into  the  hearts  of  those  that  fear  Him. 
Let  us  ask  therefore  the  illumination  which  Pie  bestows,  that 
understanding  exactly  the  force  of  the  parable  set  before  us, 
we  may  store  up  in  our  minds  as  a  spiritual  treasure  the  benefit 
which  it  offers  us. 

The  scope  therefore  of  the  parable  briefly'  represents  the 
whole  purport  of  the  dispensation  that  was  to  usward,  and  of 
the  mystery  of  Christ  from  the  beginning  even  unto  the  end. 
For  the  Word  being  God  became  man :  but  even  though  He 
was  made  in  the  likeness  of  sinful  flesh,  and  on  this  account  is 
also  called  a  servant,  yet  He  was  and  is  freem  born,  by  His 
being  ineffably  begotten  of  the  Father  : — yea !  and  He  is  God 
also,  transcending  all  in  nature  and  in  glory,  and  surpassing  the 
things  of  our  estate,  or  rather  even  the  whole  creation,  by  His 
incomparable  fulness.  The  man  therefore  is  freeborn,  as  being 
the  Son  of  God :  and  not  as  we  are  called  to  this  appellation 
by  His  goodness  and  love  to  mankind,  but  because  it  belongs 
to  Him  by  nature,  both  to  be  of  the  Father  by  generation,  and 
also  to  transcend  every  thing  that  is  made.  When  then  the 
Word,  Who  was  in  the  likeness  of,  and  equal  with  the  Father, 

Phil.  ii.  8.  was  made  like  unto  us,  u  He  became  obedient  unto  death,  and 
"  the  death  of  the  cross  :  and  therefore,  God  also,  it  says,  hath 
"  highly  exalted  Him,  and  given  Him  a  Name  that  is  above 
"  every  name :  that  at  the  Name  of  Jesus  Christ  every  knee 
"  should  bow,  of  things  in  heaven,  and  things  in  earth,  and  of 
"  those  under  the  earth  ;  and  every  tongue  confess  that  Jesus 
"  Christ  is  Lord,  to  the  glory  of  God  the  Father,  Amen."  Did 
the  Father  therefore  give  the  Name  Which  is  above  every 

m  The  word  in  the  Greek  d-  'free-born,'  to  which  probably  they 
yunjs,  translated  in  the  A.  V.  'no-  attached  the  idea  of  nobility,  simi- 
'  bleman,'  is  in  the  Syriac  rendered     larly  to  the  German  use  of  Freiherr. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  593 

name  to  the  Son  as  one  Who  is  not  God  by  nature?     And 
how  then,  if  this  be  true,  has  there  not  been  a  new  God  ma- 
nifested unto  us  ?     And  yet  the  sacred  Scripture  cries  aloud, 
"  There  shall  no  new  God  be  in  thee :  neither  shalt  thou  wor-  Pa.  lxxxi. 
"  ship  anv  strange   God."     But  He  would  be   ditferent  and  9' 
alien  from  God,  were  He  not  of  Him  by  nature. 

The  Son  therefore  certainly  is  God  by  nature  :  and  how 
then  did  the  Father  give  Him  that  Name  which  is  above 
every  name !  To  this  we  say,  that  when  He  was  flesh,  that  is, 
man  like  unto  us,  He  took  the  name  of  a  servant,  and  assumed 
our  poverty  and  low  estate :  but  when  He  had  finished  the 
mystery  of  the  dispensation  in  the  flesh,  He  was  raised11  to  the 
glory  that  belonged  to  Him  by  nature ;  not  as  to  something 
unwonted  and  strange,  and  that  accrued  to  Him  from  without, 
and  was  given  Him  from  another,  but  rather  as  to  that  which 
was  His  own.  For  He  spake  unto  God  the  Father  in  heaven, 
"  Father,  glorify  Thou  Me  with  the  glory  which  I  had  with  John  xvii. 
"  Thee  before  the  world  was."  For  existing  before  the  ages,  s' 
and  before  the  worlds,  as  one  That  was  of  God,  and  was  God,  He 
was  clothed  with  the  glorv  which  belongs  to  the  Godhead ;  and 
when  He  became  a  man,  as  I  said,  He  endured  neither  mutation 
nor  change,  but  continued  rather  in  that  state*in  which  He  had 
constantly  existed,  and  such  as  the  Father  was  Who  begot  Him, 
that  is  to  say,  like  Him  in  every  thing.  For  He  is  also  "  the  Heb.  i.  3. 
"  image  of  His  person,"  Who  by  right  of  His  nature  possesses 
every  thing  that  He  is  Who  begat  Him,  by  being,  I  mean,  of 
the  selfsame  substance,  and  of  an  equality  admitting  of  no 
variation,  and  of  a  similarity  to  Him  in  every  thing.  Being 
therefore  by  nature  God,  He  is  said  to  have  received  of  the 
Father  the  Name  which  is  above  every  name,  when  He  had 
become  man,  that  He  might  be  believed  in  as  God  and  the 
King  of  all,  even  in  the  flesh,  that  was  united  unto  Him. 

But  when  He  had  endured  for  our  sakes  the  passion  upon 
the  cross,  and  by  the  resurrection  of  His  body  from  the  dead 
had  abolished  death,  He  ascended  unto  the  Father,  and  be- 
came as  a  man  journeying  unto  a  far  country :  for  heaven  is  a 
different  country  from  earth, — and  He  ascended  that  He 
might  receive  for  Himself  a  kingdom.     Here  again  remember, 

.    n  In  the  Greek  avanf^olrrjKf,  '  He  returned.' 
4G 


594  COMMENTARY  UPON 

i  Cor.  x.  5.  I  pray,  the  blessed  Paul,  who  says,  "  That  we  must  destroy 
"  reasonings,  and  everv  high  thin?  that  exalteth  itself  against 
"  the  knowledge  of  God,  and  lead  captive  every  thought  to  the 
"  obedience  of  Christ."  For  how  does  He  Who  reigns  over  all 
with  the  Father  ascend  unto  Him  to  receive  a  kingdom  ?  I 
answer,  that  the  Father  gives  this  also  to  the  Son  in  respect  of 
His  having  become  man.  For  when  He  ascended  into  heaven, 
He  sat  down  on  the  right  hand  of  the  Majesty  on  high,  hence- 
forth expecting  until  His  enemies  are  put  under  His  feet.    For 

Pa.  ex.  1.  it  was  said  unto  Him  of  the  Father,  "  Sit  Thou  at  My  right 
"  hand,  until  I  place  Thy  enemies  as  the  footstool  for  Thy 
"  feet/' 

"  But  his  citizens,  it  says,  hated  him."   And  similarly  Christ 

John  xv.     reproaches  the  Jewish  multitudes,  saying,  "  If  I  had  not  done 

14'  "  among  them  the  works  which  no  one  else  hath  done,  they  had 

"  not  had  sin  :  but  now  they  have  both  seen  and  hated  both  Me 
"  and  My  Father/'  They  would  not  have  Him  reign  over 
them  :  and  yet  the  holy  prophets  were  constantly  uttering 
predictions  of  Christ  as  of  a  King.    For  one  of  them  even  said, 

Zach.  ix.  9.  "  Rejoice  greatly,  daughter  of  Zion,  for  lo !  thy  King  cometh 
"  unto  thee,  just,  and  a  Saviour ;  He  is  meek,  and  riding  upon 
"  an  ass,  and  upttn  a  new  foal."     And  the  blessed  Isaiah  says 

Is.  xxxii.i.  of  Him  and  of  the  holy  apostles,  "Behold  a  just  king  shall 
"  reign,  and  princes  shall  rule  with  judgment."  And  again, 
Christ  Himself  has  somewhere  said  by  the  voice  of  the  Psalmist, 

Pa.  ii.  6.  "  But  I  have  been  appointed  King  by  Him  upon  Zion,  His 
"  holy  mount,  and  I  will  declare  the  commandment  of  the 
"  Lord." 

They  then  denied  His  kingdom :  for  when  they  drew  near 

John  xix.    unto  Pilate  saying,  "Away  with  Him,  away  with  Him,  crucify 

I5'  "  Him,"  he  asked  them,  or  rather  said  unto  them  in  derision, 

"  Shall  I  crucify  your  king  V  And  they  answering  with  wicked 
word?,  said,  "  "We  have  no  king  bub  Caesar.1'  Having  denied 
therefore  the  kingdom  of  Christ,  they  fell  under  the  dominion 
of  Satan,  and  brought  upon  themselves  the  yoke  of  sin,  which 
cannot  be  thrown  off.  For  they  would  not  have  their  neck 
free,    though    Christ    invited    them   thereunto,   saying,   that 

John  viii.    "  Every  one  that  doeth  sin  is  the  slave  of  sin :  but  the  slave 

34-  "  continueth  not  in  the  house  for  ever  ;  the  Son  abideth  for 

"  ever :  if  therefore  the  Son  make  you  free,  ye  will  become 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  595 

"  truly  free."     And  again,  "  If  ye  abide  in  My  Word,  ye  are  John  viii. 
"  truly  My  disciples.     And  ye  shall  know  the  truth,  and  the  3I" 
"  truth  shall  set  you  free."     But  Israel  in  its  madness  was  not 
open  to  instruction,  and  therefore  it  has  continued  in  slavery, 
because  it  refused  to  know  Christ,  Who  maketh  free. 

And  thus  far  I  will  proceed  on  the  present  occasion,  re- 
serving: for  some  other  time  the  consideration  of  the  rest  of  the 
parable;  lest  too  long  a  discourse  be  found  both  fatiguing  to 
him  who  speaks,  and  wearisome  to  those  who  hear.  And  may 
He  Who  is  the  Bestower  and  Giver  of  all  good  bless  you  all, 
even  Christ  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father 
be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and 
ever,  Amen. 


402 


596  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  CXXIX. 

THE    SAME    SUBJECT    CONTINUED. 

MEN  who  are  in  debt  run  away  from  their  creditors,  be- 
cause they  know  them  to  be  importunate.  But  not  so  with  me ; 
for  I  have  come  to  pay  my  debt,  and  to  fulfil  what  I  promised : 
and  I  rather  pursue  after  my  creditors  than  am  pursued  by 
them.  What  therefore  is  that  which  I  promised,  or  what  is  the 
debt  ?  At  our  last  meeting  then,  a  long  parable  having  been 
read  to  us,  we  completed  our  exposition  only  of  a  certain  por- 
tion of  it,  and  reserved  the  remainder  for  this  our  holy  meeting. 
And  the  parable  was  as  follows ;  "  A  certain  nobleman  went 
"  into  a  far  country  to  receive  for  himself  a  kingdom,  and  to 
"  return.  And  when  he  had  called  ten  of  his  servants,  he 
"  gave  them  ten  minas,  and  said  unto  them,  Traffic  until  I 
"  come.  But  his  citizens  hated  him,  and  sent  an  embassy  after 
"  him,  saying,  We  will  not  have  this  man  to  reign  over  us." 
And  moreover  to  this  He  added,  that  when  the  nobleman  re- 
turned after  he  had  received  the  kingdom,  he  demanded  of 
those  servants  to  whom  he  had  distributed  the  talents  an  ac- 
count of  their  trafficking. 

Now  in  our  previous  exposition  we  reined  in  our  words, 
which,  so  to  speak,  were  at  full  speed,  at  the  sentence  "  but 
"  his  citizens  hated  him  :  and  would  not  have  him  reign  over 
"  them."  Now  then  I  shall  address  you  upon  those  servants  who 
had  been  entrusted  by  their  Lord  with  the  rainas ;  enquiring 
both  who  they  were  that  traded  and  therefore  were  honoured; 
and  who,  on  the  other  hand,  is  signified  by  that  indolent  and 
sluggish  servant,  who  hid  the  talent,  and  added  nothing  there- 
unto, and  thereby  brought  upon  himself  severe  condemnation. 

The  Saviour  therefore  distributes  to  those  who  believe  in 
Him  a  variety  of  divine  gifts :  for  this  we  affirm  to  be  the 
meaning  of  the  talent.  And  great  indeed  is  the  difference 
between  these  [who  receive  the  talents],  and  those  who  have 
even  completely  denied  His  kingdom.     For  they  are  rebels, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  597 

who  throw  off  the  joke  of  His  sceptre  :b  while  the  others  are 
invested  with  the  glory  of  serving  Him.  As  faithful  servants 
therefore  they  are  entrusted  with  their  Lord's  wealth,  that 
gaining  something  by  trafficking  therewith,  they  may  earn  the 
praises  due  to  faithful  service,  and  also  be  accounted  worthy  of 
those  honours  which  abide  for  ever. 

The  man;;er  therefore  of  the  distribution  and  who  the  persons 
are,  and  what  the  talents  signify  which  He  distributes, — for  He 
continues  to  distribute  even  unto  this  day, — the  sacred  Scripture 
clearly  shews.  For  the  blessed  Paul  has  said;  "There  are  iCor.xii.4. 
"  distributions  of  gifts,  but  the  same  Spirit  :  and  there  are 
"  distributions  of  ministries,  but  the  same  Lord  :  and  there 
"  are  distributions  of  things  to  be  done,  but  the  same  God 
"  Who  worketh  all  in  every  man."  And  subsequently,  ex- 
plaining what  he  said,  he  further  states  the  kinds  of  the  gifts, 
as  follows;  "  For  to  one  is  given  the  word  of  wisdom  :  and  to  iCor.xii.s. 
"  another  the  word  of  knowledge  :  and  to  another  faith  :  and 
"  to  another  gifts  of  healing  :J1  and  so  on.  The  diversity 
therefore  of  the  gifts  is  made  plain  in  these  words. 

But  next  I  think  that  I  ought  to  mention  who  they  are  who 
have  been  entrusted  by  Christ  with  these  gifts,  according  to 
the  measure  of  each  one's  readiness  and  disposition.  For  He 
knoweth  whatsoever  is  in  us,  in  that  He  is  very  God,  Who 
spieth  the  reins  and  hearts.  Let  us  notice,  however,  that  an- 
other Evangelist  is  aware  of  a  difference  in  the  amount  of  the 
distribution  that  was  made  of  the  talents.  "For  to  one,  he  Mat  xxv. 
"  says,  He  gave  five  talents ;  and  to  another  two,  and  to  an-  '5' 
"  other  one."  Thou  seest  that  the  distribution  was  made  suit- 
ably to  the  measure  of  each  one's  faculties.  And  as  to  those 
who  were  entrusted  with  them,  come,  and  let  us  declare  who 
they  are  to  the  best  of  our  ability.  They  are  then  those  who 
are  "perfect  in  mind,  to  whom  also  strong  meat  is  fitting,  and  Heb.  v.  14. 
"  whose  intellectual  senses  are  exercised  for  the  discerning  of 
"  good  and  evil."  They  are  those  who  are  skilled  in  instructing 
rightly,  and  acquainted  with  the  sacred  doctrines :  who  know 
how  to  direct  both  themselves  and  others  unto  every  better  work: 
such,  in  short,  as  above  all  others  the  wise  disciples  were.    And 

b  A  note  in  the  margin  explains  "  the  yoke  of  His  sceptre"  by  "  the 
"  yoke  of  His  kingdom." 


598  COMMENTARY  UPON 

again,  next  to  these  come  such  as  succeeded  to  their  ministry,  or 
who  hold  it  at  this  day,  even  the  holy  teachers,  who  stand  at  the 
head  of  the  holy  churches :  who  are  the  rulers  of  the  nations, 
and  know  how  to  order  unto  every  thing  that  is  useful  those 
who  are  subject  unto  them.     Upon  these  the  Saviour  bestows 

Phil.  ii.  15.  a  diversity  of  divine  gifts,  that  they  may  be  "  lights  in  the 
"  world,  holding  the  word  of  life  :"  and  they,  by  admonish- 
ing the  people  under  their  charge,  and  giving  them  such 
counsel  as" is  useful  for  life,  and  rendering  them  steadfast,  and 
of  an  upright  and  blameless  faith,  gain  by  traffic  unto  their 
talent,  and  seek  spiritual  increase.  Greatly  blessed  are  they, 
and  win  the  portion  that  becometh  the  saints.  For  when  the 
nobleman,  even  Christ,  shall  have  returned  after  he  hath  re- 
ceived'the  kingdom,  they  will  be  accounted  worthy  of  praises, 
and  rejoice  in  surpassing  honours.  For  having  multiplied  the 
talent  tenfold,  or  fivefold,  by  winning  many  men,  they  will  be 
set  over  ten  or  five  cities ;  that  is,  they  will  again  be  rulers, 
not  merely  over  those  whom  they  ruled  before,  but  even  also 
over  many  others.  For  on  this  account  we  find  the  saints,  by 
the  voice  of  the  Psalmist,  extolling  and  making  the  praises  of 
their  gratitude  mount  up  to  Christ,  Who  crowneth  them  ;  and 

Pa.  xlvii.  3.  saying,  "  HVhath  subjected  the  Gentiles  unto  us,  and  nations 
"  under  our  feet."  And  that  it  is  the  practice  and  earnest 
purpose  of  the  saints  to  make  those  who  are  taught  by  them 
partakers  of  the  grace  given  them  by  Christ,  any  one  may 
learn  from  the   message   which  the    blessed  Paul  sent  unto 

Rom.  i.  ir.  certain,  saying,  "  For  I  desired  to  see  you,  that  I  might  give 
"  you  some  spiritual  gift,  that  ye  may  be  established."     And 

1  Tim.  iv.  he  testifies  also  to  his  disciple  Timothy,  "  Despise  not  the  gift 
"  that  is  in  thee,  which  was  given  thee  by  the  laying  on  of  my 
"  hands."  For  he  wished  him  to  excel  in  his  teaching.  And 
the  Saviour  Himself  also  somewhere  said  in  another  parable, 

Luke  xii.  ((  who  therefore  is  the  faithful  and  wise  servant,  whom  his 
"  lord  shall  set  over  his  household,  to  give  them  their  food  at 
"  its  season  ?  Blessed  is  that  servant,  whom  his  lord  when  he 
"  cometh  shall  find  so  doing.  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  he 
"  will  set  him  over  all  that  he  hath."  And  what  is  the  meaning 
of  his  giving  his  fellow  servants  food,  except  it  be  the  distri- 
buting to  the  people  committed  to  his  charge  the  benefit  of 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  599 

spiritual  instruction,  and  the  satisfying,  so  to  speak,  with  spi- 
ritual victuals  those  who  hunger  after  righteousness? 

There  are  honours,  therefore,  and  triumphs,  and  crowns  for 
those  who  have  laboured,  and  loved  service :  but  shame  for 
those  who  have  been  overcome  by  sloth.  For  he  who  hid  his 
mina  in  a  napkin  became  liable  to  a  terrible  condemnation. 
He  drew  near,  saying,  "  Lo !  thou  hast  that  is  thine!"  But 
the  purpose,  He  says,  for  which  thou  receivedst  it,  was  not 
that  thou  shouldst  keep  it  in  concealment.  And  if  thou  knewest 
that  I  am  a  hard  man,  that  I  reap  where  I  have  not  sowed,  and 
that  I  gather  whence  I  have  not  scattered  ;  lo  !  this  very  thing, 
He  savs,  even  makes  thv  guilt  the  heavier,  and  gives  no  spe- 
cious  pretext  for  thy  slothfulness.  For  if  I  am  a  hard  man  who 
reap  where  I  have  not  sowed,  why  didst  thou  not  give  the 
grace  that  was  bestowed  upon  thee  ; — for  this  is  the  meaning 
of  the  mina; — to  the  money-changers  :  why,  that  is,  didst  thou 
not  lay  it  out  for  the  happiness  or  the  benefit  of  those  who  would 
well  know  how  to  put  to  the  test  what  they  had  received  from 
thee  ?  "  For  so  when  I  came,  I  should  have  exacted,  that  is, 
"  should  have  received  back  my  own  with  its  increase."  For 
it  is  the  duty  of  teachers  to  sow,  and  plant,  as  it  were,  in  their 
hearers  beneficial  and  saving  counsel :  but  to  call  unto  obedi- 
ence  those  whom  they  teach,  and  render  their  mind  very  fruit- 
ful, is-the  effect  of  that  power  which  God  bestows.  And  this 
is  the  increase.  For  when  those  who  have  heard  the  divine 
words,  receive  into  their  mind  the  benefit  of  them,  and  labour 
with  joy  in  doing  good,  then  do  they  offer  that  which  was 
given  them  with  increase. 

"  Take  therefore,  he  says,  from  him  the  mina,  and  give  it 
"  unto  him  that  hath  ten  minas ;  for  to  him  that  hath,  there 
"  shall  more  be  given  :  but  from  him  that  hath  not,  even  that 
"  which  he  seemeth  to  have  shall  be  taken  away  from  him." 
For  that  slothful  servant  was  stripped  even  of  the  gift  which 
had  been  bestowed  upon  him  :  but  those  who  have  advanced 
in  the  better  course,  and  proved  superior  to  indolence  and 
sloth,  will  receive  fresh  blessings  from  above,  and  being  filled 
with  divine  gifts,  will  mount  up  to  a  glorious  and  admirable 
lot. 

We  have  seen  the  honours  of  the  saints :  come  and  let  us 
examine  the  torments  of  the  wicked,  who  would  not  have  that 


600 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


man  of  noble  lineage  to  rule  over  them.  "  But  those,  my  ene- 
"  mies,  He  says,  -who  would  not  that  I  should  reign  over  them, 
"  bring  hither,  and  slay  them  before  Me."  This  was  the  fate 
of  the  Israelitish  race  :  for  having  denied  the  kingdom  of 
Christ,  they  fell  into  extreme  miseries  :  being  evil,  they  evilly 
perished.  And  the  gangs  too  of  wicked  heretics  deny  the  king- 
dom of  Christ,  and  so  also  do  all  those,  who,  disregarding  the 
duty  of  living  uprightly,  spend  their  lives  in  impurity  and  sin. 
And  these  also  suffering  a  penalty  like  unto  that  of  those  men- 
tioned above  shall  go  unto  perdition. 

But  over  us  Christ  rules  as  King,  and  we  have  a  good  hope, 
that  we  shall  also  be  counted  worthy  of  the  portion  of  the 
saints,  and  twine  around  our  heads  the  crown  that  besometh 
the  steadfast ;  for  this  also  is  the  gift  of  Christ  our  common 
Saviour  ;  by  "Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever, 
Araen.c 


c  Mai  contains  two  extracts  not 
found  in  the  Syriac :  the  first  from 
B.  (from  A.  rather  ?)  is  a  general 
introduction  to  the  parable ;  the  se- 
cond from  A.  and  B.  is  said  ex- 
pressly in  the  margin  to  lie  "  a  Ho- 
mily of  Cyril's."     It  belongs,  how- 


ever, rather  to  St.  Matthew's  Gos- 
pel, as  it  closely  adheres  to  the  ex- 
pressions there  used  by  our  Lord  ; 
but  is  well  worth  a  careful  com- 
parison with  the  exposition  given 
above. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  601 


SERMON    CXXX. 

This  Exposition  is  fit  to  be  read  on  the  holy  day 

OF   HOSANNAS.  d 

And  when  He  had  said  these  things,  He  went  onwards,  going  c.  xix.  28- 
up  to  Jerusalem.     And  it  came  to  pass,  that  when  He  was  4°' 
come  nigh  to  Bethphage  and  Bethany,  at  the  mount  called 
of  Olives,  He  sent  two  of  His  disciples,  saying,  Go  into  the  om.  abrov 
village  over  against  us,  in  which  at  your  entering  ye  shall  K^wv  BS 
find  a  colt,  tied,  whereon  yet  never  man  sat :  loose,  and  *l*fy  GTV 

t  tttt       1  •*  5    .ii        add.*aiBT. 

bring  it.    And  if  any  man  ask  you,  Why  loose  ye  it  t  thus  ^d.abrb^. 
shall  ye  say  unto  him,  It  is  wanted  for  the  Lord.     And  °£;^sf' 
when  they  that  were  sent  had  gone  their  way,  they  found 
even  as  He  had  said  unto  them.  And  as  they  loosed  the  colt, 
the  owners  thereof  said  unto  them,  Why  loose  ye  the  colt? 
And  they  said,  It  is  wanted  for  the  Lord.  And  they  brought  add.  St.  B. 
it  unto  Jesus:  and  when  they  had  cast  their  garments  upon 
the  colt,  they  made  Jesus  ride  thereon :  and  as  He  went, 
they  spread  their  garments  before  Him  in  the  way.     And 
when  He  had  now  arrived  at  the  descent  of  the  Mount  of 
Olives,  the  whole  multitude  of  the  disciples  began  with  joy 
to  praise  God  with  a  loud  voice  for  all  the  mighty  works 
that  they  had  seen,  saying,  Blessed  be  the  King  that  cometh 
in  the  name  of  the  Lord:  peace  in  heaven,  and  glory  in  the 
highest.     And  some  of  the  Pharisees  from  among  the  mul- 
titude said  unto  Him,  Teacher,  rebuke  Thy  disciples.  And 
He  answered,  and  said  unto  them,  I  tell  you,  that  if  these  om.  a.lroh 
be  silent,  the  stones  will  cry  out. 

THE  disciples  praise  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all,  calling  Him 
King  and  Lord,  and  the  peace  of  heaven  and  earth :  and  let  us 
also  praise  Him,  taking,  so  to  speak,  the  Psalmist's  harp,  and 

d  By  the  day  of  Hosannas,  Palm     rejoicing  among  the  Jews,  may  be 
Sunday  is  meant.     That  the  palm     seen  by  1  Mac.  xiii.  51. 
branch  was  an  ordinary  symbol  of 

4H 


602  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Pa.  civ.  24.  saying  ;  "  How  great  are  thy  works,  0  Lord  :  in  wisdom  hast 
"  Thou  made  them."  For  there  is  nothing:  whatsoever  of  the 
works  wrought  by  Him  but  is  in  wisdom  ;  for  He  guideth  all 
useful  things  each  in  its  proper  manner,  and  assigns  to  his 
acts  that  season  which  suiteth  them.  As  long  then  as  it  was 
fitting  that  He  should  traverse  the  country  of  the  Jews,  en- 
deavouring to  win  by  lessons  and  admonitions  superior  to  the 
law  many  unto  the  grace  that  is  by  faith,  He  ceased  not  so  to 
do  :  but  inasmuch  as  the  time  was  now  at  length  calling:  Him 
to  that  Passion  which  was  for  the  salvation  of  the  whole  world, 
to  free  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth  from  the  tyranny  of  the 
enemy,  and  abolish  death,  and  destroy  the  sin  of  the  world, 
He  goeth  up  unto  Jerusalem,  pointing  out  first  to  the  Israelites 
by  a  plain  fact,  that  a  new  people  from  among  the  heathen 
shall  be  subject  unto  Him,  while  themselves  are  rejected  as  the 
murderers  of  the  Lord. 

What  then  was  the  sign  ?  He  sat  upon  a  colt,  as  we  have 
just  heard  the  blessed  Evangelist  clearly  telling  us.  And  yet 
perchance  some  one  will  say,  '  that  when  He  traversed  the 
f  whole  of  Judaea; — for  He  taught  in  their  synagogues,  adding 
f  also  to  His  words  the  working  of  miracles  ; — He  had  not 
1  asked  for  an  animal  to  ride  upon.  For  when  He  might  have 
*  purchased  one,  He  would  not,  though  wearied  often  by  His 
'  long  journeys  by  the  way.  For  when  traversing  Samaria,  He 

John  iv.  6.  f  was  "  wearied  with  His  journey,"  as  it  is  written.  Who  there- 
'  fore  can  make  us  believe,  that  when  He  was  going:  from  the 
'  Mount  of  Olives  to  Jerusalem,  places  separated  from  one  an- 
'  other  by  so  short  an  interval,  that  He  would  require  a  colt  ? 
1  And  why,  when  the  colt  was  accompanied  by  its  dam,  did  He 
'  not  rather  take  the  mother,  instead  of  choosing  the  colt?  For 
'  that  the  ass  also,  that  bore  the  colt,  was  brought  unto  Him, 

Mat.xxi. s.  f  We  learn  from  the  words  of  Matthew,  who  says,  "that  He 
'  "  sent  the  disciples  unto  a  village  over  against  them  ;  and 
f  "  said  unto  them,  that  ye  will  find  an  ass  tied,  and  a  colt 
'  "  with  her  :  loose  and  bring  them  unto  Me.  And  they 
'  "  brought,  it  says,  the  ass,  and  the  colt  with  her." '  We 
must  consider  therefore  what  is  the  explanation,  and  what  the 
benefit  which  we  derive  from  this  occurrence,  and  how  we 
make  Christ's  riding  upon  the  colt  a  type  of  the  calling  of  the 
Gentiles. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  603 

The  God  of  all  then  created  man  upon  the  earth  with  a 
mind  capable  of  wisdom,  and  possessed  of  powers  of  under- 
standing. But  Satan  deceived  him,  though  made  in  the 
image  of  God,  and  led  him  astray  even  until  he  had  no 
knowledge  of  the  Creator  and  Artificer  of  all.  He  humbled 
the  dwellers  upon  earth  down  to  the  lowest  stage  of  irra- 
tionality and  ignorance.  And  the  blessed  prophet  David 
knowing  this,  and  even,  so  to  speak,  weeping  bitterly  for  it, 
says,  "Man  being  in  honour  understood  it  not:  he  is  to  be  Pa.slix.12. 
"  compared  to  the  beast  without  understanding,  and  has  be- 
"  come  like  unto  it."  It  is  probable  therefore  that  that  older 
ass  contains  the  type  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews,  which,  so 
to  speak,  had  become  brutish,  because  it  had  paid  but  small 
heed  to  the  law  given  by  Moses,  and  had  despised  the  holy 
prophets,  and  had  added  thereto  disobedience  unto  Christ,  Who 
was  calling  it  unto  faith,  and  the  opening  of  its  eyes.  For  He 
said,  "  I  am  the  light  of  the  world ;  he  that  believeth  in  Me  John  viii. 
"  shall  not  walk  in  darkness,  but  poss'esseth  the  light  of  life." 
But  the  darkness  which  He  speaks  of  is  undoubtedly  that  of 
the  mind,  even  ignorance  and  blindness,  and  the  malady  of  ex-  ' 
treme  irrationality. 

But  the  colt,  which  as  yet  had  not  been  broken  in,  repre- 
sents the  new  people,  called  from  among  the  heathen.  For 
it  also  was  by  nature  destitute  of  reason,  having  wandered 
into  error.  But  Christ  became  its  wisdom,  "  for  in  Him  Col.  ii.  3. 
"  are  all  the  treasures  of  wisdom,  and  the  secret  things  of 
"  knowledp-e e." 

O  p 

The  colt  therefore  is  brought,  two  disciples  having  been 
sent  by  Christ  for  this  purpose.  And  what  does  this  signify? 
It  means  that  Christ  calls  the  heathen,  by  causing  the  light  of 
truth  to  shine  upon  them :  and  there  minister  unto  him  for 
this  purpose  two  orders  of  His  subjects,  the  prophets,  namely, 
and  the  apostles.  For  the  heathen  are  won  unto  the  faith 
by  means  of  the  preachings  of  the  apostles ;  and  they  always 
add  unto  their  words  proofs  derived  from  the  law  and  the  pro- 
phets. For  one  of  them  even  said  to  those  who  have  been 
called  by  faith  unto  the  acknowledgment  of  the  glory  of  Christ, 

6  In  the  Greek  it  is  -rijs  yvmvtas     the  Syriac  always  renders  it  as  if  it 
aTTOKpv(f>oi :  which  latter  word  is  an     were  ra  ttJc  yvaxreoos  airoKpvcpa. 
adj.  agreeing  with  drjiravpot.     But 

4  H  2 


6'04  COMMENTARY  UPON 

iPet.  i.  19.  »  ^(i  we  }jave  ^e  more  sure  prophetic  word,  unto  which  ye 
"  do  well  to  look,  as  unto  a  torch  that  shineth  in  a  dark  place, 
"  until  the  day  dawn,  and  the  light-star  arise  in  your  hearts/' 
For  before  the  coming  of  the  Saviour,  the  predictions  of  the 
law  and  the  prophets  concerning  Christ,  were  as  some  torch  in 
a  dark  place.  For  the  mind  of  the  Jews  was  always  gross, 
and,  so  to  speak,  full  of  thick  darkness.  For  they  understood 
not  in  the  least  what  was  said  concerning  Christ.  But  when 
the  day  dawned,  when  the  light  that  is  of  truth  arose,  hence- 
forth the  prophetic  word  is  no  small  torch,  but  resembles  rather 
the  bright  rays  of  the  morning  star. 

And  next  the  colt  is  brought  from  a  village,  in.  order  that 
He  may  by  this  means  also  point  out  the  uncivilized  state  of 
mind  of  the  heathen,  who,  so  to  speak,  had  not  been  educated 
in  the  city,  nor  in  lawful  habits,  but,  on  the  contrary,  lived 
boorishly  and  rudely.  For  constantly  those  who  dwell  in  vil- 
lages live  in  this  way.  But  they  did  not  continue  in  this  un- 
civilized state  of  mind,  but,  on  the  contrary,  were  changed 
unto  peacefulness  and  wiseness.  For  they  became  subject  unto 
Christ,  Who  teacheth  these  things. 

The  ass  then  was  rejected,  for  Christ  rode  not  thereon, 
although  it  had  been  broken  in  already,  and  practised  to  submit 
itself  to  its  riders  :  but  He  took  the  colt,  although  it  was  un- 
trained and  unproved  in  carrying  a  rider,  and  in  yielding  to  the 
reins.  For,  as  I  said,  He  rejected  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews, 
although  it  had  once  borne  a  rider  in  the  law,  nor  was  obe- 
dience a  thing  to  which  it  was  untrained :  still  He  refused  it 
as  aged,  and  spoiled,  and  as  having  gone  astray  already  into 
wilful  disobedience  unto  God  over  all :  but  He  accepted  the 
colt,  a  people,  that  is,  taken  from  among  the  Gentiles. 

And  this  is  the  meaning  of  the  praise  rendered  by  the  voice 
of  the  Psalmist  unto  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all,  where  he  says 
Pa.xixii.9.  of  those  that  were  in  error,  "  With  bridle  and  bit  shalt  Thou 
"  restrain  the  jaws  of  them  that  draw  not  nigh  unto  Thee." 
And  it  is  easy  to  see  from  sacred  Scripture,  that  the  multitude 
of  the  Gentiles  was  also  summoned  unto  repentance  and  obedi- 
ence by  the  holy  prophets.  For  God  thus  spake  in  a  certain 
Is.  xlv.  :o.  place,  "  Be  assembled  and  come  :  take  counsel  together,  ye  who 
"  are  saved  from  among  the  Gentiles." 

Christ  therefore  sits  upon  the  colt :   and  as  He  had  now 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  605 

come  to  the  descent  of  the  mount  of  Olives,  close,  that  is,  to 
Jerusalem,  the  disciples  went  before  Him,  praising  Him.  For 
they  were  called  to  bear  witness  of  the  wonderful  works  which 
He  had  wrought,  and  of  His  godlike  glory  and  sovereignty. 
And  in  like  manner  we  also  ought  always  to  praise  Him,  con- 
sidering Who  and  how  great  He  is  Who  is  praised  by  us. 

But  another  of  the  holy  Evangelists  has  mentioned,  that  Mat.  xxi.  s. 
children  also,  holding  aloft  branches  of  palm  trees,  ran  before  Jo^rn  ^V 
Him,  and,  together  with  the  rest  of  the  disciples,  celebrated  13- 
His  glory ;  so  that  by  their  means  also  we  see  the  new  people, 
gathered  from  among  the  heathen,  represented  as  in  a  paint- 
ing.    For  it  is  written,  that  "  the  people  that  shall  be  created  P3.  cii.  18. 
shall  praise  the  Lord." 

And  the  Pharisees  indeed  murmured  because  Christ  was 
praised ;  and  drew  near  and  said,  "  Rebuke  thy  disciples." 
But  what  wrong  action  have  they  done,  0  Pharisee?  What 
charge  bringest  thou  against  the  disciples,  or  how  wouldst 
thou  have  them  rebuked  ?  For  they  have  not  in  any  way 
sinned,  but  have  rather  done  that  which  is  praiseworthy.  For 
they  extol,  as  King  and  Lord,  Him  Whom  the  law  had  before 
pointed  out  by  many  figures  and  types ;  and  Whom  the  com- 
pany of  the  holy  prophets  had  preached  of  old :  but  thou  hast 
despised  Him,  and  grievest  Him  by  thy  numberless  envyings- 
Thy  duty  rather  it  was  to  join  the  rest  in  their  praises :  thy 
duty  it  was  to  withdraw  far  from  thy  innate  wickedness,  and 
to  change  thy  manner  for  the  better :  thy  duty  it  was  to  fol- 
low the  sacred  Scriptures,  and  to  thirst  after  the  knowledge 
of  the  truth.  But  this  thou  didst  not  do,  but  transferring  thy 
words  to  the  very  contrary,  thou  desiredst  that  the  heralds  of 
the  truth  might  be  rebuked.  What  therefore  doth  Christ  an- 
swer to  these  things ?  "I  tell  you,  that  if  these  be  silent,  the 
"  stones  will  cry  out." 

For  it  is  impossible  for  God  not  to  be  glorified,  even  though 
those  of  the  race  of  Israel  refuse  so  to  do.  For  the  wor- 
shippers of  idols  were  once  as  stones,  and,  so  to  speak,  hard- 
ened ;  but  they  have  been  delivered  from  their  former 
error,  and  rescued  from  the  hand  of  the  enemy.  They  have 
escaped  from  demoniacal  darkness ;  they  have  been  called 
unto  the  light  of  truth  :  they  have  awakened  as  from  druken- 
ness :   they  have   acknowledged   the  Creator.     They  praise 


606 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


Him  not  secretly,  and  in  concealment ;  not  in  a  hidden  man- 
ner, and,  so  to  speak,  silently,  but  with  freedom  of  speech,  and 
loud  voice ;  diligently,  as  it  were,  calling  out  to  one  another, 
and  saying,  "  Come,  let  us  praise  the  Lord,  and  sing  psalms 
w  unto  God  our  Saviour."  For  they  have  acknowledged,  as  I 
said,  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to 
God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever.    Amen  f. 


f  Mai  contains  only  three  ex- 
tracts upon  this  sermon,  and  even 
of  those,  two  frum  A.  are  not  ac- 
knowledged by  the  Syriac.  The 
first  is  a  narrative,  almost  in  the 
words  of  the  Evangelists,  of  our 
Lord's  entry;  after  the  hymn,  how- 
ever, it  proceeds  thus ;  "  Peace  in 
"  heaven,  for  God  is  no  longer 
"  treated  by  us  as  our  enemy  («- 
"  Treiro\ena>fj.euov),  but  walks  in  the 
"  country  of  us  His  foes,  and  there- 
*'  fore  is  glorified  by  the  angels. 
"  For  the  King  above  has  descend- 
"  ed  below,  and  made  all  obedient 
"  unto  Him."  These  last  words, 
y.iav   v-rraKOTjv   Trexoirjicfv,  Mai    sug- 


gests should  be  translated  "  and 
"  has  made  one  hymn  of  praise ;" 
such  being  the  meaning  of  viraKOTj 
in  Greek  ecclesiastical  language. 
That  the  extract  is  Cyril's,  I  very 
much  doubt.  Theophylact,  p.  492, 
has  a  similar  interpretation,  but  in 
a  better  style,  and  free  from  the 
antithesis,  6  auut  Pacriktvs  Karej3r) 
k6.tco.  The  second  extract  is  cer- 
tainly Cyril's,  though  not  from  the 
Commentary,  and  is  levelled  against 
the  Nestorians,  showing  that  Christ 
did  not  refuse  to  be  honoured  as 
God,  at  the  very  time  when  He  was 
riding  as  the  Son  of  David  upon 
the  ass. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  607 


SERMON  CXXXI. 

And  as  He  drew  near,  He  beheld  the  city,  and  wept  over  it,  C.  xix.  4i- 
saying,  Would  that  thou  hadst  known  on  this  day,  even  t^  .   , 
thou,  the  things  of  thy  peace :  but  now  they  are  hid  from  T^v  ««* 
thy  eyes:  that  the  days  shall  come  upon  thee,  when  thy  Ka\ah'Kaiyi 
enemies  shall  raise  a  rampart  against  thee,  and  encircle  iv  'f  w*p* 

*  ~  aov  ravr-p 

thee,  and  keep  thee  in  on  every  side ;  and  shall  dash  thee  GTj. 
to  the  ground,  and  thy  children  within  thee,  and  shall  not  °™'t™U'„  „ 
leave  in  thee  stone  upon  stone,  because  thou  knewest  not  the  B. 
time  of  thy  visitation. 

THE  blessed  prophet  Jeremiah  loudly  condemned  the  igno- 
rance, at  once,  and  pride  of  the  Jews,  rebuking  them  in  these 
words;  "  How  say  ye  that  we  are  wise,  and  the  word  of  the  Jer.  viii.  8. 
"  Lord  is  with  us?  In  vain  is  the  lying  cord  of  the  scribes. 
"  The  wise  men  are  ashamed  :  they  trembled,  and  were  taken: 
"  what  wisdom  have  they,  in  that  they  have  rejected  the  Word 
"of  the  Lord!"  For  being  neither  wise,  nor  acquainted  with 
the  sacred  Scriptures,  though  the  scribes  and  Pharisees  falsely 
assumed  to  themselves  the  reputation  of  being  learned  in  the 
law,  they  rejected  the  "Word  of  God.  For  when  the  Only 
Begotten  had  become  man,  they  did  not-  receive  Him,  nor 
yield  their  neck  obediently  to  the  summons  which  He  ad- 
dressed to  them  by  the  Gospel.  Because  therefore  by  their 
wicked  conduct  they  rejected  the  Word  of  God,  they  were 
themselves  rejected,  being  condemned  by  God's  just  decree.  • 
For  He  said,  by  the  voice  of  Jeremiah,  "  Call  them  rejected  Jer.  vi.  30. 
"  silver  :  because  the  Lord  hath  rejected  them."  And  again, 
"  Shave  thy  head,  and  cast  it  away,  and  take  lamentation  Jer.  vii.  29. 
"  upon  thy  lips,  because  the  Lord  hath  rejected  and  thrust 
"  away  the  generation  that  hath  done  these  things."  And 
what  these  things  are,  the  God  of  all  hath  Himself  declared 
to  us,  saying,  "  Hear,  0  earth:  behold!  I  am  bringing  upon  Jer.  vi.  19. 
"  this  people  evils ;  the  fruit  of  their  turning  away ;  because 
"  they  regarded  not  My  word,  and  have  rejected  My  law." 
For  neither  did  they  keep  the  commandment  that  was  given 
unto  them  by  Moses,  "  teaching  for  doctrines  the  command-  Mat.  xv.  9. 


•    608  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  ments  of  men :"  and  further,  they  also  rejected  the  Word  of 
God  the  Father,  having  refused  to  honour  by  faith  Christ, 
when  He  called  them  thereunto.  The  fruits  therefore  of  their 
turning  away  were  plainly  the  calamities  which  happened  unto 
them  :  for  they  suffered  all  misery,  as  the  retribution  due  for 
murdering  the  Lord. 

But  their  falling  into  this  affliction  was  not  in  accordance  with 
the  good  will  of  God.  For  He  would  rather  have  had  them 
attain  unto  happiness  by  faith  and  obedience.  But  they  were 
disobedient,  and  arrogant :  yet  even  so,  though  this  was  their 

r  Tim.  ii.  4.  state  of  mind,  Christ  pitied  them  :  for  "  He  willeth  that  all 
"  men  should  be  saved,  and  come  to  the  knowledge  of  the 
"  truth."  For  it  even  says,  that  "  when  He  saw  the  city,  He 
"  wept  •"  that  we  hereby  might  learn  that  He  feels  grief,  if 
we  may  so  speak  of  God,  Who  transcends  all.  But  we  could 
not  have  known  that  He  pitied  them,  wicked  as  they  were, 
had  He  not  made  manifest  by  some  human  action  that  sorrow 
which  we  could  not  see.  For  the  tear  which  drops  from  the 
eye  is  a  symbol  of  grief,  or  rather,  a  plain  demonstration  of  it. 
So  He  wept  also  over  Lazarus,  that  we  again  might  under- 
stand that  it  grieved  Him  that  the  nature  of  man  had  fallen 

Wisd.ii.23.  under  the  power  of  death.  For  "He  created  all  things  unto 
"  incorruption ;  but  by  the  envy  of  the  devil  death  entered  into 
"  the  world:11  not  indeed  because  the  envy  of  the  devil  is  more 
powerful  than  the  will  of  the  Creator,  but  because  it  was  ne- 
cessary that  there  should  follow,  upon  the  transgression  of  the 
divine  commandment,  a  penalty  that  would  humble  to  corrup- 
tion whosoever  had  despised  the  law  of  life. 

We  say  therefore  that  He  wept  also  over  Jerusalem  for  a 
similar  reason  :  for  He  desired,  as  I  said,  to  see  it  in  happi- 
ness, by  its  accepting  faith  in  Him,  and  welcoming  peace 
with  God.     For  it  was  to  this  that  the  prophet  Isaiah  also 

Is. xxvii. 5.  invited  them,  saying,  "Let  us  make  peace  with  Him:  let  us 

(  ePw  «  wh0  come  make  peace."  For  that  by  faith  peace  is  made 
by  us  with  God,  the  wise  Paul  teaches  us,  where  he  writes, 

Rom.  v.  1.  "  Being  justified  therefore  by  faith,  we  have  peace  with  God 
"  by  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ."  But  they,  as  I  said,  having 
hurried  with  unbridled  violence  into  arrogancy  and  contumely, 
persisted  in  despising  the  salvation  which  is  by  Christ :  and 
Christ   therefore    blames   them   for   this  very  thing,  saying, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  609 

"  Would  that  thou  hadst  known,  even  thou,  the  things  of  thy 

"  peace  :"  the  things,  that  is,  useful  and  necessary  for  thee  to 

make  thy  peace  with  God.     And  these  were  faith,  obedience, 

the  abandonment  of  types,  the  discontinuance  of  the  legal 

service,  and  the  choice  in  preference  of  that  which  is  in  spirit 

and  in  truth,  even  that  which  is  by  Christ,  of  a  sweet  savour, 

and  admirable,  and  precious  before  God.    "  For  God,  He  says,  j0hn  iv.  24. 

"  is  a  Spirit :  and  they  that  worship  Him  must  worship  Him 

"  in  spirit  and  in  truth." 

"  But  they  are  hid,  He  says,  from  thy  eyes."     For  they 
were  not  worthy  to  know,  or  rather  to  understand,  the  Scrip- 
tures inspired   of  God,  and   which  speak  of  the  mystery  of 
Christ.     For  Paul  said,  "  Seeing  then  that  we  have  so  great  a  2  Cor.  iii, 
"  hope,  we  use  great  freedom  of  speech:  and  not  as  Moses,  who  I*' 
"  put  a  veil  over  his  face,  that  the  children  of  Israel  might  not 
"  behold  the  glorv  of  his  countenance,  which  was  being  done 
"  away.     But  their  minds  were  blinded ;  for  even  to  this  day 
"  the  same  veil  remaineth  upon  the  reading  of  the  old  cove- 
"  nant :  for  when  Moses  is  read,  the  veil  is  laid  upon  their 
"  hearts,  and  is  not  taken  off,  because  it  is  done  away  in 
"  Christ."     But  in  what  way  is  the  veil  done  away  in  Christ? 
It  is  because   He,  as  being  the  reality,  makes  the  shadow 
cease :  for  that  it  is  His  mystery  which  is  represented  by  the 
shadow  of  the   law,   He   assures  us,  saying  unto  the  Jews, 
"  Had  ye  believed  Moses,  ye  would  have  believed  also  Me  :  John  v.  46. 
"  for  he  wrote  of  Me."     For  it  was  because  they  had  not 
carefully  examined  the  types  of  the  law,  that  they  did  not  see 
the  truth.     "For  callousness  s  in  part  hath  happened  unto  Rom.  xi. 25. 
"  Israel,"  as  Paul,  who  was  really  learned  in  the  law,  tells  us. 
But  callousness  is  the  certain  cause  of  ignorance  and  darkness : 
for  so  Christ  once  spake ;  "  It  is  not  any  thing  that  goeth  into  fifat.x7.11. 
"  the  mouth  which  defileth  the  man."     And  even  then  the 
Pharisees  again  reproached  Him,  for  so  speaking,  with  the 
breaking  of  the  law,  and  overthrowing  of  the  commandment 


s  The   Greek  Trcipwcrir   properly  for  a  dry  skin  upon  the  eye.    I  have 

signifies  "  callousness,"  and  thence  therefore    always    translated   it   by 

the  blindness  caused  by  cataract,  a  blindness,    except    in    this    place, 

callous  mass  growing  over  the  eye :  -  where  evidently  S.  Cyril  uses  it  in 

and  jZ.oj_.oii.  has  in  Syriac  a  sirni-  the  general   sense  of  "  hardness," 

lar  meaning,  |;oi.  being  the  name  "obduracy." 

41 


610  COMMENTARY  UPON 

given  them  by  Moses.  And  afterwards  the  disciples  drew 
near  unto  Him,  saying,  "  Knowest  thou  that  the  Pharisees, 
"  who  heard  the  word,  were  offended  ?  And  He  answered 
"  them,  Every  plant  that  My  heavenly  Father  hath  not 
"  planted  shall  be  rooted  up  :  let  them  alone:  blind  are  they, 
"  leaders  of  the  blind."  The  plant  therefore  which  the  Fa- 
ther planted  not, — for  He  calls  unto  the  acknowledgment  of 
the  Son  those  who  shall  be  accounted  worthy  of  His  salvation, 
— shall  be  rooted  up. 

Far  different  is  the  case  with  those  who  have  believed  in  Him : 
how  could  it  be  otherwise  1    For,  as  the  Psalmist  says  concern- 

Ps.  xcii.  13.  ing  them,  "They  are  planted  in  the  house  of  the  Lord,  and 
"  shall  flourish  in  the  courts  of  our  God."  For  they  are  the 
building  and  workmanship  of  God,  -as  the  sacred  Scripture 
declares.     For  it  is  said   unto  God   by  the  voice  of  David, 

Ps.  exxviii.  "  Thy  sons  shall  be  as  the  young  olive  plants  round  about  thy 

3"  «  table." 

But  the  Israelites,  even  before  the  Incarnation,  proved  them- 
selves unworthy  of  the  salvation  which  is  by  Christ,  in  that 
they  rejected  communion  with  God,  and  set  up  for  themselves 
gods  falsely  so  called,  and  slew  the  prophets,  although  they 
warned  them  not  to  depart  from  the  living  God,  but  to  hold 
fast  unto  His  sacred  commandments.  But  they  would  not 
consent  so  to  do,  but  grieved  Him  in  many  ways,  even  when 
He  invited  them  unto  salvation.     . 

Mat.  xxSL  And  this  the  Saviour  Himself  teaches  us,  thus  saying,  "  Je- 
"  rusalem,  Jerusalem,  that  killeth  the  prophets,  and  stoneth 
"  them  that  are  sent  unto  her,  how  often  would  I  have  ga- 
"  thered  thy  sons,  as  a  hen  gathereth  her  chickens  under  her 
"  wings,  and  ye  would  not."  Thou  seest  that  He  indeed  often 
desired  to  bestow  upon  them  His  mercy,  but  they  rejected 
His  aid.  And  therefore  they  were  condemned  by  God's  holy 
decree,  and  put  away  from  being  members  of  His  spiritual 
household.     For  He  even  said  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets 

Hos.  iv.  5.  unto  the  people  of  the  Jews,  "  I  have  compared  thy  mother 
"  unto  the  night :  My  people  is  like  unto  him  that  hath  no 
"  knowledge.  Because  thou  hast  rejected  knowledge,  I  also 
"  will  reject  thee  from  being  My  priest :  and  because  thou 
"  hast  forgotten  the  law  of  thy  God,  I  will  also  forget  thy 
"  sons."     Observe  therefore  that  He  compares  Jerusalem  to 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  6*11 

the  night ;  for  the  darkness  of  ignorance  veiled  the  heart  of 
the  Jews,  and  blinded  their  eyes  :  and  for  this  reason  they 
were  given  over  to  destruction  and  slaughter.     For  the  God 
of  all  spake  by  the  voice  of  Ezechiel :  "  As  I  live,  saith  the  Ezek.7.11. 
"  Lord,  surely  inasmuch  as  thou  hast  defiled  My  holy  things 
"  with  all  thy  impurities,  I  will  also  reject  thee  ;  My  eye  shall 
"  not  spare,  nor  will  I  pity/'     "  They  that  are  in  the  plain  Ezek.  vii. 
"  shall  die  by  the  sword  :    and   them   that   are  in  the  city  ls' 
"  famine  and  pestilence  shall  consume.     And  those  of  them 
"  that  are  saved  shall  be  delivered,  and  shall  be  upon   the 
"  mountains  as  meditative  doves  V     For  Israel  did  not  perish 
from  the  very  roots,  nor,  so  to  speak,  stock  and  branch  :  but 
a  remnant  was  delivered,  of  which  the  foremost  and  the  first- 
fruits  were  the  blessed  disciples,  of  whom  it  is  that  he  says, 
that   they   were    upon   the    mountains    as    meditative    doves. 
For  they  were  as  heralds  throughout  the  whole  world,  forth- 
telling  the  mystery  of  Christ,  and  their  office  is  praise  and 
song,  and,  so  to  speak,  to  cry  aloud  in  psalms, "  My  tongue  Pa-  **xv. 
"  shall  meditate  on  Thy  righteousness :  and  all  the  day  on 
"  Thy  praise." 

The  means  therefore  of  her  peace  with  God  were  hidden 
from  Jerusalem  :  and  of  these  the  first  and  foremost  is  the 
faith  which  justifies  the  wicked,  and  unites  by  holiness  and 
righteousness  those  who  possess  it  unto  the  all  pure  God. 

That  the  city  then,  once  so  holy  and  illustrious,  even  Jeru- 
salem, fell  into  the  distresses  of  war,  may  be  seen  from  history : 
but  the  prophet  Isaiah  also  assures  us  of  it,  where  he  cries 
aloud  unto  the  multitudes  of  the  Jews,  "  Your  country  is  deso-  i3.  i.  7. 
"  late :  your  cities  are  burnt  with  fire :  your  land,  strangers 
"  devour  it  in  your  presence  :  and  it  is  desolate  as  overthrown 
"  by  foreign  nations."  This  was  the  wages  of  the  vainglory 
of  the  Jews,  the  punishment  of  their  disobedience,  the  torment 
that  was  the  just  penalty  of  their  pride.     But  we  have  won 

h  This  translation  is  taken  from  convallium,  "  the  doves  of  the  val- 

TheOdotion,  who  renders  us  ntpi-  "  leys,"  and  so  the  A.  V.     S.  Cyril 

an-epal  fxeXeTrjTLKal,  having  errone-  has  apparently  also  in  other  places 

ously  imagined  that  n"P» :  ft  is  de-  used   Theodotion's    translation    in 

rived  from  mrt,  to  meditate.     Je-  preference  to  that  of  the  Sept.,  which 

rome  translates  it  rightly  columbce  latter  omits  the  passage  altogether. 

412 


612  COMMENTARY  UPON 

the  hope  of  the  saints,  and  are  in  all  happiness,  because  we 
have  honoured  Christ  by  faith  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to 
God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever.    Amen1. 

1  Mai  adds  a  short  extract  upon  has  the  passage  sentence  by  sen- 
Christ's  "visitation,"  and  the  escape  tence,  though  in  different  order,  and 
of  the  Christians  from  the  over-  probably  it  was  from  him  that  the 
throw  of  Jerusalem.    Theophylact  Catenist  took  it. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  613 


SERMON  CXXXII. 

And  having  entered  into  the  temple,  He  began  to  cast  out  C- xix-  45- 
them  that  sold  therein,  saying  unto  them,  It  is  written  that  x_8. 
My  house  is  a  house  of  prayer  :  but  ye  have  made  it  a  den  °™-  *v  **r* 
of  thieves.     And  he  taught  daily  in  the  temple :  but  the  ayopa(ov 
chief  priests  and  scribes  and  rulers  of  the  people  sought  to  ™*  ^      s 
destroy  Him ;    and  found  not  what  they  might  do  unto  om.  on  G*. 
Him,  for  all  the  people  were  hanging  upon  Him  to  hear  ^ .  ** 
Him.     And  it  came  to  pass  on  one  of  the  days,  as  He  add.  <ivt<z 
taught  the  people  in  the  temple,  and  preached,  the  chief  ^^^  a{,. 
priests  and  scribes,  with  the  elders,  rose  up  against  Him,  r\\s:  . 
and  said  unto  Him,  Tell  us  by  what  authority  Thou  doest  Gs. 
these  things?  or  who  it  is  that  gave  Thee  this  authority?  Tes's*yo" 
But  He  answered  and  said  unto  them,  I  also  will  ask  you 
one  word,  and  tell  Me  :  the  baptism,  of  John,  was  it  from  om.eVaBT. 
heaven,  or  of  men?    And  they  considered  with  themselves, 
saying,  That  if  we  shall  say,  From  heaven ;   He  will  say, 
Why  therefore  did  ye  not  believe  him?    But  if  we  say,  Of  om.  oScBT. 
men ;  all  the  people  will  stone  us :  for  they  are  persuaded 
that  John  is  a  prophet.     And  they  answered,  that  they 
knew  not  whence  it  was.    And  Jesus  said  unto  them,  Nei- 
ther tell  I  you  by  what  authority  I  do  these  things. 

IT  is  written,  that  "  there  is  a  light  always  for  the  right-  Prov.xiii.9. 
"  eous ;  but  the  light  of  the  wicked  shall  be  put  out."  For  to 
those  who  have  embraced  the  righteousness  that  is  in  Christ, 
God  the  Father  imparts  the  inextinguishable  light  of  the  true 
knowledge  of  the  true  vision  of  God  :  for  He  revealeth  unto 
them  the  Son ;  as  the  Saviour  Himself  also  in  a  certain  place 
said  unto  the  Jews,  "  Murmur  not  one  with  another:  no  man  John vi. 43. 
"  can  come  unto  Me,  except  the  Father  Who  sent  Me  draw 
"  him."  But  He  draws,  of  course,  by  light  and  knowledge, 
and  tne  cords  of  love.  But  those  who  are  not  so  disposed  in 
will,  but  wickedly  reject  Christ's  commandments,  from  their 
mind  even  that  light,  which  they  had  by  the  commandment  of 
Moses,  vanishes  away,  and  is  extinguished,  while  the  darkness 
of  ignorance  usurps  its  place. 


614  COMMENTARY  UPON" 

And  that  this  is  true,  and  the  real  state  of  the  case,  the 
blindness  of  the  Jews  proves  to  us.  For  they  were  dark,  and 
unable  to  see  the  glory  of  the  Word,  Who  became  man  for 
our  sakes,  although  He  revealed  Himself  to  them  by  the  work- 
ing of  many  miracles,  and  a  godlike  authority,  an  instance  of 
which  we  have  in  what  happened  in  the  temple.  For  there 
was  in  it  a  multitude  of  merchants,  and  others  also,  guilty  of 
the  charge  of  the  base  love  of  lucre,  moneychangers,  I  mean, 
or  keepers  of  exchange  tables  ;  sellers  of  oxen,  moreover,  and 
dealers  in  sheep,  and  sellers  of  turtle  doves  and  pigeons ;  all 
which  things  were  used  for  the  sacrifices  according  to  the  legal 
ritual.  But  the  time  had  now  come  for  the  shadow  to  draw 
to  an  end,  and  for  the  truth,  so  to  speak,  to  shine  forth  ;  even 
the  lovely  beauty  of  Christian  conduct,  and  the  glories  of  the 
blameless  life,  and  the  sweet  rational  savour  of  the  worship  in 
spirit  and  in  truth. 

For  this  reason  very  justly  did  the  Truth,  even  Christ,  as 
One  Who  with  His  Father  was  also  honoured  in  their  temple, 
command  that  those  things  that  were  by  the  law  should  be 
carried  away,  even  the  materials  for  sacrifices  and  burning  of 
incense,  and  that  the  temple  should  manifestly  be  a  house  of 
prayer.  For  His  rebuking  the  dealers,  and  driving  them 
from  the  sacred  courts,  when  they  were  selling  what  was 
wanted  for  sacrifice,  means  certainly  this,  as  I  suppose,  and  this 
alone. 
John  ii.  15.  We  must  observe  however  that  another  of  the  holy  Evan- 
gelists mentions,  that  not  only  did  the  Lord  rebuke  those 
dealers  by  words,  but  that  He  also  made  a  scourge  of  cords, 
and  threatened  to  inflict  stripes  upon  them ;  for  it  was  right 
for  those  who  honoured  the  lesral  service  after  the  manifesta- 
tion  of  the  truth,  to  know,  that  by  retaining  the  spirit  of 
bondage,  and  refusing  to  be  set  free,  they  became  subject  to 
stripes,  and  liable  to  slavish  torture  k.     The  Saviour  therefore 

k  In  Mai  this  passage  from  A.  "  and  doves,  as  John  has  mention- 

and  B.,  which  has  agreed  thus  far  "  ed,  and   other   like   things;   and 

with  the  Syriac,  now  takes  a  very  "  others  bought.     But  the  koXXv- 

different  direction,  as  follows,  "  See,  "  /3«<rral  were  moneychangers  :  for 

"  I  pray,  their  contempt !  for  they  "  the   koWv&os  was   an  obol,  and 

"  traded  in  the  temple,  and  some  "  by  KoWvfiifa   is   meant,  '  giving 

"  sold  what  was  required  for  sacri-  "  '  change ;'    for    so    doe3    custom 

"  fices,  sheep,  I  mean,  and   oxen,  "  alter    words.       But    Christ    en- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  615 

of  all,  and  Lord,  manifests  unto  them  His  glory  for  their 
benefit,  in  order  that  they-  may  believe  in  Him.  For  as  one 
Who  possessed  authority  over  the  temple,  He  both  took  care 
of  it,  and  also  called  God  His  Father.  For  as  that  other  holy 
Evangelist  wrote,  He  said  to  the  dealers,  "Make  not  My  John  ii.  16. 
"Father's  house  a  house  of  merchandize."  And  again,  "  It  Markxi.17. 
"  is  written,  that  My  house  shall  be  called  a  house  of  prayer : 
"  but  ye  have  made  it  a  den  of  thieves."  It  was  their  duty 
therefore,  I  say  their  duty,  rather  to  worship  Him,  as  One 
who  with  God  the  Father  was  Lord  of  the  temple.  But  this 
in  their  great  follv  thev  did  not  do  :  but  rather  bein°-  savagelv 
eager  for  hatred,  they  both  set  up  against  Him  the  sharp 
sting  of  wickedness,  and  hastened  unto  murder,  the  neighbour 
and  brother  of  envy.  For  "  they  sought,  it  says,  to  destroy 
"  Him,  but  could  not :  for  all  the  people  were  hanging  upon 
"  Him  to  hear  Hirn."  And  does  not  this  then  make  the 
punishment  of  the  scribes  and  pharisees,  and  all  the  rulers  of 
the  Jewish  ranks,  more  heavy?  that  the  whole  people,  con- 
sisting of  unlearned  persons,  hung  upon  the  sacred  doctrines, 
and  drank  in  the  saving  word  as  the  rain,  and  were  ready  to 
bring  forth  also  the  fruits  of  faith,  and  place  their  neck  under 
His  commandments  :  but  thev  whose  office  it  was  to  uro-e  on 
their  people  to  this  very  thing,  savagely  rebelled,  and  wick- 
edly sought  the  opportunity  for  murder,  and  with  unbridled 
violence  ran  upon  the  rocks,  not  accepting  the  faith,  and  wick- 
edly hindering  others  also. 

And  how  is  not  what  I  have  said  true?  For  the  Saviour 
Himself  reproached  them,  saying,  "And  to  you,  lawyers,  woe!  Luke.xi.52. 
"  for  ye  have  taken  away  the  key  of  knowledge :  ye  enter  not 
"  in  yourselves,  and  those  that  are  entering  in  ye  have 
"  hindered."  They  rise  up  therefore  against  Christ  as  He 
teaches,  and  wickedly  and  abominably  call  out  and  say,  "  Tell 
"  us,  by  what  authority  Thou  doest  these  things  ?  Who  gave 
"  Thee   this   authority  V      '  The   law,    they   say,   given   by  . 

"  tered  the  temple  with  boldness,  "  fices,  and  teaching  us  also  to  act 

"  as  being  Lord,  and  cast  out  those  "  resolutely     in     defence     of     the 

"  mentioned    above,    both    laying  "  church."     The  passage  belongs 

"  bare  His  power  over  all  as  God,  probably  to   the   Catenist   himself, 

"  and   being   emboldened    by   His  being  partly  however  suggested  by 

"  sinlessness,  and  further  signify-  S.  Cyril's  words. 
"  ing  the  abolition  of  bloody  sacri- 


616  COMMENTARY  UPON 

'  Moses,  and  the  commandment  which  regulates  all  these  our 
'  institutions,  enjoined  that  those  only  who  are  of  the  lineage 
'  of  Levi  should  approach  these  sacred  duties :  they  offer  the 
'  sacrifices:  they  regulate  whatever  is  done  in  the  divine  tem- 
'  pie :  to  them  is  given  the  office  of  instructing,  and  the  go- 
'  vernment  of  the  sacred  trusts.  But  Thou,  as  being  of  an- 
'  other  tribe, — for  Thou  art  sprung  from  Judah, — seizest 
'  upon  honours  which  have  been  set  apart  for  us.  "  Who 
'  "  gave  Thee  this  authority  ?"  '  0  foolish  Pharisee,  come 
and  let  me  tell  thee  somewhat  thou  canst  not  gainsay,  plead- 
ing to  thee  the  cause  of  Christ  our  common  Saviour.  If  thou 
wert  acquainted  with  the  Scriptures,  which  are  inspired  of  God, 
and  the  words  and  predictions  of  the  holy  prophets,  thou 
wouldst  have  remembered  perchance  the  blessed  David,  who 

Ps.  ex.  4.  says  in  the  Spirit  unto  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all,  "  The  Lord 
"  hath  sworn,  and  will  not  repent,  Thou  art  a  priest  for  ever 
"  after  the  order  of  Melchisedek."  Explain,  therefore,  what 
Pharisee  or  Scribe  has  ministered  unto  God  after  the  order  of 
Melchisedek,  who  blessed  and  received  tithes  of  Abraham? 

Heb.  vii.  7.  And  as  the  very  wise  Paul  writes,  "  Without  all  contradiction 
"  the  less  is  blessed  of  the  better."  The  root  and  commence- 
ment therefore  of  the  very  existence  of  Israel,  even  the  patri- 
arch Abraham,  was  blessed  by  the  priesthood  of  Melchisedek  : 
but  Melchisedek  and  his  priesthood  was  a  type  of  Christ  the 
Saviour  of  us  all,  Who  has  been  made  our  High  Priest  and 
Apostle ;  not  bringing  near  unto  God  the  Father  those  who 
believe  in  Him,  by  means  of  bloody  sacrifices  and  offerings  of 
incense,  but  perfecting  them  unto  holiness  by  a  service  supe- 

Heb. viii.r.  rior  to  the  law  :  for  "such  a  High  Priest  have  we,  Who  has 

"  sat  down  at  the  right  hand  of  the  throne  of  the  Majesty  on 

"  high." 

The  difference,  however,  between  the  two  services  is  very 

great :  for  the  Saviour  of  all  offers  as  a  priest  unto  God  the 

Pa.  xxxvi.    Father  the  confession  of  our  faith,  and  the  "  torrent  of  the 

8 

Johniv.24.  "  sweet  spiritual  savour:" — for  "God  is  a  Spirit:  and  they 

"  that  worship  Him  must  worship  in  spirit  and  in  truth."    But 

the  bloody  sacrifices  which  they  offer  are  not  well-pleasing  to 

Amos  v.?  r.  Q0^     Yot  He  even  said  unto  them,  "  I  have  hated,  and  have 

"  rejected  your  festivals,  and  I  will  not  smell  at  your  solemn 

"  assemblies.     Because  even  though  ye  bring  Me  whole  burnt 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  617 

"  offerings  and  sacrifices,  I  will  not  accept  them,  nor  will  I  re- 
"  gard  the  salvation  of  your  appearance.  Take  away  from  Me 
"  the  sounding  of  thy  praises  :  nor  will  I  hear  the  psalmody 
"  of  thy  instruments."  Understand  therefore  that  He  says, 
that  He  hated  their  festivals,  and  that  as  well  their  praises  as 
their  sacrifices  were  rejected  by  Him.  And  yet  God  rejoieeth 
in  being  praised ;  but  not  by  impure  mouths,  nor  by  a  defiled 
tongue :  for  it  is  written  in  the  book  of  Psalms,  "  But  unto  the  Pa.  l.  16. 
"  sinner  God  hath  said,  Why  dost  thou  declare  My  command- 
"  ments,  and  take  My  covenant  in  thy  mouth ;  whereas  thou 
"  hast  hated  instruction,  and  hast  cast  out  My  words  behind 
"thee?"  And  again  He  said,  "  Add  no  more  to  tread  My  Is.  i.  12. 
"  court :  if  ye  bring  fine  wheaten  flour,  it  is  in  vain  :  and  your 
"  spices  are  an  abomination  unto  Me/'  Why  therefore,  0  Pha- 
risee, dost  thou  murmur  at  those  things  being  expelled  from 
the  sacred  courts  which  were  employed  for  the  legal  sacrifices, 
when  the  appointed  time  now  summoned  men  to  a  life  better 
than  types,  and  to  true  justification  by  faith  in  Christ,  Who  is 
Himself  the  truth. 

But  the  series  of  subjects  now  set  before  us  leads  us  on  to 
discussions  of  too  great  length  :  and  whatever  is  beyond  duo 
limit,  is  everywhere  disagreeable  as  well  to  those  who  hear,  as 
to  those  who  teach.  Let  then  what  has  been  said  suffice  for 
the  present :  and  whatever  still  remains,  we  will  complete 
when  Christ  again  assembles  us  here ;  by  Whom  and  with 
Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the 
Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


4K 


618  COMMENTARY  UPON 

SERMON   CXXXIII. 

THE    SAME    SUBJECT    CONTINUED. 

YE  have  again  assembled,  I  suppose,  to  be  taught ;  and  I 
praise  your  conduct,  and  count  your  willingness  worthy  of  all 
Prov  viu.    admiration  :  for  it  is  written,  that  "  wisdom  is  better  than 
""  "stones  of  costly  price;  and  all  precious  things  are  not  com- 

"  parable  unto  her."  For  the  wisdom  that  comes  from  above, 
from  God,  is  an  incomparable  blessing ;  and  when  we  attain  unto 
it  by  means  of  the  holy  Scripture,  inspired  of  God,  and  gain  the 
divine  light  to  dwell  in  our  minds,  we  then  advance  without 
wandering  unto  whatsoever  is  useful  for  our  spiritual  profit. 
Come  therefore,  and  let  us  now  also  scrupulously  examine  the 
meaning  of  the  Evangelic  lessons  which  have  already  been 
read  to  us. 

At  our  previous  meeting  then  the  discourse  which  we  ad- 
dressed unto  you  was  upon  the  ignorance  of  the  Pharisees,  and 
their  utter  madness,  and  base  attacks.     For  they  drew  near 
unto  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  us  all,  saying,  "  By  what  authority 
"  doest  Thou  these  things,  and  who  gave  Thee  this  authority  V 
For  what  had  Christ  done  ?     He  had  cast  out  of  the  temple 
those  who  were  selling  sheep  and  oxen,  turtle  doves  and  pi- 
geons ;  and  overturned  the  tables  of  the  moneychangers,  say- 
John  ii.  16.  ing,  "Take  these  things  hence:  and  make  not  My  Father's 
Luke  xix.    "  house  a  house  of  merchandize."     And  again,  "My  house  is 
4  '  "a  house  of  prayer  :  but  ye  make  it  a  den  of  thieves." 

We  then  spoke  of  these  things  as  follows;  that  as  the  Lord 
was  gathering1  up  the  shadow  of  the  law,  as  a  thing  already 
unprofitable  and  superfluous,  He  sought  to  prohibit  the  sacri- 
fices that  were  by  the  shedding  of  blood,  because  the  time  was 
now  close  at  hand,  and  present,  at  which  the  worship  in  spirit 
and  in  truth  must  be  declared.    For  He  was  Himself  the  truth, 

1  The  margin  explains  "  gather-  phor.  Probably  S.  Cyril's  word  was 

ing  up"  by  "  destroying."  But  evi-  a-uareWa,  which  he  constantly  uses 

dently  this  was  not  intended  to  ex-  in  the  sense  of  "contracting." 
plain  the  word,  but  only  the  meta- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  619 

and  as  the  truth  had  now  appeared,  types  necessarily  had  be- 
come superfluous.     Yet  for  this  reason  those  wretched  beings 
furiously  attacked  the  Lord  of  all.    And  thus  far  our  discourse  Kwiuri. 
had  proceeded  at  our  last  meeting. 

We  will  now  shew  that  the  chiefs  and  teachers  of  the  Jew- 
ish synagogue  in  another  way  also  violently  attacked  Christ. 
For  the  Saviour  was  teachiug  in  the  temple,  setting  forth  most 
certainly  for  the  instruction  of  His  hearers  things  superior  to 
the  law ;  even  the  pathway  of  evangelic  conduct.  But  they, 
being  indignant  at  this  also,  wickedly  drew  near  questioning 
Him,  and  saying,  "Who  gave  Thee  this  authority?"  What 
then  again  does  this  mean  ?  '  Thou  art  teaching,  they  say,  in 
'  the  temple,  and  yet  Thou  art  sprung  from  the  tribe  of  Judah, 
'  and  art  not  numbered  among  those  whose  office  it  is  to  min- 
'  ister  as  priests  in  the  temple.  And  why  dost  Thou  teach 
'  what  is  repugnant  to  the  commandment  of  Moses,  and  agrees 
'  not  with  the  law  that  was  given  us  of  old  V 

To  those  therefore  who  thus  speak  let  us  say,  Doth  this 
bite  thy  mind,  and  provoke  thee  to  savage  envy  ?  Tell  me, 
accusest  thou  the  Lawgiver  with  the  abrogation  of  the  law  ? 
Dost  thou  blame  Him,  and  make  an  outcry,  because  He  does 
not  obey  His  own  laws  ?  Tell  me  therefore,  is  God  subject 
to  His  own  law  ?  Was  it  for  us,  or  for  Himself  perhaps  I 
suppose,  that  He  enacted  the  commandments  spoken  by  the 
holy  prophets?  But  it  is  certain,  even  though  thou  ownest 
it  not,  that  God  transcends  all  law,  and  that  it  is  we  who  are 
under  the  yoke  of  His  commandments.  When  therefore  any 
man,  such  as  we  are,  transgresses  the  law.  blame  and  condemn 
him  for  his  transgression  :  but  He  Who  enacted  laws,  not  for 
Himself,  but  rather  for  us  to  obey,  from  time  to  time  changes 
according  to  His  own  good  pleasure  whatever  has  been  com- 
manded; intending  thereby  not  to  humble  those  who  are  under 
the  law  to  any  thing  evil,  but  rather  to  raise  them  up  to  that 
which  is  better.  And  so  then  now  the  season  had  arrived  for 
the  cessation  of  those  things  which  were  by  types,  and  when 
that  teaching  of  the  law,  which  was  given  for  the  instruction 
of  them  of  old  time  must  pass  away,  in  order  that  something 
better  might  be  revealed,  even  the  instruction  given  us  in  the 
Gospel. 

But  thou  sayest,  '  Was  this  therefore  in  accordance  with  the 
4  K  2 


G20  COMMENTARY  UPON 

'  will  of  Him  Who  instituted  by  Moses  that  former  command- 
'  ment  for  those  of  old  time?'  Yes,  I  answer;  and  I  arrive 
at  this  conclusion,  not  of  ray  own  mind,  but  as  having  proof 
thereof  in  the  prophetic  Scriptures.  For  God  has  somewhere 
Mic.  vi.  15.  said  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  M  And  the  laws  of  My  people  shall 
'  ti['  "  be  made  to  disappear/"  How  have  the  laws  of  the  people 
been  made  to  disappear  ?  Because,  as  I  said,  they  have  been 
brought  to  nought  by  the  manifestation  of  a  new  and  better 
commandment,  which  the  Son  has  spoken  unto  us  by  Himself; 
and  which  also  He  proclaimed  of  old  by  the  voice  of  Ezechiel, 

Jer.  xxxii.  thus  speaking  of  those  of  the  race  of  Israel ;  "  Behold,  I  will 
"  gather  them  from  every  land  whither  I  have  scattered  them 
"  in  My  anger,  and  hot  displeasure,  and  great  wrath ;  and  I 
"  will  make  them  return  unto  this  place,  and  I  will  cause  them 
"  to  dwell  safely,  and  they  shall  be  to  Me  a  people,  and  I  will 
"  be  to  them  a  God,  and  I  will  give  them  another  way  and  an- 
"  other  heart,  that  they  may  fear  Me  all  their  days."  Another 
way  therefore  has  been  given  them,  by  the  gathering  up,  as  I 
said,  of  the  legal  service,  and  of  the  teaching  which  consisted 
in  writings  and  types,  and  the  entrance  in  of  that  of  the  Gos- 
pel, of  which  the  very  beginning  and  pathway  is  faith,  which 
by  a  spiritual  service  perfects  unto  justification,  and  raises  up 
unto  sanctification  those  who  draw  near  unto  God. 

For  that  the  institutions  of  Moses  were  intended  to  come 
to  an  end,  and  a  new  law  and  a  new  covenant  to  be  given  by 
Christ,  any  one  may  easily  see,  inasmuch  as  Ho  says  plainly  ; 

Jer.  xxxi.  "  Behold  the  days  come,  saith  the  Lord,  that  I  will  appoint  a 
"  new  covenant  for  the  house  of  Israel,  and  for  the  house  of 
"  Judah ;  not  according  to  the  covenant  that  I  appointed  for 
"  their  fathers  in  the  day  that  I  took  them  by  the  hand  to 
"  bring  them  out  of  the  land  of  Egypt,  because  they  did  not 
"  abide  in  My  covenant,  and  I  despised  them,  saith  the  Lord." 
He  promises  therefore  a  new  covenant  :  and  as  the  very  wise 

Heb.  viii.  Paul  writes,  "  In  that  He  said,  a  new,  He  hath  made  the  for- 
u  iner  one  old :  but  that  which  is  made  old,  and  growing  old, 
"  is  ready  for  destruction."  Inasmuch  therefore  as  the  former 
(covenant)  was  made  old,  it  was  necessary  that  that  which  is 
new  should  enter  in  its  place :  and  this  was  done  not  by  one 
of  the  holy  prophets,  but  by  Him  rather  Who  is  the  Lord  of 
the  prophets. 


TIIE  GOSPEL  OF  ST,  LUKE.  621 

Why  therefore  dost  thou  murmur,  0  Pharisee,  at  seeing  the 
divinely  inspired  Scripture  fulfilled,  and  those  things  which 
had  been  spoken  of  old  by  the  holy  prophets  attaining  also 
their  fulfilment  ? 

When  then  they  asked,  "  By  what  authority  doest  Thou 
"  these  things?"  the  Saviour  replied,  "  I  also  will  ask  you  one 
"  word,  and  tell  Mo  :  the  baptism  of  John,  was  it  from  heaven 
"  or  of  men?     And  they,  it  says,  considered  with  themselves, 
"  saying,  that  if  we  shall  say,  From  heaven,  He  will  say,  Why 
"  therefore  did  ye  not  believe  him  ?  but  if  we  say,  Of  men,  all 
"  the  people  will  stone  us  :  for  they  are  persuaded  that  John 
"  is  a  prophet.      And  they  answered,   that  they  knew  not 
"  whence  it  was.      And  Jesus  said  unto  them,  Neither  tell 
"  I  you  by  what  authority  1  do  these  things."     Observe  the 
great  malice  of  the  Pharisees  :  they  flee  from  the  truth  ;  they 
refuse  the  light ;  they  feel  no  horror  at  committing  sin.     For 
God  the  Father  sent  the  blessed  Bcxptist  as  the  forerunner  of 
Christ,  crying  out  and  saying,  "Prepare  ye  the  way  of  the  la.  ri.  3. 
"  Lord :  and  make  straight  the  pathways  of  our  God."     Ot 
him  too  the  wise  evangelist  John  wrote ;  "  There  was  a  man  John  i.  6. 
"  sent  from  God,  whose  name  was  John.     He  came  for  a  testi- 
"  mony  to  bear  witness  of  the  light:  he  was  not  the  light,  but 
"  to  bear  witness  of  the  light ;"  even  of  Christ.     And  he  bore 
witness  by  saying,  that  "  He  That  sent  me  to  baptize  in  water,  John  i.  33- 
"  He  said  unto  me,  that  upon  Whom  thou  seest  the  Spirit  de- 
"  scend  from  heaven,  and  abide  upon  Him,  He  it  is  That  bap- 
'«  tizeth  with  the  Holy  Ghost.     And  I  saw  and  bore  witness, 
"  that  This  is  the  Son  of  God."  The  blessed  Baptist  therefore, 
as  being  so  great  and  admirable,  is  one  worthy  of  our  accept- 
ance to°  move  us  unto  faith,  and  to  be  a  witness  concerning 
Christ.     But  because  it  was  the  custom  of  the*  Jews  lightly  to 
slander  the  saints,  and  to  call  them  false  speakers,  and  to  say 
that  they  had  not  been  sent  of  God,  but  falsely  assumed  a 
knowledge  of  prophecy  of  their  own  mind,  Christ  asked  them, 
what  opinion  they  entertained  of  the  Baptist?   was  he  one 
who  came  from  above,  from  God ;  did  they  honour  him,  that 
is,  as  one  who  had  been  sent  to  baptize  in  accordance  with  the 
will  of  God  ?  or  according  to  their  custom,  did  they,  from  hu- 
man considerations  and  wishes,  deny  that  he  came  for  this  pur- 
pose? And  they  were  afraid  indeed  to  speak  the  truth,  lost  they 


622  COMMENTARY  UPON 

should  be  told,  Why  then  did  ye  not  believe  Him  ?  but  neither 
will  they  accuse  the  forerunner,  not  however  from  being  afraid 
of  God,  but  rather  of  the  multitudes.  And  therefore  they  hide 
the  truth,  and  say,  "  We  know  not." 

As  not  being  then  worthy  to  learn  the  truth,  and  to  see  the 
pathway  which  leadeth  directly  unto  every  good  work,  Christ 
answered  them,  "  And  neither  do  I  tell  you  by  what  authority 
"  I  do  these  things/'  The  Jews  therefore  knew  not  the  truth  : 
Is.  Hv.  13.  for  they  were  not  "taught  of  God,"  that  is,  of  Christ.  But  to 
us  who  have  believed  in  Him,  Christ  Himself  revealeth  it,  so 
that  we,  receiving  in  mind  and  heart  His  divine  and  adorable 
mystery,  or  rather  the  knowledge  of  it,  and  being  careful  to 
fulfil  those  things  which  are  well-pleasing  to  Him,  shall  reign 
with  Him :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever, 
Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  623 


SERMON   CXXXIV. 

C. xx. 9-18. 
And  He  began  to  speak  unto  the  people  this  parable :  A  man  add.  m  5. 
planted  a  vineyard,  and  let  it  out   to  husbandmen,  and 
went  on  a  journey  for  a  long  time.     And  at  the  season  he 
sent  a  servant  unto  the  husbandmen,  that  they  might  give 
him  of  the  fruit  of  the  vineyard  :  but  the  husbandmen  beat 
him,  and  sent  him  away  empty.  And  again  he  sent  to  them  add.  airoh 
another  servant,  but  they  beat  him  also,  and  shamefully 
entreated  him,  and  sent  him  away  empty.     And  again  he 
sent  a  third :  and  they  wounded  him  also,  and  cast  him 
out.    And  the  lord  of  the  vineyard  said,  What  shall  I  do  ? 
I  will  send  my  beloved  son :  perhaps  they  will  reverence  *d*L  'W"T€S 
him.     But  when  the  husbandmen  saw  him,  they  reasoned  vp},s  a^- 
among  themselves,  saying,  TJiis  is  the  heir:  come,  let  twjjjjjl 
kill  him,  that  the  inheritance  may  be  ours.    And  they  cast  robs  GSr. 
him  out  of  the  vineyard,  and  killed  him.     What  therefore  °™;  ££€  ' 
shall  the  lord  of  the  vineyard  do  unto  them?     He  shall -Be- 
come and  destroy   those  husbandmen,  and  shall  give  the 
vineyard  unto  others.     And  when  they  heard  it,  they  said,  »i  5h  htoi- 
Heaven  forbid.  But  He  looked  upon  them,  and  said,   What 
is  this  then  that  is  written,  That  the  stone  which  the  build-  in  \Ldov  S. 
ers  rejected  has  become  the  head  of  the  comer  ?    Every  one 
that  fcdleth  upon  this  stone  shall  be   broken :    but  upon  &  irlirrw  S. 
whomsoever  it  shall  fall,  it  will  winnow  him. 

CHRIST  has  somewhere  said,  "  The  kingdom  of  heaven  is  Mat.  xiii. 
"  like  unto  a  treasure  hid  in  a  field."  And  there  is  nothing  44' 
more  certain  than  that  those  who  love  lucre,  and  seek  for 
treasures,  most  certainly  do  not  find  them  ready  for  them,  nor 
placed  above  ground,  but  hidden  rather  and  buried  out  of 
sight;  and  only  by  digging  laboriously  do  they  find  them,  and 
that  with  difficulty.  Come  therefore,  and  let  us  seek  after  the 
knowledge  of  the  lessons  of  the  Gospel  as  for  some  treasure ; 
let  us  search  deep  into  the  thoughts  therein  contained  :  for  so 
shall  we  find  what  we  seek  by  Christ  revealing  this  also  unto 
us :    "  for  in  Him  are  all  the  treasures  of  wisdom,  and  the  Col.  ii.  3. 


6*24  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  hidden  things  of  knowledge;"  and  He  is  the  Giver  of  wisdom 
and  understanding  to  the  whole  rational  creation. 

What  therefore  does  He  say  to  the  chiefs  of  the  Jews,  when 
setting  forth  unto  them  those  things  which  are  useful  for  sal- 
vation ?     "  A  man  planted  a  vineyard,  and  let  it  out  to  hus- 
"  bandmen,  and  went  on  a  journey  for  a  long  time."     Now  if 
any  one  will  examine  with  the  penetrating  eyes  of  the  mind 
the  purport  of  what  is  hero  said,  he  will  find  the  whole  history 
of  the  children  of  Israel  briefly  summed  up  in  these  words. 
For  who  the  man  is  who  planted  the  vineyard,  and  what,  in 
fact,  is  to  be  understood  by  the  vineyard  which  was  planted, 
the  Psalmist  makes  clear,  where  he  says  unto  Christ,  the  Sa- 
Ps.  Ixxx.  8.  viour  of  all,  respecting  the  Israelites  ;    "  Thou  broughtest  a 
"  vine  out  of  Egypt ;  Thou  removedst  the  nations,  and  plant- 
"  edst  it:  Thou  madest  a  way  before  it,  and  plantedst  its  roots, 
"  and  it  filled  the  land."     And  further,  the  blessed  prophet 
la.  v.  i.      Isaiah  also,  declaring   this    very  thing,  says,  "  My  beloved 
"  had  a  vineyard  on  a  hill,  in  a  fertile  place."    And  afterwards 
he  adds  thereto,  making  more  evident  the  force  of  what  had 
Is.  v.  7.      been  spoken  enigmatically,  "  For  the  vineyard  of  the  Lord  of 
"  hosts  is  the  man  of  Judah,  a  plant  new  and  beloved."     He 
therefore  Who  planted  the  vineyard  is  God  ;   Who  also  went 
abroad  for  a  long  time.     And  yet  God  fills  every  thing,  and  in 
no  way  whatsoever  is  absent  from  any  thing  that  exists ;  how 
therefore  did  the  Lord  of  the  vineyard  go  abroad  for  a  long 
time  ?     It  means,  that  after  He  had  been  seen  by  them  in  the 
shape  of  fire  at  His  descent  upon  Mount  Sinai  with  Moses,  who 
spake  unto  them  the  law  as  the  mediator,  He  did  not  again 
grant  them  His  presence  in  a  visible  manner,  but,  to  use  a 
metaphor  taken  from  human  affairs,  His  relation  unto  them 
was,  so  to  speak,  like  that  of  one  who  had  made  a  long  journey 
abroad. 

As  I  said,  then,  He  went  abroad :  but  plainly  He  had  care 
for  His  farm,  and  kept  it  in  His  mind.  For  He  sent  faithful 
servants  to  them  at  three  different  times  to  receive  produce,  or 
fruit,  from  the  tillers  of  the  vineyard.  For  there  was  no  period 
in  the  interval,  duting  which  there  were  not  sent  by  God  pro- 
phets and  righteous  men  to  admonish  Israel,  and  urge  it  to 
bring  forth  as  fruits  the  glories  of  a  life  in  accordance  with  the 
law.     But  they  were  wicked,  and  disobedient,  and  obdurate, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  625 

and  their  heart   was    hardened   against   admonition,  so  that 
they  would  in  no  way  listen  to  the  word  that  ^ould  have  pro- 
fited them.     For  even  the  prophet  Isaiah,  as  one  who  was,  so 
to  speak,  fainting  under  labours  and  fatigues  without  avail, 
says  :  "  Lord,  who  hath  believed  our  report?"     By  disregard-  in.  liii.  r. 
ing  therefore  those  who  had  been  sent  unto  them,  "  they  drove 
"  them  awav  empty,"  as  havinfj,  that  is,  nothing  good  to  sav 
of  them  unto  God  Who  sent  them.     For  the  prophet  Jeremiah 
also  blamed  the  Jewish  multitudes  with  their  rulers  because  of 
their  excessive  arrogance,  saying,  "  To  whom  shall  I  speak,  jer.  vi.  i 
"  and  testify,  and  he  will  hear  ?     Behold,  their  ears  are  un- 
"  circumcised,  and  they  cannot  hear  ;  behold  the  Word  of  the 
';  Lord  has  become  to  them  a  derision :  they  will  not  hear  it." 
And  in  another  place  He  thus  spake  of  Jerusalem  :    "  We  jer.  li.  9. 
"  healed  Babel,  and  she  was  not  healed :  let  us  leave  her,  and 
"  depart  every  one  to  his  land,  because  her  judgment  has 
"  reached  unto  the  heaven."  And  as  I  said  then,  he  calls  Jeru- 
salem Babel,  because  it  differed  not  from  Persia"1  in  its  dis- 
obedience and  apostasy,  and  because  it  would  not  submit  itself 
to  the  sacred  laws  :  or  even  perhaps  because  it  was  reckoned 
as  having  no  knowledge  of  God,  for  having  chosen  to  worship 
the  creature  instead  of  the  Creator,  and  the  works  of  its  own 
hands.     For  Israel  was  guilty  of  the  charge  both  of  apostasy 
and  of  idol-worship.    And  this  then  was  the  way  in  which  they 
shamefully  cast  out  those  who  were  sent  unto  them. 

But  the  lord  of  the  vineyard  considers  with  himself,  saying, 
"  What  shall  I  do?"  And  we  must  carefully  examine  in  what 
sense  he  says  this.  Does  then  the  householder  use  these  words 
because  he  had  no  more  servants  ?  Certainly  not :  for  there 
were  not  wanting  to  Him  other  ministers  of  His  holy  will.  But 
just  as  if  a  physician  were  to  say  of  a  sick  man,  What  shall  I 
do  ?  we  should  understand  him  to  mean,  that  every  resource 
of  medical  skill  had  been  tried,  but  without  avail :  so  we  affirm 
that  the  lord  also  of  the  vineyard,  having  practised  all  gentle- 
ness and  care  with  his  farm,  but  without  in  any  respect  bene- 

m  Regarding  Babylon  as  the  ca-  by  the  name  of  the  capital  of  Persia 
pital  of  Persia,  S.  Cyril  treats  the  because  it  resembled  that  famous 
terms  as  identical,  and  means  that  city  in  the  greatness  of  its  wicked- 
Jerusalem  was  called  by  the  prophet     ness. 

4L 


626  COMMENTARY  UPON 

fiting  it,  says,  What  shall  I  do  ?  And  what  is  the  result  ?  He 
advances  to  still  greater  purposes ;  for  "  I  will  send,  He  says, 
"  My  Son,  the  beloved  one.  Perhaps  they  will  reverence  Him." 
Observe  in  this,  that  after  the  servants  the  Son  is  sent,  as  One 
not  numbered  among  the  servants,  but  as  a  true  Son,  and 
therefore  the  Lord.  For  even  though  He  put  on  the  form  of  a 
servant  for  the  dispensation's  sake,  yet  even  so  He  was  God, 
and  very  Son  of  God  the  Father,  and  possessed  of  natural" 
dominion.  Did  they  then  honour  Him  Who  was  sent  as  Sou 
and  Lord,  and  as  One  Who  possesses  by  inheritance  whatso- 
ever belongs  to  God  the  Father  ?  By  no  means.  Fur  they 
slew  Him  outside  the  vineyard,  having  plotted  among  them- 
selves a  purpose  foolish  and  ignorant  and  full  of  all  wickedness. 
For  they  say,  "  Let  us  kill  Him,  that  the  inheritance  may  be 
"  ours/'  But  tell  me,  How  didst  thou  imagine  this  ?  For  art 
thou  also  son  of  God  the  Father  ?  Does  the  inheritance  de- 
scend bv  rio;ht  of  nature  to  thee  ?  If  thou  removest  the  heir 
out  of  the  way,  how  wilt  thou  become  lord  of  what  thou  covet- 
est  ?  But  further,  How  is  not  thy  supposition  ridiculous  ?  For 
the  Lord  indeed,  as  being  Son,  and  Heir  by  right  of  His  sub- 
stance of  the  authority  of  God  the  Father,  having  become 
man,  called  those  who  believed  in  Him  unto  communion  and 
participation  of  His  kingdom :  but  these  men  wanted  to  take 
possession  of  the  kingdom  solely  for  themselves,  without  admit- 
ting even  Him  to  any  participation  at  all  therein,  usurping  for 
themselves  alone  the  lordly  inheritance.  But  this  was  a  pur- 
pose   impossible,  and  full  of  ignorance  :    and    therefore   the 

P3.  ii.  4.  blessed  David  says  of  them  in  the  Psalms,  "  He  that  dwelleth 
"  in  the  heaven  shall  laugh  at  them,  and  the  Lord  shall  deride 
"  them." 

The  chiefs  therefore  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews  were  cast 
out  for  resisting  the  Lord's  will  by  rendering  the  vineyard 
which  had  been  entrusted  to  them  unfruitful.     For  God  has 

Jer.  xii.  10.  somewhere  said,  "  Many  shepherds  have  destroyed  My  vine- 
"  yard :  they  have  profaned  My  portion :  they  have  made  My 

n  That  is,  a  dominion  which  be-  peatedly  it  will  be  noticed  how  con- 
longs  to  Him  by  right  of  His  sub-  stantly  S.  Cyril  calls  Him  "  the  Son 
stance,  and  not  as  a  thing  given  or  "by  nature,"  in  opposition  to  adopt- 
imparted  to   Him.     Elsewhere   re-  ed  sons. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  627 

"  desirable  inheritance  into  a  pathless  wilderness :  it  has  be- 
"  come  a  desolation  of  destruction."  And  it  is  also  said  by  the 
voice  of  Isaiah,  "  But  the  Lord  will  immediately  arise  in  judg-  Is.  iii.  13. 
"  ment :  the  Lord  Himself  shall  come  for  judgment  with  the 
"  elders  and  princes  of  the  people.  But  ye,  why  have  ye  burnt 
"  My  vineyard?"  As  those  therefore  who  had  rendered  the 
land  sterile,  being  evil,  they  perished  evilly.  For  it  was  just, 
most  just,  that  as  being  slothful,  and  murderers  of  the  Lord, 
they  should  be  the  prey  of  extreme  miseries. 

"  And  the  farm  was  given  unto  other  husbandmen."     And 
who  are  they  1     I  answer,  the  company  of  the  holy  apostles, 
the  preachers  of  the  evangelic  commandments,  the  ministers 
of  the  new  covenant ;  who  were  the  teachers  of  a  spiritual  ser- 
vice, and  knew  how  to  instruct  men  correctly  and  blamelessly, 
and  to  lead  them  most  excellently  unto  every  thing  whatsoever 
that  is  well-pleasing  to  God.     And  this  thou  learnest  by  what 
God  says  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah  to  the  mother  of  the  Jews, 
that  is,  the  synagogue  :  "And  I  will  turn  My  hand  upon  thee,  Is.  i.  25. 
"  and  search  thee  to  purify  thee  :  and  those  who  obey  not  I 
"  will  destroy,  and  I  will  take  out  of  thee  all  wicked  doers, 
"  and   will  humble  all  that  boast :   and  I  will  establish   thy 
"judges  as  at  the  first,  and  thy  counsellors  as  in  the  begin- 
"  ning."     And  by  these,  as  I  said,  are  signified  the  preachers 
of  the  new  covenant,  unto  whom  God  somewhere  said  by  the 
voice  of  Isaiah  ;    "  But  ye  shall  be  called  the  priests  of  the  Is.  lxi.  6. 
"  Lord,  and  the  ministers  of  God.""     But  that  the  farm  was 
given  to  other  husbandmen,  and  not  solely  to  the  holy  apostles, 
but  to  those  also  who  come  after  them,  even  though  not  of 
Israelitish  blood,  the  God  of  all  plainly  reveals,  where  He  says 
by  the  voice  of  Isaiah  unto  the  church  of  the  Gentiles,  and  to 
the  remnant  of  Israel ;  "  And  aliens  in  race  shall  come  ;  they  Is.  lxi.  5. 
"  shall  feed  thy  flocks  :  and  aliens  in  tribe  shall  be  ploughmen 
"  and  vinedressers."     For  many  indeed  of  the  Gentiles  were 
called,  and  holy  men  of  their  number  became  teachers  and 
instructors ;  and  even  unto  this  day  men  of  Gentile  race  hold 
high  place  in  the  churches,  sowing  the  seeds  of  piety  unto 
Christ  in  the  hearts  of  believers,  and  rendering  the  nations 
entrusted  to  their  charge  like  beautiful  vineyards  in  the  sight 
of  God. 

4  L  2 


628  COMMENTARY  UPON 

What  therefore  did  the  scribes  and  pharisees  say  when  they 
heard  the  parable  ?  ''  Heaven  forbid/'  were  their  words.  And 
by  this  one  may  see,  that  having  understood  its  profounder 
signification,  they  put  away  from  them  the  impending  suffer- 
ing, and  were  afraid  of  the  coming  danger.  But  they  did  not 
escape,  because  they  could  not  be  restrained  from  disobedience, 
nor  would  they  submit  to  believe  in  Christ. 

"  But  He,  it  proceeds,  looked  upon  them,  and  said,  What  is 
"  this  then  that  is  written,  That  the  stone  which  the  builders 
"  rejected  has  become  the  head  of  the  corner  1  Every  one  that 
"  falleth  upon  this  stone  shall  be  broken  :  but  upon  whomsoever 
"  it  shall  fall,  it  will  winnow  him."  For  the  Saviour,  although 
He  was  a  chosen  stone,  was  rejected  by  those  whose  duty  it 
was  to  build  up  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews  in  every  thing 
that  was  edifying  :  and  yet  He  became  the  head  of  the 
corner.  Now  the  sacred  Scripture  compares  to  a  corner  the 
gathering  together,  or  joining  of  the  two  people,  Israel  I 
mean,  and  the  Gentiles,  in  sameness  of  sentiment  and  faith. 

Eph.  ii.  15.  "  For  the  Saviour  has  built  the  two  people  into  one  new  man, 
"  by  making  peace  and  reconciling  the  two  in  one  body  unto 
"  the  Father."  And  the  so  doing  resembles  a  corner,  which 
unites  two  walls,  and,  so  to  speak,  binds  them  together.  And 
this  very  corner,  or  gathering  together  of  the  two  people  into 
one  and  the  same,  the  blessed  David  wondered  at,  and  said  ; 

p3.  cxviii.    "  The    stone   which   the   builders    rejected   has   become   the 

*-•  "  head  of  the  corner.  This — that  is  the  corner — has  been  done 

u  of  the  Lord,  and  is  marvellous  in  our  eyes."  For  Christ,  as 
I  said,  has  girded  together  the  two  people  in  the  bonds  of  love, 
and  in  sameness  as  well  of  sentiment  as  of  faith. 

The  stone  therefore  is  the  safety  ofthe  corner  which  is 
formed  by  it :  but  breaking  and  destruction  to  those  who  have 
remained  apart  from  this  rational  and  spiritual  union.  "  For 
"  he  that  falleth,  He  says,  upon  this  stone  shall  be  broken  : 
"  but  upon  whomsoever  it  shall  fall  it  will  winnow  him." 
For  when  the  multitudes  of  the  Jews  stumbled  at  Christ,  and 
fell   against   Him,   they  were   broken :    for   they  would  not 

la.  viii.  1  j.  hearken  to  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  where  he  says,  "  Sanctify  the 
"  Lord  Himself,  and  He  shall  be  thy  fear  :  and  ye  shall  not 
u  strike  against  Him  as  upon  a  stone  of  stumbling,  nor  as  a 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE. 


629 


"  rock  of  falling."  Those  therefore  who  did  not  believe  were 
broken  :  but  Christ  hath  blessed  us  who  have  believed  in  Him  : 
by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be  praise  and 
dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever.    Amen0. 


0  The  Syriac  omits  several  short 
sentences  found  in  the  Catenae,  in- 
teresting chiefly  as  shewing  the  na- 
ture of  the  remarks  occasionally 
inserted  by  the  Catenists,  wherever 
they  imagined  that  explanation  was 
required.  Thus  after  the  sentence, 
"  He  Who  planted  the  vineyard  is 
"  God,"  the  Catena  adds  in  a  pa- 
renthesis, "  God  is  here  called  a 
"  man,  because  of  His  kindness  to 
"  men,  and  after  the  custom  of  pa- 
"  rabies."  And  immediately  after- 
wards, in  the  account  of  the  descent 
upon  Mount  Sinai,  it  adds,  that 
"  God  visibly  displayed  there  His 
"  ineffable  form."  Next  there  fol- 
lows a  passage  of  some  length, 
quoting  several  texts  to  prove  that 
both  our  Lord  and  the  prophets 
foretold  the  guilt  of  the  Jews.  The 
next  passage  however,  of  four  lines 


at  the  commencement  of  the  Com- 
mentary on  v.  17,  is  from  Theophy- 
lact,  p.  497,  and  finally,  the  con- 
cluding portion   of  this    extract   I 
have  been  unable  to  trace.     It  be- 
gins   as    follows ;    "  Christ    was   a 
'  stone  of  offence  to  the  unbelieving 
'  heathen,  and  a  rock  of  scandal  to 
*  the  Jews,  but  to  us  who  believe 
'  a  foundation  stone,  binding  toge- 
'  ther  the  whole  basement  of  the 
'  church.     And  the  word  rock  im- 
'  plies  the  firmness   and  infallibi- 
'  lity  of  the  confession  of  our  faith, 
'  against  which  the  triple  waves  of 
'  heresies  beat,  and  are  dissolved 
'  into    foam."       Subsequently    it 
proceeds  to  harmonize  the  different 
statements  made  by  the  two  evan- 
gelists, Matthew  and  Luke,  in  their 
account  of  the  latter  portion  of  this 
parable. 


CrtO 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


0.  xx.  19- 
26. 


add.auT<£S. 

avrov  \6yav 
B. 

\6you  GTv. 
eV  \6y.  S. 
wsre  EST. 
els  rb  Gs. 
rjfuv  GSr. 
^m°j  BT. 

add.  ti  /x# 
ireipd^eTt  ; 
Gj. 

om.  01  5e 
e5ei|av   Kal 
fine  BGTy. 
ol  5«  (lirav 

BS. 

airoKpidiv- 
GTj. 

TOU  (5l7jUaTOJ 

BS. 
Tot  GTr. 


SERMON   CXXXV. 

.4ncZ  £/«?  chief  priests  and  scribes  sought  that  same  hour  to 
lay  hands  upon  Him ;  and  they  feared  the  people  :  for  they 
knew  that  He  had  spoken  this  parable  concerning  them. 
And  having  watched  for  an  opportunity,  they  sent  unto 
Him  spies  P,  making  pretence  of  being  just  men,  to  find  oc- 
casion against  Him  in  His  speech,  that  they  might  deliver 
Him  unto  the  ride  and  authority  of  the  governor.  And 
they  asked  Him,  saying.  Teacher,  we  knou<  that  Thou 
spedkest  and  teachest  rightly,  neither  accepAest  persons,  but 
teachest  the  way  of  God  in  truth.  Is  it  lawful  for  us  to 
give  tribute  to  Ccesar,  or  not  ?  But  He  perceived  their 
wickedness,  and  said,  unto  them,  Shew  me  a  denarius. 
And  they  shelved  one  unto  Him.  And  He  said,  Whose  is 
the  image  upon  it  and  superscription?  And  they  said, 
Casar's.  And  He  said  unto  them,  Give  therefore  unto 
Caisar  the  things  which  are  Ccesar  3,  and  unto  God  the 
things  which  are  God's.  And  they  could  not  blame  the 
word  before  the  people;  and  they  wondered  at  His  anszver, 
and  were  silent. 


AGAIN  is  the  sans  of  the  Pharisees  inflamed  with  unbridled 
rage:  they  draw  the  bow  of  their  envy;  they  gnash  their 
teeth  at  Him  Who  calleth  them  unto  life ;  they  savagely  at- 
tack Him  Who  seeketh  to  save,  and  Who  humbled  Himself 
from  His  supreme  and  godlike  glory  unto  our  estate  ;  and 
they  plot  His  death  Who  became  man  that  He  might  abolish 
death.  And  the  sole  cause  which  hindered  their  shameless 
audacity,  the  wise  Evangelist  shews  us  by  saying,  that  "  they 
"  feared  the  people."  He  understood  therefore  that  they 
were  restrained  by  no  feeling  whatsoever  of  piety  towards 
God ;  the  commandment  given  by  Moses,  which  plainly  Says, 
Ex.xxiii.7.  "  Thou  shalt  not  kill  the  holy  and  the  just,"  put  no  bridle 

P  The   Greek  iyicadtTovs  means,      to  feel, — palpare, — "  persons  to  feel 
persons  suborned;"  buttheSyriac      "  and  find  Him  out." 

1 :..    u_    J      _  C ._ 


renders  it  by  j_» 


iN.    from  e*-^ 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  631 

upon  their  violence :  but  they  had  regard  to  the  fear  of  man 
far  more  than  to  the  reverence  due  unto  God. 

But  what  was  the  cause  of  their  giving  way  to  such  harsh 
and  unmitigated  fury  ?  "  They  knew,  it  says,  that  He  had 
"  spoken  $his  parable  concerning  them/'  And  what  parable  ? 
Plainly" that  bv  which  He  had  shown  that  as  beino;  wicked  and 
faithless  husbandmen,  they  had  mocked  and  slain  the  holy 
prophets,  who  had  been  sent  unto  them  by  God,  to  stir  them 
up  to  honour  Him,  by  bringing  forth  abundant  spiritual  fruits : 
and  had  similarly  treated  even  the  Son  Himself,  the  Lord  of 
the  vineyard.  For  they  slew  Him  also,  saying,  "  This  is  the 
heir :  come,  let  us  kill  Him,  that  the  inheritance  may  be  ours." 
But  they  missed  their  mark,  and  provoked  God  to  anger,  or 
rather  resisted  the  decrees  from  above,  and  whetted  against 
themselves  the  divine  wrath.  For  "  being  evil,  they  perished 
"  evilly ;"  and  were  rejected  from  being  husbandmen,  and  the 
Lord  of  the  farm  gave  the  vineyard  unto  others.  This  then 
was  the  reason  for  which  they  murmured  against  Christ :  and 
yet,  how  was  it  not  rather  their  duty,  having  been  taughi 
what  was  about  to  happen,  to  escape  from  the  danger,  and 
leap  over  its  toils  ?  And  the  way  so  to  do  was  straightforward 
and  easy.  Let  them  accept  Him  Who  calleth  them  unto 
salvation :  let  them  honour  by  faith  Him  Who  justifieth  the 
wicked ;  Who  absolveth  from  all  guilt ;  and  by  His  grace,  that 
remembereth  not  evil,  saveth  those  who  are  entangled  in  sins. 

But  these  bold  and  obdurate  men,  being  ready  for  evil  only, 
entertain  no  such  purpose  as  this,  but  with  their  mind  full 
of  the  craftiness  of  the  devil,  betake  themselves  to  wicked  de- 
vices. They  lay  snares  for  Christ,  and  contrive  a  trap  for  an 
accusation  against  Him,  and  gather  pretexts  for  falsely  accus- 
ing Him.  Already  are  they  meditating,  and  plotting  in  their 
bitterness,  the  lying  words  they  uttered  against  Him  before 
Pilate.  They  suborned  men  therefore  who  falsely  assumed  to 
themselves  the  reputation  of  goodness,  like  a  borrowed  mask; 
while  really  they  were  wicked  in  their  characters,  and  their 
heart  full  of  gall  and  error  and  all  false  speaking.  They 
made  pretence  then  of  being  kind  and  just :  they  imagined 
that  they  could  deceive  Him  Who  knoweth  secrets, , when 
having  one  purpose  in  mind  and  heart,  they  utter  words  alto- 
gether unlike  their  wicked  knaveries.     For  they  perchance 


632  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Job  xlii.  3.  forgot  God,  Who  says,  "  Who  is  this  that  hideth  from  Me  his 
"  purpose?  and  shutteth  up  his  words  in  his  heart,  and  think- 
"  eth  that  from  Me  he  hideth  them  I"    For,  as  Solomon  says, 

Prov.  xv.  "  Hell  and  destruction  are  open  unto  the  Lord  :  how  therefore 
"  must  not  also  the  minds  of  men?"  But  thou  drewest  near 
unto  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all  as  unto  a  mere  man,  and  there- 
fore thou  thoughtest  that  thou  couldst  deceive  Him.  This 
was  the  cause  of  thy  ignorant  behaviour  :  but  it  had  been 
better  to  have  reflected,  that  the  Word  being  God  was  made 
in  fashion  like  unto  us ;  but  was  nevertheless  proved  by  divine 
and  ineffable  miracles,  and  by  His  godlike  glory,  not  to  be  a 
mere  man  only,  such  as  thou  art,  but  to  be  God,  as  the  splen- 
dour of  His  deeds  proclaimed.  He  was  in  appearance  a  man 
like  unto  us,  but  He  gave  sight  to  the  blind-,  He  raised  the 
dead  from  their  graves ;  He  commanded  those  who  already 
had  seen  corruption  to  hasten  back  to  life ;  He  rebuked  the 
seas,  and  appeared  unto  the  disciples,  walking  upon  the  waves, 
as  they  were  sailing  once  upon  the  sea  of  Tiberias.  It  was  in 
their  power  therefore  to  have  seen  from  actual  facts  that  He 
was  not  a  man  only,  but  rather  God  also  as  well  as  man. 

But  this  they  would  not  even  admit  into  their  minds  :  how 
could  they  ?  but  drew  near,  tempting  Him  ;  and  hiding  from 
Him  their  fraudulent  purpose,  they  address  Him  with  gentle 
words,  being  like  savage  beasts  wrapt  in  lambs'  clothing.  Such 
were  they  whom  the   prophet  David  also  rebuked,  saying, 

Ps.  lv.  21.  «  Their  words  are  smoother  than  oil  :  and  yet  are  they  the 

Jer.  ix.  8.  "  points  of  spears."  And  again,  "  Their  tongue  pierceth  like 
"  the  point  of  a  spear:  the  words  of  their  mouth  are  deceitful : 
t(  he  speaketh  peaceably  to  his  neighbour:  and  there  is  enmity 
"  in  his  soul."  But  what  do  they  say  ?  "  Teacher,  we  know 
"  that  Thou  speakest  and  teachest  rightly,  nor  dost  Thou  ac- 
"  cept  persons,  but  teachest  the  way  of  God  in  truth  :  Is  it 
"lawful  for  us  to  give  tribute  unto  Cassar,  or  not?"  0 
what  polluted  knavery  !  For  the  God  of  all  willed  indeed  for 
Israel  to  be  exempt  from  human  dominion :  but  because  they 
trampled  under  foot  the  divine  laws,  and  despising  utterly  the 
commandment  given  unto  them,  betook  themselves  to  their 
own  devices,  thev  had  fallen  under  the  hand  of  those  who  at 
that  time  held  dominion  over  them  :  who  also  imposed  upon 
them  tribute,  and  tax,  and  the  yoke  of  an  unwonted  slavery. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  633 

For  the  prophet  Jeremiah  also  lamented  over  Jerusalem  as 
though  she  had  already  suffered  this  fate,  saying,  "  How  hath  Lam.  i.  r. 
"  the  populous  city  sat  solitary !    She  that  was  chief  of  the 
"  countries  hath  become  tributary  !"" 

Their  object  therefore,  it  says,  was  to  deliver  "  Him  unto 
"  the  authority  of  the  governor :"  for  they  expected  that  cer- 
tainly and  without  doubt  they  would  hear  Him  say,  that  it 
was  not  lawful  to  give  tribute  unto  Caesar.  How  therefore 
did  Christ  overcome  their  craftiness  ?  "  Shew  Me,  He  says, 
"  a  denarius."  And  when  it  was  shewn  Him,  again  He  asks, 
"  Whose  is  the  image  upon  it  and  superscription  ?  And  they 
"  said,  Caesar's."  And  what  does  Christ  reply  thereto  ?  "  Give 
"  unto  Csesar  the  things  which  are  Caesar's,  and  unto  God  the 
"  things  which  are  God's."  For  those  whose  office  it  is  to  go- 
vern impose  a  tribute  of  money  upon  their  subjects  :  but  God 
requires  of  us  of  things  corruptible  and  transitory  even  nothing, 
but  rather  willing  obedience  and  submission ;  faith  and  love ; 
and  the  sweet"  savour  of  good  works.  These  things  the  Israel- 
ites ought  to  have  offered  unto  God  :  but  they  were  careless 
and  contemptuous,  and  too  ready  to  betake  themselves  to  every 
thing  that  was  base. 

"They  wondered  therefore  at  His  answer,"  and  that '"before  all 
"the  people,"  that  is,  before  many  witnesses.  And  yet,  as  though 
they  had  forgotten  these  things,  when  they  led  Jesus  unto 
Pilate,  they  brought  this  very  accusation  against  Him  :  for 
they  said, '"  We  found  this  man  perverting  the  people,  and  Luke  xxiii. 
«  forbidding  to  give  tribute  unto  Caesar."  Thou  wonderedst 
at  His  answer ;  thou  wast  unable  to  deceive  Him ;  thou  went- 
est  awav  ashamed :  and  how  then  madest  thou  thy  own  wick- 
edness the  point  of  an  accusation  against  Him  ?  What  there- 
fore does  the  Saviour  say  of  them  by  the  voice  of  the  Psalmist? 
«  That  without  cause  have  they  hid  for  Me  the  destruction  of  Ps.xsxv.7. 
«  their  snare :  Without  reason  have  they  reproached  My  soul. 
«  Let  a  snare  come  upon  them  which  they  know  not :  and  let 
««  the  net  which  they  hid  for  Me  catch  themselves,  and  let 
«  them  fall  into  their  own  snare."  For  so  verily  they  did  fall; 
for  because  they  delivered  Jesus  unto  Pilate,  they  were  them- 
selves given  over  to  destruction,  and  the  Roman  host  consumed 
them  with  fire  and  sword,  and  burnt  up  all  their  land,  and  even 
the  glorious  temple  that  was  among  them. 

4M 


634  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Such  were  the  wages  of  their  wicked  behaviour  against 
Christ :  but  let  us,  carefully  avoiding  these  sins,  and  honour- 
ing by  faith  the  Word  of  God,  Who  for  our  sakes  and  in  our 
stead  became  man,  be  diligent  in  crowning  Him  with  unceas- 
ing praises :  bv  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever. 
Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  635 


SERMON    CXXXVI.  c  xx  ,._ 

38. 
And  certain  Sadducees  drew  near,  who  say  there  is  no  re-  \4yorr*s 

surrection ;  and  they  asked  Him,  saying,  Teacher,  Moses  Kiy  &Ty< 

wrote  unto  us,  that  if  any  man's  brother  die  having  a  wife,  add.  8t«  S. 

and  he  die  without  children,  that  his  brother  shall  take  his  ^°^^ 

_  ,  j  •        7  7  mi.  GrSTs.  r\  B. 

wife,  and   raise   up  seed   unto  his  brother.     Ihere  were 
therefore  seven  brethren,  and  the  first  took  a  wife,  and  died 
without  children.     And   the  seconds  and  the  third  took  n*l  6  Sevrs- 
her ;  and  in  like  manner  also  the  seven :  and  they  died,  £°;T*°  *Aa. 
anal  left  no  children.     And  afterwards  the  woman  died  ^"(-^j^ 
also.     Therefore  at  the  resurrection  whose  wife  of  them  Kai  ^9. 
will  she  be  ?  for  the  seven  had  her  to  wife.    And  Jesus  said  JJ^JJJJ^ 
unto  them,  The  children  of  this  world  marry,  and  are  mar-  zM.-xivruv 
ried:  but  they  who  have  been  accounted  worthy  to  attain  ad^  i7ro_ 
unto  that  world,  and  the  resurrection  from  the  dead,  neither  KpiBttt  Gs. 
marry  nor  are  married;   for  neither  can  they  die  any 
more ;  for  they  are  equal  with  the  angels,  and  are  the 
children  of  God,  in  that  they  are  the  children  of  the  re-  rod  q«>0 
surrection.    But  that  the  dead  rise,  even  Moses  indicated  BT\ 
at  the  bush,  saying,  The  Lord  the  God  of  Abraham,  and 
the  God  of  Isaac,  and  the  God  of  Jacob :  but  God  is  notj****** 

t  TT.  l<r.  koX  rbv 

of  the  dead,  but  of  the  living  :  for  all  live  unto  Him.  @ioy  'i^. 

Gr.  om.  rbv 

IGNORANCE  is  constantly,  so  to  speak,  accompanied  by 
rashness,  and  leads  men  on  to  attach  great  importance  to  their 
wretched  fancies ;  and  thus  those  who  are  the  victims  of  this 
malady  entertain  a  great  idea  of  themselves,  and  imagine 
themselves  possessed  of  such  knowledge  as  no  man  can  gain- 
sav.  For  they  forget,  as  it  seems,  Solomon,  who  says,  "  Be  Prov.  iii.  7. 
"  not  wise  in  thine  own  eyes,"  that  is,  accordiug  to  thine  own 
sino-le  judgment :  and  again,  that  "  wisdom  not  put  to  the  proof 
"  croeth  astray."  For  we  do  not  necessarily  possess  true 
opinions  upon  every  individual  doctrine  that  we  hold,  but  often 

1  The  reading  of  Gs.  is  <al  (\a@ev      p-ovcriv  ovre  yaixicrKovrai  (Gs.  iicyafj..) 
6   SfCrepot  tt]v  yvvaiica,'  ko.\   ovto:     the  Syriac  uses  the  masc.  and  fem. 
arrtdavev  aracvos'   <a\  6  rpiros  TKa-      pi.  of  the  participle. 
fiev  avrqv.  Subsequently  for  ovrf  ya- 

4  M  3 


636  COMMENTARY  UPON 

perhaps  abandoning  the  right  path,  we  err,  and  fall  into  that 
•which  is  not  fitting.     But  I  think  it  right,  that  exercising  an 
impartial  and  unprejudiced  judgment,  and  not  rendered  rash 
by  passion,  we  should  love  the  truth,  and  eagerly  pursue  it. 
But  the  foolish  Sadducees  had  no  great  regard  for  such 

atptiris-  considerations.  They  were  a  sect  of  the  Jews,  and  what  was 
the  nature  of  the  opinion  which  they  entertained  concerning 
the  resurrection  of  the  dead,  Luke  has  explained  to  us  in  the 

Acts  xxiii.  A.cts  of  the  Apostles,  thus  writing,  ;'  For  the  Sadducees  say 
"  that  there  is  no  resurrection,  neither  angel,  nor  spirit :  but 
"  the  Pharisees  confess  all."  They  draw  near  therefore  to 
Christ  our  common  Saviour,  Who  is  the  Life  and  Resurrec- 
tion, and  endeavour  to  disprove  the  resurrection  :  and  being 
men  contemptuous  and  unbelieving,  they  invent  a  story  replete 
with  ignorance,  and  by  a  string  of  frigid  suppositions  wickedly 
endeavour  violently  to  shake  into  nothingness  the  hope  of  the 
whole  world.  For  we  affirm,  that  the  hope  of  the  whole  world 
is  the  resurrection  from  the  dead,  of  whom  Christ  was  the 
first-born  and  first-fruits :    and  therefore  the  wise  Paul  also, 

i  Cor.  xv.  making  our  resurrection  to  depend  upon  His,  says,  "If  the  dead 
"  rise  not,  neither  did  Christ  rise :"  and  again  adds  thereto, 

i  Cor-  xv.  as  if  urging  the  converse  thought  to  its  conclusion,  "  But  if 
"  Christ  rose  from  the  dead,  how  say  some  among  you  that 
"  there  is  no  resurrection  from  the  dead?"  And  those  who 
said  this  were  the  Sadducees,  of  whom  we  are  now  speaking. 

But  let  us  examine,  if  you  will,  this  senseless  fiction  of  their 
framing.  They  say  then  that  there  were  seven  brethren,  who 
successively  became  the  husbands  of  one  wife,  according  to 
the  requirements  of  the  law  of  Moses ;  and  she  died  without 
children :  at  the  resurrection  therefore  whose  wife  will  she 
be?  The  enquiry  however  was  but  a  senseless  one,  nor  did 
the  question  at  all  accord  with  the  inspired  Scriptures :  and 
the  answer  of  our  Saviour  amply  suffices  to  prove  the  folly  of 
their  narrative,  and  make  us  reject  both  their  fiction,  and  the 
idea  upon  which  it  was  founded. 

Still  I  think  it  right  to  convict  them  plainly  of  foolishly  re- 
sisting the  inspired  Scriptures,  and  to  shew  that  they  com- 
pletely mistook  the  sense  of  what  the  sacred  writings  teach. 
For  come  and  let  us  see  what  the  company  of  the  holy  pro- 
phets has  spoken  to  us  upon  this  point,  and  what  are  the  de- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  637 

clarations  which  the  Lord  of  hosts  has  made  by  their  means. 
He  said  therefore  of  those  that  sleep,  <;  I  will  deliver  them  Ho.s.  xiii. 
"  from  the  hand  of  the  grave;  I  will  redeem  them  from  deatli :  l4' 
"  Where  is  thy  condemnation,  0  death  ?  0  grave,  where  is  thy 
"  sting  ?"     Now  what  is  meant  by  the  condemnation  of  death, 
and  by  its  sting  also,  the  blessed  Paid  has  taught  us,  saying, 
"  But  the  sting  of  death  is  sin :  and  the  strength  of  sin  is  the  «  Cor.  xv. 
"law."     For  he  compares  deatli  to  a  scorpion,  the  sting  of? 
which  is  sin  :  for  by  its  poison  it  slays  the  soul.     And  the  law, 
he  says,  was  the  strength  of  sin  :  for  so  he  himself  again  else- 
where protests,  saying,  "I  had   not  known  sin   but  by  the  Rom. vii. -,. 
"  law:"  "for  where  there  is  no  law,  there  is  no  transgression  Rom.iv.15. 
"  of  the  law."     For  this  reason  Christ  has  removed  those  who 
believe   in  Him   from    the  jurisdiction    of  the  law  that  con- 
demneth :  and  has  also  abolished  the  sting  of  deatli,  even  sin: 
and  sin  being  taken  away,  death,  as  a  necessary  consequence, 
departed  with  it ;  for  it  was  from  it,  and  because  of  it,  that 
death  came  into  the  world. 

As  God  therefore  gives  the  promise,  "  I  will  deliver  them 
"  from  the  hand  of  the  grave,  and  from  death  I  will  redeem 
"  them  ;"  so  the  blessed  prophets  also  accord  with  the  decrees 
from  on  high:  for  they  speak  unto  us,  "not  of  their  own  heart,  Jer.  xxiii. 
"  nor  of  the  will  of  man,  but  from  the  mouth  of  God,"  as  it  is    -k  .  . 

'2  Pet.  i.2 1. 

written;  inasmuch  as  it  is  the  Holy  Ghost  which  speaking  with- 
in them  declares  upon  every  matter,  what  is  the  sentence  of  God, 
and  His  almighty  and  unalterable  will.  The  prophet  Isaiah 
therefore  has  said  unto  us,  "Thy  dead  men  shall  arise:  and  Is.xxvi  i<). 
"  those  in  the  graves  shall  be  raised ;  and  they  who  are  in 
"  the  earth  shall  rejoice  :  for  the  dew  from  Thee  is  healing 
"  unto  them."  And  by  the  dew  I  imagine  he  means  the  life- 
giving  power  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  that  influence  which  abo- 
lishes death,  as  being  that  of  God  and  of  life. 

And  the  blessed  David  also  somewhere  in  the  Psalms  says 
of  all  those  upon  earth,  "  Thou  takest  away  their  spirit,  and  Ps.  civ.  29. 
"  they  die,  and  return  to  their  dust :  Thou  sendest  Thy  Spirit, 
"  and  they  are  created,  and  Thou  renewest  the  face  of  the 
"  earth."  Hearest  thou  that  the  working  and  life-giving 
grace  of  the  Holy  Ghost  will  renew  the  face  of  the  earth  ? 
And  by  its  face  is  meant  its  beauty ;  and  the  beauty  of  human 

nature  is  justly  understood  to  be  incorruption.     "  For  it  is  r  Cor.  xv. 

+1. 


638  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  sown,  it  says,  in  corruption,  it  is  raised  in  incorruption ; 
"  it  is  sown  in  weakness,  it  is  raised  in  power  ;  it  is  sown  in 
"  dishonour,  it  is  raised  in  glory."  For  the  prophet  Isaiah 
again  assures  us  that  death  which  entered  in  because  of  sin 
does  not  retain  its  power  over  the  dwellers  upon  earth  forever, 
but  is  abolished  by  the  resurrection  from  the  dead  of  Christ, 

Wisd.  i.  14.  Who  renews  the  universe,  and  refashions  it  unto  that  which 
it  was  at  the  beginning — "  for  God  created  all  things  for  incor- 

Is.  xxv.  8.  <<  ruption,"  as  it  is  written;  for  he  says,  "He  hath  swallowed 
"  up  death,  having  waxed  mighty :  and  God  shall  again  take 
"  away  all  weeping  from  every  countenance  ;  He  shall  remove 
"  the  reproach  of  the  people  from  the  whole  earth."  Now 
sin  is  what  he  calls  the  reproach  of  the  people,  and  when  this 
has  been  taken  away,  death  also  is  extinguished  with  it,  and 
corruption  departs  from  the  midst :  and  by  having  brought 
it  to  an  end,  He  removes  every  one's  weeping  ;  and  lamenta- 
tion also  is  put  to  silence  ;  for  henceforth  there  is  no  more 
cause  for  men  to  weep  and  lament. 

And  thus  much  for  our  own  argument  in  refutation  of  the 
infidelity  of  the  Jews :  but  let  us  see  also  what  Christ  said 
unto  them :  "  The  children  indeed  of  this  world,"  He  says, 
those,  that  is,  who  lead  worldly  carnal  lives,  full  of  fleshly 
lustr,  for  the  procreation  of  children  "marry  and  are  married:" 
but  those  who  have  maintained  an  honourable  and  elect  life,  full 
of  all  excellence,  and  have  therefore  been  accounted  worthy  of 
attaining  to  a  glorious  and  marvellous  resurrection,  will  be  ne- 
cessarily  raised  far  above  the  life  which  men  lead  in  this  world ; 
for  they  will  live  as  becometh  saints,  who  already  have  been 
brought  near  unto  God.  "  For  they  are  equal  with  the  angels, 
"  and  are  the  children  of  God."  As  therefore  all  fleshly  lust 
is  taken  away,  and  no  place  whatsoever  is  left  in  them  for 
bodily  pleasure,  they  resemble  the  holy  angels,  fulfilling  a 
spiritual  and  not  a  material  service,  such  as  becometh  holy 
spirits ;  and  are  at  the  same  time  counted  worthy  of  a  glory 
such  as  that  which  the  angels  enjoy s. 

r  Cramer  reads,  o2  tov  Koa-fii.<6v  s  Mai  adds  here  a  rather  remark- 

Kai  «Wa>/xaroi>   ku\  0iXo(ro0i'ar  y«-  able  passage,  either  from  A.  or  C. 

ixoura  Bia(<ovTti  fiiov.  As  (piXoaocpia  "  And  just  as  the  angelic  multitude 

means  continence,  such  a  life  could  "  is  vast,  but  does  not  increase  by 

neither  be  worldly  nor  carnal :  the  "  generation,  but  remains  as  it  was 

reading  ought  to  be  (pikocrapiclas.  "  created,  so  also  is  it  with  the  risen 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  639 

But  the  Saviour  also  demonstrated  the  great  ignorance  of 
the  Sadducees,  by  bringing  forward  their  own  hierophant 
Moses,  as  well  and  clearly  acquainted  with  the  resurrection  of 
the  dead.  For  he  has  set  before  us  God,  He  says,  as  saying 
in  the  bush,  "  I  am  the  God  of  Abraham,  and  the  God  of 
"  Isaac,  and  the  God  of  Jacob."  But  of  whom  is  He  God,  if, 
according  to  their  argument,  these  have  ceased  to  live  ?  for  He 
is  the  God  of  the  living :  and  therefore  certainly  and  altoo-e- 
ther  they  will  rise,  when  His  almighty  right  hand  brings  them 
thereunto ;  and  not  them  only,  but  also  all  who  are  upon  the 
earth. 

And  for  men  not  to  believe  that  this  will  happen,  is  worthy 
perhaps  of  the  ignorance  of  the  Sadducees;    but  altogether 
unworthy  of  those  who  love  Christ.     For  we  believe  in  Him 
who  says,  "I  am  the  Resurrection  and  the  Life."     For  He  Johnxi.:5. 
will  raise  the  dead,  "  suddenly,  in  the  twinkling  of  an  eye,  i  Cor.  xv. 
11  at  the  last  trump.     For  it  shall  resound,  and  the  dead  in  52' 
"  Christ  shall  rise  incorruptible,  and  we  shall  be  chano-ed." 
For  Christ,  our  common  Saviour,  shall  transfer  us  unto  incor- 
ruption,  and  to  glory,  and  to  a  life  incorruptible :  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  dominion, 
with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen. 

"  saints.     Nor  is  there  any  longer  "  the  mind  (vavs),  which  now  urges 

"  need  of  marriage :  for  here  indeed  "  us  into  vice,  will  not  then  even 

"  after  Adam  lost  through  sin  the  "  exist,  the  Creator  maintaining  us 

"  grace  of  immortality,  the  succes-  "  in   conformity  to  His  own  will, 

"  sion  of  the  race  is  maintained  by  "  by  the    influence    of   the   Holy 

"  the  procreation  of  children ;  and  "  Ghost,  as  certainly  He  does  the 

"  God  provided  by  His  foreknow-  "  holy  angels  also."     The  passage 

"  ledge  this  resource  from  the  very  relating  to  the  annihilation  of  the 

"  beginning ;    for  when  He  made  vovs,  and  in  fact  the  whole  extract, 

"  man,  He  made  them   male  and  can  scarcely  be  S.  Cyril's :  possibly 

'•  female.      We   shall   be   therefore  much  belonging  to  Titus  Bostrensis 

"  superior  to  our  present  condition,  is    confused    with    what    really   is 

"  by  haying  put  off  corruption,  and  Cyril's,  as  so  frequently  the  latter 

"receiving   a  spiritual   body,  one,  portion  of  an  extract  differs  so  con- 

"  that   is,  which   has   regard  only  siderably  from  the  commencement. 
"  to  the  things  of  the  Spirit :  and 


G40 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


C.  xx.  41- 

47- 

aurbs  yap 
BS.  Ka'i  au- 
xin GTV 


Tots  ixolBt)- 
rals  avTov 
GSj. 

om.ouTotJB. 
trphs  auroiis 
T. 


SERMON    CXXXVIL 

And  He  said  unto  them,  How  say  they  of  Christ  that  He  is 
David's  Son  ?  For  David  himself  saith  in  the  book  of 
Psalms,  The  Lord  said  unto  my  Lord,  Sit  Thou  on  My 
right  hand  until  I  place  Thy  enemies  as  a  footstool  under 
Thy  feet.  David  therefore  calleth  Him  Lord;  and  how 
is  He  his  Son  ?  And  in  the  hearing  of  all  the  people,  He 
said  unto  His  disciples,  Beware  of  the  scribes,  who  desire 
to  walk  in  stoles,  and  love  greetings  in  the  marketplaces, 
and  the  foremost  seats  in  the  synagogues,  and  the  highest 
part  of  the  couches  at  feasts  :  who  devour  widows'  houses, 
and  in  pretence  prolong  their  prayers:  these  shall  receive 
more  abundant  condemnation. 


John  xvii 
3- 


THOSE  who  love  instruction  and  are  fond  of  hearing  receive 
with  joy  the  profitable  word  of  God,  and  store  it  up  in  the 
treasure-house  of  their  heart  as  the  seed  of  life.  And  what  is 
the  result  of  their  so  doing  ?  The  divine  light  rises  upon  them, 
and  they  gain  a  correct  and  unerring  knowledge  of  the  sacred 
doctrines.  And  this  quickens  them  unto  life,  as  the  Son  Him- 
self teaches  us,  where  He  says  unto  God  the  Father  in  heaven, 
"  And  this  is  life  eternal,  to  know  Thee  the  only  true  God,  and 
"  Jesus  Christ  Whom  Thou  hast  sent." 

See  therefore,  I  say,  see  Him  Who  is  the  Giver  unto  us  of 
all  wisdom  and  understanding,  even  Christ,  endeavouring  to 
implant  this  great  and  invaluable  blessing  in  those  first  of  all 
who  were  the  chiefs  of  the  Jews,  the  scribes,  I  mean,  and  Phari- 
sees. For  it  was  right,  as  they  were  the  pastors  and  teachers 
and  governors  of  the  people,  that  His  mystery  should  not  be 
hidden  from  them  :  even  that  which  the  law  of  Moses  had 
proclaimed  of  old,  delineating  it  by  type  and  shadow  in  mani- 
fold ways ;  and  which  the  great  and  glorious  company  also  of 
the  holy  prophets  had  preached.  For  it  is  for  this  reason 
Rom.  x.  4.  that  Christ  is  called  "the  accomplishment  of  the  law  and  the 
prophets." 

The  Saviour  therefore  asked  them,  saying,  "  How  say  they 
"  of  Christ  that  He  is  David's  Son  ?    For  David  himself  saith 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  641 

"  in  the  book  of  Psalms,  The  Lord  said  unto  my  Lord,  Sit 
"  Thou  on  My  right  hand,  until  I  place  Thy  enemies  as  a 
"  footstool    under   Thy    feet.     David    therefore   calieth    Him 
"  Lord:  and  how  is  He  his  son?"     The  beginning  of  under- 
standing is  faith :  "  for  if,  He  says,  ye  will  not  believe,  neither  Is.  v-ii.  9. 
"  can  ye  understand  :"  but  the  examination  also  of  important 
truths  tends  unto   salvation.      Confessedly  then   Emanuel   is 
both  the  Son  and  the  Lord  of  David :  but  if  any  one  would 
learn  in  what  manner  he  is  to  understand  this,  he  must  cer- 
tainly betake  himself  to  the  exact  and  blameless  examination 
of  His  mystery,  which  was  "  kept  in  silence  indeed  from  the  Rom.  xvi. 
"  foundation  of  the  world,  but  has  been  revealed  in  the  latter  2;' 
"  ages  of  the  world." 

The  Pharisees  however  gave  no  answer  to  Christ's  question : 
and  this  they  did  in  malice,  or  rather  against  their  own  selves, 
lest  being  pricked  by  the  enquiry,  the  word  of  salvation  should 
shine  forth  in  them.  For  they  did  not  wish  to  know  the  truth, 
but  sinfully  seizing  for  themselves  the  Lord's  inheritance,  they 
denied  the  heir,  or  rather  wickedly  slew  Him.  For  from  love 
of  rule,  and  greed  of  lucre,  and  for  their  base  gains,  they  re- 
jected the  faith.  For  once  indeed  they  even  stoned  Him  with 
stones,  and  when  asked  the  reason  of  their  violence,  they  fool- 
ishly said,  "For  a  good  work  we  stone  Thee  not,  but  for  John  x.  33. 
"  blasphemy :  because  that  Thou  being  a  man  makest  Thyself 
"  God."  And  on  another  occasion  they  called  Him  a  Sama- 
ritan, a  drunkard,  and  a  winebibber,  and  the  carpenter's  son, 
meaning  that  He  was  an  ignoble  person,  and  born  of  ignoble 
parents.  IN  or  verily  canst  thou  wonder  at  this,  when  they 
ventured  even  to  accuse  His  birth  in  the  flesh  of  the  holy 
virgin,  saying,  darkly  and  bitterly,  "  We  are  not  born  of  John  vtfi. 
"  harlotry  *."  4I" 

To  remove  therefore  from  them  the  habit  of  thinking  and 
speaking  of  Him  in  a  derogatory  and  contemptuous  manner, 

*  Whoever  would  learn  the  bias-  been  suppressed,  I  believe,  in  most 
phemies  of  the  later  Jews  against  or  all  editions  subsequent  to  that  of 
our  Lord,  may  consult  Buxtorf's  Venice  1523,  and  even  in  it  they 
Rab.  Lex.  under  ItQD,  and  the  Li-  are  in  most  cases  carefully  oblite- 
ber  Toldoth  Jesu,  at  the  end  of  the  rated  with  a  pen :  but  the  know- 
second  volume  of  Wagenseil's  Tela  ledge  of  them  is  retained  by  the 
Ignea  Satanae.  The  passages  quoted  Jews  among  their  arcana, 
from  the  Talmud  by  Buxtorf  have 

4* 


642  COMMENTARY  UPON 

He  asked  them,  saying,  "  How  say  they  that  Christ  is  David's 
"  Son?"  But  they,  as  I  have  already  remarked,  were  silent 
from  malicious  motives,  and  thereby  condemned  themselves  as 
unworthy  of  eternal  life,  and  of  the  knowledge  of  the  truth. 

And  we  too  will  put  to  the  Pharisees  u  of  later  days  a  similar 
question :  Let  them,  who  deny  that  He  "Who  was  born  of  the 
holy  virgin  is  very  Son  of  God  the  Father,  and  Himself  also 
God,  and  divide  the  one  Christ  into  two  sons ;  let  them,  I  say, 
explain  to  us,  in  what  manner  David's  son  is  his  Lord,  and 
that  not  so  much  with  regard  to  human  lordship  as  divine. 
For  to  sit  at  all  at  the  right  hand  of  the  Father  is  the  assur- 
ance and  pledge  of  supreme  glory.  For  those  who  share  the 
same  throne  are  equal  also  in  dignity :  and  those  who  are 
crowned  with  equal  honours  are  understood  of  course  to  be 
equal  in  nature.  But  to  sit  by  God  can  signify  nothing  else 
than  sovereign  authority,  and  the  throne  declares  to  us  that 
He  possesses  empire  over  every  thing,  and  supremacy  by  right 
of  His  substance.  How  therefore  is  the  Son  of  David  David's 
Lord,  and  seated  also  at  the  right  hand  of  God  the  Father, 
and  on  the  throne  of  Deity  ?  Or  is  it  not  altogether  according 
to  the  unerring  word  of  the  mystery,  that  the  Word  being 
God,  and  sprung  from  the  very  substance  of  God  the  Father, 
and  being  in  His  likeness  and  on  an  equality  with  Him,  be- 
came flesh,  that  is,  man,  perfectly,  and  yet  without  departing 
from  the  incomparable  excellence  of  the  divine  dignities,  con- 
tinuing rather  in  that  estate  in  which  He  had  ever  been,  and 

D  The  Nestorians,   as   explained  "  from  God  the  Father,  not  without 

in  the  margin.     I  have  before  how-  "  flesh ;"  and  concludes  with  these 

ever  shewn  that  Nestorius  denied  words,  "Thou  then  who  sayest  that 

that  he  held   the  doctrine  of  two  "  we   ought   not  to  speak  of  two 

sons  :    and  so  S.  Cyril  quotes  his  "  Christs,  nor  to  acknowledge  two 

words  in  lib.  ii.  c.  6.  adversus  Nest.  "  Sons,  putting  on  the  semblance 

(Aub.  vol.  vi.  44.)   "  For  we  hold  "  of  dogmatic  orthodoxy  upon  this 

"  not  two  Christs,  nor  two  Sons ;  "  point,  art  nevertheless  convicted 

"  for  in  our  view  there  is  no  first  "  of    saying    that    there    are    two 

"  and  second,  nor  one  and  another,  "  Christs,  and   of  separating   into 

"  nor  one  again  and  again  another :  "  their  specific  diflerence  man  and 

"  but  the  same  one  Son  is  twofold  "  God."     In  Cyril's  view  therefore 

"  (a\\'  airot  6  els  tori  8iir\ovs),  not  the  essence  of  Nestorianism  consists 

"  in  rank,  but  in  nature."    Against  in  the  endeavour  to  distinguish  the 

this   Cyril  argues,  that  "  Christ  is  limits  of  the  two  natures  in  Christ : 

"  not  twofold,  but  one  and  the  same  and  so  to  do,  he  argued,  was  virtu- 

"  Lord  and  Son,  being  the  Word  ally  to  make  two  Sons. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  643 

still  being  God,  though  He  had  become  flesh  and  in  form  like 
unto  us.  He  is  David's  Lord  therefore  according  to  that  which 
belongs  to  His  divine  glory  and  nature  and  sovereignty :  but 
his  son  according  to  the  flesh. 

It  was  the  duty  therefore,  the  duty,  I  say,  of  the  chiefs  of  the 
Jews,  as  they  prided  themselves  so  much  upon  their  know- 
ledge of  the  divine  laws,  not  to  let  .the  words  of  the  holy  pro- 
phets escape  their  notice.  For  the  blessed  Isaiah  says,  "  Be-  is.  vii.  i4. 
"  hold,  a  virgin  shall  conceive  and  bear  a  Son  :  and  they  shall 
"  call  His  name  Emmanuel,  which  being  interpreted  is,  God  Mat.  i.  23. 
"  with  us."  But  the  Word  was  with  us  as  God,  when  He 
took  our  likeness,  and  despised  not  the  low  estate  of  human 
kind,  in  order  that  He  might  save  all  beneath  the  heaven. 
And  it  is  written  again,  "  And  thou  Bethlehem,  the  house  of  Mic.  v.  1. 
"  Ephrata,  art  small  to  be  among  the  thousands  of  Judah: 
"  out  of  thee  shall  He  come  forth  for  Me  Who  shall  be  the 
"  Head  of  Israel."  For  Bethlehem  was  indeed  small,  and  in 
comparison  with  the  general  populousness  of  the  Jews,  its  in- 
habitants were  very  few ;  yet  from  it  came  forth  Christ,  as 
having  been  born  in  it  of  the  holy  virgin :  not  as  one  subject 
to  the  shadows  of  the  law,  but  rather  as  ruler  both  over  the 
law  and  the  prophets. 

We  therefore  follow  neither  the  ignorance  nor  the  newness 
of  the  foolish  talking  of  men,  lest  with  them  we  fall  into  a  re- 
probate mind  :  but  join  ourselves  rather  to  the  pure  teachings 
of  the  holy  apostles  and  evangelists,  who  every  where  shew 
that  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all  is  at  once  both  the  Son  and  the 
Lord  of  David,  in  the  manner  we  have  already  described. 

"  There  is  therefore  one  Lord,  one  faith,  one  baptism  :"  one  Eph.  iv.  5. 
Lord  has  purchased  us,  "  not  with  corruptible  things,  with  sil-  1  Pet.  i.  18. 
"  ver  or  with  gold,  but  with  His  own  blood  rather,"  as  it  is 
written,  in  order  that  we  may  serve  Him,  and  by  and  with 
Him  the  Father.    For  in  Him  and  by  Him  we  have  an  access 
(unto  the  Father). 

But,  as  I  said,  the  rulers  of  the  Jews  had  no  regard  what- 
soever for  the  truth  :  and  if  any  one  would  learn  the  reason  of 
their  obdurate  dislike  of  instruction,  he  shall  hear  it  from  me. 
It  was  their  determination  not  to  depart  from  their  inbred  love 
of  praise,  nor  to  abandon  their  accursed  lust  of  lucre.  For  the 
Saviour  Himself  once  rebuked  them,  saying;  "How  can  ye  John  v.  44. 

4  N  2 


644  COMMENTARY  UPON 

'•  believe,  who  receive  glory  one  of  another,  and  wish  not  for 
"  the  glory  that  cometh  from  the  one  God  ?"  For  it  was  their 
duty  to  desire  the  glory  which  cometh  from  God,  rather  than 
that  of  men,  which  is  but  for  a  time,  and  like  a  dream  vanish- 
eth  away. 

Usefully  therefore,  that  He  may  keep  the  company  of  the 
holy  disciples  free  from  faults  so  disgraceful,  He  testifies,  say- 
ing, "  Beware  of  the  Scribes  and  Pharisees \"  that  is,  expose 
not  yourselves  to  be  the  prey  of  their  vices,  nor  be  ye  par- 
takers of  their  disregard  of  God.  For  what  was  their  cus- 
tom ?  To  walk  in  the  streets  beautifully  attired,  dragging  with 
them  a  pompous  dignity,  to  catch  thereby  the  praises  of  those 
who  saw  them.  And  while  they  were  wicked,  and  their  heart 
full  of  all  improbity,  they  falsely  assumed  to  themselves  the  re- 
putation of  piety  :  and  with  a  gravity  of  manners  not  founded 
on  reality,  they  diligently  lengthened  out  their  speaking  in 
their  prayers,  supposing  perchance  that  unless  they  expended 
many  words,  God  would  not  know  what  their  requests  were. 
But  the  Saviour  of  all  did  not  permit  His  worshippers  to  act  so 
Mat.  vi.  7.  shamefully,  saying,  "When  ye  pray,  babble  not  as  the  heathen 
"  do :  for  they  think  that  they  shall  be  heard  for  their  much 
"  speaking  :"  but  He  commanded  them  to  be  humble,  and  not 
lovers  of  boasting,  nor  to  pay  any  regard  to  the  desire  of  vain 
glory,  but  rather  to  seek  the  honour  that  cometh  from  above, 
from  God.  In  such  He  deposits  the  knowledge  of  His  mystery : 
such  He  appoints  instructors  of  others,  as  possessing  an  exact 
and  blameless  knowledge  of  the  sacred  doctrines  :  such  He 
makes  to  know  how  David's  Son  is  also  David's  Lord  :  with 
whom  we  also  will  range  ourselves,  God  the  Father  illuminating 
us  with  divine  light  in  Christ :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to 
God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  64^ 


SERMON   CXXXVIII. 

And  as  He  looked  He  saw  the  rich  casting  their  gifts  into  the  C.  xxi.  1-4. 
treasury  :  and  He  saw  also  a  certain  poor  widow  who  cast  nva  B.  mi 
in  thither  two  farthings :  and  He  said,  Of  a  truth  I  say  ™*a  Kals^ 
unto  you,  that  this  poor  widow  hath  cast  in  more  than  they 
all.  For  they  all  of  their  superabundance  have  cast  in  unto 
the  offerings ;  but  she  of  her  want  hath  cast  in  all  the  sub-  add.  too 
stance  that  she  had. 

TO-DAY  opens  to  us  the  sight  of  a  spectacle  of  piety,  with  efarpo*. 
Christ  as  the  exhibitor  of  the  games,  Who  by  just  decree  dis- 
tributes the  honours  to  those  who  are  called  unto  the  course. 
And  the  men  whom  these  games  bring  forward  and  offer  to 
our  admiration,  are  neither  trillers  of  harps,  nor  skilful  wrest- 
lers, nor  again  such  as  are  accustomed  to  gain  glory  by  the 
tuneful  sounds  of  pipes ;  but  such  rather  as  the  Saviour  of  all 
deigns  to  regard  because  He  loves  virtue  :  and  of  these  the 
most  honoured  class,  preferred  before  all  others,  are  those  who 
are  kind  and  merciful,  and  of  whom  the  Saviour  Himself  bears 
witness,  saying,  "Blessed  are  the  merciful:1  for  upon  them  Mat.  v.  7. 
"  shall  be  shewn  mercy." 

These  Christ  watches  as  they  cast  their  offerings  into  the 
treasury :  for  so  we  have  heard  the  holy  evangelist  here  de- 
claring unto  us.  But  what  mouth  will  suffice  for  those  who 
would  praise  God  over  all !  "  The  praise  of  the  Lord,  as  Prov.xxv.2. 
"  Scripture  saith,  concealeth  the  word."  For  it  is  impossible 
worthily  to  praise  His  surpassing  gentleness,  and  the  great- 
ness of  His  incomparable  love  to  mankind.  He  counts  as  offer- 
ings, and  takes  unto  Himself,  what  we  do  for  the  brethren  who 
are  grieved  by  poverty.  For  He  has  said,  "  Verily  I  say  unto  Mat.  xxv. 
"  you,  that  whatsoever  ye  have  done  to  one  of  these  little  ones,  40, 

*  The  Greek  iXt^oves,  and  the  "  charitable,"  and  in  this  sense  the 

Syriac   ],w..y-.  were    both  con-  word  " merciful"  is  taken  by  S.  Cy- 

fined  in  ordinary  use  to  the  same  ril  throughout  this  homily, 
sense  which  we  attach  to  the  word 


646  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Ptov.  six.  «  ye  have  done  it  to  Me."  And  it  is  written,  that  "  he  that  is 
"  charitable  unto  the  poor  lendeth  unto  the  Lord."  At  this 
one  of  the  saints  very  beautifully  expressed  his  admiration, 
thus  saying  somewhere  unto  us,  or  rather  unto  all  the  sons  of 
Jobrxxv.7.  men;  "For  in  that  thou  art  righteous,  what  wilt  thou  give 
"  Him  ?  Or  what  will  He  receive  at  thy  hand  ?  Thy  wicked- 
"  ness  is  unto  the  man  that  is  thy  equal :  and  thy  righteous- 
"  ness  unto-  the  son  of  man."  Our  deeds  then  are  indeed  done, 
as  I  said,  unto  those  who  are  our  fellows  and  brethren,  but 
God  takes  it  unto  Himself,  because  He  is  loving  unto  man,  and 
counts  it  as  spiritual  fruitfulness,  in  order  that  He  may  have 
an  occasion  of  shewing  mercy  upon  those  who  habitually^ thus 
act,  and  may  free  them  from  all  sin.  For  it  is  written,  that 
James ii.  13.  "  mercy  glorieth  against  judgment.1' 

Let  us  then  watch,  if  you  please,  the  contest  of  the  merciful, 
and  see  what  is  its  nature,  and  to  whom  the  Saviour  chiefly 
assigns  His  praises  by  His  holy  and  godlike  decree.  Some  of 
the  rich  then  drew  near,  bringing  the  appointed  gifts,  and 
casting  their  offerings  into  the  treasury :  and  as  being  pos- 
sessed of  great  wealth,  and  ample  riches,  the  gifts  that  each 
one  offered  were,  as  is  likely,  in  themselves  large :  and  yet,  on 
the  other  hand,  small,  and  not  in  proportion  to  the  offerers'1 
means.  And  so  after  them  there  came  in  a  woman  oppressed 
by  hard  and  unendurable  poverty,  and  whose  whole  hope  of 
sustenance  lay  in  the  kindness  of  the  compassionate,  and  who 
by  scraps  scarcely  and  laboriously  gathered  a  scant  and  miser- 
able provision,  barely  sufficient  for  the  day.  And  finally,  she 
offered  two  farthings  :  for  it  was  not  possible  for  her  to  bestow 
more,  but  rather,  so  to  speak,  she  had  stripped  herself  of  all 
that  she  had,  and  was  leaving  the  sacred  courts  with  empty 
hands.  Wonderful  deed  !  She  who  constantly  asked  alms  of 
others,  lends  unto  God,  making  even  poverty  itself  fruitful  to 
His  honour.  She  therefore  vanquishes  the  rest,  and  by  a  just 
sentence  is  crowned  by  God. 

But  this  perchance  may  vex  some  among  the  rich :  and 
therefore  we  will  address  a  few  remarks  unto  them.  Thou 
delightest,  0  rich  man,  in  the  abundance  of  thy  possessions  : 
thy  portion  is  fertile  beyond  what  thy  necessities  require. 
Thou  reapest  fields  and  districts  :   thou  hast  numerous  and 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  647 

broad  vineyards,  and  orchards  laden  with  flavourless/  delica- 
cies :  winepresses,  and  granaries,  and  an  excessive  abundance 
of  cattle  :  a  house  beautifully  built  at  great  expense,  and  plen- 
tiful stores  therein  ;  garments  woven  in  divers  colours  :  and 
finally  thou  offerest,  not  so  much  in  proportion  to  thy  means, 
as  merelv  that  which  when  thou  givest,  thou  wilt  never  miss  : — 
out  of  great  abundance,  a  little.  The  woman  offered  two  far- 
things :  but  she  possessed  nothing  more  than  what  she  offered: 
she  had  nothing  left :  with  empty  hand,  but  a  hand  bountiful 
of  the  little  she  possessed,  she  went  away  from  the  treasury. 
Did  she  not  therefore  justly  carry  off  the  crown  ?  Did  not  the 
decree  of  superiority  befal  her  by  a  holy  judgment  ?  Did  she 
not  surpass  thy  bountifulness,  in  regard  at  least  of  her  readi- 
ness ? 

Something  of  this  sort  the  wise  Paul  also  writes ;  "  For  if  a  Cor.  vffi. 
"  the  will  be  ready,  a  man  is  accepted  according  to  that  he 
"  hath,  and  not  according  to  that  he  hath  not."  Not  only  may 
the  rich  man  obtain  favour  with  God  by  offering  fruit  unto  the 
brethren: — for  the  Saviour  of  all  will  accept  his  sacrifice: — but 
even  he  who  possesses  but  very  little  may  also  obtain  favour 
by  offering  his  little;  nor  will  he  suffer  any  loss  on  this  account. 
For  the  Omniscient  will  praise  his  readiness,  and  accept  his 
intention,  and  make  him  equal  with  the  rich  :  or  rather,  will 
crown  him  with  more  distinguished  honour. 

And  this  further  deserves  both  our  regard  and  admiration  : 
that  multitudes  were  going  up  to  the  temple,  some  of  whom 
were  offering  fatted  oxen  ;  and  some  sheep ;  and  frankincense, 
and  other  things  besides,  indispensable  for  the  due  performance 
of  the  sacrifices  commanded  by  the  law :  but  the  Saviour's  look 
was  not  fixed  upon  these  so  much  as  upon  those  who  were 
making  their  offerings  to  the  treasury :  on  those,  that  is,  who 
were  kind  and  charitable.  For  He  accepts  the  sweet  savour 
of  the  spiritual  service,  but  turns  away  His  eyes  from  what 
is  done  in  types  and  shadows.  For  He  knew  that  types  profit 
not,  and  that  the  shadow  is  weak.  He  therefore  honours  cha- 
rity to  the  poor ;  and  knowing  this,  one  of  the  holy  apostles 

7  Explained  in  the  margin  thus :  "  fruit  which  has  passed  the  ^  sea- 
"  Plantations   of  trees   laden  with     "  son,  and  become  flavourless." 


648  COMMENTARY  UPON 

James  i.:  7.  wrote ;  "that  a  pure  and  undefiled  sacrifice  before  God  the 
"  Father  is  this ;  to  visit  the  fatherless  and  widows  in  their 
"  afflictions,  and  that  a  man  should  keep  himself  unspotted 
"  from  the  world." 

And  we  find  also  that  the  commandment  given  bv  Moses 
urges  us  unto  love  for  the  poor,  and  arouses  us  imto  charity. 
For  it  was  not  one  God  Who  of  old  appointed  the  command- 
ment by  Moses,  and  another  Who  set  before  us  the  pathway  of 
Gospel  conduct ;  but  rather  it  was  One  and  the  Same,  inas- 
much as  He  changeth  not.     For  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets 

Is.  Hi.  6.      He  has  said,  "  I  that  speak  unto  thee  am  near."    He  therefore 

Deut.xv. 7.  thus  spake  by  Moses;  "But  if  there  be  among  you  a  poor 
"  man  of  thy  brethren  in  one  of  thy  cities  in  the  land  which 
"  the  Lord  thy  God  giveth  thee,  thou  shalt  not  turn2  away  thy 
"  heart,  nor  shut  thy  hand  from  thy  brother  that  is  in  need. 
"  Thou  shalt  open  thy  hands  wide  unto  him ;  lend  him  readily 
"  whatsoever  he  needeth,  and  according  to  that  which  he  lack- 
"  eth."  Thou  hearest  him  call  their  almsgiving  a  loan  ;  for  it 
is  God  that  receiveth,  and  requiteth  it,  not  with  equal,  but  ra- 

Lukevi.33.  ther  with  overflowing  measure.  "For  good  measure,  He  says, 
"  pressed  down,  and  running  over,  shall  they  pour  into  your 

1  Cor.  ix.  7.  "  bosom."  And  as  the  very  wise  Paul  says,  "  God  loveth  a 
"  cheerful  giver."  And  that  it  is  right  to  be  compassionate 
unto  the  brethren,  not  niggardly,  nor  as  a  matter  of  necessity, 
but  of  love  rather  without  respect  of  persons,  and  blameless 
mutual  affection,  even  the  law  of  old  made  clear  by  saying, 

Deut.  xv.  «  And  thou  shalt  not  be  grieved  in  thy  heart  when  thou  givest 
"  unto  him  :  for  therefore  the  Lord  thy  God  shall  bless  thee 
"  in  all  thy  works,  in  whatsoever  thou  puttest  thereto  thy 

Rom.xii.8.  "  hand."  As  therefore  Paul  saith,  "He  that  giveth,  (let  him 
"  do  so)  with  bountifulness  :  he  that  holdeth  preeminence  with 
"  earnestness  :  he  that  hath  compassion,  with  cheerfulness." 
For  love  shewn  unto  poverty  is  not  unfruitful,  but  is  a  debt 
that  will  be  largely  repaid. 

We  ought  therefore  to  be  diligent  in  fulfilling  this  duty,  as 
being  well  assured,  that  if  we  distribute  with  bountiful  hand, 
we   shall   benefit   ourselves  :   for  so  the   blessed   Paul   again 

z  Cyril  must  have  read  diroarptyj/tis  for  diroarip^at. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  649 

teaches  us.  saying,  "  But  this, — he  that  soweth  sparingly  shall  2  Cor.  ix.  6. 

"  reap  also  sparingly :  and  he  that  soweth  with  blessings  shall 

"  also  reap  in  blessings  :  every  man  as  he  is  prepared  in  his 

"  heart."     And,  as  if  to  cut  away  the  slothfulness  of  our  good 

exertions,  immediately  he  adds  these  words ;  "  And  God  is  able  2  Cor.  ix.  8. 

"  to  make  all  grace  abound  in  you,  that  in  every  thing  always 

"  possessing  every  sufficiency  ye  may  abound  in  every  good 

"  work.     As  it  is  written,  He  hath  dispersed  and  given  to  the 

"  poor :  his  righteousness  abideth  for  ever."  For  he  who  shew- 

eth  mercy  unto  the  poor,  shall  never  be  forsaken,  but  shall  be 

counted  worthy  rather  of  indulgence  from  Christ,  the  Saviour 

of  us  all ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be 

praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever, 

Amen. 


40 


650  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON    CXXXIX. 

C.  xxi.  5-   And  as  some  spake  of  the  temple,  that  it  was  adorned  with 
J3-  goodly  stones  and  offerings,  He  said;  As  for  these  things 

that  ye  behold,  the  days  will  come  in  which  there  shall  not 
am.  £5e  be  left  here  stone  upon  stone  vjhich  shall  not  be  thrown 

GTy*.  down.    And  they  asked  Him,  saying,  Teacher,  when  there- 

fore shall  these  things  be,  and  what  is  the  sign  when  these 
things  are  about  to  happen  ?    But  He  said,  Look  I  Be  not 
om  5t«  B        deceived  :  for  many  shall  come  in  My  name,  saying,  That 
om.  olv  B.       I  am  He  :  and  the  time  is  near.     Go  ye  therefore  not  after 
them.     And  when  ye  have  heard  of  wars  and  commotions, 
be  not  troubled :  for  these  things  must  first  happen;  but  the 
end  is  not  immediately.     Then  said  He  unto  them,  Nation 
shall  rise  against  nation,  and  kingdom  against  kingdom  : 
great  earthquakes  shall  be  in  all  places,  and  famines, 'and 
pestilences :  and  terrors  from  heaven,  and  there  shall  be 
great  sigyis.3-     But  before  all  these  things  they  shall  lay 
add.  v^as  S.      their  hands  upon  you,  and  persecute  you,  delivering  you  up 
ainlyovT<s        t0  Synag0gues  and  prisons,  and  bringing  you  before  kings 

add.  rovro       and  rulers  for  My  name  sake :  but  this  shall  prove  unto 

s 

you  a  untnessing. 

FROM  Christ  we  have  received  the  knowledge  of  things 
i  Cor.  iv.  5.  about  to  happen  :  for  it  is  even  He  Who  "  revealeth  the  deep 
"  things  out  of  darkness,"  and  knoweth  those  that  are  hidden  : 
Col.  ii.  3.    and  "  in  Him  are  all  the  treasures  of  wisdom,  and  the  hidden 
"  things  of  knowledge.11    He  changeth  times  and  seasons  :  and 
refashioneth  the  creation  unto  that  which  it  was  at  the  begin- 
ning. For  it  was  by  His  means  that  when  it  existed  not,  it  was 
brought  into  existence  according  to  the  will  of  God  the  Father; 
for  He  is  His  living  and  personal  power  and  wisdom :  and  again 
by  His  means  it  will  easily  be  changed  into  that  which  is  bet- 
2Pet.iii.13.  ter.     For  as  His  disciple  says,  "We  expect  new  heavens,  and 
"  a  new  earth,  and  His  promises." 

a  The   readings  of  this    passage  iaovrai,  (poQrjdpd  re  xa\  a^/iua  drr' 

are  as  follow :  The  Syriac,  a-ficrp.o\  oipavov  p.eya\a  carat.     (B.   places 

fieyakoi  Kara  nomas  ronovs  ecroi/rcu,  o-rjp.ua    after    oipavov.)      Aod    with 

Kat  Xtfiol  ko.\  \otfiol'  (po^rjrpa  8«  an  this    G.   and    s.    agree,    except    in 

oipavov    /cat    o~np.t~ia    p,eya\a    tarai.  making  the  <a\  follow  Kara  rorrovs, 

but  B.  and  T.,  ati.ay.ol  re  yeyaXot,  and  the  spelling  of  (popqrpa. 
Ka\    Kara    roVour    Xotyol     Ka\    \iyo\ 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  651 

Now  the  cause  of  this  digression  has  been  in  part  the  ques- 
tion put  to  our  common  Saviour  Christ  respecting  the  temple, 
and  the  things  therein,  and  partly  the  answer  He  made  thereto. 
For  some  of  them  showed  Him  the  mighty  works  that  were  in 
the  temple,  and  the  beauty  of  the  offerings ;  expecting  that  He 
would  admire  as  they  did  the  spectacle,  though  He  is  God,  and 
heaven  is  His  throne.  But  He  deigned,  so  to  speak,  no  regard 
whatsoever^  these  earthly  buildings,  trifling  as  they  are,  and 
absolutely  nothing,  compared  I  mean  to  the  mansions  that  are 
above;  and  dismissing  the  conversation  respecting  them,  turned 
Himself  rather', to'that  which  was  necessary  for  their  use.  For 
He  forewarned  them,  that  however  worthy  the  temple  might 
be  accounted  by  them  of  all  admiration,  yet  at  its  season  it 
would  be  destroyed  from  its  foundations,  being  thrown  down 
by  the  power  of  the  Romans,  and  all  Jerusalem  burnt  with  fire, 
and  retribution  exacted  of  Israel  for  the  slaughter  of  the  Lord. 
For  after  the  Saviour's  crucifixion,  such  were  the  things  which 
it*  was  their  lot  to  suffer. 

They  however  understood  not  the  meaning  of  what  was  said, 
but  rather  imagined  that  the  words  He  spake  referred  to  the 
consummation  of  the  world.  They  asked  therefore,  "When 
"  shall  these  things  be  1  and  what  is  the  sign  when  they  are 
"  about  to  happen  t"  What  therefore  is  Christ's  answer  ?  He 
meets  the  view  of  those  who  put  to  Him  the  enquiry,  and  omit- 
tino-  for  the  present  what  He  was  saying  about  the  capture  of 
Jerusalem,  He  explains15  what  will  happen  at  the  consummation 
of  the  world,  and,  so  to  speak,  warns  them  and  testifies,  saying, 
«  Look !  Be  not  deceived  :  for  many  shall  come  in  My  Name, 
"  saying,  that  I  am  He,  and  the  time  is  near.  Go  ye  not  after 
"  them."  For  before  the  advent  of  Christ  the  Saviour  of 
us  all  from  heaven,  various  false  Christs  and  false  prophets 
will  appear  preceding  Him,  falsely  assuming  to  themselves  His 
person,  and  coming  into  the  world  like  eddies  of  smoke  spring- 
ing up  from  a  fire  about  to  break  forth.  "  But  follow  them  not," 
He  says.  For  the  Only-begotten  Word  of  God  consented 
to  take  upon  Him  our  likeness,  and  to  endure  the  birth  in  the 
flesh  of  a  woman,  in  order  that  He  might  save  all  under  hea- 
ven. And  this  to  Him  was  an  emptying  of  Himself,  and  a  hu- 
miliation. For  what  is  the  measure  of  humanity  compared  with 

»  Mai  reads  v(f>aiu(t,  for  which  the  Syriac  must  have  read  «><£atV«. 

402 


652  COMMENTARY  UPON 

the  divine  and  supreme  majesty  and  glory  ?  As  one  therefore 
Who  had  humbled  Himself  to  emptiness,  He  deigned  to  remain 
Mat.xvii.9.  unknown,  even  charging  the  holy  apostles  before  His  precious 
cross  that  they  should  not  reveal  Him.  For  it  was  necessary 
that  the  manner  of  His  dispensation  in  the  flesh  should  remain 
hid,  that  by  enduring  as  a  man  for  our  sakes  even  the  precious 
cross,  He  might  abolish  death,  and  drive  away  Satan  from  his 
i  Cor.  ii.  8.  tyranny  over  us  all.  For,  as  Paul  says ;  "  The  wisdom  that 
"  was  in  Christ,  by  which  is  meant  that  which  is  by  Christ, 
"  none  of  the  rulers  of  this  world  knew:  for  if  they  had  known 
"  it,  they  would  not  have  crucified  the  Lord  of  glory/'  It  was 
necessary  therefore  that  He  should  remain  unknown  during 
the  time  that  preceded  His  passion :  but  His  second  advent 
from  heaven  will  not  happen  secretly  as  did  His  coming  at 
first,  but  will  be  illustrious  and  terrible.  For  He  shall  descend 
with  the  holy  angels  guarding  Him,  and  in  the  glory  of  God 
the  Father,  to  judge  the  world  in  righteousness.  And  there- 
fore He  says,  "  when  there  arise  false  Christs  and  false  pro- 
"  phets,  go  ye  not  after  them." 

And  He  gives  them  clear  and  evident  signs  of  the  time  when 
the  consummation  of  the  world  is  now  near.  "  For  there  shall 
"  be  wars,  He  says,  and  tumults :  and  famines  and  pestilences 
'•  everywhere :  and  terrors  from  heaven,  and  great  signs/'  For, 
Mat.  xxiv.  as  another  evangelist  says,  "  all  the  stars,  shall  fall :  and  the 
"  heaven  be  rolled  up  like  a  scroll,  and  its  powers  shall  be 
"  shaken." 

But  in  the  middle  the  Saviour  places  what  refers'to  the  cap- 
ture of  Jerusalem  :  for  He  mixes  the  accounts  together  in  both 
parts  of  the  narrative.  "  For  before  all  these  things,  He  says, 
"  they  shall  lay  their  hands  upon  you,  and  persecute  you,  de- 
"  livering  you  up  to  synagogues  and  to*  prisons,  and  bringing 
"  you  before  kings  and  rulers  for  My  Name's  sake.  But 
"  this  shall  prove  unto  you  a  witnessing."  For  before  the 
times  of  consummation  the  land  of  the  Jews  was  taken  captive, 
being  overrun  by  the  Roman  host;  the  temple  was  burnt, 
their  national  government  overthrown,  the  means  for  the  legal 
worship  ceased  ; — for  they  no  longer  had  sacrifices,  now  that 
the  temple  was  destroyed, — and,  as  I  said,  the  country  of  the 
Jews,  together  with  Jerusalem  itself,  was  utterly  laid  waste. 
And  before  these  things  happened,  the  blessed  disciples  were 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  653 

persecuted  by  them.  They  were  imprisoned  :  had  part  in  un- 
endurable trials  :  were  brought  before  judges  :  were  sent  unto 
kings;  for  Paul  was  sent  unto  Rome  to  Caisar.0  But  these 
things  that  were  brought  upon  them  were  unto  them  for  a  wit- 
nessing, even  to  win  for  them  the  glory  of  martyrdom. d 

And  He  testifies  unto  them,  '  Meditate  not  beforehand  what 
f  defence  ye  will  make :  for  ye  shall  receive  of  Me  wisdom  and 
1  a  tongue  which  all  those  who  stand  against  you  shall  not  be 
'  able  to  resist  or  to  speak  against.'  And  cutting  away  the 
grounds  of  human  pusillanimity,  He  tells  them, '  that  they  shall 
'  be  delivered  up  by  brethren  and  friends  and  kinsfolk :'  but 
He  promises  that  certainly  and  altogether  He  will  deliver  them, 
saying,  that  "  a  hair  of  your  head  shall  not  perish." 

And,  to  make  His  prediction  yet  again  more  clear,  and  more 
plainly  to  mark  the  time  of  its  capture,  He  says,  "  When  ye 
"  have  seen  Jerusalem  girt  about  with  armies,  then  know  that 
"  its  destruction  is  nigh."  And  afterwards  again  He  transfers 
His  words  from  this  subject  unto  the  time  of  the  consumma- 
tion,8 and  says  ;  "  And  there  shall  be  signs  in  the  sun,  and  in 
"  the  moon,  and  in  the  stars ;  and  on  the  earth  distress  of  na- 
"  tions  in  perplexity  :  from  the  sound  of  the  sea,  and  its  surg- 
"  ing,  as  the  souls  of  men  depart :  from  fear  and  expectation 
"  of  the  things  which  are  coming  upon  the  world  :  for  the 
"  hosts  of  heaven  shall  be  shaken."  For  inasmuch  as  creation 
begins,  so  to  speak,  to  be  changed,  and  brings  unendurable 
terrors  upon  the  inhabitants  of  earth,  there  will  be  a  certain 
fearful  tribulation,  and  a  departing  of  souls  unto  death.  For 
the  unendurable  fear  of  those  things  that  are  coming  will  suf- 
fice for  the  destruction  of  many. 

"  Then,  He  says,  they  shall  see  the  Son  of  man  coming  in 
"  a  cloud  with  power  and  great  glory."  Christ  therefore  will 
come  not  secretly  nor  obscurely,  but  as  God  and  Lord,  in  glory 

c  The  Greek  adds,  "  and  he  stood  "  nity  of  bearing  testimony  of  Me 

"  before  Festus  and  Agrippa."  "  in  a  more  public  manner,  and  in 

d  In  the  Greek  the  word  for  wit-  "  places  not  otherwise  accessible  to 

ness  is  martyr,  and  S.  Cyril  inter-  "  you." 

prets  our  Lord's  declaration  in  the  e  An  unconnected  passage,  re- 
sense  to  which  the  word  had  been  ferring  to  the  famine  in  the  days  of 
limited  in  the  fourth  century,  "of  Claudius  Caesar,  inserted  here  by 
"  bearing  witness  with  one'3  life."  Mai,  is  expressly  quoted  in  Cra- 
The  original  passage  rather  means,  mer's  Catena  from  Titus  Bostren- 
"  This  shall  give  you  an  opportu-  sis. 


654  COMMENTARY  UPON 

such  as  becometh  Deity  ;  and  will  transform  all  things  for  the 
better.  For  He  will  renew  creation,  and  refashion  the  nature 
of  man  to  that  which  it  was  at  the  beginning.  "  For  when 
"  these  things,  He  says,  come  to  pass,  lift  up  your  heads,  and 
"  look  upwards  :  for  your  redemption  is  near."  For  the  dead 
shall  rise,  and  this  earthly  and  infirm  body  shall  put  off  cor- 
ruption, and  shall  clothe  itself  with  incorruption  by  Christ's 
sift,  Who  grants  unto  those  that  believe  in  Him  to  be  con- 
formed  unto  the  likeness  of  His  glorious  body.    As  therefore 

2Pet.jii.16.  His  disciple  says,  "  The  day  of  the  Lord  will  come  as  a  thief; 
"  in  which  the  heavens  indeed  shall  suddenly  pass  away,  and 
"  the  elements  being  on  fire  shall  be  dissolved,  and  the  earth 
"  and  all  the  works  that  are  therein  shall  be  burnt  up."  And 
further,  he  adds  thereunto,  "  Since  therefore  all  these  things 
"  are  being  dissolved,  what  sort  of  persons  ought  we  to  be, 
"  that  we  may  be  found  holy,  and  without  blame,  and  unre- 

Luke  xii.    "  proved  before  Him?"     And  Christ  also  Himself  says,  "  Be 

3  "  ye  therefore  always  watching,  supplicating  that  ye  may  be 

"  able  to  escape  from  all  those  things  that  are  about  to  happen, 

Eom.  xiv.  "  and  to  stand  before  the  Son  of  Man."  "  For  we  shall  all 
"  stand  before  His  judgment  seat,"  to  give  an  account  of  those 
things  that  we  have  done.  But  in  that  He  is  good  and  loving 
to  mankind,  Christ  will  shew  mercy  on  those  that  love  Him ; 
by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and 
dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Araen.f 

t  Mai  has  two  passages  on  v.  27.  "  reign  authority  :  for  the  Only-be- 

not  found  in  the  Syriac,  the  first  of  "  gotten  is  inseparable  from  God  as 

which  is  principally  a  string  of  quo-  "  the  light  is  from  the  sun  ;  for  He 

tations  to  prove  that  the  Deity  is  "  exists  in  Him  by  nature,  and  all 

always   described   as    sitting   on   a  "  that  the  Father  hath  is  the  Son's, 

cloud  :    and  the   second  is  as  fol-  "  and  nee  versa."     He  has  also  a 

lows ;  "  For  just  as  if  one  say  of  a  rather  fuller  exposition  of  vv.  29-36, 

"  man,  that  he  received  of  his  fa-  consisting   evidently   of   short    de- 

"  ther   the   property   of  being   ra-  tached  passages  collected  from  va- 

"  tional,  it  really  signifies  that  the  rious  places,  and  given  as  such  in 

"  rational  is  begotten  of  the  rational,  Cramer.     One  of  them  to  the  effect 

"  so  also  the  Only-begotten  God  of  that  by  "  generation"  is  meant  not 

"  God    proceeded   as   Judge   from  the  people  then   living,  but  those 

"  Him  Who  judges  all  the  earth,  like  them  in  morals,  has  occurred 

"  And  though  the  Father  gave  all  verbatim  before,  and  was  not  then 

"  judgment  unto  the   Son,   He  is  acknowledged  by  the  Syriac. 
"  not  Himself  left  destitute  of  sove- 


10 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  655 


SERMON   CXL. 

This  Exposition  is  fit  to  be  read  on  the  Thursday  of 
the  Mystery.  5 

And  by  day  He  ivas  teaching  in  the  temple,  and  at  night  He  Cc.xxi.37- 
ivent  out  and  abode  in  the  mount  called  of  Olives :  and  all 
the  people  came  early  to  Him  in  the  temple  to  hmr  Him. 
And  the  feast  of  unleavened  bread  drew  near,  which  is 
called  the  Passover,  and  the  chief  priests  and  scribes 
sought  how  they  might  kill  Him  :  for  they  feared  the  peo- 
ple. But  Satan  entered  into  Judah,  surnamed  Iscariot, 
who  was  of  the  number  of  the  twelve,  and  he  went  and 
spake  to  the  chief  priests  and  captains,  how  he  might  de- 
liver Him  unto  them.  And  they  were  glad,  and  covenanted 
to  give  him  money :  and  he  promised,  and  sought  a  fitting 
season  when  he  could  deliver  Him  unto  them  without  the 
multitude. 

THE  throng  of  the  Jews,  together  with  their  ruler,  stood  up 
against  the  glory  of  Christ,  and  contended  with  the  Lord  of  all. 
But  any  one  may  perceive  that  it  was  against  their  own 
souls  that  they  prepared  their  snare,  for  they  dug  for  them- 
selves pitfalls  of  destruction,  and,  as  the  Psalmist  says,  "  The  Ps.  ix.  15. 
"  heathen  are  taken  in  the  snare  which  they  have  made :  in 
"  the  trap  which  they  have  laid  is  their  foot  taken."  For  the 
Saviour  and  Lord  of  all,  though  His  right  hand  is  almighty, 
and  His  power  overthroweth  both  corruption  and  death,  yet 
submitted  Himself  of  His  own  accord  by  becoming  flesh  unto 
the  tasting  of  death  for  the  life  of  all,  in  order  that  He  might 
make  corruption  cease,  and  do  away  with  the  sin  of  the  world, 
and  deliver  those  that  were  under  the  hand  of  the  enemy  from 
his  unendurable  tyranny.  But  that  rebellious  serpent  perhaps 
imagined  that  He  had  prevailed  even  over  Him,  in  that  He 
suffered,  as  I  said,  death  in  the  flesh  for  our  sakes,  as  the  dis- 
pensation required :  but  the  wretched  being  was  disappointed 
of  his  expectation. 

e  By  the  Thursday  of  the  Mystery  is  meant  Thursday  in  Passion  week. 


656  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Let  us  then  see  hem  he  missed  his  game,  and  shot  wide  of 
his  mark,  when  he  made  Christ  his  prey,  and  delivered  Him 
into  the  hands  of  those  murderers.  It  says  then,  that  "  by  day 
"  He  taught  in  the  temple,  but  lodged  during  the  nights  in  the 
"  mount  called  of  olives."  Now  plainly  what  He  taught  were 
things  which  surpass  the  legal  service  :  for  the  time  had  come 
when  the  shadow  must  be  changed  into  the  reality.  And  they 
heard  Him  gladly  ;  for  oftentimes  they  had  wondered  at  Him, 

Lukeiv.32.  "  because  His  word  was  with  power."  For  He  did  not,  like 
one  of  tke  holy  prophets,  or  as  the  hierophant  Moses,  call  out 
to  men,  "  These  things  saith  the  Lord :"  but  as  Himself  being 
He  Who  of  old  spake  by  Moses  and  the  prophets,  and  the 
Lord  of  all,  He  transferred  with  godlike  authority  unto  a  spi- 
ritual worship  what  had  been   prefigured  in  types,  and  the 

Heb.vii.19.  weakness  of  the  letter:  "for  the  law  made  nothing  perfect." 
And  He  lodged  during  the  nights,  as  I  said,  in  the  Mount  of 
Olives,  avoiding  the  uproars  there  were  in  the  city,  that  He 
might  in  this  also  be  a  pattern  unto  us.  For  it  is  the  duty  of 
those  who  would  lead  a  life  quiet  and  calm,  and,  so  to  speak, 
full  of  rest,  to  avoid  as  far  as  possible  the  crowd  and  tumult. 

But  let  us  see  the  course  of  the  devil's  malice,  and  what  was 
the  result  of  his  craftv  designs  against  Him.  He  had  then 
implanted  in  the  chiefs  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews  envy 
against  Christ,  which  proceeded  even  to  murder.  For  always, 
so  to  speak,  this  malady  tends  to  the  guilt  of  murder.  Such, 
at  least,  is  the  natural  course  of  this  vice  :  so  it  was  with  Cain 
and  Abel ;  so  plainly  it  was  in  the  case  of  Joseph  and  his  bre- 
thren ;  and  therefore  the  divine  Paul  also  very  clearly  makes 
these  sins  neighbours,  so  to  speak,  of  one  another,  and  akin  : 

Rom.  i.  29.  for  he  spake  of  some  as  "  full  of  envy,  murder."  They  sought 
therefore  to  slay  Jesus,  at  the  instigation  of  Satan,  who  had 
implanted  this  wickedness  in  them.,  and  who  also  was  their 
captain  in  their  wicked  enterprises.  For  he  is  himself  the 
inventor  of  murder,  and  the  root  of  sin,  and  the  fouutain  of  all 
wickedness.  And  what  was  the  contrivance  of  this  many-headed 
serpent  ?  "  He  entered,  it  says,  into  Judah  Iscariot,  who  was 
"  one  of  the  twelve."  Why  not  rather  into  the  blessed  Peter, 
or  into  James,  or  John,  or  some  other  of  the  rest  of  the  apo- 
stles, but  into  Judah  Iscariot  ?  What  place  did  Satan  find  in 
him  ?    Of  all  whom  we  have  here  mentioned  he  could  approach 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  657 

none,  because  their  heart  was  steadfast,  and  their  love  to 
Christ  immoveable  ;  but  there  was  a  place  for  him  in  the 
traitor.  For  the  bitter  malady  of  covetousness,  which  the 
blessed  Paul  says  is  "  the  root  of  all  evil/'  had  overpowered  i  Tim.  vi. 
him.  For  once  also  when  a  woman  had  poured  ointment 
upon  the  Saviour,  he  alone  of  all  rebuked  her,  saying,  "  To 
"  what  purpose  is  this  waste  ?  For  it  could  have  been  sold  for 
"  much,  and  given  to  the  poor."  But  the  wise  Evangelist  rose, 
so  to  speak,  against  his  feigned  words:  for  immediately  he  adds  : 
"  But  this  he  spake,  not  because  he  had  forethought  for  the  John  xii.  6. 
"  poor,  but  because  he  was  a  thief,  and  carried  the  purse,  and 
"  whatever  fell  therein,  he  was  the  bearer  of."  And  Satan,  being- 
crafty  in  working  evil,  whenever  he  would  gain  possession  of 
any  man's  soul,  does  not  attack  him  by  means  of  vice  generally, 
but  searches  out  rather  that  particular  passion  which  has 
power  over  him,  and  by  its  means  makes  him  his  prey.  As 
he  knew  therefore  that  he  was  covetous,  he  leads  him  to  the 
Pharisees  and  captains  ;  and  to  them  he  promised  that  he 
would  betray  his  teacher.  And  they  purchase  the  tretfchery, 
or  rather  their  own  destruction,  with  sacred  money.  Oh !  what 
tears  could  suffice,  either  for  him  who  betrayed  Jesus  for  hire, 
or  for  those  who  hired  him,  and  purchased  with  consecrated 
money  a  guilty  murder !  What  darkness  had  come  upon  the 
soul  of  him  who  received  the  bribe !  For  a  little  silver,  he  lost 
heaven ;  he  missed  the  crown  of  immortality,  and  the  desirable 
honour  of  the  apostleship,  and  to  be  numbered  among  the 
twelve,  unto  whom  Christ  somewhere  said,  "  Ye  are  the  light  Mat.  v  14. 
"  of  the  world."  He  cared  not  to  be  a  light  of  the  world  :  he 
forgot  Christ,  Who  says,  "  Ye  who  have  followed  Me  in  My  Mat.  xix. 
"  temptations,  when  the  Son  of  man  shall  sit  upon  the  throne  2 
"  of  His  glory,  ye  also  shall  sit  upon  twelve  thrones,  and  judge 
"  the  twelve  tribes  of  Israel."  But  he  wanted  not  to  reign  with 
Christ.  What  a  confusion  too  of  error  blinded  the  mind  of  that 
covetous  man  !  He  delivered  unto  death  Him  Who  is  greater 
than  death.  Didst  thou  not  know  that  Lazarus  was  raised  on 
the  fourth  day  from  the  grave,  and  that  at  His  nod  the  widow's 
son  also  revived,  and  the  daughter  of  the  chief  of  the  syna- 
gogue ?  Didst  thou  not  hear  Him  say  to  the  Jews  concern- 
ing His  body,  "Destroy  this  temple:  and  in  three  days  I  John  ii.  19. 
"  will  raise  it  up  again  ?"    Didst  thou  forget  His  words,  "  I  am  John  xi.  25. 

4^ 


658  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"the  resurrection  and  the  life?"  What  therefore  was  the 
cause  of  such  utter  phrensy  ?  The  Evangelist  tells  us,  where 
he  says,  "  Satan  entered  into  him,"  having  obtained  as  his 

iTim.vi.6.  pathway  and  door  the  passion  of  avarice.  And  yet  "  the  fear 
"  of  God  with  a  sufficiency  is  great  gain  :"  and,  as  the  sacred 
Scripture  says,  "  We  neither  brought  anything  into  the  world, 
"  nor  can  we  carry  [anything]  out."  And  "  those  who  seek 
"  to  be  rich,  fall  into  numerous  and  unprofitable  lusts,  which 
"  sink  men  in  pitfalls  and  destruction."  And  of  this  the  dis- 
ciple who  became  a  traitor  is  a  manifest  proof :  for  he  perished 
for  the  sake  of  a  few  wretched  shekels. 

And  what  shall  one  say  of  those  who  hired  him  ?  That  they 
fell  into  the  very  same  pitfalls  with  him.  Plainly  they  were 
the  victims  of  a  like  intoxication,  even  though  they  had  the 
reputation  of  being  well  acquainted  with  the  law  and  the  words 
of  the  holy  prophets.  It  was  their  duty  to  have  known  the 
meaning  of  what  had  been  spoken  of  old,  as  being  before  de- 
creed by  God  concerning  them.     For  among  others  are  words 

Zech.  x.  3.  like  these,  "  My  wrath  is  kindled  against  the  shepherds,  and  I 
will  visit  the  lambs."  For  the  wicked  shepherds  perished  mi- 
serably :  while  the  calling  of  those  who  were  obedient  unto 
salvation  was  a  kind  of  visitation  ;  for  a  remnant  of  Israel  was 
saved.  And,  as  if  already,  so  to  speak,  they  had  fallen  into 
ruin  and  destruction,  and  were  wailing  and  weeping  on  this 

Zech.  xi.  3.  account,  the  prophet  heard,  he  says,  "  the  voice  of  shepherds 
"  wailing,  because  their  might  was  brought  low :  the  voice  of 
"  lions  roaring,  because  the  pride  of  Jordan  was  spoiled."  He 
calls  the  lions  the  pride  of  Jordan,  by  whom  were  figured  the 
chiefs  of  the  Jewish  synagogue  :  who,  in  just  requital  of  their 
wickedness  against  Christ,  wailed  with  their  fathers  and  chil- 
dren, being  consumed  as  with  fire  and  sword,  while  the  temple 
at  Jerusalem  was  also  burnt,  and  the  cities  throughout  all 
Judaea  abandoned  unto  utter  desolation. 

Such  then  was  their  fate :  bui  Christ  saves  us  by  His  mer- 
ciful will ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever.- 
Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  659 


SERMON  CXLI. 

This  Exposition  is  fit  to  be  read  on  Thursday  in  the  week 
of  the  Mystery. 

Then  came  the  day  of  unleavened  bread,  on  which  it  was  c.  xxii.  -- 
fitting  for  the  passover  to  be  sacrificed.  And  He  sent  Peter 
and  John,  saying,   Go  and  prepare  for  us  the  passover, 
that  we  may  eat.     And  they  said  unto  Him,  Where  wilt 
Thou  that  we  prepare  ?     And  He  said  unto  them,  Behold,  add.  <rm  <pa- 
when  ye  have  entered  into  the  city,  there  shall  meet  you  a  o^b. 
man  carrying  a  pitcher  of  water  :  follow  him  unto  the 
house  into  which  he  entereth.     And  say  unto  the  master  o/""/ *j;LBS- 
the  house,  The  Teacher  saith  unto  thee,  Wliere  is  the  guest- 
chamber,  where  I  may  eat  the  passover  with  My  disciples  ? 
And  he  will  shew  you  a  large  upper  room,  provided  with 
couches  ;  there  make  ready.    And  they  went,  and  found  as 
He  said  unto  them ;  and  they  made  ready  the  passover.  eipfaei  B. 
And  when  the  time  was  come,  He  lay  down  to  meat,  and  qxSj." 
the  twelve  apostles  with  Him.     And  He  said  unto  them,  Tom.  SwScko. 

•  BT 

have  desired  a  desire  to  eat  this  passover  with  you  before 

I  suffer :  for  1  say  unto  you,  that  henceforth  I  will  not  eat  om.  ovKtn 


of  it,  until  it  is  fulfilled  in  the  kingdom  of  God. 


B. 


THE  law  by  its  shadows  prefigured  from  of  old  the  mystery 
of  Christ :  and  of  this  He  is  Himself  the  witness  where  He  said 
to  the  Jews,  "  If  ye  had  believed  Moses,  ye  would  have  be-  John  v.  4.6. 
"  lieved  also  Me  :  for  he  wrote  concerning  Me."  For  every- 
where He  is  set  forth,  by  means  of  shadows  and  types,  both  as 
slain  for  us,  as  the  Lamb  without  blame  and  true ;  and  as  sanc- 
tifying us  by  His  life-giving  blood.  And  we  further  find  the 
words  of  the  holy  prophets  in  complete  accordance  with  those 
of  most  wise  Moses.  But  when  "  the  fulness  of  time  was  come,"  Gal.  iv.  4. 
as  Paul  says,  in  which  the  Only-begotten  Word  of  God  was 
about  to  submit  unto  the  emptying  of  Himself,  and  to  endure 
the  birth  in  the  flesh  of  a  woman,  and  subjection  also  unto 
the  law,  according  to  the  measure  that  was  fitting  for  human 

4  p  2 


660  COMMENTARY  UPON 

nature,  then  He  was  also  sacrificed  for  us,  as  the  lamb  without 
blame  and  true,  on  the  fourteenth  day  of  the  first  month.  And 
this  feast-time  was  called  Phasck.  a  word  belonging  to  the  He- 
brew language,  and  signifying  the  passing  over:h  for  so  they 
explain  it,  and  say  that  this  is  its  meaning. 

We  must  explain  then  what  it  is  from  which  we  pass  over, 
and  on  our  journey  to  what  country,  and  in  what  manner  we 
effect  it. 

As  then  Israel  was  delivered  from  the  tyranny  of  the 
Egyptians,  and  having  loosed  its  neck  from  the  voke  of 
bondage,  was  now  free  ;  and  fleeing  from  the  violence  of  the 
tyrant  passed  with  dry  foot  in  a  manner  wonderful  and  beyond 
the  power  of  language  to  describe  through  the  midst  of  the 
sea,  and  journeyed  onwards  to  the  promised  land :  so  must  we 
too,  who  have  accepted  the  salvation  that  is  in  Christ,  be  will- 
ing no  longer  to  abide  in  our  former  faults,  nor  continue  in  our 

DO  ' 

evil  ways,  but  manfully  cross  over  the  sea,  as  it  were,  of  the  vain 
trouble  of  this  world,  and  the  tempest  of  affairs  that  is  therein. 
We  pass  over  therefore  from  the  love  of  the  flesh  to  temper- 
ance ;  from  our  former  ignorance  to  the  true  knowledge  of 
God ;  from  wickedness  unto  virtue  :  and  in  hope  at  least,  from 
the  blame  of  sin  unto  the  glories  of  righteousness,  and  from 
death  unto  incorruption.  The  name  therefore  of  the  feast  on 
which  Emmanuel  bore  for  us  the  saving  cross,  was  the  Pass- 
over. 

But  let  us  behold  Him  Who  is  the  Truth  still  honouring  the 
types,  and  Him  Who  was  represented  therein  still  permitting 
the  shadows  to  hold  good.  "  For  when  the  day,  it  says,  had 
"  come,  on  which  it  was  fitting  for  the  passover  to  be  sacri- 
"  ficed,  He  sent  unto  the  city  two  men  chosen  from  the  holy 
"  apostles,  Peter  namely  and  John,  saying,  that  there  shall 

h  As  this  interpretation  has  been  "  phrates ;"   and  that  the  Arabic, 

frequently  attacked  in  modern  times,  with  its  more  exact  alphabet,  dis- 

and  the  word  explained  as  signify-  tinguishes  the  two  roots,  -^i  and 
ing  the  "  halting"  of  the  angel  at  C 

the   sight   of  the   blood  upon   the  £wi,  which  in    Hebrew  coalesce 

doorposts,   it   may  not   be   out   of  int0  one  form      In  Is   xixi  g<  the 

place  to  observe,  that  the  sense  of  sen3e  evidently  j8  that  of  "sparing," 

"  passing  over"  is  clearly  preserved  a3  the  first.born  were  spare(i  by  the 

in  the  name   of  Thapsacus,  neon,  passjng  over  of  the  aDgel. 
"  the   place   for  crossing   the  Eu- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  661 

"  meet  you  a  man  carrying  a  pitcher  of  water :  follow  him 
"'unto  the  house  into  which  he  entereth;  and  say  unto  the  mas- 
"  ter  of  the  house,  The  Teacher  saith  unto  thee,  where  is  the 
"  guestchamber,  where  I  may  eat  the  passover  with  My  dis- 
"  ciples  ?"  '  But  why,  some  one  perchance  may  say,  did  He 
'  not  plainly  mention  the  man  to  those  whom  He  sent?  For 
1  He  did  not  say,  Having  gone  unto  such  and  such  a  person, 
'  whoever  it  might  be,  there  prepare  for  us  at  his  house  the 
f  passover :  but  simply  gave  them  a  sign,— a  man  bearing  a 
'  pitcher  of  water/  To  this  then  what  do  we  reply  ?  That  lo  ! 
already  Judas  the  traitor  had  promised  the  Jews  to  deliver 
Him  unto  them,  and  was  continuing  in  His  company  watching 
for  an  opportunity  ;  and  while  still  making  profession  of  the 
love  that  was  the  duty  of  a  disciple,  he  had  admitted  Satan 
into  his  heart,  and  was  travailing  with  the  crime  of  murder 
against  our  common  Saviour  Christ.  He  gives  a  sign  therefore, 
to  prevent  him  from  learning  who  the  man  was,  and  running 
to  tell  those  who  had  hired  him.  "  For  there  shall  meet  you, 
"  He  says,  a  man  carrying  a  pitcher  of  water." 

Or  even  perchance  He  so  speaks  signifying  something  mys- 
tical and  necessary  thereby.     For  whither  the  waters  enter, 
even  those  of  holy  baptism,  there  lodgeth  Christ.     How,  or  in 
what  manner  ?     In  that  they  free  us  from  all  impurity,  and  we 
are  washed  by  them  from  the  stains  of  sin,  that  we  may  also 
become  a  holy  temple  of  God,  and  partakers  of  His  divine  na- 
ture, by  participation  of  the  Holy  Ghost.     In  order  therefore 
that  Christ   may  rest   and   lodge   in  us,  let  us   receive  the 
savin"-  waters,  confessing  moreover  the  faith  that  justifieth  the 
wicked,  and  raiseth  us  aloft  so  as  for  us  to  be  accounted  "  an 
upper  room."'     For  those  in  whom  Christ  dwells  by  faith  have 
a  mind  raised  aloft,  unwilling  to  creep  upon  the  dust,  and  re- 
fusing so  to  speak,  to  be  set  upon  the  earth,  and  everywhere 
seekino-  that  which  is  exalted  in  virtue.     For  it  is  written,  that 
"  the  mighty  ones  of  God  are  raised  high  above  the  earth."  Ps  xlvii.  9. 
"  For  here  they  have  no  abiding  city,  but  seek  that  which  is  Heb.  xiii. 
"  to  come :"   and  while  walking  upon  earth,  their  thoughts  are  l4- 
set  upon  those  things  which  are  above,  and  "  their  dwelling  is  phil.Ui.^o. 
"  in  heaven." 

»  Mai's  Codex  has  avayeiov,  for     substitutes   dyytlov.     The  reading 
which,  contrary  to   the   sense,   he      should  be  avuyeov. 


662  COMMENTARY  UPON 

We  mar  also  notice  something  true,  but  wonderful,  that 
happens,  so  to  speak,  constantly  among  us :  namely  that  those 
who  prize  their  carnal  life  are  often  puffed  up,  and  have  their 
heart  full  of  pride  accursed  and  hated  of  God  ;  but  yet  perhaps 
they  are  brought  to  humiliation  even  upon  earth  :  while  those 
who  are  poor  in  spirit  obtain  exaltation  by  the  honour  and 
glory  which  cometh  from  God.  For  as  the  disciple  of  Christ 
Jam.  i.  9.  writes,  "  Let  the  humble  brother  glory  in  his  exaltation,  but 
"  the  rich  in  suffering  humiliation :  because  as  the  flower  of 
"  the  grass  he  shall  pass  away."  He  therefore  would  not  miss 
the  truth,  who  should  say  that  the  soul  of  every  saint  is  "  an 
"  upper  room." 

When  then  the  disciples  had  prepared  the  passover,  Christ 
ate  it  with  them,  being  longsuffering  towards  the  traitor,  and 
deigning  to  admit  him  to  the  table  from  His  infinite  loving- 
kindness  :  for  he  was  already  a  traitor,  because  Satan  was 
lodging  within  him.  And  what  did  Christ  also  say  to  the  holy 
apostles  ?  "I  have  desired  a  desire  to  eat  this  passover  with 
"  you."  Let  us  examine  the  deep  purport  of  this  expression  : 
let  us  search  out  the  meaning  concealed  therein,  and  what  it 
is  which  the  Saviour  intends. 

As  then  I  have  already  said  that  covetous  disciple  was  seek- 
ing an  opportunity  to  betray  Him :  and,  that  he  might  not 
deliver  Him  to  His  murderers  before  the  feast  of  the  passover, 
the  Saviour  did  not  declare  either  the  house  or  the  person 
with  whom  He  would  celebrate  the  feast.  To  explain  therefore 
to  them  the  cause  of  His  unwillingness  openly  to  tell  them  with 
whom  He  would  lodge,  He  says,  "  I  have  desired  a  desire  to 
"  eat  with  you  this  passover :"  apparently  meaning,  I  have 
used  all  diligence  to  enable  me  to  escape  the  wickedness  of  the 
traitor,  that  I  might  not  endure  My  passion  before  the  time. 
,  "  But  I  will  not  eat  of  this  passover  until  it  is  fulfilled  in  the 
"  kingdom  of  God."  And  in  this  again  Christ  utters  a  pro- 
found and  mysterious  truth,  of  which  He  Himself,  however, 
reveals  to  us  the  meaning.  For  it  is  His  custom  to  give  the 
name  of  "  the  kingdom  of  heaven"  to  justification  by  faith,  to 
the  cleansing  that  is  by  holy  baptism  and  the  participation  of  the 
Holy  Ghost,  and  to  the  offering  of  spiritual  service,  now  ren- 
dered possible  by  the  entering  in  of  the  gospel  laws.  But  these 
things  are  the  means  of  our  being  made  partakers  of  the  pro- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  663 

mises,  and  of  our  reigning  together  with  Christ :  and  therefore 

O  o         o 

He  says,  "  I  will  no  more  draw  near  unto  such  a  passover  as 
"  this,"  one  namely  that  consisted  in  the  typical  eating, — for  a 
lamb  of  the  flock  was  slain  to  be  the  type  of  the  true  Lamb, — 
"  until  it  is  fulfilled  in  the  kingdom  of  God  :1?  that  is,  until  the 
time  has  appeared  in  which  the  kingdom  of  heaven  is  preached. 
For  this  is  fulfilled  in  us,  who  honour  the  worship  that  is  supe- 
rior to  the  law,  even  the  true  passover ;  nor  is  it  a  lamb  of  the 
flock  which  sanctifies  those  who  are  in  Christ,  but  Himself 
rather,  being  made  a  holy  sacrifice  for  us,  by  the  offering  of 
bloodless  oblations,  and  the  mystical  giving  of  thanks,  in  which 
we  are  blessed  and  quickened  with  life.k  For  He  became  for 
us  "  the  living  bread  that  came  down  from  heaven,  and  giveth  John vi.  50. 
"  life  unto  the  world :"  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen.1 

k  The  Greek  of  this  important  "  the  Lord  of  all  came,  the  truth 
passage  is  as  follows ;  avros  8e  p.a\-  "  entered  with  Him  :  on  which  ac- 
\ov  aylcos  iepnvpyovp.evos  8ia  rrjs  "  count  the  Jews  err  in  still  eating 
fiva-TiKr/s  evXoyias,  <aff  r\v  evXoyov-  "  unleavened  bread :  for  food  com- 
(icda  iea\  faoiroiovpeda.  'lepovpyeoi  "  mendeth  us  not  to  God  :  but 
is  an  apostolic  word,  occurring  "  Christians,  by  a  spiritual  service, 
Rom.  xv.  16,  iepovpyovura  to  eiay-  "  and  a  life  of  holiness,  enter  with 
yikiov.  and  tlXoyla,  as  I  have  be-  "  Christ  the  upper  room,  the  hea- 
fore  mentioned,  was  constantly  ap-  "  venly  Jerusalem."  The  second, 
plied  in  primitive  times  to  the  Holy  shewing  that  the  sheaf  of  the  first- 
Communion  from  1  Cor.  x.  16.  fruits  is  a  type  of  Christ,  is  from 
1  Two  passages  of  some  length  in  the  De  Adorat.  vol.  i.  p.  611.  Mai 
Mai  are  not  acknowledged  by  the  also  gives  as  Cyril's  a  few  words 
Syriac.  The  first,  p.  410,  shows  evidently  the  Catenist's  own,  quot- 
that  "  the  types,  as  was  fitting,  were  ing  the  fuller  form  of  v.  16.  as  it 
"  ministered  by  servants,  but  when  appears  in  Mat.  xxvi.  29. 


664: 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  CXLIT. 

C.xxii.  17-  And  He  took  a  cup,  and  gave  thanks,  and  said,  Take  this, 
and  divide  it  with  one  another :  for  I  say  unto  you,  that 
I  will  not  drink  henceforth  of  the  fruit  of  the  vine,  until 
the  kingdom  of  God  is  fidfilled.  And  He  took  bread,  and 
gave  thanks,  and  brake,  and  gave  to  them,  saying,  This  is 
My  body,  which  is  given  for  you  :  do  this  in  remembrance 
of  Me.  In  like  manner  also  the  cup,  after  He  had  supped, 
saying,  This  cup  is  the  new  testament  in  My  blood,  which 
is  shed  for  you.  But,  behold  !  the  hand  of  him  that  be- 
tray eth  Me  is  with  Me  at  the  table.  And  the  Son  of  man 
indeed  goeth,  according  to  that  which  was  determined: 
but  woe  to  that  man  by  whom  He  is  betrayed  ! 


eavrois 

BGj. 

(Is  eavTOvs 

T. 

om.  Sti  B. 

Om.  &7rb  TOV 

vZv  GTs. 

ir\ripa)9fj  S. 
e\6v  BGTs. 


Kal  GS 
3t;  BT 


Ezech. 
xxxvii 


TO  be  made  partakers  of  Christ,  both  intellectually  and  by 
our  senses  m,  fills  us  with  every  blessing.  For  He  dwells  in 
us,  first,  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  we  are  His  abode,  according 
to  that  which  was  said  of  old  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets. 
"  For  I  will  dwell  in  them,  He  says,  and  lead  them :  and  I 
"  will  be  to  them  a  God,  and  they  shall  be  to  Me  a  people." 

But  He  is  also  within  us  in  another  way  by  means  of  our 
partaking  in  the  oblation  of  bloodless  offerings,  which  we  cele- 
brate in  the  churches,  having  received  from  Him  the  saving 
pattern  of  the  rite,  as  the  blessed  Evangelist  plainly  shews  us 
in  the  passage  which  has  just  been  read.  For  He  tells  us 
that  "  He  took  a  cup,  and  gave  thanks,  and  said,  Take  this, 
"  and  divide  it  with  one  another."  Now  by  His  giving 
thanks,  by  which  is  meant  His  speaking  unto  God  the  Father 
in  the  manner  of  prayer,  He  signified  unto  us  that  He,  so  to 
o-wtvSoicv  speak,  shares  and  takes  part  in  His  good  pleasure  in  granting 
us  the  life-£ivinf  blessing  which  was  then  bestowed  upon  us : 
for  every  grace,  and  every  perfect  gift  cometh  unto  us  from 


rr)s 


m  The  Greek  of  this  was  most 
prohably  foi/rcov  rt  Kal  alad-qra^ : 
the  former  of  these  adverbs,  though 
strictly  referring  to  the  operations 
of  the  reason,  is  constantly  used  by 


S.Cyril  in  a  sense  approaching  very 
nearly  to  "spiritually," .though  else- 
where he  more  correctly  expresses 
this  by  -rrvevixaTiKuis. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  665 

the  Father  by  the  Son  in  the  Holy  Ghost.  And  this  act  then 
was  a  pattern  for  our  use  of  the  prayer  which  ought  to  be 
offered,  whenever  the  grace  of  the  mystical  and  life-giving  ob- 
lation n  is  about  to  be  spread  before  Him  by  us :  and  so  ac- 
cordingly we  are  wont  to  do.  For  first  offering  up  our  thanks- 
givings, and  joining  in  our  praises  unto  God  the  Father  both 
the  Son  and  the  Holy  Ghost,  we  so  draw  near  unto  the  holy 
tables,  believing  that  we  receive  life  and  blessing  both  spiritu- 
ally and  corporeally  :  for  we  receive  in  us  the  Word  of  the  Fa- 
ther, Who  for  our  sakes  became  man,  and  Who  is  Life,  and  the 
Giver  of  life. 

Let  us  then  enquire,  to  the  best  of  our  ability,  what  is  the 
view  held  among  us  of  this  mystery :  for  it  is  our  duty  to 
be  "ready  to  give  an  answer  concerning  the  hope  that  is  in  1Pet.iii.15. 
"  us,"  as  the  wise  Peter  says.  "  The  God  of  all  therefore  Wisd.ii.23. 
"  created  all  things  for  immortality,  and  the  beginnings  of  the 
"  world  were  life ;  but  by  the  envy  of  the  devil  death  entered 
"  the  world :"  for  it  was  that  rebel  serpent  who  led  the  first 
man  unto  the  transgression  of  the  commandment,  and  to  dis- 
obedience, by  means  of  which  he  fell  under  the  divine  curse, 
and  into  the  net  of  death:  for  it  was  said  unto  him,  "  Earth  Gen.  iii.19. 
"  thou  art,  and  unto  the  earth  thou  shalt  return."  Was  it 
then  right  that  one  who  was  created  for  life  and  immortality 
should  be  made  mortal,  and  condemned  to  death  without  power 
of  escape  ?  Must  the  envy  of  the  devil  be  more  unassailable 
and  enduring  than  the  will  of  God  ?  Not  so  :  for  it  has  been 
brought  to  nought ;  and  the  clemency  of  the  Creator  has  tran- 
scended the  evil  effects  of  his  malignity.  He  has  given  aid  to 
those  upon  earth.  And  what  then  was  the  manner  in  which 
He  aided  them  ?  One  truly  great,  and  admirable,  and  worthy 
of  God ;  yea,  worthy  in  the  very  highest  degree  of  the  su- 
preme Mind.  For  God  the  Father  is  by  His  own  nature  Life; 
and  as  alone  being  so,  He  caused  the  Son  to  shine  forth  Who 
also  Himself  is  Life :  for  it  could  not  be  otherwise  with  Him 


n  The   Syriac   offers   us  in  this  8u>pov,  "  a  gift,"  being  a  term  fre- 

place  a  remarkable  instance  both  of  quently  applied  by  the  Fathers  to 

its  scrupulous  accuracy,  and  also  of  the  Eucharist.    The  Syriac  renders 

its  awkwardness  in  rendering  Greek  this  by  ]_LO;co   £oOf  Q^C?)  "  the 

compound  words.     The  original  is  "  bringing    or    offering    of    offer- 

Suipcxpopias,  "  the    gift-bringing  ; "  "  ings." 

4Q 


666  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Who  is  the  Word  That  proceeded  substantially  from  the  Life : 
for  He  must,  I  say  must,  also  Himself  be  Life,  as  being  One 
Who  sprang  forth  from  Life,  from  Him  Who  begat  Him. 

God  the  Father  therefore  giveth  life  to  all  things  by  the 
Son  in  the  Holy  Ghost :  and  every  thing  that  exists  and 
breathes  in  heaven  and  on  earth,  its  existence  and  life  is  from 
God  the  Father  by  the  Son  in  the  Holy  Ghost.  Neither 
therefore  the  nature  of  angels,  nor  any  thing  else  whatsoever 
that  was  made,  nor  aught  that  from  non-existence  was  brought 
into  being,  possesses  life  as  the  fruit  of  its  own  nature :  but,  on 
the  contrary,  life  proceeds,  as  I  said,  from  the  Substance  which 
.  transcends  all :  and  to  it  only  it  belongs,  and  is  possible  that 
it  can  give  life,  because  it  is  by  nature  life. 

In  what  manner  therefore  can  man  upon  earth,  clothed  as 
he  is  with  mortality,  return  to  incorruption  ?  I  answer,  that 
this  dying  flesh  must,  be  made  partaker  of  the  life-giving 
power  which  cometh  from  God.  But  the  life-giving  power  of 
God  the  Father  is  the  Only-begotten  Word  :  and  Him  He 
sent  to  us  as  a  Saviour  and  Deliverer.  And  how  He  sent 
Him,  the  blessed  John  the  Evangelist  clearly  tells  us,  saying, 

John  i.  14.  "  And  the  Word  became  flesh,  and  dwelt  in  us."  But  He  be- 
came flesh,  not  by  having  undergone  any  change  or  alteration 
into  what  He  had  not  been,  nor  again  by  having  ceased  to  be 
the  Word ; — for  He  knoweth  not  what  it  is  to  suffer  the  shadow 
of  a  change ; — but  rather  by  having  been  born  in  the  flesh  of  a 
woman,  and  taken  unto  Himself  that  body  which  He  received 
from  her,  in  order  that,  having  implanted0  Himself  in  us  by  an 
inseparable  union,  He  might  raise  us  above  the  power  both  of 
death  and  corruption.    And  Paul  is  our  witness,  where  he  says 

Heb.  ii.  14.  of  Him  and  of  us,  "  For  inasmuch  as  the  children  are  par- 
"  takers  of  blood  and  flesh,  so  He  in  like  manner  was  partaker 
"  of  the  same,  that  by  death  He  might  bring  him  to  nought 
"  who  has  dominion  over  death,  that  is,  the  devil ;  and  deliver 
"  all  them  who  through  fear  of  death  were  all  their  lifetime 
"  subject  unto  bondage.  For  He  taketh  not  hold  of  angels, 
"  but  He  took  hold  of  the  seed  of  Abraham :  for  which 
"  reason  it  behoved  Him  in  all  things  to  be  made  like  unto 
"  His  brethren :"  that  is,  unto  us.     For  He  was  made  in  our 

0  Mai's  reading  is  (pcfrvrdo-j],  for  which  the  Syriac  reads  (p<$>vTtv<ras. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  667 

likeness,  and  clothed  Himself  in  our  flesh,  that  by  raising 
it  from   the  dead  He  might  prepare  a  way  henceforth,   by 
which  the  flesh  which   had  been  humbled  unto  death  might 
return  anew  unto  incorruption.    For  we  are  united  unto  Him 
just  as  also  we  were  united   unto  Adam,  when  he  brought 
upon  himself  the  penalty  of  death.     And  Paul  testifies  there- 
unto, thus  writing  on  one  occasion,  "  For  because  by  man  is  i  Cor.  xv. 
"death,  by  man  is  also  the  resurrection  of  the  dead:"  and21' 
again  upon  another,  "  For  as  in  Adam  all  die,  even  so  -in  Christ  i  Cor.  xv. 
"  shall  all  live."     The  Word  therefore,  by  having  united  unto  "' 
Himself  that  flesh  which  was  subject  unto  death,  as  being  God 
and  Life  drove  away  from  it  corruption,  and  made  it  also  to 
be  the  source  of  life :  for  such  must  the  body  of  (Him  Who  is) 
the  Life  be. 

And  do  not  disbelieve  what  I  have  said,  but  rather  accept 
the  word  in  faith,  having  gathered  proofs  thereof  from  a  few 
examples.  When  you  cast  a  piece  of  bread  into  wine  or  oil, 
or  any  other  liquid,  you  find  that  it  becomes  charged  with  the 
quality  of  that  particular  thing.  When  iron  is  brought  into 
contact  with  fire,  it  becomes  full  of  its  activity;  and  while  it  is 
by  nature  iron,  it  exerts  the  power  of  fire.  And  so  the  life- 
giving  Word  of  God,  having  united  Himself  to  His  own  flesh 
in  a  way  known  unto  Himself,  endowed  it  with  the  power  of 
giving  life.  And  of  this  He  certifies  us  Himself,  saying, 
"  Verily,  I  say  unto  you,  he  that  believeth  on  Me  hath  ever-  John  vi.47. 
"  lasting  life.  I  am  the  bread  of  life."  And  again,  "I  am  the  Johnvi.sr. 
"  living  bread,  that  came  down  from  heaven ;  if  a  man  eat  of 
"  this  bread,  he  shall  live  for  ever :  and  the  bread  that  I  shall 
"  give  is  My  flesh  for  the  rife  of  the  world.  Verily,  I  say  unto 
"  you,  that  if  ye  eat  not  the  flesh  of  the  Son  of  man,  and 
"  drink  His  blood,  ye  have  no  life  in  you.  Whoso  eateth  My 
"  flesh,  and  drinketh  My  blood,  hath  eternal  life,  and  I  will 
"  raise  him  up  at  the  last  day.  For  My  flesh  is  true  food,  and 
"  My  blood  is  true  drink.  He  that  eateth  My  flesh,  and 
"  drinketh  My  blood,  abideth  in  Me,  and  I  in  him.  As  the 
"  living  Father  sent  Me,  and  I  live  because  of  the  Father ;  so 
"  He  that  eateth  Me  shall  also  live  because  of  Me."  When 
therefore  we  eat  the  holy  flesh  of  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  us  all, 
and  drink  His  precious  blood,  we  have  life  in  us,  being  made 

4  Q  2 


668  COAJLUEN'TAIIV  UPON* 

as  it  were,  one  with  Him,  and  abiding  in  Him,  and  possessing 
Him  also  in  us. 

And  let  none  of  those  whose  wont  it  is  to  disbelieve  say, 
'  Since  therefore  the  Word  of  God,  being  by  nature  life,  dwells 
'  in  us  also,  is  the  body  of  each  one  of  us  too  endowed  with 
'  the  power  of  giving  life?'     Rather  let  him  know  that  it  is  a 

trxfT'Kyv-  perfectly  different  thing  for  the  Son  to  be  in  us  by  a  relative 
participation,  and  for  Himself  to  become  flesh,  that  is,  to  make 
that  body  His  own  which  was  taken  from  the  blessed  Virgin. 
For  He  is  not  said  to  become  incarnate  and  be  made  flesh  by 
being  in  us :  but  rather  this  happened  once  for  all  when  He 
became  man  without  ceasing  to  be  God.  The  body  therefore 
of  the  Word  was  that  assumed  by  Him  from  the  holy  virgin, 
and  made  one  with  Him ;  but  how,  or  in  what  manner  this 
was  done,  we  cannot  tell :  for  it  is  incapable  of  explanation, 
and  altogether  beyond  the  powers  of  the  mind,  and  to  Himself 
alone  is  the  manner  of  the  union  known. 

It  was  fitting  therefore  for  Him  to  be  in  us  both  divinely  by 
the  Holy  Ghost,  and  also,  so  to  speak,  to  be  mingled  with  our 
bodies  by  His  holy  flesh  and  precious  blood  :  which  things  also 

tv\oyia.  we  possess  as  a  life-giving  eucharist,  in  the  form  of  bread  and 
wine.  For  lest  we  should  be  terrified  by  seeing  (actual)  flesh  and 
blood  placed  upon  the  holy  tables  of  our  churches,  God,  hum- 
bling Himself  to  our  infirmities,  infuses  into  the  things  set  be- 
fore us  the  power  of  life,  and  transforms  them  into  the  efficacy 
of  His  flesh,  that  we  may  have  them  for  a  life-giving  partici- 
pation, and  that  the  body  of  (Him  Who  is  the)  Life  may  be 
found  in  us  as  a  life-producing  seed.  And  do  not  doubt  that 
this  is  true,  since  Himself  plainly  says,  "  This  is  My  body  : 
44  This  is  Mv  blood:"  but  rather  receive  in  faith  the  Saviour's 
word ;  for  He,  being  the  Truth,  cannot  lie.     And  so  wilt  thou 

John  iii.33.  honour  Him ;  for  as  the  very  wise  John  says,  "  He  that  re- 
"  ceiveth  His  witness  hath  set  his  seal  that  God  is  true.  For 
44  He  Whom  God  sent  speaketh  the  words  of  God."  For  the 
words  of  God  are  of  course  true,  and  in  no  manner  whatsoever 
can  they  be  false :  for  even  though  we  understand  not  in  what 
way  God  worketh  acts  such  as  these,  yet  He  Himself  knoweth 
the  way  of  His  works.  For  when  Nicodemus  could  not  under- 
stand His  words  concerning  holy  baptism,  and  foolishly  said, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  669 

"  How  cau  these  things  be?"  he  heard  Christ  in  answer  say,  Johniii.  9 
"  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  we  speak  that  which  we  know, 
"  and  testify  that  which  we  see,  and  ye  receive  not  our  testi- 
"  mony.  If  I  have  spoken  unto  you  the  earthly  things,  and 
"  ye  believe  not,  how  will  ye  believe  if  I  tell  you  the  heavenly 
"  things?"  For  how  indeed  can  a  man  learn  those  things  which 
transcend  the  powers  of  our  mind  and  reason  ?  Let  therefore 
this  our  divine  mystery  be  honoured  by  faith. 

But  Judas  the  traitor,  who  was  eating  with  Him,  was  re- 
proved in  those  words  which  Christ  spake,  "  But  behold  the 
"  hand  of  him  who  betrayeth  Me  is  with  Me  at  the  table." 
For  he  imagined  perchance  in  his  great  senselessness,  or  rather 
as  being  filled  with  the  haughtiness  of  the  devil,  that  he  could 
deceive  Christ,  though  He  be  God.  But,  as  I  said,  he  was 
convicted  of  bein^r  altogether  wicked,  and  hateful  to  God,  and 
traitorous :  and  yet  admission  was  deigned  him  to  the  table, 
and  he  was  counted  worthv  of  the  divine  gentleness  even  to 
the  end :  but  thereby  is  his  punishment  made  the  more  severe. 
For  Christ  has  somewhere  said  of  him  by  the  Psalmist's  voice, 
"  That  if  an  enemy  had  reproached  Me,  I  had  borne  it:  and  Ps.  Iv.  12. 
"  if  he  that  hated  Me  had  spoken  against  Me  proud  things, 
"  I  had  hid  myself  from  him.  But  it  was  thou,  My  like  in 
"  soul,  My  neighbour  and  My  acquaintance,  who  in  My  com- 
"  pany  hadst  sweetened  for  Me  meats,  and  we  went  to  the 
"  house  of  the  Lord  in  concord."  Woe  therefore  to  him,  ac- 
cording to  the  Saviour's  word !  For  He  indeed,  according  to 
the  good  will  of  God  the  Father,  gave  Himself  in  our  stead, 
that  He  might  deliver  us  from  all  evil :  but  the  man  who  be- 
trayed into  the  hands  of  murderers  the  Saviour  and  Deliverer 
of  all,  will  have  for  his  inheritance  the  condemnation  which  is 
the  devil's  fitting  punishment.  For  his  guilt  was  not  against 
one  such  as  we  are,  but  against  the  Lord  of  all :  by  Whom  and 
with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the 
Holv  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 


670  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON  CXLIII. 


C.  xxii. :+  And  there  was  also  a  strife  among  them,  Which  of  them  seems 
~ia'  to  be  the  great  one.     And  He  said  unto  them,  The  kings  of 

the  Gentiles  are  their  lords :  and  they  who  nde  over  them 
are  called  benefactors.     But  with  you  it  is  not  so ;  but  he 
who  is  great  among  you,  let  him  be  as  the  youngest  P  :  and 
add  W-        iet  frfon  wjw  (j0vermth  be  as  he  that  doth  serve.  For  which 
is  the  chief  he  that  reclineth  at  table,  or  he  that  serveth  ? 
Is  not  he  that  reclineth  ?     But  I  am  in  the  midst  of  you 
as  he  that  serveth.     But  ye  are  they  who  have  remained 
oiiaonaiSta-      with  Me  in  My  temptations:  and  I  will  make  a  covenant 
enx-nv  S.  ^ft  ^o?^  as  ^  pataer  fiath  appointed  for  Me  a  king- 

dom, that  ye  shall  eat  and  drink  at  My  table  in  My  king- 
add.  5u5«(fo      dom  :  and  ye  shall  sit  on  twelve  thrones,  judging  the  twelve 
tribes  of  Israel. 

iThes.v.6.  "AWAKE  ye,  and  watch,"  is  the  summons  to  us  of  one  of 
the  holy  apostles :  for  every  where  the  net  of  sin  is  spread, 
and  Satan  maketh  us  his  prey  in  divers  ways,  seizing  hold  of 
us  by  many  passions,  and  so  leading  us  on  to  a  reprobate  mind. 
Those  therefore  must  be  awake  who  would  not  willingly  be 
subject  to  his  power:  for  thereby  they  will  gain  the  victory  by 
Christ's  help, Who  careth  for  our  souls,  and  delivereth  them  from 
every  passion,  that  so  with  sound  and  vigorous  mind  they  may 
run  along  the  praiseworthy  and  gainful  pathway  of  that  mode 
of  life  which  is  pleasing  to  Him.  For  how  great  His  mercy  is 
towards  us,  the  purport  of  the  lessons  set  before  us  once  again 
declares.  For  the  disciples  had  given  way  to  a  human  in- 
firmity," and  were  contending  with  one  another,  who  of  them  is 
the  chief,  and  superior  to  the  rest ;  for  those  perchance  who 
held  the  second  rank  among  them  were  not  willing  to  give 
way  to  those  who  held  the  first.  But  even  this  arose,  and  was 
recorded  for  our  benefit,  that  that  which  happened  to  the  holy 
apostles  may  prove  a  reason  for  humility  in  us.  For  Christ 
immediately  rebukes  the  malady,  and  like  a  vigorous  phy- 
sician cut  away,  by  an  earnest  and  deep-reaching  command- 
ment, the  passion  which  had  sprung  up  among  them. 
P  Or  rather,  "as  the  serving-boy." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  671 

Now  it  was  from  an  unprofitable  love  of  glory,  the  root  of 
which  is  pride,  that  this  vain  and  senseless  ambition  had,  so  to 
speak,  shot  up.  For  the  very  fact  of  wishing  at  all  to  be  set 
over  others,  and  to  strive  for  this  end,  renders  a  man  liable 
to  be  justly  blamed  :  though,  on  the  other  hand,  it  is  not  ab- 
solutely destitute  of  that  which  may  fitly  be  praised.  For  to 
be  exalted  in  virtue  is  worthy  of  all  estimation :  but  those  who 
would  attain  to  it  must  be  of  modest  mind,  and  possess  such 
humbleness  of  feeling  as  to  abandon  out  of  love  to  the  brethren 
all  idea  of  preeminence.  And  such  the  blessed  Paul  would 
also  have  us  be,  thus  writing,  "  Consider  as  regards  your  com-  Rom  xii. 
"  pardons,  that  in  honour  they  are  better  than  you."  For  so  IO' 
to  feel  is  highly  worthy  of  the  saints,  and  renders  them  glori- 
ous, and  makes  our  piety  unto  God  more  worthy  of  honour  : 
it  tears  the  net  of  the  devil's  malice,  and  breaks  his  manifold 
snares,  and  rescues  us  from  the  pitfalls  of  depravity  :  and 
finally,  it  perfects  us  in  the  likeness  of  Christ  the  Saviour  of 
us  all.  For  listen  how  He  sets  Himself  before  us  as  the  pat- 
tern of  a  humble  mind,  and  of  a  will  not  set  on  vainglory  :  for 
"  Learn,  He  says,  of  Me,  Who  am  meek  and  lowly  in  heart."    Mat.xi.29. 

Here,  however,  in  the  passage  which  has  just  been  read 
He  says,  "  For  which  is  the  chief,  he  that  reclineth  at  table, 
"  or  be  that  serveth  ?  Is  not  he  that  reclineth  ?  But  I  am  in 
"  the  midst  of  you  as  he  that  serveth.1'  And  when  Christ  thus 
speaks,  who  can  be  so  obdurate  and  unyielding  as  not  to  cast 
away  all  vaingloriousness,  and  banish  from  his  mind  the  love 
of  empty  honour?  For  He  Who  is  ministered  unto  by  the 
whole  creation  of  rational  and  holy  beings ;  Who  is  lauded  by 
the  seraphim ;  Who  is  tended  by  the  services  of  the  universe ; 
He  Who  is  the  equal  of  God  the  Father  in  His  throne  and 
kingdom ;  taking  a  servant's  place,  washed  the  holy  apostles" 
feet.  And  in  another  way  moreover  He  holds  the  post  of  ser- 
vitude, by  reason  of  the  dispensation  in  the  flesh.  And  of  this 
the  blessed  Paul  bears  witness,  where  he  writes;  "For  I  say  Rom. xv. s. 
"  that  Christ  was  a  minister  of  the  circumcision  to  fulfil  the 
"  promises  of  the  fathers ;  and  the  Gentiles  shall  praise  God 
"  for  mercy.""  He  therefore  Who  is  ministered  unto  became  a 
minister;  and  the  Lord  of  glory  made  Himself  poor,  "leaving  1  Pet.  ii  21. 
"  us  an  example,"  as  it  is  written. 
Let  us  therefore  avoid  the  love  of  vainglory,  and  deliver  our- 


672  COMMENTARY  UPON 

selves  from  the  blame  attached  to  the  desire  of  chieftainship. 
For  so  to  act  makes  us  like  unto  Him,Who  submitted  to  empty 
Himself  for  our  sakes  :  while  superciliousness  and  haughtiness 
of  mind  make  us  plainly  resemble  the  princes  of  the  Gentiles, 
to  whom  an  arrogant  bearing  is  ever,  so  to  speak,  dear,  or  even 
perhaps  fitting.  "  For  they  are  called,  He  says,  benefactors,"" 
that  is,  are  flattered  as  such  by  their  inferiors.  Be  it  so  then, 
that  they,  as  not  being  within  the  pale  of  the  sacred  laws,  nor 
obedient  to  the  Lord's  will,  are  the  victims  of  these  maladies  : 
but  let  it  not  be  so  with  us ;  rather  let  our  exaltation  consist 
in  humility,  and  our  glorying  in  not  loving  glory  ;  and  let  our 
desire  be  set  upon  those  things  which  are  well-pleasing  to  God, 
Ecclus.  iii.  while  we  bear  in  mind  what  the  wise  man  says  unto  us,  "  The 
"  greater  thou  art,  humble  thyself  the  more,  and  thou  shalt 
"  find  grace  before  the  Lord."  For  He  rejecteth  the  proud, 
and  counteth  the  boastful  as  His  enemies,  but  crowneth  with 
honours  the  meek  and  lowly  in  mind. 

The  Saviour  therefore  drives  away  from  the  holy  apostles 
the  malady  of  vaingloriousness  :  but  they  perchance  might 
think  among  themselves,  and  even  say,  '  What  therefore  will 
'  be  the  reward  of  fidelity  ?  or  what  advantage  shall  they 
'  receive,  who  have  laboured  in  attendance  upon  Him,  when 
'  temptations  from  time  to  time  beta!?'  In  order  therefore  that 
being  confirmed  by  the  hope  of  the  blessings  that  are  in  store, 
they  may  cast  away  from  their  minds  all  slothfulness  in  vir- 
tuous pursuits,  and  choose  rather  with  earnest  mind  to  follow 
Him,  and  take  pleasure  in  labours  for  His  sake,  and  count  the 
doing  so  a  cause  of  gain,  and  the  pathway  of  joy,  and  the 
means  of  eternal  glory,  He  necessarily  says,  "  Ye  are  they  who 
"  have  remained  with  Me  in  My  temptations  :  and  I  will  make 
"  a  covenant  with  you,  as  My  Father  hath  appointed  for  Me  a 
"  kingdom,  that  ye  shall  eat  and  drink  at  My  table  in  My 
"kingdom:  and  ye  shall  also  sit  on  twelve  thrones,  judging 
"  the  twelve  tribes  of  Israel."  Observe,  I  pray,  that  He  does 
not  yet  quit  the  limits  of  humanity,  but  for  the  present  confines 
Himself  within  them,  because  He  had  not  as  yet  endured  the 
precious  cross ;  for  He  speaks  as  one  of  us  :  but  after  the  re- 
surrection from  the  dead  He  revealed  His  glory,  the  season 
Mat.ixviii.  calling  Him  thereto:  for  He  said,  "All  power  hath  been  given 
l8'  "  Me  in  heaven  and  in  earth."  He  speaks  therefore,  as  I  said, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  673 

in  human  fashion,  as  not  having  yet  mounted  above  the  mea- 
sure of  His  humiliation.  For  this  reason  He  says,  that  "  as  My 
"  Father  hath  made  with  Me  a  covenant  of  a  kingdom,  so  I  also 
"  will  make  a  covenant  with  you,  that  ye  shall  eat  and  drink 
"  constantly  at  My  table  in  My  kingdom."  Is  it  the  case  then, 
that  even  after  the  resurrection  from  the  dead,  when  the  time 
has  come  in  which  we  shall  be  with  Christ,  and  He  will  endow 
us  with  the  likeness  of  His  glorified  body ;  even  after  we  have 
thus  put  on  incorruption,  is  it,  I  say,  the  case,  that  we  shall 
again  be  in  need  of  food  and  of  tables  ?  Or  is  it  not  then 
utterlv  foolish  to  sav  or  wish  to  imagine  anvthing  of  the 
sort  ?  For  when  we  have  put  off  corruption,  of  what  bodily 
refreshment  shall  we  henceforth  be  in  need?  And  if  so,  what 
is  the  meaning  of  the  expression,  "  Ye  shall  eat  at  My  table  in 
"  My  kingdom  1"  I  answer,  that  once  again  from  the  ordinary 
matters  of  life  He  declares  to  us  things  spiritual.  For  those 
who  enjoy  the  foremost  honours  with  earthly  kings  banquet 
with  them,  and  eat  in  their  company  :  and  this  is  counted  by 
them  the  summit  of  glory.  And  there  are  too  others,  esteemed 
worthy  of  honour  by  those  in  power,  who  nevertheless  are  not 
permitted  to  draw  near  to  the  same  table  with  them.  To  shew 
then  that  they  will  enjoy  the  highest  honours  with  Him,  He 
uses  an  example  taken  from  ordinary  life,  and  says,  "  I  will 
"  make  a  covenant  with  you,  that  ye  shall  eat  and  drink  at 
"  My  table  in  My  kingdom  :  and  ye  shall  sit  also  upon  twelve 
"  thrones  judging  Israel." 

How  or  in  what  manner  ?  It  means  that  the  disciples  being 
of  Israelitish  race,  obtained  the  foremost  honours  with  Christ, 
the  Saviour  of  all,  because  by  faith  and  constancy  they  seized 
upon  the  gift :  whom  may  we  also  endeavour  to  imitate,  for  so 
will  He  Who  is  the  Saviour  and  Lord  of  all  receive  us  into  His 
kingdom  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost  for  ever  and  ever, 
Amen. 


4  a 


674  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON   CXLIV. 

C.  xxii.  31-  Simeon,  Simeon,  behold  Satan  hath  asked  you,  that  he  may 
34'  sift  you  as  wheat ;   but  I  have  prayed  for  thee  that  thy 

5«  iKiptos  faith  fail  not :  and  do  thou  also  hereafter  when  converted 
Gs-  strengthen  thy  brethren.     And  he  said  unto  Him,  Lord, 

I  am  ready  to  go  -with  thee  both  unto  prison  and  to  death. 

But  He  said,  I  tell  thee,  Peter,  that  the  cock  shall  not 

tus  BT.  crow  to-day  until  thou  hast  thrice  denied  that  Thou  know- 

tP\„  fj  Gf.  est  Me 

THE  prophet  Isaiah  bids  those  who  embrace  a  life  of  piety 
towards  Christ  to  go  unto  the  proclamations  of  the  Gospel,  say- 
la.  lv.  1.  ing,  "Ye  who  thirst,  go  unto  the  waters."  But  these  waters 
are  not  the  material  waters  of  earth,  but  rather  are  divine  and 
spiritual,  poured  forth  for  us  by  Christ  Himself.  For  He  is  the 
river  of  peace,  and  the  torrent  of  pleasure,  and  the  fountain  of 
Johnvii.37.  life.  And  so  we  have  heard  Himself  plainly  saying,  "  Whoso- 
"  ever  thirsteth,  let  him  come  unto  Me  and  drink."  Come 
therefore,  that  here  also  we  may  delight  ourselves  in  the  sacred 
and  divine  streams  which  flow  from  Kim  :  for  what  says  He 
unto  Peter  1  "  Simeon,  Simeon,  behold  Satan  hath  asked  you 
"  to  sift  you  as  wheat :  but  I  have  prayed  for  thee  that  thy 
"  faith  fail  not." 

Now  it  is,  I  think,  both  necessary  and  profitable  for  us  to 
know  what  the  occasion  was  which  led  our  Saviour's  words  to 
this  point.  The  blessed  disciples  then  had  been  disputing  with 
one  another,  "  which  of  them  was  the  great  one  :"  but  the  Sa- 
viour of  all,  as  the  means  whereby  they  obtained  whatsoever 
was  useful  and  necessary  for  their  good,  delivered  them  from 
the  guilt  of  ambition,  by  putting  away  from  them  the  striving 
after  objects  such  as  this,  and  persuading  them  to  escape  from 
the  lust  of  preeminence,  as  from  a  pitfall  of  the  devil.  For  He 
said,  "  he  who  is  great  among  you,  let  him  be  as  the  youngest, 
"  and  he  who  governeth  as  he  that  doth  serve."  And  He 
further  taught  them  that  the  season  of  honour  is  not  so  much 
this  present  time  as  that  which  is  to  be  at  the  coming  of 
His  kingdom.     For  thero  thev  shall  receive  the  rewards  of 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  675 

their  fidelity,  and  be  partakers  of  His  eternal  glory,  and  wear 
a  crown  of  surpassing  honour,  eating  at  His  table,  and  sitting 
also  upon  twelve  thrones,  judging  the  twelve  tribes  of  Israel. 

But  lo !  He  also  offers  them  a  third  assistance,  as  we  read  in 
the  lessons  before  us.     For  He  teaches  us,  that  we  must  think 
humbly  of  ourselves,  as  being  nothing,  both  as  regards  the 
nature  of  man  and  the  readiness  of  our  mind  to  fall  away  into 
sin,  and  as  strengthened  and  being  what  we  are  only  through 
Him  and  of  Him.     If  therefore  it  is  from  Him  that  we  borrow 
both  our  salvation,  and  our  seeming  to  be  something  in  virtue 
and  piety,  what  reason  have  we  for  proud  thoughts?     For  all 
we  have  is  from  Him,  and  of  ourselves  we  have  nothing.  "  For  i  Cor.  iv.  7. 
"  what  hast  thou  that  thou  didst  not  receive  ?   But  if  thou  also 
"  receivedst  it,  why  dost  thou  glory,  as  though  thou  didst  not 
"  receive  it  ?"    So  spake  the  very  wise  Paul :  and  further,  the 
blessed  David  also  at  one  time  says,  "  In  God  we  shall  make  Ps.  Ix.  12. 
"  strength:"  and  at  another  again,  "  Our  God  is  our  house  of  P3.  xlvi.  r. 
"  refuge  and  our  strength."     And  the  prophet  Jeremiah  also 
has  somewhere  said,  "0  Lord,  my  strength  and  my  house  of  Jer.  xvi.19. 
"  refuge,  and  my  help  in  the  days  of  trouble."  And  the  blessed 
Paul  also  may  be  brought  forward,  who  says  with  great  clear- 
ness, "  I  can  do  all  things  through  Christ,  Who  strengtheneth  Phil.  iv.  13. 
"me."      Tea,  Christ  Himself  also  somewhere  says  unto  us, 
"  Without  Me  ye  can  do  nothing."  John  xv.  5. 

Let  us  then  glory  not  in  ourselves,  but  rather  in  His  gifts. 
And  if  this  be  the  state  of  any  one's  mind,  what  place  can  the 
desire  of  being  set  above  other  men  find  in  him,  when  thus  we 
are  all  both  partakers  of  the  same  one  grace,  and  also  have 
the  same  Lord  of  hosts  as  the  Giver  both  of  our  existence  and 
of  our  ability  to  do  well.  To  humble  therefore  our  tendency 
to  superciliousness,  and  to  repress  ambitious  feelings,  Christ 
shews  that  even  he  who  seemed  to  be  great  is  nothing  and  in- 
firm. He  therefore  passes  by  the  other  disciples,  and  turns  to 
him  who  is  the  foremost,  and  set  at  the  head  of  the  company, 
and  says ;  "  that  Satan  hath  many  times  desired  to  sift  you  as 
"  wheat  r'1  that  is,  to  search  and  try  you,  and  expose  you  to 
intolerable  blows.  For  it  is  Satan's  wont  to  attack  men  of  more 
than  ordinary  excellence,  and,  like  some  fierce  and  arrogant 
barbarian,  he  challenges  to  single  combat  those  of  chief  repute 
in  the  ways  of  piety.     So  he  challenged  Job,  but  was  defeated 

4  r  2 


676  COMMENTARY  UPON 

by  his  patience,  and  the  boaster  fell,  being  vanquished  by  the 
endurance  of  that  triumphant  hero.  But  human  nature  he 
makes  his  prey,  for  it  is  infirm,  and  easy  to  be  overcome  : 
while  he  is  harsh  and  pitiless  and  unappeasable  in  heart.     For, 

Job  xli.  24.  as  the  sacred  Scripture  says  of  him,  "  His  heart  is  hard  as  a 
"  stone:  and  he  standeth  like  an  anvil  that  cannot  be  beaten  1 
"  out.'"  Yet  he  is  placed  under  the  feet  of  the  saints  by  Christ's 

Lukex.  19  might:  for  He  has  said,  "  Behold,  I  have  given  you  to  tread  on 
"  serpents  and  scorpions,  and  upon  all  the  power  of  the  enemy, 
"  and  nothing  shall  hurt  you."  "  Satan  therefore,  He  says, 
"  hath  desired  to  sift  you  as  wheat :  but  I  have  offered  suppli- 
v  cation  in  thy  behalf,  that  thy  faith  fail  not." 

See  again,  He  humbles  Himself  unto  us,  and  speaks  accord- 
ing to  the  limits  of  man's  estate,  and  yet  He  is  God  by  nature, 
even  though  He  became  flesh.  For  though  He  is  the  power 
of  the  Father,  by  Whom  all  things  are  preserved,  and  from 
Whom  they  obtain  the  ability  to  continue  in  well-being,  He 
yet  says  that  He  offers  supplication  as  a  man.  For  it  was 
necessary,  yea  necessary,  for  Him  Who,  for  the  dispensation's 
sake,  became  like  unto  us,  to  use  also  our  words,  when  the 
occasion  called  Him  thereto  in  accordance  with  what  the 
dispensation  itself  required.  "  I  have  supplicated  tkere- 
"  fore,  He  says,  that  thy  faith  fail  not."  Now  by  this  then 
He  shows,  that  if  he  had  been  yielded  up  to  Satan  to  be 
tempted,  he  would  have  proved  altogether  unfaithful  :  since, 
even  when  not  so  yielded  up,  he  proved  weak  from  human  fee- 
bleness, being  unable  to  bear  the  fear  of  death.  For  he  denied 
Christ,  when  a  young  girl  troubled  him  in  the  high  priest's 

John  xviii.  palace  by  saying,  "  And  thou  also  art  one  of  His  disciples." 

The  Saviour  then  forewarned  him  what  would  have  been 
the  result  had  he  been  yielded  up  to  Satan's  temptation  :  but 
at  the  same  time  He  offers  him  the  word  of  consolation,  and 
says,  "And  do  thou  also  hereafter, when  converted,  strengthen 
"  thy  brethren  :"  that  is,  be  the  support,  and  instructor  and 
teacher  of  those  who  draw  near  unto  Me  by  faith.  And  more- 
over, admire  the  beautiful  skill  of  the  passage,  and  the  sur- 
passing greatness  of  the  divine  gentleness  !  For,  lest  his  im- 
pending fall  should  lead  the  disciple  to  desperation,  as  though 
he  would  be  expelled  from  the  glories  of  the  apostleship,  and 
<i  That  is,  not  ductile,  incapable  of  being  spread  out  by  hammering. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  677 

his  former  following  (of  Christ)  lose  its  reward,  because  of  his 
proving  unable  to  bear  the  fear  of  death,  and  denying  Him,  at 
once  Christ  fills  him  with  good  hope,  and  grants  him  the  con- 
fident assurance  that  he  shall  be  counted  worthy  of  the  pro- 
mised blessings,  and  gather  the  fruits  of  steadfastness.  For  He 
says,  "  And  do  thou  also,  when  converted,  strengthen  thy  bre- 
"  thren."  0  what  great  and  incomparable  kindness  !  The  dis- 
ciple had  not  yet  sickened  with  the  malady  of  faithlessness,  and 
already  he  has  received  the  medicine  of  forgiveness  :  not  yet  had 
the  sin  been  committed,  and  he  receives  pardon :  not  yet  had 
he  fallen,  and  the  saving  hand  is  held  out :  not  yet  had  he 
faltered,  and  he  is  confirmed :  for  "  do  thou,  He  says,  when 
"  converted,  strengthen  thy  brethren."  So  to  speak  belongs 
to  One  Who  pardons,  and  restores  him  again  to  apostolic 
powers. 

But  Peter,  in  the  ardour  of  his  zeal,  made  profession  of 
steadfastness  and  endurance  to  the  last  extremity,  saying  that 
he  would  manfully  resist  the  terrors  of  death,  and  count  no- 
thing of  bonds ;  but  in  so  doing  he  erred  from  what  was  right. 
For  he  ought  not,  when  the  Saviour  told  him  that  he  would 
prove  weak  to  have  contradicted  Him,  loudly  protesting  the 
contrary ;  for  the  Truth  could  not  lie  :  but  rather  he  ought  to 
have  asked  strength  of  Him,  that  either  he  might  not  suffer 
this,  or  be  rescued  immediately  from  harm.  But,  as  I  have 
already  said,  being  fervent  in  spirit,  and  warm  in  his  love  to- 
wards Christ,  and  of  unrestrainable  zeal  in  rightly  performing 
those  duties  which  become  a  disciple  in  his  attendance  upon 
his  Master,  he  declares  that  he  will  endure  to  the  last  extre- 
mity :  but  he  was  rebuked  for  foolishly  speaking  against  what 
was  foreknown,  and  for  his  unreasonable  haste  in  contradicting 
the  Saviour's  words.  For  this  reason  He  says,  "  Verily  I  tell 
"  thee,  that  the  cock  shall  not  crow  to-night,  until  thou  hast 
"  thrice  denied  Me."  And  this  proved* true.  Let  us  not  there- 
fore think  highly  of  ourselves,  even  if  we  see  ourselves  greatly 
distinguished  for  our  virtues  :  rather  let  us  offer  up  the  praises 
of  our  thanksgivings  unto  Christ  Who  redeems  us,  and  Who 
also  it  is  that  grants  us  even  the  desire  to  be  able  to  act 
rio-htly  :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever, 
Amen. 


678  COMMENTARY  UPON 


SERMON    CXLV. 

c.  xxii.  35-  And  He  said  unto  them,  When  I  sent  yon  without  purse  and 
Kal&Tfpirri-  without  scrip  and  shoes,  lacked  ye  anything?  And  they 
pas  S.      ^       said,  Nothing.     And  He  said  unto  them,  But  noiv,  he  that 

(hfV  St  ES.  -  -  IT-  7  T        •  /•»  I 

flirev  oZv  hath  a  purse,  let  him  take  it :  and  in  Like  manner  also  a 

GTl*  scrip :  and  he  that  hath  not  one,  let  him  sell  his  garment, 

add.  in  and  buy  a  sword.     For  I  say  unto  you,  that  this  that  is 
written  must  be  accomplished  in  Me,  that  he  was  numbered 

Kal  yap  also  with  the  transgressors.     For  that  which  concerns  Me 

tT™>U'uo>3  hath  an  end.     And  they  said,  Lord,  behold  here  are  two 

BS.^rairepi  swords.     And  Be  said  unto  them,  It  is  enough. 

ifj-ov  GTr. 

THE  blessed  Moses  impressed   the  fear  of  God  upon  the 
Heb.  x.  31.  Israelites  by  saying,  "It  is  a  fearful  thing  to  fall  into  the 
Deut.iv.24.  "  hands  of  the  living  God :  for  our  God  is  a  consuming  fire." 
Nahumi.6.  And  another  holy  prophet  has -also  said  concerning  Him,  "  His 
"  wrath  consuineth  the  princes,  and  the  rocks  are  melted  at 
"  Him."    Moreover  the  blessed  David  says  of  Him  somewhere 
Ps.  lxxvi.7.  in  the  Psalms,  "  Thou  art  to  be  feared,  and  who  shall  rise  up 
"  before  Thee  at  Thy  wrath  ?"     For  what  power  of  man,  or 
of  ought  whatsoever  that  is  created,  can  stand  against  the  irre- 
sistible force  of  Almighty  God  ?     But  His  wrath  descends  not 
upon  any  righteous  man  whatsoever  ; — for  God  committeth  not 
injustice; — but  upon  those  rather  whose  sins  are  numerous  and 
intolerable,  and  their  wickedness  beyond  bounds. 

And  as  an  example  of  what  we  have  said,  take  that  which 
happened  to  the  Jewish  multitudes  after  Christ  rose  from  the 
dead,  and  ascended  up  to  heaven.  For  God  the  Father  sent 
unto  them  His  Son,  inviting  them  unto  a  service  superior  to 
the  law,  and  to  the  knowledge  of  all  good :  He  sent  Him  to 
free  them  from  all  guilt,  and  deliver  them  from  the  stains  of 
sin ;  to  bring  them  unto  the  adoption  of  sons,  to  glory,  to  ho- 
nour, and  to  the  communion  of  the  Holy  Ghost ;  to  life  incor- 
ruptible; to  never-ending  glory;  and  to  the  kingdom  of  heaven. 
But  though  thev  ought  eagerly  to  have  hastened  unto  this 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  679 

grace,  and   with  grateful  praises  have    honoured  Him  Who 

came  to  aid  them,  and  joyfully  have  accepted  the  grace  that 

is  by  faith,  they  did  verily  nothing  of  the  kind,  but  betook 

themselves  to  the  very  reverse :  for  they  rose  up  against  Him, 

setting  Him  at  nought  by  their  disobedience,  reviling  even  His 

divine  signs,  and  after  doing  and  saying  every  thing  that  was 

abominable,  finally  they  crucified  Him.  And  so  it  became  their 

lot  to  suffer  those  things  which  the  company  also  of  the  holy 

prophets  had  before  proclaimed.     For  one  of  them  said,  iC  God  Hos.  ix.  17. 

"  shall  put  them  far  away,  because  they  did  not  hear  Him,  and 

"  they  shall  be  wanderers  among  the  nations."     And  again, 

"  Because  Jerusalem  is  forsaken,  and  Judah  is  fallen,  and  their  Is.  iii.  8. 

"  tongues  are  with  iniquity ;  they  disobey  the  Lord ;  therefore 

"  now  is  their  glory  brought  low,  and  the  shame  of  their  faces 

"  hath  stood  up  against  them."  And  in  another  place  they  are 

thus  addressed  as  in  the  person  of  God  over  all ;  "  And  now,  Jer.  rii.  13. 

"  because  ye  have  done  all  these  works,  and  I  spake  unto  you 

"  and  ye  did  not  hear,  and  I  called  unto  you  and  ye  answered 

"  not :  therefore  will  I  do  unto  this  house,  on  which  My  name 

"  is  called,  and  wherein  ye  trust ;  and  to  this  place  which  I 

"  have  given  to  you  and  to  your  fathers  as  I  did  to  Shilom  : 

"  and  I  will  cast  you  from  before  My  face,  as  I  cast  away  your 

"  brethren,  even  the  whole  seed  of  Ephraim."     For  they  were 

delivered  up,  as  I  have  said,  to  desolation,  and  were  dispersed 

over  all  the  earth,  their  temple  being  consumed  with  fire,  and 

all  Judaea  taken  captive. 

That  this  would  be  the  case  Christ  had  before  announced  to 
the  disciples,  the  occasion  which  caused  Him  to  speak  upon 
this  subject  being  some  such  as  follows :  He  had  forewarned 
the  admirable  Peter,  that  he  would  thrice  deny  Him,  at  the 
time  namely  of  His  seizure,  when  the  band  of  Pilate's  sol- 
diers with  the  officers  of  the  Jews  brought  Him  to  the  chief 
priests  for  judgment  :  for  there  Peter  denied  Him.  And 
inasmuch  as  mention  had  now  once  been  made  of  His  seizure, 
and  of  his  being  taken  before  Caiaphas,  there  naturally  fol- 
lowed upon  this  allusion  a  reference  to  that  also  which  was 
next  to  come  to  pass,  even  His  passion  upon  the  cross  :  and 
then  it  was  that  He  foretold  the  war  about  to  burst  upon  the 
Jews,  and  which  with  unendurable  violence  spread  like  some 


680  COMMENTARY  UPON 

river  over  all  their  land.    On  this  account  He  says ;  "  When  I 
"  sent  you  without  purse  and  without  scrip  and  shoes,  lacked 
"  ye  anything  ?     And  they  said,  No.""     For  the  Saviour  sent 
the  holy  apostles,  with  the  command  to  preach  to  the  inha- 
bitants of  every  village  and  city  the  gospel  of  the  kingdom  of 
heaven,  and  to  heal  every  grief  and  every  sickness  among  the 
people.     And  on  their  journey  He  bade  them  not  to  occupy 
themselves  with  things  that  concern  the  body,  but  rather  with- 
out baggage  and  unencumbered,  and  resting  all  their  hope  of 
sustenance  on  Him,  so  to  traverse  the  land :  and  this  they  also 
did,  making  themselves  an  example  of  praiseworthy  and  apo- 
stolic conduct.     "  But  now,  He  saith,  he  that  hath  a  purse,  let 
"  him  take  it,  and  a  scrip  in  like  manner/'    Tell  me  then,  was 
this  because  on  second  thoughts  a  more  serviceable  plan  was 
devised  1     Would  it  have  been  better  on  the  former  occasion 
also  to  have  had  scrip  and  purse  ?     Or  if  not,  what  was  the 
cause  of  so  sudden  a  change  ?  What  need  had  the  holy  apostles 
of  purse  and  scrip  ?    What  answer  must  we  give  to  this?    That 
the  saying  in  appearance  had  reference  to  them,  but  in  reality 
applied  to  the  person  of  every  Jew  :  for  they  it  rather  was 
whom  Christ  addressed.     For  He  did  not  say  that  the  holy 
apostles  must  get  purse  and  scrip,  but  that  "  whosoever  hath  a 
"  purse,  let  him  take  it,"  meaning  thereby,  that  whosoever 
had  property  in  the  Jewish  territories,  should  collect  all  that 
he  had  together,  and  flee,  so  that  if  he  could  any  how  save 
himself,  he  might  do  so.     But  any  one  who  had  not  the  means 
of  equipping  himself  for  travel,  and  who  from  extreme  poverty 
must  continue  in  the  land,  let  even  such  one,  He  says,  sell  bis 
cloak,  and  buy  a  sword :  for  henceforth  the  question  with  all 
those  who  continue  in  the  land  will  not  be  whether  they  pos- 
sess anything  or  not,  but  whether  they  can  exist  and  preserve 
their  lives.     For  war  shall  befal  them  with  such  unendurable 
impetuosity,  that  nothing  shall  be  able  to  stand  against  it. 

And  next  He  tells  them  the  cause  of  the  evil,  and  of  a 
tribulation  so  severe  and  irremediable  befalling  them,  saying, 
11  that  He  is  about  according  to  the  Scriptures  to  be  numbered 
"  with  the  transgressors,"  plainly  referring  to  His  being  hung 
upon  the  cross  with  the  thieves  who  were  crucified  with  Him, 
and  so  enduring  a  transgressor's  punishment  :  "  and  the  dis- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  681 

"  pensation,  having  come  to  this,  will  now  have  an  end."    For 

He  endured  indeed  for  our  sakes  His  saving  passion,  and  thus 

far  the  daring  wickedness  of  the  Jews  proceeded,  and  this  was 

the  consummation  of  their  unbridled  fury:  but  after  the  passion 

upon  the  cross  every  hand  was  powerless,  ,;  for  the  enemy  had  Ps  lxxxix. 

"  no  advantage  over  Him,  and  the  Son  of  wickedness  could  no  "' 

"  more  hurt  Him."     For  He  arose,  having  trampled  upon  the 

grave  ;  He  ascended  up  into  heaven,  He  sat  down  on  the  right 

hand  of  God  the  Father;  and  hereafter  He  shall  come,  not  in 

mean  estate,  as  of  old,  nor  in  the  measure  of  human  nature, 

but  in  the  glory  of  the  Father,  with  the  holy  angels  as  His 

body-guard  ;    and  He  shall  sit  also  upon  the  throne  of  His 

glory,  "judging  the  world  in  righteousness,"  as  it  is  written.  Is.  xi.  4. 

Then,  as  the  prophet  saith,  "  they  shall  look  on  Him  Whom  Zech.  xii. 

"  they  pierced :"  and  Him  Whom  these  wretched  beings  ridi-  I0' 

culed,  as  they  saw  Him  hang  on  the  precious  cross,  they  shall 

behold  crowned  with  godlike  glory,  and  in  just  retribution  of  their 

wickedness  towards  Him,  shall  fall  into  the  pit  of  destruction. 

"  What  therefore,  He  says,  concerns  Me,  hath  an  end,"  as  far, 

that  is,  as  relates  to  My  suffering  death  in  the  flesh.  And  then 

shall  those  things  which  were  foretold  by  the  holy  prophets  in 

old  time,  happen  unto  those  who  slew  Him. 

And  in  foretelling  these  things,  the  Lord  was  speaking  of 
what  was  about  to  happen  to  the  country  of  the  Jews.  But  the 
divine  disciples  did  not  understand  the  deep  meaning  of  what 
was  said,  but  supposed  rather  that  He  meant  that  swords  were 
necessary,  because  of  the  attack  about  to  be  made  upon  Him 
by  the  disciple  who  betrayed  Him,  and  by  those  who  were 
assembled  to  seize  Him.  For  this  reason  they  say,  "  Lord, 
"  behold,  here  are  two  swords.""  And  what  is  the  Saviour's 
reply?  "It  is  enough."  Observe  how,  so  to  say.  He  even 
ridicules  their  speech,  well  knowing  that  the  disciples  not  hav- 
ing understood  the  force  of  what  was  said,  thought  that  swords 
were  required,  because  of  the  attack  about  to  be  made  upon 
Himself.  Fixing  His  look  therefore  upon  those  things  which 
befel  the  Jews  because  of  their  wicked  conduct  towards  Him, 
the  Saviour,  as  I  said,  ridicules  their  speech,  and  says,  "  It  is 
"  enough :"  yes,  forsooth,  two  swords  are  enough  to  bear  the 
brunt  of  the  war  about  to  come  upon  them,  to  meet  which 

43 


682  COMMENTARY  UPON 

many  thousand  swords  were  of  no  avail.  For  a  mighty  re- 
sistance was  made  by  the  pride  of  the  Jews  against  the  forces 
of  Augustus  Caesar  :  but  they  availed  nothing  ;  for  they  were 
besieged  with  overpowering  might,  and  suffered  all  misery. 
la.  xiv.  27.  For  as  the  prophet  Isaiah  saith,  "  That  which  the  holy  God 
"  purposeth,  who  shall  bring  to  nought  ?  and  His  hand,  when 
"  lifted  up,  who  shall  turn  aside  ?"  Let  us  beware  therefore 
of  provoking  God  to  anger  :  for  it  is  a  fearful  thing  to  fall  into 
His  hands.  But  to  those  who  believe  in  Christ  He  is  merciful ; 
even  to  those  who  praise  Him  ;  who  call  Him  their  Redeemer 
and  Deliverer;  who  minister  to  Him  with  spiritual  service,  and 
by  all  virtuous  conduct :  for  if  so  we  act  and  speak,  Christ  will 
make  us  His  own ;  by  "Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever,  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  683 


SERMON    CXLVL 

And  He  came  out  and  went,  as  He  was  wont,  to  the  Mount  C.  xxii.  39- 
of  Olives ;  and  the  disciples  also  followed  Him.  And  when  acid.  abroi 
He  was  at  the  place,  He  said  unto  them,  Pray  that  ye  BGy- 
enter  not  into  temptation.     And  He  went  apart  from  them 
about  a  stone's  throw,  and  knelt  doivn  and  prayed,  saying, 
Father,  if  Thou  wilt,  put  away  this  cup  from  Me:  but  not  J*?*™*? 
My  will,  but  Thine  be  done.    And  He  rose  up  from  prayer,  gTj. 
and  went  unto  the  disciples,  and  found  them  asleep  from  om '^*r43' 
sorrow.     And  He  said  unto  them,  Why  sleep  ye  ?    Arise,  add.  abrud 
pray  that  ye  enter  not  into  temptation. 

OUR  Lord  Jesus  Christ  requires  those  who  love  Him  to  be 
accurate  investigators  of  whatsoever  is  written  concerning  Him  : 
for  He  has  said,  "  that  the  kingdom  of  heaven  is  like  unto  a  Mat.  xiii. 
"  treasure  hid  in  a  field."     For  the  mystery  of  Christ  is  de-  44> 
posited,  so  to  speak,  at  a  great  depth,  nor  is  it  plain  to  the 
many :  but  he  who  uncovers  it  by  means  of  an  accurate  know- 
ledge, finds  the  riches  which  are  therein,  and  resembles  that 
wise  woman,  even  Mary,  of  whom  Christ  said,  that  "  she  had  Luke  x.  42. 
"  chosen  the  good  part,  that  should  not  be  taken  away  from 
"  her."  For  these  earthly  and  temporal  things  fade  away  with 
the  flesh :    but  those  which  are  divine  and  intellectual,  and 
that  benefit  the  life  of  the  soul,  are  firmly  established,  and 
their  possession    cannot   be  shaken.      Let  us  look  therefore 
into  the  meaning  of  the  lessons  set  before  us.     "  By  day  then 
"  the  Saviour  abode  in  Jerusalem,"  instructing  evidently  the 
Israelites,  and  revealing  to  them  the  way  of  the  kingdom  of 
heaven ;  but  when  the  evening  came,  He  continued  with  the 
holy  disciples  on  the  Mount  of  Olives  at  a  spot  called  Gethse- 
mane :  for  so  the  wise  Evangelist  Matthew  tells  us. 

r  These   verses,    containing   the  plurimis   Hil.)  copies,   both  Greek 

account  of  the  angel  appearing  unto  and    Latin,  of  St.  Luke's    Gospel, 

our  Lord  to  strengthen  Him,  and  They    are,    however,    retained    by 

of  His  sweating  drops  of  blood,  not  Tischendorf,   and   the   evidence  in 

only  are  omitted  by  B.,  hut  are  also  their  favour   may  be  seen   in   the 

expressly  said  by  Hilary  and  Jerome  notes  to  his  Greek  Test.    Ed.  vii. 

to  be  wanting  in  very  many  (com-  in  loc. 

4  3  2 


684  COMMENTARY  UPON 

When  therefore  Christ  came  thither,  as  the  same  Matthew 
Mac.  \<vi.  again  somewhere  says,  "  He  took  Peter  and  James  and  John, 
"  and  began  to  be  grieved  and  sore  distressed ;  and  to  say 
"  unto  them,  My  soul  is  sorrowful  even  unto  death.  And 
"  again,  having  gone  a  little  forward,  He  kneeled  and  prayed, 
"  saying,  Father,  if  Thou  wilt,  put  away  from  Me  this  cup ; 
"  but  not  My  will,  but  Thine  be  done/'  Behold  here,  I  pray, 
the  profoundness  of  the  dispensation  in  the  flesh,  and  the 
height  of  that  wisdom  which  no  words  can  tell :  fix  upon  it 
the  penetrating  eye  of  the  mind  :   and  if  thou  canst  see  the 

Rom.xi.33.  beautiful  art  of  the  mystery,  thou  also  wilt  say,  "  0!  the  depth 
"  of  the  riches  both  of  the  wisdom  and  the  knowledge  of  God! 
"  His  judgments  are  unsearchable,  and  His  ways  past  finding 
"  out."  "  He  began,  it  says,  to  be  grieved,  and  sore  dis- 
"  tressed."  For  what  reason,  0  Lord  ?  "Wast  Thou  also 
terrified  at  death  ?  Didst  Thou  being  seized  with  fear  draw 
back  from  suffering  ?  And  yet  didst  not  Thou  teach  the  holy 
apostles  to  make  no  account  of  the  terrors  of  death,  saying, 

Mat.  x.  28.  "  Fear  not  them  who  kill  the  body,  but  are  not  able  to  kill  the 
"  soul."  And  if  too  any  one  were  to  say  that  the  grace  of 
spiritual  fortitude  is  Thy  gift  to  the  elect,  he  would  not  err 
from  the  truth :  for  all  strength  is  from  Thee,  and  all  con- 
fidence and  heartiness  of  mind  in  every  more  excellent  en- 
counter. Thou  art  by  nature  Life,  and  the  cause  of  life. 
Thee  we  look  for  as  a  Saviour  and  Deliverer,  and  the  De- 
stroyer of  corruption.  From  Thee  all  receive  their  life  and 
being.  Thou  hast  made  every  thing  that  breathes.  The  angels 
are  for  Thee,  and  from  Thee,  and  by  Thee,  and  so  is  the  whole 
rational  creation.     Unto  Thee  the  blessed  David  spake  con- 

Ps.  civ.  30.  cerning  us,  "  Thou  sendest  Thy  Spirit,  and  they  are  created : 
"  and  Thou  renewest  the  face  of  the  ground."  How  therefore 
art  Thou  grieved,  and  sore  distressed,  and  sorrowful,  even  unto 
death  ?  For  plainly  Thou  knewest,  in  that  Thou  art  God  by 
nature,  and  knowest  whatsoever  is  about  to  happen,  that  by 
enduring  death  in  the  flesh  Thou  wouldst  free  from  death  the 
inhabitants  of  all  the  earth,  and  bring  Satan  unto  shame : — 
that  Thou  wouldst  set  up  a  trophy  of  victory  over  every  evil 
and  opposing  power :  that  Thou  wouldst  be  known  by  every 
one,  and  worshipped  as  the  God  and  Creator  of  all.  Thou 
knewest   that  Thou   wouldst  spoil   hell  : — that  Thou  wouldst 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  685 

deliver  those  that  are  therein,  from  bonds  that  had  endured 

for  many  ages :  that  Thou  wouldst  turn  unto  Thee  all  that  is 

under  heaven.     These  things  Thou  didst  Thyself  announce  to 

us  of  old  by  the  holy  prophets.     We  have  heard  Thee  clearly 

saying,  when  Thou  wast  like  unto  us,  "  Now  is  the  judgment  John  xu. 

"  of  this  world:  now  will  the  prince  of  this  world  be  cast  out.  31' 

"  And  I,  if  I  be  lifted  up  from  the  earth,  shall  draw  all  men 

"  unto  Me."     "  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  if  a  grain  of  wheat  John  xu. 

"  fall  not  into  the  ground  and  die,  it  abideth  alone :  but  if  it  "4" 

"  die,  it  bringeth  forth  much  fruit."     For  what  reason  there- 

fore  art  Thou  grieved  and  sore  distressed  ?     Yes,  He  says,  not 

unbefittingly  am  I  found  thus  in  anguish.     For  I  know  indeed 

that  by  consenting  to  suffer  the  passion  upon  the  cross,  I  shall 

deliver  all  beneath  the  heaven  from  every  evil,  and  be  the 

cause  of  unending  blessings  to  the  inhabitants  of  the   whole 

earth.     I  am  not  unaware  of  the  unloosing  of  death,  and  the 

abolition  of  corporeal  corruption,  and  the  overthrow  of  the 

tyranny  of  the  devil,  and  the  remission  of  sin.      But  withal 

it  grieveth  Me  for  Israel  the  firstborn,  that  henceforth  He  is 

not  even  among  the  servants.     The  portion  of  the  Lord,  and 

the  cord  of  My  inheritance,  will  be  "  the  portion  of  foxes,"  as  Pa  lxiii  to. 

it  is  written.     He  Who  was  the  beloved  one  is  greatly  hated : 

he  who  had  the  promises  is  utterly  stripped  of  My  gifts :  the 

pleasant  vineyard  with  its  rich  grapes  henceforth  will  be  a 

desert  land,  a  place  dried  up,  and  without  water.     "  For  I  will  is-  ▼  6. 

"  command  the  clouds  that  they  rain  no  rain  upon  it."     "  I  Is.  v.  5. 

"  will  break  through  its  hedge,  and  it  shall  be  a  spoil :  and  I 

"  will  beat  down  its  wall,  and  it  shall  be  trampled  under  foot." 

And  tell  me  then,  what  husbandman,  when  his  vineyard  is 

desert,  and  waste,  will  feel  no  anguish  for  it  ?     What  shepherd 

would  be  so  harsh  and  stern  as,  when  his  flock  was  perishing, 

to  suffer  nothing  on  its  account  ?     These  are  the  causes  of  My 

grief :  for  these  things  I  am  sorrowful.    For  I  am  God,  gentle, 

and  that  loveth  to  spare.     "  I  have  no  pleasure  in  the  death  Ez.xviii  :j. 

"  of  a  sinner,  but  rather  that  he  should  turn  from  his  evil  way 

."  and  live."     Right  therefore  is  it,  most  right,  that  as  being 

good  and  merciful,  I  should  not  only  be  glad  at  what  is  joyful, 

but  also  should  feel  sorrow  at  whatsoever  is  grievous.  1 

But  that  He  pitied  Jerusalem,  as  being  well  aware  of  what 
was  about  to  happen,  and  that  it  would  have  to  endure  all     ( 


686  COMMENTARY  UPON 

misery  because  of  its  crimes  against  Him,  thou  mayest  learn 
even  from  this.  For  He  went  up  from  Judaea  to  Jerusalem, 
Luke  six.  and,  as  the  Evangelist  says,  "  When  He  beheld  the  city,  He 
"  wept  over  it,  and  said,  Would  that  thou,  even  thou,  hadst 
"  known  the  things  of  thy  peace ;  but  now  they  are  hid  from 
"  thine  eyes."  For  as  He  wept  over  Lazarus,  in  pity  for  the 
whole  race  of  mankind,  which  had  become  the  prey  of  corrup- 
tion and  of  death  ;  so  we  say  that  He  was  grieved  at  seeing 
Jerusalem  all  but  involved  in  extreme  miseries,  and  in  calami- 
ties for  which  there  was  no  cure. 

And  that  we  mi^ht  learn  what  was  Hi3  wish  concerning: 
Israel s,  He  told  the  disciples,  that  He  is  in  grief  and  anguish. 
For  it  would  have  been  impossible  for  them  to  have  learnt 
what  was  hidden  within  Him,  if  He  had  not  revealed  by  words 
what  His  feelings  were. 

And  this  too  I  think  it  necessary  to  add  to  what  has  been 
said :  that  the  passion  of  grief,  or  malady,  as  we  may  call  it, 
of  sore  distress,  cannot  have  reference  to  the  divine  and  im- 
passive nature  of  the  Word ;  for  that  is  impossible,  inasmuch 
as  It  transcends  all  passion :  but  we  say  that  the  Incarnate 
Word  willed  also  to  submit  Himself  to  the  measure  of  human 
nature,  by  being  supposed  to  suffer  what  belongs  to  it.  As 
therefore  He  is  said  to  have  hungered,  although  He  is  Life 
and  the  cause  of  life,  and  the  living  bread;  and  was  weary 
also  from  a  long  journey,  although  He  is  the  Lord  of  powers ; 
so  also  it  is  said  that  He  was  grieved,  and  seemed  to  be  capa- 
ble of  anguish.  For  it  would  not  have  been  fitting  for  Him 
Who  submitted  Himself  to  emptiness,  and  stood  in  the  measure 
of  human  nature,  to  have  seemed  unwilling  to  endure  human 
things.  The  Word  therefore  of  God  the  Father  is  altogether 
free  from  all  passion  :  but  wisely  and  for  the  dispensation's 
sake  He  submitted  Himself  to  the  infirmities  of  mankind,  in 
order  that  He  might  not  seem  to  refuse  that  which  the  dispen- 
sation required :    yea,  He  even  yielded  obedience  to  human 

8  Mai   refers   this   paragraph   to  is  evident,  first,  because  the  verba 

Jerusalem,  reading  in  the  fem.  hf  used  are  those  of  the  text :    and, 

qvtt]  :  the  Syriac  however  has  the  secondly,  because  in  the  case  both 

pronoun  in  the  inasc,  but  as  the  of  Lazarus  and  Jerusalem,  our  Lord 

antecedent  is   very  remote,   I  had  shewed  His  sorrow  not  by  words, 

supplied  it,  and  translated   Israel,  but  by  tears. 
That  the  masc.  is  the  right  reading 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  687 

customs  and  laws,  only,  as  I  said,  He  did  not  bear  ought  of 
this  in  His  own  nature. 

There  is  however  much,  yea,  very  much,  to  be  added  to 
what  has  been  said ;  but  for  the  present  we  hold  in  our  nar- 
ration, and  reserve  what  is  wanting  for  another  meeting,  should 
Christ  our  common  Saviour  gather  us  here  once  again :  by 
Whom  and  with  Whom,  to  God  the  Father,  be  praise  and  do- 
minion, with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever.    Amen*. 

'A  passage  of  considerable  length  "  Him  as  our  representative  human 

follows  in  Mai,  p.  425,  explaining  "  nature  might  overcome  its  infe- 

our  Lord's  "  fear  of  death  as  being  "  rior  passions  by  the  power  of  the 

"  intended,  first,  to  prove  Him  very  "  word,  and  our  Lord  thus  become 

"  man,  fear  being  a  part  of  human  "  the  perfect  type  of  Christian  con- 

"  nature ;    and,   secondly,   that  in  "  duct." 


688  COMMENTARY  UPON 

SERMON  CXLVII. 

UPON    THE    SAME    SUBJECT. 

ONCE  again  I  am  come  to  pay  you  what  I  promised,  and 
to  add  a  fitting  conclusion  to  my  discourse  concerning  Christ. 
For  on  all  occasions  it  is  dangerous  to  be  guilty  of  untruth ; 
but  when  anv  thing;  of  the  kind  is  committed  in  those  things 
which  are  important  for  our  edification,  well  may  we  then  fear 
lest  we  bring  down  upon  us  condemnation  from  on  high,  and 
also  become  an  object  of  general  ridicule. 

We  said  therefore  at  our  last  meeting,  that  Christ  the  Sa- 
viour of  all  was  with  the  holy  disciples  upon  the  mount  of 
Olives,  while  that  many-headed  serpent,  even  Satan,  was  pre- 
paring for  Him  the  snare  of  death  ;  and  the  chiefs  of  the 
Jewish  synagogue  and  the  disciple  that  betrayed  Him  were,  so 
to  speak,  leaving  nothing  undone  to  gain  possession  of  His 
person,  and  had  already  gathered  those  who  were  to  seize 
Him,  and  who  consisted  of  a  band  of  the  soldiers  of  Pilate, 
and  a  multitude  of  wicked  officers.  Just  therefore  as  the  at- 
tempt was  about  to  be  made,  He  was  sorrowful,  and  ad- 
monished the  disciples  to  act  in  like  manner  suitably  to  the 
season,  saying,  "Watch  and  pray,  that  ye  fall  not  into  tempta- 
tion/' And  that  He  might  not  benefit  them  by  words  only, 
but  be  Himself  au  example  of  what  they  should  do,  "  having 
"  gone  apart  a  little,  about  a  stone's  throw,  He  knelt  down,  it 
"  says,  and  prayed,  saying,  Father,  if  Thou  be  willing,  remove 
"  this  cup  from  Me."  Now  some  one  perhaps  may  ask,  '  Why 
'  did  He  not  pray  with  the  holy  disciples,  but  having  gone 
'apart  from  the  rest,  prayed  by  Himself?'  It  was  that  we 
might  learn  the  pattern  of  that  mode  of  prayer  which  is  well 
pleasing  to  God.  For  it  is  not  right  when  we  pray  that  we  should 
expose  ourselves  to  the  public  gaze,  nor  seek  to  be  beheld  of 
many,  lest  perchance,  sinking  ourselves  in  the  mire  of  endea- 
vours after  pleading  men,  we  make  the  labour  of  our  prayers 
altogether  unprofitable.  Of  this  fault  the  scribes  and  Phari- 
sees were  guilty ;  for  our  Lord  even  once  rebuked  them  for 
loving  to  pray  in  the  corners  of  the  streets,  and  for  the  long 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  689 

supplications  which  they  offered  in  the  synagogues,  that  they 

might  be  seen  of  men.     But  for  those  whose  purpose  it  is  to 

live  uprightly,  and  who  are  anxious  to  hold  fast  by  their  love 

unto  Him,  He  lays  down  the  law  of  prayers  in  these  words : 

"  But  thou,  when  thou  prayest,  enter  thy  chamber,  and  close  Mat.  vi.  6. 

"  thy  door,  and  pray  to  thy  Father  Who  is  in  secret,  and  thy 

"  Father  Who  seeth  in  secret  shall  reward  thee."     Every 

where  therefore  we  find  Him  praying  alone,  that  thou  also 

mayest  learn  that  we  ought  to  hold  converse  with  God  over 

all  with  a  quiet  mind,  and  a  heart  calm  and  free  from  all 

disturbance.      For   the   wise  Paul   writes,  "I  will   therefore  i  Tim.  ii.  8. 

"  that  men  pray,  lifting  up  pious  hands,  without  wrath  and 

"  doubtings." 

He  was  praying  therefore,  when  already  those  who  were  to 
seize  Him  were  at  the  door.  And  let  no  man  of  understanding 
say,  that  He  offered  these  supplications  as  being  in  need  of 
strength11  or  help  from  another : — for  He  is  Himself  the  Fa- 
ther's almighty  strength  and  power: — but  it  was  that  we  might 
hereby  learn,  ever  to  put  away  from  us  carelessness  when 
temptation  harasses,  and  persecution  presses  upon  us,  and 
perfidy  contrives  for  us  its  snare,  and  makes  ready  the  net 
of  death.  For  it  is  the  very  means  of  our  salvation  to 
watch  and  fall  upon  our  knees,  and  make  constant  supplica- 
tions, and  ask  for  the  aid  that  cometh  from  above,  lest  per- 
chance it  be  our  lot  to  grow  weak,  and  suffer  a  most  terrible 
shipwreck. 

For  spiritual  bravery  is  indeed  a  thing  right  worthy  of  the 
saints :  but  those  who  would  resist  the  violence  of  temptations 
must,  I  tell  you,  have  a  determined  and,  so  to  speak,  an  un- 
flinching mind  :  for  it  is  the  act  of  utter  ignorance  to  be  over 
confident  in  conflicts,  nor  is  a  man  free  from  the  charge  of 
boastfulness,  who  is  thus  disposed:  we  must  therefore,  I  re- 
peat, unite  courage  and  patience  with  humbleness  of  mind ; 
and  should  any  temptation  then  befal,  our  mind  will  be  pre- 
pared bravely  to  resist  it.  Yet  let  us  ask  of  God  the  ability  to 
endure  manfully  :  for  we  are  commanded  in  our  prayers  to  say, 
"  Lead  us  not  into  temptation :  but  deliver  us  from  evil." 

u  The  word  translated  strength,      is  constantly  used  in  Syriac  to  ex- 
literally  means  "the  hand,"  but  this      press  "strength." 

4T 


690  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Behold  then,  yea,  see,  the  pattern  for  thy  conduct  depicted 
for  thee  in  Christ  the  Saviour  of  us  all :  and  let  us  also  ob- 
serve the  manner  of  His  prayer.  "  Father,  He  says,  if  Thou 
"  be  willing,  remove  this  cup  from  Me."  Seest  thou  that 
Christ  made  His  prayer  against  temptation  with  a  reverence 
befitting  man  ?  "  For  if  Thou  be  willing,  He  says,  remove  it." 
And  here  too  remember  what  the  blessed  Paul  wrote  concern- 

Heb.  v.  7.  ing  Him ;  "  He  Who  in  the  days  of  His  flesh  offered  up 
"  prayers  and  supplications  to  Him  Who  was  able  to  save  Him 
"  from  death,  with  strong  crying  and  tears,  and  was  heard 
"  because  of  His  reverence,  even  though  He  was  a  Son,  yet 
"  learned  obedience  by  what  He  suffered,  and  being  made  per- 
"  feet  became  the  cause  of  eternal  life  unto  all  them  that  obey 
"  Him."  For  as  though  one  of  us,  He  assigns  to  His  Father's 
will  the  carrying  out  of  whatever  was  about  to  be  done.  And 
if  therefore  it  happen  that  we  also  at  any  time  fall  into  unex- 
pected troubles,  and  have  to  endure  any  mental  conflict,  let  us 
beseech  God  not  so  much  that  it  may  end  according  to  our 
will,  but  rather  let  us  ask  that  whatever  He  knows  to  be  fit 
and  expedient  for  the  benefit  of  our  souls  may  be  brought  to 

Eom.  viii.  pass.  "  For  we  know  not  what  to  pray  for  as  we  ought :"  but 
He  is  a  treasure  house  of  every  thing,  and  to  those  who  love 
Him  He  gives  whatever  is  suitable  for  them. 

Now  what  I  have  said  is,  I  trust,  useful  for  the  benefit  of  you 
all ;  but  if  we  must  further  contrive  some  other  explanation 
for  the  prayer,  we  may  also  say,  that  it  rebukes  the  wicked- 
ness of  the  Jews :  and  in  what  way  let  us  now  explain.  Thou 
hast  heard  Christ  say,  "  Father,  if  Thou  wilt,  remove  this  cup 
"from  Me."  Was  then  His  passion  an  involuntary  act?  and  was 
the  necessity  for  Him  to  suffer,  or  rather  the  violence  of  those 
who  plotted  against  Him,  stronger  than  His  own  will  ?  Not  so, 
we  say.  For  His  passion  was  not  an  involuntary  act,  though 
yet  in  another  respect  it  was  grievous,  because  it  implied 
the  rejection  and  destruction  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews. 
For  it  was  not  His  will  that  Israel  should  be  the  murderer 
of  its  Lord,  because  by  so  doing  it  would  be  exposed  to 
utter  condemnation,  and  become  reprobate,  and  rejected  from 
having  part  in  His  gifts,  and  in  the  hope  prepared  for  the 
saints,  whereas  once  it  had  been  His  people,  and  His  only 
one,  and  His  elect,  and  adopted  heir.     For  Moses  said  unto 


%6 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  691 

them,  "  Behold,  the  heavens  and  the  earth  are  the  Lord's  thy  Deut.x.i4. 

"  God :  and  thee  hath  the  Lord  chosen  out  of  all  nations  to  be 

"  His  people."     It  was  right  therefore  that  we  should  clearly 

know,  that  through  pity  for  Israel  He  would  have  put  from 

Him  the  necessity  to  suffer  :  but  as  it  was  not  possible  for  Him 

not  to  endure  the  passion,  He  submitted  to  it  also,  because  God 

the  Father  so  willed  it  with  Him. 

But  come  and  let  us  examine  further  this  also.  '  Did  the  de- 
'  cree  of  God  the  Father,  and  the  will  of  the  Son  Himself,  call 
'  Him  as  of  necessity  to  His  passion  ?  And  if  so,  and  what  I 
•  have  said  be  true,  was  it  not  a  matter  of  necessity  for  some 
« one  to  be  the  traitor,  and  for  the  Israelites  to  proceed  to  such 
'  a  pitch  of  daring  as  to  reject  Christ,  and  put  Him  to  shame  in 
'  manifold  ways,  and  contrive  for  Him  also  the  death  upon  the 
'cross?'  But  if  this  were  so,  how  would  He  be  found  saying, 
"  Woe  unto  that  man  by  whom  the  Son.  of  man  is  betrayed  :  Mat.  xxvi. 
"  good  had  it  been  for  him  if  he  had  not  been  born?"  And  "4" 
what  just  cause  would  there  have  been  for  Israel  to  perish,  and 
be  condemned  to  the  miseries  of  war  ?  For  how  could  it 
oppose  God's  decree,  and  His  irresistible  purposes  ?  God  is  not 
unjust,  but  weighs  what  we  do  with  holy  judgment.  How 
therefore  can  He  treat  as  voluntary  that  which  was  involun- 
tary ?  For  God  the  Father  had  pity  upon  the  dwellers  upon 
earth,  who  were  in  misery,  caught  in  the  snares  of  sin,  and 
liable  to  death  and  corruption ;  bowed  also  beneath  a  tyrant's 
hand,  and  enslaved  to  herds  of  devils.  He  sent  from  heaven 
His  Son  to  be  a  Saviour  and  Deliverer:  Who  also  was  made  in 
form  like  unto  us.  But  even  though  He  foreknew  what  He 
would  suffer,  and  the  shame  of  His  passion  was  not  the  fruit  of 
His  own  will,  yet  He  consented  to  undergo  it  that  He  might 
save  the  earth,  God  the  Father  so  willing  it  with  Him,  from 
His  srreat  kindness  and  love  unto  mankind.  "For  He  so  Johniii.i6. 
"  loved  the  world,  that  He  gave  even  His  Only-begotten  Son, 
"  that  whosoever  believeth  in  Him  should  not  perish,  but  have 
"  everlasting  life."  As  regards  therefore  the  ignominy  of  His 
passion,  He  willed  not  to  suffer  :  but  as  it  was  not  possible  for 
Him  not  to  suffer,  because  of  the  cruelty  of  the  Jews,  and  their 
disobedience,  and  unbridled  violence,  "  He  endured  the  cross,  Heb.  xii.  2. 
"  despising  the  shame,"  "  and  was  obedient  unto  the  Father,  Phil.  ii.  8. 

4  t  2 


692  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  even  unto  death,  and  that  the  death  of  the  cross.  But  God, 
"  it  says,  hath  greatly  exalted  Him,  and  given  Him  a  name  that 
"  is  above  every  name ;  that  at  the  name  of  Jesus  Christ  every 
"  knee  should  bow  of  things  in  heaven,  and  things  in  earth, 
"  and  of  things  under  the  earth,  and  that  every  tongue  should 
"  confess  that  Jesus  Christ  is  Lord,  to  the  glory  of  God  the 
"  Father."  Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  693 


SERMON  CXLVIIL 

While  He  was  speaking,  behold  a  multitude ;  and  he  that  C.  xxii.  47- 
was  called  Judas,  one  of  the  twelve,  went  before  them,  and 
drew  near  unto  Jesus  to  kiss  Him.    For  he  had  given  them  add.  rod™ 

_,..__.  _         r  .  ,  yap  ffT]ij.(lov 

this  sign,  Whomsoever  I  kiss  is  He.     nut  Jesus  said  unto  ^Zuko.  av- 

him,  Judas,  betray  est  thou  the  Son  of  man  with  a  kiss?™"',  hv  hv, 

But  when  they  that  were  with  Him  saw  what  was  about  to  r6s  laru>  S. 

be  done,  they  said,  Lord,  shall  we  smite  with  the  sxvord  ?  add.  afoQ 

And  one  of  them  smote  the  servant  of  the  chief  priest,  and 

cut  off  his  right  ear.     But  Jesus  answered,  and  said,  Let 

alone  thus  far.     And  He  touched  his  ear  and  healed  him.  om,  ainov 

And  Jesus  said  unto  those  who  had  come  out  against  Him, 

and  who  were  the  chief  priests,  and  captains  of  the  temple, 

and  elders,  Are  ye  come  out  as  against  a  thief  with  swords 

and  staves  to  take  Me  ?    When  I  was  daily  with  you  in  add.  cn\\a~ 

the  temple,  ye  stretched  not  out  your  hands  against  Me  :   tiV  M* 

but  this  is  your  hour,  and  the  power  of  darkness. 

MANY  and  bitter  passions  wage  war  with  the  soul  of  man, 
and,  attacking  it  with  unendurable  violence,  humble  it  to  un- 
seemly deeds  :  but  worse  than  all  the  rest  is  that  root  of  all 
evil,  the  love  of  money,  into  whose  inextricable  nets  that  trai- 
torous disciple  so  fell,  that  he  even  consented  to  become  the 
minister  of  the  devil's  guile,  and  the  instrument  of  the  wicked 
chiefs  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews  in  their  iniquity  against 
Christ. 

And  this  the  purport  of  the  evangelic  lessons  again  plainly 
shows.  For  the  Saviour  had  forewarned  the  holy  apostles  that 
He  should  be  seized,  and  endure  by  the  hand  of  sinners  His 
passion  upon  the  cross.  And  with  this  He  also  commanded, 
that  when  temptation  pressed  upon  them  they  must  not  be 
weary,  nor  sleep  at  an  unseasonable  time,  but  rather  must 
watch  and  be  constant  in  prayers.  When  then  He  was  still 
speaking  of  these  things,  "  Behold,  it  says,  a  multitude,  and  he 
"  that  was  called  Judas,  one  of  the  twelve,  went  before  them." 
Dost  thou  see  that  the  blessed  Evangelist  grieves,  and,  so  to  speak, 


694  COMMENTARY  UPON 

even  faints  ?  For  he  does  not  permit  himself  even  to  retain  in 
his  remembrance  the  disciple  who  was  so  easily  bought  :  he 
refuses  even  to  name  that  wicked  one :  for  he  says,  "  he  that 
u  was  called  Judas."  For  what  ?  did  he  not  know  that  the  man 
was  numbered  with  the  elect,  and  counted  in  the  company  of 
the  holy  apostles  ?  But,  as  I  have  already  said,  he  hated  even 
his  name,  and  therefore  the  expression,  "he  that  was  called 
"  Judas." 

To  this,  however,  he  adds,  that  he  was  one  of  the  twelve : 
and  this  also  is  a  matter  of  great  importance  to  demonstrate 
more  fully  the  guilt  of  the  traitor's  crime.  For  he  who  had 
been  equally  honoured  with  the  rest,  and  adorned  with  apo- 
stolic dignities ;  he,  the  elect  and  beloved,  deigned  admittance 
to  the  holy  table,  and  the  highest  honours,  became  the  path- 
way and  the  means  for  the  murderers  of  Christ.  What  lamen- 
tation can  suffice  for  him,  or  what  floods  of  tears  must  not  each 
shed  from  his  eyes,  when  he  considers  from  what  happiness 
that  wretched  being  fell  into  such  utter  misery  !  For  the  sake 
of  worthless  pence  he  ceased  to  be  with  Christ,  and  lost  his 
hope  toward  God,  and  the  honour,  and  crowns,  and  life,  and 
glory  prepared  for  Christ's  true  followers,  and  the  right  of 
reigning  with  Him. 

It  will  be  worth  while,  however,  to  see  what  the  nature  was 
of  his  artifice.  He  had  given  then  those  murderers  a  sign, 
saying,  "  Whomsoever  I  kiss  is  He."  Completely  had  he  for- 
gotten the  glory  of  Christ,  and  in  his  utter  folly  imagined  per- 
haps that  he  could  remain  undetected  when  offering  indeed  a 
kiss,  which  is  the  type  of  love,  but  with  his  heart  full  of  bitter 
and  iniquitous  deceit.  And  yet  even  when  he  was  accompany- 
ing Christ  our  common  Saviour  in  His  journeys  with  the  other 
apostles,  he  often  had  heard  Him  foretelling  what  was  about  to 
happen  :  for,  as  being  God  by  nature,  He  knew  all  things, 
and  expressly  told  him  of  his  treachery ;  for  He  said  unto  the 
Mat.  xivi.  holy  apostles,  "  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  one  of  you  betray- 
"  eth  Me."  How  then  could  his  purposes  remain  unknown  ? 
No  :  but  there  was  the  serpent  within  him  struggling  against 
God;  he  was  the  dwelling-place  of  the  devil:  for  one  of  the 
holy  evangelists  has  said,  that  as  he  was  reclining  at  table 
with  the  rest  of  the  disciples,  the  Saviour  gave  him  a  piece  of 

John  xiii.    bread,  having  dipped  it  in  the  dish :    "  and  after  the  bread 
*7- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  695 

"  Satan  entered  into  him."  He  approaches  Christ  therefore 
as  one  beside  himself  with  wine ;  and  though  the  instrument 
of  fraud  and  treachery,  he  makes  a  show  of  extraordinary  af- 
fection :  and  therefore  Christ  very  justly  condemned  him  "with 
the  greater  severity,  saying,  "  Judas,  betrayest  thou  the  Son 
"  of  man  with  a  kiss  V  And  Matthew  says,  that  when  the 
traitor  drew  near  to  Christ,  our  common  Saviour,  he  both 
kissed  Him,  and  added  thereto,  «  Hail,  Master."  Sayest  thou  Mat.  xxri. 
hail  to  Him  Who  by  thy  instrumentality  is  made  the  prey  of49' 
death  ?  How  could  such  a  word  possibly  be  true  ?  So  that  we 
see,  that  inasmuch  as  that  false  one,  Satan,  was  within  Him,  he 
used  falsehood  even  in  saying,  Hail.  Because  of  such  deeds  the 
prophet  somewhere  says,  "  Their  tongue  is  a  piercing  spear-  Jer.  ix.  8. 
"  head  :  the  words  of  their  mouth  are  deceitful :  to  his  neigh- 
"  bour  he  speaketh  things  of  peace,  but  in  his  soul  there  is 
"  enmity." 

But  further,  we  must  also  call  to  mind  what  is  written  by 
the  divine  John  respecting  this  event  ;    for  he  has  related, 
"  that  the  officers  of  the  Jews  drew  near  to  seize  Jesus  :  and  John  xviii. 
"  He  advanced  to  meet  them,  saying,  Whom  seek  ye  ?     When  3- 
"  then  the  officers  said,  Jesus  of  Nazareth,  He  yielded  Himself 
"  into  the  hands  of  those  murderers,  saying,  I  am  He.     But 
"  they,  it  says,  went  back ;  and  this  happened  three  times." 
What  therefore  was  the  purpose  of  this  ?  and  for  what  reason 
did  the  Saviour  offer  Himself  unto  them,  but  they  fell  down 
when  they  heard  Him  say,  "I  am  He?"     It  was  that  they 
might  learn  that  His  passion  did  not  happen  to  Him  without 
His  own  will,  nor  could  they  have  seized  Him,  had  He  not 
consented  to  be  taken.     For  it  was  not  the  effect  of  their  own 
strength  that  they  took  Christ,  and  brought  Him  unto  the 
wicked  rulers,  but  He  yielded  Himself  up  to  suffer,  as  well 
knowing  that  His  passion  upon  the  cross  was  for  the  salvation 
of  the  whole  world. 

And  the  blessed  disciples,  pricked  with  the  goading  of  divine 
love,  drew  their  swords  to  repel  the  attack.  But  Christ  would 
not  permit  this  to  be  done,  but  rebuked  Peter,  saying,  "Put 
"  up  thy  sword  into  its  sheath  :  for  all  who  have  taken  swords 
"  shall  die  by  swords."  And  herein  He  has  given  us  also  a 
pattern  of  the  manner  in  which  we  must  hold  fast  by  our  love 
unto  Him,  and  of  the  extent  to  which  the  burning  zeal  of  our 


696  COMMENTARY  UPON 

piety  may  proceed.     For  He  would  not  have  us  use  swords 
wherewith  to  resist  our  enemies,  but  rather  employing  love  and 
prudence,  we  so  must  mightily  prevail  over  those  who  oppose 
4  Cor.  x.  5.  us.     And  similarly  Paul  teaches  us,  saying,  "Casting  down 
"  reasonings  and  every  high  thing  that  exalteth  itself  against 
"  the  knowledge  of  God,  and  bringing  captive  every  thought 
"  unto  obedience  to  Him."     For  the  war  for  truth's  sake  is 
spiritual,  and  the  panoply  that  becometh  saints  is  intellectual, 
EPh.  vi.  i4.  and  full  of  love  to  God.     "  For  we  must  put  on  the  breastplate 
"  of  righteousness,  and  the  helmet  of  salvation ;  and  take  the 
"  shield  of  faith,  and  the  sword  of  the  Spirit,  which  is  the  word 
'*  of  God."  And  so  then  the  Saviour  moderates  the  unmeasured 
heat  of  the  holy  apostles :  and  by  preventing  the  example  of 
such  an  act,  declares  that  those  who  are  the  chief  in  His  re- 
ligion have  no  need  in  any  way  whatsoever  of  swords.     And 
He  healed  with  divine  dignity  him  who  had  received  the  blow, 
so  giving  to  those  who  came  to  seize  Him  this  godlike  sign  also 
for  their  condemnation. 

But  that  no  one  prevailed  by  force  over  His  power  and  will, 
He  shews  by  saying;  "Are  ye  come  out  as  against  a  thief  with 
"  swords  and  staves  to  take  Me  ?  When  I  was  daily  with  you 
"  in  the  temple,  ye  stretched  not  out  your  hands  against  Me." 
Does  Christ  then  blame  the  chiefs  of  the  Jews  for  not  having: 
prematurely  contrived  for  Him  the  deadly  snare  ?  Not  such  is 
His  meaning,  but  this  rather :  when  it  was  easy  for  you  to 
take  Me,  as  each  day  I  taught  in  the  temple,  ye  seized  Me  not. 
And  why  ?  Because  I  did  not  will  as  yet  to  suffer,  but  rather 
was  waiting  for  a  fitting  season  for  My  passion.  And  this  sea- 
son has  now  arrived :  for  be  not  ignorant  that  "  this  is  your 
"  hour  and  the  power  of  darkness  :"  that  is,  that  a  short  time 
is  granted  you  during  which  you  have  power  over  Me.  But 
how  has  it  been  given  you,  and  in  what  manner  ?  By  the  will 
of  the  Father  consenting  thereunto  with  My  will.  For  I  willed 
that  for  the  salvation  and  life  of  the  world  I  should  submit 
Myself  to  My  passion.  You  have  therefore  one  hour  against 
Me,  that  is  a  very  short  and  limited  time,  being  that  between 
the  precious  cross  and  the  resurrection  from  the  dead.  And 
this  too  is  the  power  given  unto  darkness  :  but  darkness  is  the 
name  of  Satan,  for  he  is  utter  night  and  darkness,  and  the 
1  Cor.  iv.  4.  blessed  Paul  also  says  of  him,  u  that  the  God  of  this  world 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  697 

"  hath  blinded  the  minds  of  those  that  believe  not,  lest  the 
"  light  of  the  gospel  of  the  glory  of  Christ  should  shine  unto 
"  them."     Power  therefore  was  granted  unto  Satan  and  the 
Jews  to  rise  up  against  Christ:  but  they  dug  for  themselves  the 
pitfall  of  destruction.     For  He  indeed  saved  by  means  of  His 
passion  all  under  heaven,  and  rose  the  third  day,  havino-  tram- 
pled  under  toot  the  empire  of  death  :  but  they  brought  down 
upon  their  own   heads  inevitable  condemnation  in  company 
with  that  traitorous  disciple. x     Let  them  hear  therefore  the 
Holy  Ghost,  Who  says  by  the  voice  of  the  Psalmist,  "  Why  Ps.  ii.  r. 
"  have  the  heathen  raged,  and  the  nations  meditated  vain 
"  things  ?     The  kings  of  the  earth  stood  up,  and  the  rulers 
"  were  gathered  together  against  the  Lord  and  against  His 
"  Christ."    But  what  follows  this  ?    "  He  that  dwelleth  in  hea- 
"  ven,  it  says,  shall  laugh  at  them,  and  the  Lord  shall  deride 
"  them."     These  wretched  beings  then  involved  themselves  in 
the  crime  of  murdering  their  Lord  ;    but  we  praise  as  our 
Saviour  and  Deliverer  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ :   by  Whom  and 
with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise   and  dominion,  with 
the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  Amen. 

x  Mai  adds  from  A.   a  passage  to  them  thereby  that  they  could  not 

giving  exactly  the  same  explanation  now  have  seized  Him  had  not  His 

as  that  above  to  our  Lord's  ques-  own  will  concurred, 
tion,  namely,  that  He  pointed  out 


4U 


698 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


C.  xxii.  54- 
62. 

om.  avrhv 
BT. 


irtpiKadi- 
ffdvruy  B. 
(Tuyxadicraf- 
row  GSTr. 
add.  avr&v 
Qs. 
om.auToVB. 


om.  <rr)fjLtpov 
Gs. 

add.  &  rie- 
rpos  Tr. 


Mat.  xxvi. 
74- 


SERMON   CXLIX. 

And  they  took  Him,  and  led  Him  away,  and  brought  Him 
into  the  high  priest's  house  :  and  Peter  followed  afar  off. 
And  when  they  had  kindled  a  fire  in  the  midst  of  the  court, 
and  were  set  down  together,  Peter  sat  doivn  among  them  : 
and  a  certain  maid  beholding  him  as  he  sat  at  the  light, 
looked  earnestly  at  him  and  said,  This  man  also  was  with 
Him.  But  he  denied  Him,  saying,  Woman,  1  know  Him 
not.  And  after  a  little  while  another  saw  him,  and  said, 
Thou  also  art  one  of  them.  And  Peter  said,  Man,  I  am 
not.  And  about  the  space  of  an  hour  after,  another  confi- 
dently affirmed,  saying,  Of  a  truth  this  man  also  was  with 
Him  :  for  he  is  a  Galilosan.  But  Peter  said,  Man,  I  know 
not  what  thou  sayest.  And  immediately  while  he  was  yet 
speaking  the  cock  crew.  And  the  Lord  turned,  and  looked 
upon  Peter  :  and  Peter  remembered  the  word  of  the  Lord 
that  He  had  said  unto  him,  To-day  before  the  cock  crow 
thou  shalt  deny  Me  thrice.  And  he  went  out  and  wept 
bitterly. 

OUR  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  to  make  us  careful  in  whatever 
holy  occupations  we  undertake,  commanded  us  to  offer  up 
our  supplications  continually,  and  to  make  it  a  portion  of 
our  prayer  to  say,  "  Lead  us  not  into  temptation."  For 
the  violence  of  temptations  is  often  sufficient  to  shake  even 
a  thoroughly  steadfast  mind,  and  to  humble  unto  wavering, 
and  expose  to  extreme  terrors  even  a  courageous  and  strong- 
hearted  man.  And  this  it  was  the  lot  of  the  chosen  dis- 
ciple to  experience,  by  whom  I  mean  the  sacred  Peter.  For 
he  proved  weak,  and  denied  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all.  And 
this  denial  he  made  not  once  only,  but  thrice,  and  with  oaths. 
For  Matthew  has  said,  that  "  he  began  to  curse  and  to  swear, 
"  I  know  not  the  Man."  Now  there  are  some  who  would  have 
us  believe  that  what  the  disciple  swore  was,  that  he  did  not 
know  that  Jesus  was  a  man :  but  their  argument  fails  them, 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  699 

though  their  object  was  to  give  the  disciple  loving  help.  For 
it"  he  swore,  as  the}'  say,  that  he  did  not  know  that  Jesus  was 
a  man,  what  else  did  he  than  deny  Him  in  thus  overturning 
thejmystery  of  the  dispensation  in  the  flesh  '.  For  he  knew 
that  the  Onlv-begotten  Word  of  God  was  made  like  unto  us, 
that  is,  a  man:  for  this  he  openly  confessed,  saying,  " Thou  Mat.  xvi 
"  art  the  Christ,  the  Son  of  the  living  God."  Xow  he  did  not  l 
intend  in  savins  this  to  affirm,  that  as  beino;  one  merelv  such 
as  we  are  He  is  the  Son  of  God,  but  that  though  he  saw  Him 
standing  there  in  the  limits  of  human  nature, — Him  Who  is 
the  "Word  Which  transcends  everything  that  is  made,  and  Who 
sprung  forth  from  the  Substance  of  God  the  Father, — even  so, 
I  say,  he  did  not  shrink  from  acknowledging  and  confessing 
that  He  is  the  Son  of  the  living  God.  It  is  therefore  a  thing 
very  absurd  to  suppose,  that  though  he  knew  the  mystery  of 
the  dispensation  in  the  flesh,  he  yet  said  that  he  did  not  know 
that  Jesus  was  a  man.  What  therefore  is  the  fact  ?  He  was 
really  infirm  :  for  it  was  not  possible  for  Jesus  to  speak  falsely, 
Who  forewarned  him,  that  "  before  the  cock  crow  thou  shalt 
"  deny  Me  three  times." 

Nor  verily  do  we  say,  that  the  denial  took  place  in  order 
that  Christ's  words  might  come  true,  but  rather  that  His  object 
was  to  forewarn  the  disciple,  inasmuch  as  what  was  about  to 
happen  did  not  escape  His  knowledge.  The  misfortune  there- 
fore befel  the  disciple  from  the  cowardice  of  human  nature. 
For  as  Christ  had  not  jet  risen  from  the  dead,  nor  death  as 
yet  been  abolished,  and  corruption  wiped  away,  the  fear  of 
undergoing  death  was  a  thing  past  men's  endurance.  For  that 
this  miserable  act  arose,  as  I  said,  from  the  malady  of  human 
cowardice,  and  that  the  disciple  was  condemned  by  his  own 
conscience,  is  proved  both  by  his  lamentation  immediately  after- 
wards, and  by  his  tears  upon  his  repentance,  which  fell  from 
his  eyes  as  for  a  grievous  sin.  "  For  having  gone  out,  it  says, 
"  he  wept  bitterly,"  after  Christ  had  looked  upon  him,  and 
recalled  to  his  remembrance  what  He  had  said  unto  him. 

But  next,  it  is  worth  our  while  observing,  in  what  way 
his  sin  was  forgiven,  and  how  he  put  away  his  fault ;  for  the 
event  may  prove  of  no  slight  benefit  to  us  also  ourselves.  He 
did  not  then  defer  his  repentance,  nor  was  he  careless  about 

4  U  2 


700  COMMENTARY  UPON 

it :  for  as  rapid  as  was  his  descent  into  sin,  so  quick  were  his 
tears  because  of  it;  nor  did  he  merely  weep,  but  wept  bitterly; 
and  as  one  that  had  fallen,  so  bravely  did  he  spring  up  again. 
For  he  knew  that  the  merciful  God  somewhere  says  by  one  of 

Jer.  viii.  4.  the  prophets,  "  Shall  not  he  that  falleth  arise  ?  and  he  that 
"  backslideth,  shall  he  not  return?"  In  returning  therefore 
he  missed  not  the  mark :  for  he  continued  to  be  what  he  had 
been  before,  a  true  disciple.  For  when  he  was  warned  that  he 
should  thrice  deny  before  the  cock  crow,  even  then  he  won 
also  the  hope  of  forgiveness :  for  Christ's  words  unto  him  were, 
"  And  do  thou  also,  in  time  to  come,  when  thou  art  converted, 
"  strengthen  thy  brethren."  Words  such  as  these  belong  to 
One  "Who  again  appoints  and  restores  him  to  apostolic  powers : 
for  He  entrusts  him  again  with  the  office  of  strengthening  the 
brethren ;  a  thing  which  also  he  did. 

And  this  too  we  say ;  that  though  we  are  taught  the  falls 
of  the  saints  in  the  sacred  Scriptures,  it  is  not  that  we  may  be 
caught  in  similar  snares  from  disregarding  the  duty  of  stead- 
fastness, but  that  if  it  do  chance  that  we  prove  weak  in  aught 
that  is  necessary  for  salvation,  we  may  not  despair  of  being 
able  once  again  to  mount  up  unto  fortitude,  and,  so  to  speak, 
recover  our  health  after  an  unexpected  illness.  For  the  mer- 
ciful God  has  provided  for  the  inhabitants  of  earth  repentance 
as  the  medicine  of  salvation  :  and  this  I  know  not  how  meny 
endeavour  to  dispense  with,  saying  of  themselves  that  they  are 
clean,  and  in  their  great  madness  not  understanding,  that  to 
entertain  such  an  idea  of  themselves  is  full  of  all  impurity.  For 

Prov.  xx  9.  "  no  man  is  free  from  defilement,"  as  it  is  written.  And  besides 
this  we  say,  that  it  makes  God  angry  for  us  to  imagine  that 
we  are  free  from  all  impurity  :  for  He  is  even  found  saying 

Jer.  ii.  35.  Unto  one  of  those  who  led  polluted  lives,  "  Behold  I  have  a 
"  suit  with  thee  because  thou  sayest  I  have  not  sinned,  in  that 
"  thou  hast  acted  very  contemptuously  in  repeating  thy  ways." 
For  the  repetition  of  the  way  unto  sin  is  for  us,  when  we  are 
overtaken  by  offences,  to  refuse  to  believe  that  we  are  guilty 
of  the  defilement  which  arises  from  them. 

'  But  yes,  verily !  they  say,  the  God  of  all  pardons  the  sins 

T  Said  in  the  margin  to  be  "  against  the  Novatians." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  701 

'  of  those  who  are  not  as  yet  baptized,  but  not  so  of  those  who 
'  have  been  already  admitted  to  His  grace/     And  what  do  we 
say  to  this  ?     That  if  they  lay  down  laws  according  to  their 
own  fancy,  their  words  do  not  much  concern  us.     But  if  thev 
cleave  to  the  divinely-inspired  Scriptures,  when  was  the  God 
of  all  unmerciful  ?     Let  them  hear  Him  when  He  cries  aloud, 
"  Tell  thou  thy  former2  iniquities,  that  thou  mayest  be  justi-  Is.  xliii.  ?6. 
"  fied."     Let  them  also  call  to  mind  the  blessed  David,  who 
says  in  the  Psalms,  "  Shall  God  forget  to  be  merciful  :  or  shall  Ps.lxxrii.9. 
"  He  gather  up  His  mercies  in  His  wrath  1"     And  again,  "  I  Ps.xxxii.5. 
"  said,  I  will  acknowledge  against  myself  my  iniquity  unto  the 
"  Lord  :   and  Thou  forgavest  the  wickedness  of  my  heart." 
And  besides  this,  they  ought  not  to  forget  that  before  Christ 
was  seized,  or  Peter  denied  Him,  he  had  been  a  partaker  of 
the  body  of  Christ,  and  of  His  precious  blood.     "  For  He  took  Mat.  xxvi. 
"  bread  and  blessed,  and  gave  to  them,  saying,  This  is  My  2(5- 
"  body.    And  in  like  manner  also  of  the  cup,  saying,  Drink  ye 
"  all  of  it :  for  this  is  My  blood  of  the  new  covenant."   Behold 
then,  manifestly,  that  after  having  been  a  partaker  of  the  mystical 
eucharist,  he  fell  into  sin,  and  received  forgiveness  upon  his 
repentance.     Let  them  then  not  find  fault  with  the  gentleness 
of  God  :  let  them  not  think  scorn  of  His  love  to  mankind,  but 
call  to  mind  Him  Who  plainly  says,  "  The  wickedness  of  the  Ez.  xxxiii. 
"  wicked  shall  not  hurt  him  in  the  day  wherein  he  turneth  l2- 
"  away  from  his  iniquity."     And  when  God  thus  offers  us  con- 
version on  whatever  day  a  man  be  willing  to  practise  it,  why 
do  they  not  rather  crown  with  grateful  praises  Him  Who  aids 
them,  instead  of  foolishly,  and,  so  to  say,  contumaciously  op- 
posing Him  ?  for  by  so  doing  they  bring  condemnation  upon 
their  own  heads,  and  call  down  upon  themselves   inevitable 
wrath.     For  the  merciful  God  ceaseth  not  so  to  be ;  since,  ac- 
cording'to  the  voice  of  the  prophet,  "He  willeth  mercy.'"  Mic.vii.18. 

Let  us  therefore  strive  with  all  our  might,  lest  we  fall  into 

z  In  the  Animadvertenda  to  the  but    as    the   Syriac    constantly   so 

Syriac  edition,  I  have  hazarded  the  points  it,  it  is  evident  that  S.  Cyril 

conjecture  that  the  sign  of  the  plu-  read  npuras  for  vrpmros,  and  con- 

ral  was  erroneously  attached  to  the  sequently  the  verse  should  always 

word  former,  as    the  Sept.    reads,  have  been  translated  as  above. 
"Tell   thou    thy   iniquities  first;" 


702  COMMENTARY  UPON 

sin,  and  let  a  steadfast  love  unto  Christ  be  fixed  unchangeably 

Rom.  viii.   in  us  while  we  say  in  the  words  of  the  blessed  Paul,  "  Who  shall 

35-  «  separate  me  from  the  love  of  Christ  ?   Shall  tribulation  or 

"  distress,  or  persecution,  or  famine,  or  nakedness,  or  peril,  or 

"  sword  V     But  if  temptation  assail  us,  and  so  it  chance  that 

,  we  prove  but  weak,  let  us  weep  bitterly ;  let  us  ask  forgiveness 

of  God :  for  He  healeth  those  that  are  contrite  ;  He  raiseth 

up  the  fallen  ;  He  stretcheth  out  His  saving  hand  to  those  who 

have  gone  astray :  for  He  is  the  Saviour  of  all,  by  Whom  and 

with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with 

the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever,  A.inen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  703 


SERMON   CL. 

And  the  men  who  held  Him  mocked  and  smote  Him:  and -ft. 
when  they  had  blindfolded  Him,  they  asked  Him,  saying,  a^*  BST. 
Prophesy,  who  is  he  that  smote  thee  ?    And  many  other  J. "   r"ro' 


things  blasphemously  spake  they  against  Him.     And  when  add-  *™"  „ 
it  was  day,  the  council  of  the  elders  of  the  people,  composed  rb  vpS**.- 
of  the  chief  priests  and  scribes,  came  together,  and  they  led  "ov  "?  ,Gy- 
Him  into  their  assembly :  and  they  said,  If  Thou  be  the  BT. 
Christ,  tell  us.     And  He  said  unto  them,  If  I  tell  you,  ye 
will  not  believe  :  and  if  I  also  ask  you,  ye  will  not  return  om.  *ol,  et 
Me  an  answer.     But  hereafter  shall  the  Son  of  man  sit  on  add.  a  \wo- 
the  right  hand  of  the  power  of  God.     Tlien  they  all  said,  *W"«  G*- 
Art  Thou  therefore  the  Son  of  God  ?     And  He  said  unto 
them,  Ye  say  that  I  am.     And  they  said,  What  further 
need  have  we  of  witness  ?    For  we  ourselves  have  heard  of 
His  mouth. 

HERE  too  let  the  prophet  Jeremiah  say  of  the  race  of 
Israel,  "  Who  will  grant  for  my  head  to  be  waters,  and  my  Jer  ix.  i. 
"  eyes  a  fountain  of  tears,  that  I  may  weep  for  this  people  • 
"  day  and  night  ?"    For  what  lamentation  can  suffice  for  those 
who  fell  into  the  pit  of  destruction  because  of  their  wicked 
conduct  unto  Christ,  and  for  guilt  so  great,  that  not  with 
words  only  did  they  grieve  Him,  and  mock  Him  with  blas- 
phemous cries,  but  even  laid  sinful  hands  upon  Him,  and  made 
ready  for  Him  the  snare  of  death?     And  so  contumeliously 
did  they  treat  him,  wickedly  making  Him  their  sport,  as  even 
to  venture  to  smite  Him  :  for  so  we  have  this  day  heard  the 
holy  evangelist  say,  "  For  the  men  who  held  Him  mocked  and 
"  smote  Him,  saying,  Prophesy,  who  is  he  that  smote  Thee  ?" 
"  But  He,  when  He  was  reviled,  reviled  not  again:  and  when  1Pet.ii.23. 
"  He  suffered,  He  threatened  not,  but  committed  His  cause  to 
"  Him  that  judgeth  righteously/'     Well  therefore  might  we 
utter  that  which  was  said  of  certain  men  by  one  of  the  holy 
prophets,  "  The  heavens  were  astonished  thereat,  and  shud-  Jer.  ii.  12. 
"  dered  very  greatly,  saith  the  Lord."     For  the  Lord  of  earth 
and  heaven,  the  Creator  and  Artificer  of  all,  the  Kino-  of  kino-s 
and  Lord  of  lords, Who  is  of  such  surpassing  greatness  in  glory 
and  majesty,  the  foundation  of  everything,  and  that  in  which 


704  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Col.  i.  17.  it  exists  and  abides — "  for  all  things  exist  in  Him" — He  Who 
is  the  breath  of  all  the  holy  spirits  in  heaven,  is  scorned  like 
one  of  us,  and  patiently  endures  bufferings,  and  submits  to  the 
ridicule  of  the  wicked,  offering  Himself  to  us  as  a  perfect  pat- 
tern of  longsuffering,  or  rather  manifesting  the  incomparable 
greatness  of  His  godlike  gentleness. 

Or  perhaps  even  He  thus  endures  to  rebuke  the  infirmity 
of  our  minds,  and  shew  that  the  things  of  men  fall  as  far  below 
the  divine  excellencies  as  our  nature  is  inferior  to  His.    For  we 
who  are  of  earth,  mere  corruption  and  ashes,  attack  at  once 
those  who  would  molest  us,  having  a  heart  full  of  fierceness 
like  savage  beasts.     But  He,  Who  in  nature  and  glory  tran- 
scends   the   limits  of  our  understanding  and  our  powers  of 
speech,  patiently  endured  those  officers  when  they  not  merely 
mocked,  but  even  smote  Him.     "For  when  they  had  blind- 
"  folded  Him,  it  says,  and  afterwards  smitten  Him,  they  asked 
"  Him,  Prophesy,  who  is  he  that  smote  Thee  ?"  They  ridicule, 
as  if  He  were  some  ignorant  person,  Him  Who  is  the  Giver  of 
all  knowledge,  and  Who  even  sees  what  is  hidden  within  us  : 
for  He  has   somewhere   said  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets, 
Jobxxxviii.  "  Who  is  this  that  hideth  from  Me  counsel,  and  shutteth  up 
"  words  in  his  heart,  and  thinketh  that  from  Me  he  hideth 
"  them  V*     He  therefore  Who  trieth  hearts  and  reins,  and 
Who  is  the  Giver  of  all  prophecy,  how  could  He  not  know  who 
Johnxii.40.  it  was  that  smote  Him?     But  as  Christ  Himself  said,  "  Dark- 
"  ness  hath  blinded  their  eyes,  and  their  minds  are  blinded." 
Is.  xxbc.  9.  Of  them  too  therefore  may  one  say,  "  Woe  to  them  that  are 
Deut.xxxii.  "  drunken,  but  not  with  wine!11  "  For  their  vine  is  of  the  vine 
"  of  Sodom,  and  their  tendril  of  Gomorrah." 

But  when  at  the  dawn  of  day  their  wicked  assembly  was 
gathered  together,  He  Who  is  the  Lord  of  Moses,  and  the 
Sender  of  the  prophets,  after  having  been  thus  lawlessly 
mocked,  was  brought  into  the  midst ;  and  they  asked  if  He 
were  the  Christ  ?  0  senseless  Pharisee,  if  thou  askest  because 
thou  knowest  not,  surely  until  thou  hadst  learnt  the  truth  thou 
oughtest  in  no  wise  to  have  grieved  Him,  lest  haply  thou 
shouldest  grieve  God:  but  if  thou  makest  pretence  of  igno- 
rance, while  really  thou  knowest  well  that  He  is  the  Christ, 
Gal.  vi.  7.  thou  must  hear  what  the  sacred  Scripture  saith,  "God  is  not 
"  deceived." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  705 

But  tell  rae,  why  dost  thou  question  Him,  and  wish  to  learn 
of  Himself,  whether  He  be  the  Christ?  For  it  is  easy  enough 
to  obtain  the  knowledge  of  Him  from  the  law  and  the  pro- 
phets. Search  the  writings  of  Moses  :  thou  wilt  see  Him  de- 
picted there  in  manifold  ways.  For  He  was  sacrificed  as  a 
lamb  :  He  vanquished  the  destroyer  by  His  blood :  and  was 
prefigured  also  in  many  other  forms.  Examine  too  the  writ- 
ings of  the  prophets  ;  thou  wilt  hear  them  proclaiming  His 
divine  and  wonderful  miracles.  "  For  then,  they  say,  shall  the  Is.  xx.w.  5. 
"  eyes  of  the  blind  be  opened,  and  the  ears  of  the  dumb  shall 
"  hear  :  then  shall  the  lame  man  leap  as  a  hart,  and  the 
"  tongue  of  the  stammerers  shall  be  plain."  And  again,  "  The  Ts.  xxvi.19. 
"  dead  shall  arise,  and  those  who  are  in  the  graves  shall 
"  awake  :  for  the  dew  from  Thee  is  healing  to  them."  Since 
therefore  even  ye  yourselves  see  the  perfect  clearness  of  the 
accomplishment  of  the  prophecies  respecting  Him,  why  do  ye 
not  rather  acknowledge  Him  on  the  evidence  of  His  divine 
miracles,  and  of  His  ineffable  works?  And  this  too  Christ 
Himself  said  unto  you ;  "  The  works  which  My  Father  gave  John  v.  16. 
"  Me  to  do,  those  works  bear  witness  of  Me  that  He  sent  Me." 
And  again,  "  If  I  had  not  done  among  them  the  works  which  John  xv.  34. 
"  no  other  man  did,  they  had  not  had  sin  :  but  now  they  have 
"  both  seen  and  hated  both  Me  and  My  Father."  The  rulers 
therefore  of  the  Jews,  together  with  the  people  under  their 
charge,  were  in  very  truth  unbelieving,  and  thoroughly  with- 
out understanding. 

I  think,  however,  that  we  ought  to  examine  th#  words  used 
by  Christ :  for  they  were  a  reproof  of  the  want  of  love  to  God 
of  which  the  Scribes  and  Pharisees  were  guilty.  When  there- 
fore they  ask  whether  He  is  in  truth  the  Christ,  and  would 
learn  this  very  thing,  He  says,  "  If  I  tell  you,  ye  will  not  be- 
"  lieve ;  and  if  I  ask,  ye  will  not  return  an  answer."  Come 
therefore,  and  let  me  explain  to  you,  as  to  men  glad  to  be 
taught,  what  the  occasion  was  on  which  they  heard,  and  would 
not  believe ;  and  that  on  which  they  were  silent  when  ques- 
tioned. When  Christ  then  went  up  to  Jerusalem,  He  found  John  H.  13. 
in  the  temple  people  selling  sheep  and  oxen  and  doves,  and 
moneychangers  sitting :  and  having  made,  it  says,  a  kind  of 
scourge  of  cords,  He  drove  them  all  out  of  the  temple,  saying, 
"  Take  these  things  hence :  and  make  not  My  Father's  house 

4x 


706  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  a  house  of  merchandize."     Because  therefore  He  called  God 
His  Father,  those  who  were  sacrificing  in  the  temple  murmured 
Mat.  xxi.    and  attacked  Him,  saying,  "  By  what  authority  doest  Thou 
*3«  "  these  things ?   And  who  gave  Thee  this  authority?"    And  to 

this  Christ  replied,  "  I  will  also  ask  you  a  word,  which  if  you 
"  tell  Me,  I  also  will  tell  you  by  what  authority  I  do  these 
"  things.  The  baptism  of  John,  whence  was  it,  from  heaven, 
"  or  of  men?  And  they,  it  says,  reasoned  with  themselves, 
"  saying,  If  we  say,  From  heaven.  He  will  say  unto  us,  Why 
"  did  ye  not  believe  him  ?  But  if  we  say,  Of  men,  we  fear  the 
"  multitude  :  for  all  held  John  as  a  prophet.  And  they  an- 
"  swered  and  said,  We  do  not  know.  And  Christ  said  thereto, 
"  Neither  do  I  tell  you  by  what  authority  I  do  these  things." 
Mat.  xxii.  And  on  another  occasion  He  asked  them,  saying,  "  What 
**•  "  say  ye  of  Christ?  Whose  Son  is  He  ?  And  they  said,  David's. 

"  And  afterwards  the  Lord  said  unto  them,  How  therefore  does 
"  David  in  spirit  call  Him  Lord,  saying,  The  Lord  said  unto 
"  my  Lord,  Sit  Thou  on  My  right  hand,  until  I  place  Thy  ene- 
"  mies  as  a  footstool  under  Thy  feet.  If  therefore  David  call 
"  Him  Lord,  how  is  He  his  Son?"  And  to  this  again  they 
were  silent3.  Thou  seest  that  Christ  speaks  truly  when  He 
says,  ;'  And  if  I  ask  you,  ye  will  not  return  Me  an  answer." 

Thou  shalt  see  too  that  the  other  declaration  is  equally  true: 
and  what  is  this  ?  "  If  I  tell  you,  ye  will  not  believe."  For  the 
John  x.  12.  blessed  John  the  Evangelist  writes,  that  "  it  was  the  feast  of 
"  the  dedication  at  Jerusalem,  and  it  was  winter :  and  Jesus 
"  was  walking  in  the  temple  in  Solomon's  porch.  The  Jews 
"  therefore  came  round  about  Him,  and  said  unto  Him,  How 
"  long  wilt  Thou  lift  up  our  soul  ?  If  Thou  art  the  Christ,  tell 
"  us  plainly.  And  Jesus  answered  them,  I  told  you,  and  ye 
"  will  not  believe  :  the  works  that  I  do  in  My  Father's  name, 
"  they  bear  witness  of  Me  ;  but  ye  will  not  believe." 

And  to  make  their  condemnation  more  severe,  in  respect,  I 
mean,  of  their  refusing  to  believe  on  Him,  He  further  clearly 
sets  before  them  His  glory,  saying,  "  But  hereafter  the  Son  of 
"  man  shall  sit  on  the  right  hand  of  the  power  of  God."  When, 
He  says,  I  was  in  form  like  unto  you,  though  by  nature  and  in 

»  Mai,  who  has  given  the  main      the  Syriac,  to  explain  how  Christ  is 
points  of  the  sermon  thus  far  cor-      both  David's  Son  and  his  Lord, 
rectly,  now  (p.  421.)  separates  from 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  707 

truth  the  Son  of  God  the  Father,  ye  made  no  account  of  Me. 
And  jet  how  was  it  not  right  that  the  excellent  art  of  the  dis- 
pensation in  the  flesh  should  not  escape  your  notice,  inasmuch 
as  ye  are  learned  in  the  law,  and  nurtured  in  the  writings  of 
Moses,  nor  are  the  predictions  of  the  holy  prophets  unknown 
to  you.  But  since  ye  have  brought  yourselves  to  so  great  want 
of  knowledge,  and  being  filled  with  utter  ignorance,  recognise 
not  the  mystery  concerning  Me,  I  tell  you  of  necessity  that 
there  is  granted  you  but  a  short  and  narrow  season  for  your 
pride  and  wickedness  against  Me,  even  until  My  precious  cross. 
For  immediately  after  this  I  clothe  Myself  in  honour :  I  ascend 
to  the  glory  which  I  had  from  the  beginning  :  I  am  made  even 
in  the  flesh  the  partner  of  God  the  Father  on  His  throne,  and 
possess  sovereignty  over  all,  even  though  I  have  taken  upon 
Me  your  likeness.     When  Christ  was  thus  speaking,  the  troop 
of  Pharisees  was  inflamed  with  uncontrollable  wrath  :  they  catch 
at  the  expression  as  a  pretext  for  blasphemy,  and  accuse  the 
truth  itself:  they  say,  that  "  no  longer  need  we  any  testimony,'' 
as  being  themselves  the  hearers  of  His  words.    And  what  then 
had  they  heard  Him  say?      0   vile  and  senseless  men,  ye 
•wanted  to  learn  whether  He  were  the  Christ :    He  taught  you 
therefore  that  by  nature  and  in  truth  He  is  the  Son  of  God 
the  Father,  and  with  Him  shares  the  throne  of  Deity.    There- 
fore, as  ye  confessed,  henceforth  ye  have  no  need  of  testimony, 
for  ye  have  heard  Him  speak  :    hence  might  ye  best  have 
learnt  that  He  is  the  Christ :  and  this  would  have  proved  for 
thee  the  pathway  unto  faith,  hadst  thou  only  been  one  of  those 
who  would  know  the  truth.     But  they,  making  even  the  path- 
way of  salvation  an  occasion  for  their  souls"  ruin,  understand 
not :  senselessly  they  slay  Him,  keeping  but  one  aim  in  view 
in  contempt  of  all  law,  and  utter  disregard  of  the  divine  com- 
mands:  for  it  is  written,  "The  holy  and  the  just  thou  shalt  Ex. xxiii. 7. 
"  not  kill."    But  they,  as  I  said,  paid  no  regard  whatsoever  to 
the  sacred  commands,  but  rushed  down,  as  it  were,  some  steep 
descent,  to  fall  into  the  snares  of  destruction. 

Such  then  was  their  conduct :  but  we  offer  our  praises  to 
God  the  Word,  Who  for  our  salvation  became  man ;  by  Whom 
and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,, 
with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever  and  ever.  Amen. 

4x2 


ros 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


C.xxiii.  i-j, 
18,  19. 

OIU.  aliru/v 

s. 

om.  fjfuuy 

Gs. 

om.  Kal 
GTs. 


om.  teat  Gs. 


Is.  iii. 


SERMON  CLI. 

And  the  whole  multitude  arose  and  led  Him  unto  Pilate. 
And  they  began  to  accuse  Him,  saying,  We  found  this  man 
-perverting  our  -people,  and  forbidding  to  give  tribute  to 
Cesar,  and  saying  of  Himself  that  He  is  Christ,  a  King. 
And  Pilate  asked  Him,  saying,  Art  Thou  the  King  of  the 
Jews?  And  He  answered  him,  and  said,  Thou  say  est. 
Then  said  Pilate  unto  the  chief  priests  and  the  multitudes, 
I  find  no  cause*  at  all  in  this  Man.  But  they  vehemently 
asserted,  that  He  perverteth  the  people,  teaching  in  all  Ju- 
doza,  and  having  begun  from  Galilee  even  to  this  place. 
Andc  they  cried  out,  the  whole  multitude  at  once,  saying, 
Away  with  this  Man,  and  release  unto  us  Barabbas :  who 
for  some  sedition  made  in  the  city  and  for  murder  was  cast 
into  prison. 

A  disgraceful  malady,  my  brethren,  is  want  of  understand- 
ing and  folly  of  heart,  accompanied  by  the  inventions  of  base 
thoughts,  which  lead  men  on  to  every  thing  that  is  wicked, 
and  often  even  make  us  sin  against  the  glory  of  God.  And 
this  we  can  see  was  the  case  with  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews ; 
for  they  sinned  against  Christ,  and  therefore  they  have  suf- 
fered all  misery,  being  condemned  by  the  just  sentence  of  God 
unto  that  fate  to  which  they  brought  Him,  Who  would  have 
raised  them  up  unto  life.  For  they  led  Jesus  unto  Pilate,  and 
were  themselves  too  delivered  up  to  the  hosts  of  the  Romans, 
who  took  all  their  land  captive,  and  stormed  also  their  city 
which  erewhile  had  been  the  holy  and  the  noble,  and  gave 
those  who  were  dwelling  therein  as  a  prey  to  sword  and  fire. 
In  them  therefore  were  fulfilled  the  predictions  of  the  holy 
prophets :  for  one  saith,  "  Woe  unto  the  wicked :  evils  shall 
"  happen   unto  him,  according  to  the  works  of  his  hands." 


b  The  Syriac  has  taken  atnov  as 
a  substantive,  and  translated  it  as 
in  the  text. 

c  The  Syriac  omits  vv.  6-17,  but 
only  to  bring  the  several  parts  of 


the  narrative  nearer  together,  as 
these  verses  are  acknowledged  in 
the  body  of  the  Sermon.  Subse- 
quently it  passes  over  vv.  20-23, 
but  of  these  again  it  quotes  v.  21. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  709 

And  another,  "As  thou  hast  done,  so  shall  it  be  done  unto  thee:  Obad.  15. 
"  thy  retribution  shall  be  recompensed  upon  thy  head/' 

But  let  us  see  what  was  the  manner  of  their  wickedness, 
and  what  also  they  said  unto  Pilate,  when  framing  their  ac- 
cusations against  our  common  Saviour  Christ.  "  We  found 
"  this  man  perverting  our  people,  and  forbidding  to  give  tri- 
"  bute  to  Caesar,  and  saying  of  Himself  that  He  is  Christ  a 
"  King."  And  yet,  but  a  short  time  before  He  was  tried  by 
you,  and  of  questions  such  as  this  no  point  was  raised ;  only 
He  was  asked,  whether  He  were  the  Christ.  This  it  was 
which  ye  then  sought  to  learn,  and  beside  it  absolutely  no- 
thing. And  so,  meeting  your  questions,  He  sought  to  shew 
both  that  He  is  the  Christ,  and  that  by  nature  and  truly  He 
is  the  Son  of  God  the  Father.  For  He  said,  "  Ye  shall  see 
"  the  Son  of  man  sitting  on  the  right  hand  of  power."  And 
tell  me,  I  pray,  whose  is  it  to  sit  with  the  Father,  but  His 
"Who  by  nature  is  the  Son?  For  of  all  that  is  made  nothing 
whatsoever  may  boast  of  sitting  on  the  throne  of  Deity :  for 
every  created  being  is  put  under  the  feet  of  the  divine  and 
supreme  nature,  Which  rules  over  all,  and  transcends  every 
thing  whatsoever  which  has  been  brought  into  being.  God 
the  Father  alone  is  set  upon  the  throne  high  and  lifted  up, 
but  He  shares  His  seat  with  the  Son,  Who  is  ever  with  Him, 
and  sprang  by  nature  from  Him.  Ye  had  obtained  therefore 
for  yourselves  by  your  question  the  full  assurance  that  He  is 
the  Christ.  But  in  your  eagerness  to  accuse  of  blasphemy 
Him  Who  had  revealed  to  you  His  glory,  ye  said,  "  Why  need 
"  we  any  further  witnesses d  ?  for  we  have  heard  from  His 
"  mouth."  And  how  then  forgetting  all  this,  or  rather  in  your 
malice  passing  by  those  things  for  which  He  was  judged  by 
you,  make  ye  an  array  of  charges  of  an  entirely  different  na- 
ture, saying,  "We  found  this  man  perverting  our  people?" 
Tell  us  in  what  this  perversion  consisted !  What  He  taught 
was  repentance.  Where  did  He  forbid  to  give  tribute  to 
Cesar?     In  reality  ye  sent  certain  of  your  body  unto  Him, 

d  The  word  which  in  the  text  at  fathers,  e.  g.  Ambrose,  but  proba- 

the  head  of  Serm.  CL.  had  been  bly,  as  in  this  instance,  only  by  a 

pointed  for  the   received   reading,  confusion  of  the  memory  with  bt. 

Haprvplas,  is  now  pointed  for  pap-  Matthew. 
Tvpvv,  a  word  read  also  by  other 


710  COMMENTARY  UPON 

with  those  who  are  called  Herodians,  to  tempt  Him,  saying, 
Mat.  xxii.  "  Teacher,  is  it  lawful  to  give  tribute  to  Cesar,  or  not?"  And 
thereupon  Christ  said  unto  them,  "  Shew  me  a  denarius  of  the 
"  poll  tax e :  and  asked,  Whose  is  the  image  and  superscrip- 
"  tion  on  the  denarius  which  you  have  brought?  And  when 
"  they  replied,  Cesar's,  He  said,  Give  unto  Cesar  the  things 
"  that  are  Cesar's,  and  unto  God  the  things  that  are  God's." 
Where  then  did  He  forbid  to  give  tribute  to  Cesar?  But 
their  sole  purpose  was  to  bring  down  to  death  Him  Who  was 
raising  them  up  to  life.  This  was  the  object  of  their  strata- 
gems, and  of  the  base  deeds  which  thev  contrived,  and  of  the 
falsehoods  they  invented,  and  the  bitter  words  which  ran  from 
their  wicked  tongue.  And  yet  the  law  loudly  proclaims  to 
Ex.  xx.  16.  thee,  "  Thou  shalt  not  bear  false  witness  against  thy  neigh- 
Ex.xxiii.;.  "  bour."  And  again,  "  The  holy  and  the  just  thou  shalt  not 
"  kill." 

At  lano^uao-e  thus  unbridled  in  its  violence  God  in  his  anger 
Is.  ML  3.  has  somewhere  said,  by  one  of  the  holy  prophets,  "  But  draw 
"  ye  near,  ye  wicked  children,  ye  seed  of  adulterers  and  the 
"  harlot :  at  Whom  made  ye  merry?  and  against  Whom  opened 
"  ye  your  mouth  ?  and  against  Whom  sent  ye  forth  your 
"  tongue  ?  Are  ye  not  sons  of  perdition  ;  and  an  iniquitous 
"seed?"  And  the  prophet  David  also  somewhere  describes 
them  in  the  Psalms,  thus  addressing  God  the  Father  in  hea- 
Pa.  lix.  11.  yen,  "  Scatter  them  in  Thy  might,  and  restrain  them.  0  Lord, 
"  my  helper.  The  sin  of  their  mouth  is  the  word  of  their  lips, 
"  and  they  shall  be  taken  in  their  pride."  For  having  given 
loose  to  their  unbridled  tongue  against  Christ,  and,  so  to  speak, 
Pd.  lxxr.  5.  "  lifted  up  their  horn  on  high,  and  spoken  iniquity  against 
"  God,"  as  it  is  written,  they  fell  in  their  pride.  Surely  it 
was  their  duty,  priding  themselves  as  they  did  upon  their 
knowledge  of  the  divine  laws,  to  have  remembered  that  God 
says,  "  The  pious  and  the  just  thou  shalt*  not  kill :"  but  they 
had  no  regard  whatsoever  to  the  respect  due  to  the  law,  but 
being  led  on  by  an  unrestrainable  impetuosity  into  whatsoever 
pleased  themselves  alone,  without  examination  of  its  nature, 
they  invented  numerous  charges,  heaping  up  against  Christ 
accusations   which   were    neither  true   nor   capable  of  being 

e  The  Syriac  renders  rov  ktjvo-ov,  "of  the  head-money,  i.e.  poll-tax." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  711 

proved.  But  they  were  convicted  of  being  even  more  wicked 
than  an  idolater.  For  Pilate,  acquitting  Jesus  of  all  blame, 
openly  said,  "  I  find  no  cause  at  all  in  this  Man  :"  and  this,  not 
once  only,  but  three  times. 

"  But  they  vehemently  protested,  He  perverteth  the  people, 
"  teaching  in  all  Juda?a,  and  having  begun  from  Galilee  (con- 
"  tinueth)  even  to  this  place."  Again  they  change  from  their 
former  accusations,  and  invent  pretexts  for  laving  sins  to  His 
charge,  and  gather  fresh  opportunities  for  slandering  Him. 
"  For  He  perverteth,  they  say,  the  people,  teaching  through- 
"  out  all  Galilee  even  to  this  place."  But  while  they  accuse 
Him  of  teaching,  they  are  silent  as  to  what  He  taught,  being 
afraid,  I  imagine,  lest  perhaps  even  Pilate  himself  should  be 
found  amono-  the  number  of  the  believers.  For  if  he  had 
heard  Christ  unfold  His  mystery,  he  might  have  ceased  per- 
haps from  serving  henceforth  gods  falsely  so  called,  as  having 
admitted  the  light  of  the  true  knowledge  of  God  to  dwell 
within  him,  and  possessing  in  his  mind  and  heart  the  medicine 
of  that  sacred  and  saving  message  which  is  by  Christ.  For 
what  were  the  doctrines  of  Christ  ?  He  called  unto  the  true 
knowledge  of  God  them  that  were  in  error,  and  serving  the 
creature  in  His  stead.  "Whoever  drew  near  unto  Him  He 
desired  should  be  resplendent  with  the  glories  of  righteous- 
ness ;  that  they  should  be  irreproachable  and  good ;  gentle  and 
merciful ;  wise  and  holy ;  of  upright  and  blameless  lives.  With 
great  cunning  therefore  they  say  that  He  taught,  but  were  silent 
as  to  the  nature  of  His  doctrines.  But  even  when  so  speaking, 
Pilate  rebuked  them,  excusing  himself,  and  saying,  "I  find 
no  cause  at  all  in  Him."  "  For  ye  have  brought  me,  he  says, 
"  This  Man,  as  one  Who  upturneth  the  people,  and  behold,  I 
"  having  tried  Him  in  your  presence,  have  not  found  in  This 
"  Man  any  cause  of  those  things  whereof  ye  accuse  Him.  No, 
"  nor  yet  Herod :  for  he  hath  sent  Him  back  unto  us :  and, 
"  behold,  nothing  is  done  by  Him  worthy  of  death."  Lo ! 
those  who  know  the  divine  laws,  and  with  haughty  countenance 
say,  "  We  are  Moses1  disciples,"  beseech  that  He  may  be  con- 
demned to  death,  Who  is  guilty  of  no  base  action,  yea,  rather 
Who  is  the  Head  and  Teacher  of  all  piety,  and  Who  renders 
those  who  believe  in  Him  skilful  in  every  virtue :  and  when  he 
whose  duty  it  was  to  judge  Him  acquitted  Him,  to  make  their 


712  COMMENTARY  UPON 

doom  of  torment  more  severe,  they  earnestly  beg  that  He 
Who  was  guilty  of  no  base  deed  might  suffer  as  from  them 
the  penalty  of  death.  "  For  the  whole  multitude  cried  out, 
"  saying,  Away  with  this  Man  :  but  loose  unto  us  Barabbas." 

Act8iii.i4.  Plainly  therefore  "  they  denied  the  Holy  and  the  Just,  and,  as 
"  the  blessed  Peter  says,  asked  for  a  murderer  to  be  granted 
"  unto  them,"  that  they  might  be  sharers  of  his  lot,  and  part- 
ners in  his  guilt.  And  this  it  was  their  lot  to  suffer.  For 
they  were  given  up  to  destruction  and  slaughter,  and  perished 
together  with  their  whole  race.  "  For  they  cried  out,  it  says, 
"  saying,  Crucify  Him,  crucify  Him."     And  this  their  unholy 

Jer.  xii.  7.  cry  the  Lord  blamed,  saying,  by  the  voice  of  Jeremiah,  "  I 
"  have  left  My  house,  I  have  abandoned  My  inheritance :  I 
"  have  given  My  dearly  beloved,  My  soul,  into  the  hand  of  her 
"  enemies.  My  inheritance  has  become  unto  Me  like  a  lion  in  a 
"  thicket :  it  has  uttered  its  voice  against  Me ;  therefore  I  have 
"  hated  it."  It  was  hated  therefore  because  as  a  lion  it  sprang 
upon  Christ,  and  uttered  a  cruel  and  pitiless  cry  against  Him  : 
but  we  praise  Christ,  Who  for  our  sakes  and  in  our  stead  suf- 
fered in  the  flesh :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the 
Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  for  ever 
and  ever.   Amen. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  713 


SERMON    CLII.  c_iii:+ 

~31' 
And  Pilate  qave  sentence  that  their  request  should  be  done.  ««*  ntA. 

T3ST 

And  he  released  him  who  for  sedition  and  murder  was  &  $  n.  Gy. 
cast  into  prison,  for  whom  they  asked :   but  he  delivered  gdd-  avroiS 
Jesus  to  their  will.     And  as  they  led  Him  away,  they  laid  hiHtyayov 
hold  upon  Simon,  a  Cyrenian,  coming  out  of  the  country ;  r~ .*"  B 
and  on  him  they  laid  the  cross  to  carry  it  after  Jesus,  roii  ipx-  *. 
And  there  folloiued  Him  a  great  company  of  people,  and 
of  women,  who  bewailed  and  lamented  Him.     And  Jesus  add.  *ai 

.  GTr. 

turned  Himself  to  them,  and  said,  Daughters  of  Jerusalem, 
weep  not  for  Me,  but  weep  for  yourselves  and  your  children. 
For  behold  the  days  come,  in  which  they  shall  say,  Blessed 
are  the  barren,  and  the  wombs  that  never  bare,  and  the 
paps  that  never  gave  nurture.     Then  shall  they  begin  to  «0peiW 
say  unto  the  mountains,  Fall  upon  us :  and  to  the  hills,  ^^aaav 
Cover  its.    For  if  they  do  these  things  in  a  green  tree,  what  G*- 
shall  be  done  in  the  dry  ? 

"  THE  fear  of  God  is  an  abomination  to  evildoers:"  and  Ecclua.  i. 
the  saying  is  true ;  for  the  sacred  Scripture  cannot  lie.  For  °' 
the  desire  to  live  in  an  upright  and  holy  manner  is  altogether 
alien  from  those  who  love  wickedness :  and  because  the  vio- 
lence of  their  passions  attacks  them  like  a  savage  beast,  they 
will  not  listen  to  the  words  of  those  who  admonish  them,  but 
reckon  as  their  enemies  whoever  would  instruct  them  in  the 
duty  of  living  well.  It  was  this  feeling  which  made  the  Jewish 
multitudes  hate  Christ  :  and  yet  what  He  summoned  them  to 
was  salvation,  and  the  forgiveness  of  sin  :  to  a  mode  of  life 
worthy  of  admiration  :  to  a  righteousness  superior  to  the  law  ; 
and  to  a  spiritual  service  higher  than  types  and  shadows. 

They  had  brought  the  holy  One  and  the  Just  unto  Pilate, 
uttering  against  Him  language  violent  and  unrestrained,  and 
pouring  forth  falsely-invented  accusations :  and  so  long  did 
they  persist  in  the  vehemence  wherewith  they  accused  Him, 
that  at  length  Pilate  gave  sentence  that  it  should  be  as  they 
desired,  although  he  had  publicly  said,""  I  find  no  wicked- 
"  ness  in  this  man."      But.  they,  it  says,  cried  out,  "  Away 

4  y 


714  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  with  Him,  crucify  Him."  For  this  very  cry,  unmerciful  and 
unlawful,  the  Lord  had  reproved  them  by  the  voice  of  the 
is.  v.  7.  prophet  Isaiah ;  for  thus  it  is  written,  "  For  the  vineyard  of 
"  the  Lord  of  hosts,  a  plant  new  and  beloved,  is  the  man  of 
"  Judah :  and  I  looked  that  he  should  do  justice,  but  he 
"  wrought  iniquity  :  and  not  righteousness,  but  a  cry/'     And 

Hoa.vii.13.  in  another  place  He  said  of  them,  "  Woe  unto  them,  in  that 
"  they  have  gone  far  from  Me:  wretched  are  they,  for  they  have 
"  sinned  against  Me :  but  I  redeemed  them,  and  they  spake 

Hos.vii. (6.  "  falsely  against  Me."  And  again,  "Their  princes  shall  fall 
"  by  the  sword,  because  of  the  rudeness  of  their  tongue." 

Pilate  therefore,  it  says,  gave  sentence  that  what  they  de- 
sired should  be  done :  but  better  for  them  had  it  been,  if  the 
will  of  Pilate  had  prevailed,  and  the  sentence  had  been,  to  set 
the  Lord  free  from  all  fault,  and  to  deliver  the  Innocent  and 
the  Just  from  His  bonds.  But  they  resisted,  and  vehemently 
opposed,  and  so  gained  a  victory  that  was  the  mother  of  their 
undoing  ;  that  prepared  for  them  the  snare ;  that  was  the 
nurse  of  their  ruin  ;  and  affianced  them  unto  severe  and  inevit- 
able misery. 

Yet  here  behold,  I  pray,  that  rebellious  serpent  driven  from 
his  empire  over  us  all,  and  digging  for  himself  and  the  wicked 
hosts  that  serve  him  the  pit  of  destruction.    For  as  the  Psalmist 

Ps.  lx.  15.  says,  "  The  heathen  are  caught  in  the  destruction  they  have 
"  made :  in  the  snare  which  they  set  is  their  own  foot  taken. 
"  The  Lord  is  known  as  executing  judgments  :  in  the  works  of 
"  his  hands  is  the  sinner  taken."     For  the  works  of  his  hands 

Ps.  vii.  15.  proved  his  snare,  and  "he  fell  into  the  pit  that  he  had  made : 
"  and  his  labour  returned  upon  his  head,  and  his  iniquity  de- 
"  scended  upon  his  own  pate:"  for  he  was  driven  away,  as  I 
said,  from  his  pride  over  us.  And  this  the  Saviour  has  taught 
us:  for  when  He  was  about  to  endure  for  us  His  saving  passion, 

John  xii.  He  said,  "  Now  is  the  judgment  of  this  world :  now  is  the 
"  prince  of  this  world  cast  out.  And  I,  if  I  be  lifted  up  from 
"  the  earth,  shall  draw  all  men  unto  Me."  He  led  Jesus  there- 
fore to  the  cross,  that  being  lifted  up  He  might  draw  all  men 
unto  Him,  and  that  thus  he  might  be  left  stripped  of  his  wor- 
shippers, who  in  the  height  of  his  pride  had  ventured  to  say, 

la.  1.  t4.  "  The  whole  world  will  I  hold  in  my  hand  as  a  nest,  and  as 
"  eggs  that  are  left  will  I  take  it  up,  and  there  is  no  one  shall 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  715 

"escape  from  me,  or  speak  against  me."  Thou  didst  not  expect 
then  that  any  one  would  rise  up  against  thee  when  thou  wast 
seizing  what  was  not  thine  own.     The  prophets  however  dared 
to  do  so,  though  by  thy  instigations  the  Israelites  were  incited 
continually  unto  violence  and  foul  murders.     Then  there  rose 
up  against  thee  and  spake  against  thee  the  Lord  of  all,  having 
taken  the  form  of  a  slave ;  appearing  in  prophetic  measure, 
though  the  Giver  of  all  prophecy  and  knowledge  ;  in  lowliness 
of  glory,  though  high  and  transcending  all ;  in  weakness  such 
as  ours,  though  the  Lord  of  hosts.     And  thou  didst  not  recog- 
nise the  Saviour,  and  as  the  prophet  Jeremiah  says,  "  Thou  Jer.  1.  24. 
"  wast  found  and  caught,  because  thou  stoodest  up  against  the 
"  Lord/'  And  how  wast  thou  caught  ?  In  that  those  who  were 
in  darkness  and  the  ignorance  which  thou  causest  received 
light ;    those  who  wandered  in  error  were  brought  into  the 
right  way ;  thy  harsh  and  overbearing  dominion  fell ;  the  sting 
of  sin  was  done  away ;  and  death  was  slain  by  Christ's  death. 
Such  are  the  benefits  wrought  for  us  by  the  Redeemer's  pas- 
sion.  Lead  therefore,  aye,  lead  Jesus  to  the  cross  that  shall  be 
thy  ruin :  pile  up  for  thyself  the  inextinguishable  flame  :  dig 
the  pit  into  which  thou  shalt  be  cast,  being  trampled  under 
foot  of  those  that  fear  Him.     If  thou  beholdest  Him  crucified 
and  hung  upon  a  tree,  and  laughest  therefore ;  thou  shalt  see 
Him,  and  that  soon,  risen  from  the  dead,  and  then  shalt  thou 
wail  for  death  because  it  has  fallen.     Weep  without  restraint 
at  the  sight  of  destruction  overthrown  :  weep  as  He  refashions 
man's  nature  unto  life ;  as  He  reduces  sin  into  subjection  which 
with  thee  had  savagely  tyrannized  over  us :  and  henceforth  no 
more  accuse  any  one  who  is  weak  ;  "  for  it  is  God  That  justi-  Rom.  viii. 
"  fieth  :  who  is  he  that  conderaneth  ?"  and  as  the  Psalmist  says,  33' 
"All  iniquity  shall  stop  its  mouth.1'  pa. cvii.42. 

The  Redeemer  therefore  was  led  to  His  saving  passion  :  but 
they  laid  His  cross,  it  says,  upon  Simon  the  Cyronian.  Another 
holy  evangelist,  however,  tells  us  that  the  Lord  Himself  carried  John  xix. 
the  tree  :  and  necessarily  both  the  one  and  the  other  are  true.  T"' 
For  the  Saviour  indeed  bore  the  cross,  but  in  the  middle  of 
the  way  perhaps  the  Cvrenian  met  them,  and  they  seized  him, 
and  made  him  carry  it  instead.  And  there  is  an  important 
reason  for  the  fact,  that  Christ  the  Saviour  of  all  did  carry  the 
cross  :  for  it  is  said  of  Him  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  that  "  unto  l3.  ix.  6. 

4  t  2 


716  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  us  a  Child  is  born :  a  Son  also  is  given  us,  Whose  govern- 
"  ment  is  upon  His  shoulder."  For  His  government  was  the 
cross,  by  which  He  became  King  over  the  world,  if  so  be  that 
Phil.  ii.  3.  it  is  true  that  "  He  became  obedient  to  the  Father  unto  death, 
"  even  the  death  of  the  cross :  for  this  reason  God  also  hath 
"  greatly  exalted  Him,  and  given  Him  a  name  that  is  above 
"  every  name,  that  at  the  name  of  Jesus  Christ  every  knee 
"  should  bow,  of  things  in  heaven,  and  things  in  earth,  and  of 
"  things  under  the  earth  :  and  every  tongue  shall  confess  that 
"  Jesus  Christ  is  Lord  to  the  glory  of  God  the  Father.'" 

And  this  also,  I  think,  it  is  important  here  to  observe,  that 
when  the  blessed  Abraham  went  up  unto  the  mountain  that 
had  been  shewn  him,  that  there  he  might  sacrifice  Isaac, 
according  to  God's  command,  he  laid  the  wood  upon  the 
lad ;  and  he  was  a  type  of  Christ  carrying  His  own  cross  upon 
His  shoulders,  and  going  up  to  the  glory  of  His  passion.  For 
that  His  passion  was  Christ's  glory,  He  has  Himself  taught  us, 
John  xiii.  saving-,  "  Now  is  the  Son  of  man  o-lorified,  and  God  is  glorified 
3I'  "  in  Him.     If  God  be  glorified  in  Him,  God  shall  also  glorify 

"  Him  in  Himself,  and  shall  immediately  glorify  Him." 

He  was  going  therefore  to  the  place  of  crucifixion :  and  there 
followed  Him  women  weeping,  as  well  as  many  others.  For 
constantly,  so  to  speak,  the  female  sex  is  given  to  tears,  and 
of  a  disposition  ready  to  sink  at  the  approach  of  aught  that  is 
sorrowful.  '  But,  0  daughters  of  Jerusalem,  He  says,  stay 
'  those  tears  on  My  account :  cease  your  wailings  :  and  weep 
'  rather  for  yourselves,  and  your  children  :  for  the  days,  He 
1  says,  shall  come,  in  which  barrenness  shall  be  preferable  to 
'  women  than  to  have  borne  children."  How,  or  in  what 
manner  ?  Because  when  the  war  fell  upon  the  country  of  the 
Jews,  they  all  perished  utterly,  small  Jjnd  great :  and  infants 
with  their  mothers,  and  sons  with  their  fathers,  were  destroyed 
without  distinction.  Then,  He  says,  shall  men  count  it  above 
all  price  to  be  crushed  under  hills  and  mountains ;  for  in  ex- 
treme miseries  those  misfortunes  which  are  less  severely  cruel 
become,  so  to  speak,  desirable.  "  For  if,  saith  He,  they  do 
"  these  things  in  a  green  tree,  what  shall  be  done  in  the  dry?" 
But  it  is  worth  our  while  to  see  what  the  Saviour's  meaning 
is  in  these  words.  For  the  saying  is  shaped  in  the  form  of  a 
parable,  or  an  example  rather,  but  is  pregnant  with  a  spiritual 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  717 

signification  :  and  it  intends,  I  think,  to  suggest  perhaps  what 
follows.  He  calls  Himself  the  green  tree,  that  namely  which 
has  leaves  and  fruit  and  flowers.  But  His  fruits  were  doctrines 
and  exhortations  and  the  manifestation  of  a  godlike  power  in 
His  divine  and  ineffable  miracles.  For  which  of  His  works  is 
not  more  than  our  admiration  can  equal  ?  He  raised  the  dead 
to  life,  He  cleansed  lepers,  He  healed  the  blind,  and  the  other 
deeds  He  wrought  are  such  as  arouse  in  us  the  most  perfect 
praise.  But  though  these  were  His  works,  yet  did  the  Roman 
officers,  or  rather  Pilate  who  condemned  Him,  and  passed  upon 
Him  an  unjust  sentence,  inflict  upon  Him  these  cruel  mock- 
eries. When  therefore,  He  says,  the  Roman  commanders  have 
inflicted  upon  Me  such  things,  though  they  see  Me  adorned 
with  such  great  glory  and  praise,  what  will  they  do  to  Israel, 
perceiving  him  to  be  a  dry  and  fruitless  stock  ?  For  in  him 
they  will  behold  nothing  admirable,  for  the  sake  of  which  he 
might  perchance  have  been  counted  by  them  worthy  of  honour 
and  mercy.  Plainly  they  will  burn  him  with  fire,  without 
shewing  him  mercy,  yea  rather  he  will  suffer  the  cruelties 
prompted  by  savage  rage.  For  such  were  the  miseries  into 
which  the  Israelites  fell,  when  God,  Who  judgeth  righteously, 
exacted  of  them  the  punishment  of  their  wickedness  against 
Christ.  But  upon  us,  who  have  believed  in  Him,  Christ  be- 
stoweth  grace  and  blessing  ;  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to 
God  the  Father  be  praise  and  dominion,  with  the  Holy  Ghost, 
for  ever  and  ever.    Amen. 


718 


COMMENTARY  UPON 


C.  xxiii. 
32-43- 


<Ki)povs  ST. 
Kki\pov  Br. 
add.  <tvv  av- 
rots  Gs. 
ovrosGSTs. 
vT6s  B. 
ivercufap 
GSTr. 
ivfTrai^av'B. 
om.Kaiante 
6£os  BT. 
om.  yeypau- 
pcvv  BT. 

om.  Keywv 
BT. 

oiiXl  BT. 
«  GSs. 

avrco  iipTj 
BST. 

hrtri^a  av- 
r$  \4yaiv 

Gs. 

rut  'ItjcoC.  . 
Kupit  Gs. 


SERMON   CLIII. 

And  there  were  led  also  two  others,  who  were  malefactors, 
to  be  put  to  death  with  Him,  And  when  they  came  to 
the  place  which  is  called  a  skull,  there  they  crucified 
Him  and  the  malefactors,  one  on  the  right  hand  and 
the  other  on  the  leftS  And  dividing  His  garments,  they 
cast  lots.  And  the  people  stood  looking  on.  And  the 
rulers  also  derided  Him,  saying,  He  saved  others ;  let  Him 
save  Himself  if  This  is  the  Christ  the  elect  of  God.  And 
the  soldiers  also  mocked  Him,  coming  to  Him,  and  offering 
Him  vinegar,  and  saying,  If  Tlwu  art  the  King  of  the 
Jews,  save  TJiyself  And  there  was  also  a  writing  written 
over  Him,  This  is  the  King  of  the  Jews.  And  one  of  the 
malefactors  which  were  hanged  blasphemed  Him,  saying, 
If  Thou  art  the  Christ,  save  Thyself  and  us.  But  the 
other  answered  rebuking  him,  and  said,  Dost  thou  not  fear 
God,  seeing  thou  art  in  the  same  condemnation  ?  And  we 
indeed  justly  ;  for  we  receive  the  due  retribution  of  our 
deeds  :  but  this  man  hath  done  nothing  that  is  hateful. 
And  he  said,  Jesus,  remember  me  when  Thou  comest  in 
Thy  kingdom.  And  Jesus  said  unto  him,  Verily  I  say 
unto  thee,  To-day  shalt  thou  be  with  Me  in  paradise. 


THE  blessed  Paul  counts  the  mystery  of  the  incarnation  of 
the  Only-begotten  worthy  of  all  admiration,  and,  so  to  speak, 
is  in  amaze  at  the  wisdom  and  excellence  of  the  plan  of  salva- 
Rom.xi.33.  tion,  saying,  "  0  the  depth  of  the  riches  both  of  the  wisdom 
"  and  the  knowledge  of  God."  For  consider  how  the  Saviour 
of  all  and  Lord,  by  Whom  the  Father  brought  all  things  into 
existence,  refashions  man's  nature,  restoring  it  to  that  which  it 
was  in  the  beginning  by  becoming  Himself  like  unto  us,  and 


f  Both  the  Syriac  and  B.  omit  endorf  joins  the  Syriac  and  B.  in 

the  clause,  6  §<  'I^o-ovr  TKfytv  ai-  rejecting  ypap.pa<riv  'EWtjvikois   xa\ 

rots,  Uarep,  a<pts  avrois'  ov  yap  ol-  'Pupat/ccas    Ka\   'EQpatKots  :    and    in 

baaiv  ri  iroiovaiv.     It  is,  however,  the  inscription  itself  GSr  read  ovro'r 

retained  by  the  Peshito  and  Philox.,  forty  6  j3.  r.  'I.,  but  BT.  6  j3a<r.  t<jv 

as  well  as  by  all  modern  editors  of  'low.  ovtoc. 
note.   Subsequently  in  v.  38.  Tisch- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  719 

bearing  our  suffering's  for  our  sakes.  For  the  first  man  was 
indeed  in  the  beginning  in  the  paradise  of  delight,  being  en- 
nobled by  the  absence  both  of  suffering  and  of  corruption  :  but 
when  he  despised  the  commandment  that  had  been  given  him, 
and  fell  under  a  curse  and  condemnation,  and  into  the  snare  of  • 
death,  by  eating  the  fruit  of  the  forbidden  tree,  Christ,  as  I  said, 
by  the  very  same  thing  restores  him  again  to  his  original  con- 
dition. For  He  became  the  fruit  of  the  tree  by  having  endured 
the  precious  cross  for  our  sakes,  that  He  might  destroy  death, 
which  by  means  of  the  tree  had  invaded  the  bodies  of  man- 
kind. He  bore  suffering  that  He  might  deliver  us  from  suffer- 
ings :  "  He  was  despised  and  not  esteemed/'  as  it  is  written,  i3.  mi.  3. 
that  He  might  make  us  honourable :  He  did  no  sin,  that  He 
might  crown  our  nature  with  similar  glory :  He  Who  for  our 
sakes  was  man  submitted  also  to  our  lot ;  and  He  Who  giveth 
life  to  the  world  submitted  to  death  in  the  flesh.  Is  not  therefore 
the  mystery  profound  ?  Must  we  not  own  that  the  dispensation 
is  more  than  language  can  describe  ?  What  doubt  can  there  be 
of  this  ?  ' Let  us  therefore,  as  we  offer  Him  our  praise,  repeat 
that  which  was  sung  by  the  Psalmist's  harp  ;  "  How  great  are  pa.  civ.  24. 
"  Thy  works,  0  Lord  !  in  wisdom  hast  Thou  made  them  all." 

When  therefore  He   hung-  upon  the   precious   cross,  two 
thieves  were  hung  with  Him.     And  what  follows  from  this? 
It  was  verily  mockery  as  far  as  regards  the  object  of  the 
Jews  ;  but  the  commemoration  of  prophecy :  for  it  is  written, 
that  "  He  was  also  numbered  with  the  transgressors."  For  our  la.  liii.  12. 
sakes  He  became  a  curse,  that  is,  accursed :  for  it  is  written 
again,  that  "  Cursed  is  every  one  that  hangeth  on  a  tree."  Deut.  xxi. 
But  this  act  of  His  did  away  with  the  curse  that  was  upon  23" 
us :  for  we  with  Him  and  because  of  Him  are  blessed.     And 
knowing  this,  the  blessed  David  says  :  "  Blessed  are  we  of  the  p3.  Cxr.  15. 
"  Lord,  Who  made  heaven  and  earth  :"  for  by  His  sufferings  (Septeuii. 
blessings  descend  to  us.     He  in  our  stead  paid  our  debts  :  He 
bore  our  sins ;    and  as  it  is  written,  "  in  our  stead  He  was  la.  liii.  6. 
"stricken."     "He  took  them  up  in  His  own  body  on  the  iPet. ii.24. 
"  tree :"  for  it  is  true  that  "  by  His  bruises  we  are  healed."  la.  mi.  5. 
He  too  was  sick  because  of  our  sins,  and  we  are  delivered  from 
the  sicknesses  of  the  soul.     He  bore  derision,  and  mockeries, 
and  spittings :  for  the  rulers  of  the  synagogue  of  the  Jews 
scoffed  Him,  shaking  their  polluted  heads,  and  pouring  out 


720  COMMENTARY  UPON 

upon  Him  bitter  laughter,  as  they  said,  "  He  saved  others :  let 
"  Him  save  Himself,  if  He  be  the  Christ."     But  if  thou  didst 
not  really  believe  that  He  was  the  Christ,  why  didst  thou  kill 
Him  as  the  heir  ?     Why  didst  thou  wish  to  seize  His  inherit- 
ance ?     If  He  saved  others,  and  thou  knowest  that  this  verily 
was  so,  how  could  He  want  the  power  to  save  Himself  from 
thy  hands  ?    Thou  heardest  in  the  temple  those  whose  office  it 
P3.3jdi.r6.  was  to  sing  and  recite  in  chorus  constantly  chanting  ;   "  They 
"  pierced  My  hands  and  My  feet :  they  counted  all  My  bones: 
"  and  themselves  watched  and  gazed  at  Me.    They  divided  My 
"  garments  among  them,  and  on  My  clothing  did  they  cast 
Ps.Uix.n.  "  the  lot."     And  again,  "They  gave  gall  for  My  eating,  and 
"  for  My  thirst  they  gave  Me  vinegar  to  drink.""     Since  then 
thou  wast  learned  in  the  law, — for  such  thou  consideredst  thy- 
self to  be, — how  earnest  thou  to  leave  prophecy,  and  what  had 
been  foretold  concerning  these  things  unexamined  ?  It  was  thy 
duty  to  have  enquired  Who  it  was  That  spake  these  things ;  to 
Whose  person,  I  mean,  it  behoved  thee  to  refer  these  verses. 
Thou  heardest  thy  great  chieftain  Moses  foretelling  the  sa- 
Deut.         vageness  of  thy  attacks  :  for  he  said,  that  "  ye  shall  see  your 
xivui.     .   C(  -jj£Q  hanging  upon  a  tree  :"   thou  shalt  see,  that  is,  Him 
Who  is  the  cause  of  life,  or  rather  Life  Itself,  hung  upon  a 
tree.     And  how  then  didst  thou  entirely  disregard  the  pro- 
phecy of  Moses,  of  whom  thou  madest  so  great  boast  ?     For 
Johnix.28.  we   have   heard  you   expressly  declaring,  "  We  are  Moses1 
"  disciples."     Tell   me  what  thou   meanest   by  shaking   thy 
head   at  Him  \     Is  it  the  meek  endurance  of  the  Sufferer 
that  thou  despisest  ?  or  is  it  to  prove  the  stony  hardness  of  thy 
mind  ?   Are  ye  eager  to  subject  the  Prince  of  Life  to  the  death 
of  the  flesh  I    Why  meddle  ye  with  holy  cares?    Why  purpose 
Ps.  ii.  4.     ye  a  counsel  that  ye  will  not  be  able  to  establish  ?     "  He  that 
"  dwelleth  in  heaven  shall  laugh  at  them  :  and  the  Lord  shall 
"  deride  them,"  as  it  is  written. 

Two  thieves  therefore  were  hauged  with  Him,  as  I  said,  in 
mockery  even  of  the  passion  which  brings  salvation  to  the  whole 
world :  but  of  these,  the  one,  it  says,  resembled  in  his  conduct 
the  impiety  of  the  Jews,  belching  forth  the  same  words  as  they 
did,  and  giving  free  utterance  to  blasphemous  expressions. 
"  For  if,  saith  he,  Thou  be  the  Christ,  save  Thyself,  and  us." 
But  the  other,  following  a  different  course,  is  justly  worthy  of 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  721 

our  admiration :  for  he  believed  in  Him  :  and  while  suffering 
so  bitter  a  punishment,  he  rebuked  the  vehement  outcries'  of 
the  Jews,  and  the  words  of  him  who  was  hanging  with  him. 
He  "  confessed  his  sin,  that  he  might  be  justified  f  he  became  la.  xliii.26. 
the  accuser  of  his  own  wicked  ways,  that  God  might  remit  his 
guilt;  for  it  is  written,  "I  said  that  I  will  confess  of  myself P3.xxxii.5- 
"  my  iniquity  to  the  Lord,  and  Thou  forgavest  the  wickedness 
"  of  my  heart."  He  bore  unto  Christ  a  blameless  testimony, 
and  reproved  the  Jewish  want  of  love  to  God,  and  condemned 
the  sentence  of  Pilate :  "  for  This  Man,  he  says,  hath  done 
"  nothing  that  is  hateful."  0  how  beautiful  is  this  confession ! 
how  wise  the  reasonings,  and  how  excellent  the  thoughts !  He 
became  the  confessor  of  the  Saviour's  glorv,  and  the  accuser 
of  the  pride  of  those  who  crucified  Him.  What  reward  there- 
fore did  he  receive  ?  Of  what  honours  was  he  counted  worthy  ? 
Or  what  benefit  did  the  thief  gain  who  was  the  first  to  profess 
faith  ?  He  lit  upon  a  treasure  worth  the  having :  he  became 
rich  unexpectedly,  and  possessed  of  every  blessing  :  he  won 
the  inheritance  of  the  saints,  and  to  have  his  name  written 
above,  in  heaven :  he  was  in  the  book  of  life  who  was  bearing 
the  sentence  of  death,  and  is  numbered  with  the  dwellers  in  the 
city  that  is  above. 

And  let  us  look  at  his  most  beautiful  confession  of  faith. 
"  Jesus,  he  says,  remember  me  when  Thou  comest  in  Thy 
"  kingdom."  Thou  seest  Him  crucified,  and  callest  Him  a 
king:  Him  Who  was  bearing  scorn  and  suffering,  thou  ex- 
pectest  to  come  in  godlike  glory :  thou  seest  Him  surrounded 
by  a  multitude  of  the  Jews,  and  the  wicked  gang  of  the  Pha- 
risees, and  Pilate's  band  of  soldiers, — all  these  were  mocking 
Him,  and  no  single  one  of  them  confessed  s       *         *         * 

s  Two  passages  ascribed  in  Mai  not  belong  to  the  Commentary,  for 

to   this   Homily  are   not   acknow-  It  is  a  mystical  explanation  of  the 

ledged   by   the    Syriac  :    the   first,  threefold    language   of   the   super- 

however,  p.  434,  is  said  in  the  Co-  scription,  which  was  not  read  by 

dex   to  be  taken  from    S.  Cyril's  S.  Cyril  in  his  copy  of  S.  Luke's 

Sermons,    and    is    an     argument  Gospel,  and  is  in  fact  probably  an 

against  the  Docetae,  who  thought  interpolation  from  S.  John.    As  the 

that  our  Lord's  body  was  a  phan-  Syriac  now  finally  fails,  what  fol- 

tom,  drawn  from  the  reality  of  His  lows   is   taken  from   Mai,   though 

sufferings :  the  second,  p.  435,  can-  probably  some  portion  of  it   does 

4z 


722  COMMENTARY  UPON 

Ver.  44.  There  was  darkness  over  all  the,  land. 

From  Mai.  He  who  excels  all  created  things,  and  shares  the  Father's 
throne,  humbled  Himself  unto  emptying,  and  took  the  form 
of  a  slave,  and  endured  the  limits  of  human  nature,  that  He 
might  fulfil  the  promise  made  of  God  to  the  forefathers  of  the 
Jews :  but  they  were  so  obdurate  and  disobedient  as  even  to 
rise  up  against  their  Master.  For  they  made  it  their  business 
to  deliver  the  Prince  of  life  unto  death,  and  crucified  the  Lord 
of  glory.  But  when  they  had  affixed  to  the  cross  the  Lord 
of  all,  the  sun  over  their  heads  withdrew,  and  the  light  at 

Amos  v.  18.  midday  was  wrapped  in  darkness,  as  the  divine  Amos  had 
foretold.  For  there  was  "  darkness  from  the  sixth  hour  until 
"  the  ninth  hour :"  and  this  was  a  plain  sign  unto  the  Jews, 
that  the  minds  of  those  who  crucified  Him  were  wrapped  in 

Eom.xi.25.  spiritual  darkness,  for  "  blindness  in  part  hath  happened  unto 
"  Israel."     And  David  in  his  love  unto  God  even  curses  them, 

P3.  hrix.23.  saying,  "  Let  their  eyes  be  darkened,  that  they  may  not  see." 
Yea !  creation  itself  bewailed  its  Lord  :    for  the  sun  was 
darkened,  and  the  rocks  were  rent,  and  the  very  temple  as- 
sumed the  garb  of  mourners,  for  its  "  veil  was  rent  from  the 
"  top  to  the  bottom."     And  this  is  what  God  signified  to  us 

Is.  1.  3.  by  the  voice  of  Isaiah,  saying,  "  And  I  will  clothe  the  heaven 
"  with  darkness,  and  wrap  it  around  with  sackcloth." 

"Ver.  47.         And  when  the  centurion  saiv  what  was  done,  he  glorified 

God. 

AlsoinCra-  Again  observe,  I  pray,  that  no  sooner  had  He  endured  the 
passion  upon  the  cross  for  our  sakes,  than  He  began  to  win 
many  unto  a  knowledge  of  the  truth :  "  for  the  centurion,  it 
"  says,  when  he  saw  what  had  happened,  glorified  God,  say- 
"  ing,  that  truly  This  Man  was  righteous."  And  certain  Jews 
also  smote  upon  their  breasts,  being  pricked  doubtless  by  their 

not    belong    to    the    Commentary.  54  . . .;  and  Serm.CLVI.on  c.  xxiv. 

For  in  the  Index  to  the  Sermons     36 S.  Cyril   therefore   must 

prefixed  to  part  ii.  of  the  Syriac,  we  have  passed  over  most  of  the  cir- 

find  only  three  more  enumerated,  cumstances  of  Christ's  resurrection 

namely,  Sermon  CLIV.  on  c.  xxiii.  and  ascension,  or  have  referred  to 

44  ....  ;    Serm.  CLV.  on  c.  xxiii.  them  very  briefly. 


mer  avamv- 

fJLUS 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  723 

consciences,  and  looking  up  with  the  eyes  of  their  mind  unto 
the  Lord,  and  it  may  be  perhaps  clearing  themselves  of  their 
impious  conduct  against  Christ  by  crying  out  against  those 
who  cruci6ed  Him,  even  though  they  dared  not  do  so  openly, 
because  of  the  impiety  of  the  rulers.  With  truth  therefore  did 
our  Lord  say,  "  When  I  have  been  lifted  up  from  the  earth,  I  John  xii. 
"  shall  draw  all  men  unto  Me."  3"' 

And  women  also  followed,  who  had  come  with  Him  from    Ver.  ^. 

Galilee. 

Wise  women  followed  our  common  Saviour  Christ,  satherino; 
whatever  was  both  useful  and  necessary  for  faith  in  Him.  And 
when  He  gave  His  flesh  as  a  ransom  for  the  life  of  us  all,  thev 
wisely  betook  themselves  to  tend  His  body :  for  they  supposed 
that  the  corpse  would  continue  in  the  grave. 


4  z 


724  COMMENTARY  UPON 


CHAPTER   XXIV. 

ver.  4.  It  came  to  pass,  as  they  were  perplexed  at  this. 

THE  women  came  to  the  sepulchre,  and  when  they  could 
not  find  the  body  of  Christ, — for  He  had  risen, — they  were 
much  perplexed.  And  what  followed  'i  For  their  love's  sake 
unto  Christ,  and  their  earnest  zeal  thereunto,  they  were 
counted  worthy  of  seeing  holy  angels,  who  even  told  them  the 
joyful  tidings,  and  became  the  heralds  of  the  resurrection, 

Ver.  5.  saying,  "  Why  seek  ye  the  living  among  the  dead  ?  He  is  not 
"  here,  but  is  risen."  For  the  Word  of  God  ever  lives,  and 
is  by  His  own  nature  Life :  but  when  He  humbled  Himself 
unto  emptying,  and  submitted  to  be  made  like  unto  us,  He 
tasted  death.  But  this  proved  to  be  the  death  of  death :  for 
He  arose  from  the  dead,  to  be  the  way  whereby  not  Himself 
so  much  but  we  rather  return  unto  incorruption.  And  let  no 
one  seek  Him  Who  ever  lives  among  the  dead ;  for  He  is  not 
here,  with  mortality,  that  is,  and  in  the  tomb :  but  where  ra- 
ther is  He?  in  heaven  plainly,  and  in  godlike  glory.  And 
more  firmly  to  settle  the  faith  of  the  women  in  these  things, 

"Ver.  7.  they  recal  to  their  minds  what  Christ  had  said,  that  "  He  must 
"  necessarily  be  given  up  into  the  hands  of  sinners,  and  suffer, 
"  and  the  third  day  rise  again.'" 

Angels  too  brought  the  joyful  tidings  of  the  nativity  to  the 
shepherds  in  Bethlehem,  and  now  they  tell  His  resurrection  : 
and  heaven  yields  its  service  to  proclaim  Him,  and  the  hosts  of 
the  spirits  which  are  above  attend  the  Son  as  God,  even  when 
He  had  become  flesh. 

Ver.  9.       And  they  returned  from  the  sepulchre,  and  told  all  these  things 
unto  the  eleven  and  to  all  the  rest. 

The  women  having  been  taught  the  mvsterv  bv  the  voice  of 
angels,  run  to  tell  these  things  to  the  disciples.  For  it  was 
fitting  that  this  grace,  though  so  splendid,  should  be  granted 
unto  women.  For  she  who  of  old  was  the  minister  of  death 
is  now  freed  from  her  guilt  by  ministering  unto  the  voice  of 
the  holy  angels,  and  by  being  the  first  both  to  learn  and  tell 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  725 

the  adorable  mystery  of  the  resurrection.  The  female  sex 
therefore  gained  both  acquittal  from  their  reproach  and  the 
reversal  of  their  curse.  For  He  Who  of  old  had  said  unto 
them,  «  In  pains  shalt  thou  bear  children,"  gave  them  deliver-  Gen.  iii.16. 
ance  from  their  misfortune,  by  having  met  them  in  the  garden, 
as  another  Evangelist  mentions,  and  said,  Hail.  To  the  holy  HktsviH. 
apostles  however  the  account  of  the  resurrection  seemed^  abso- 
lutely but  an  idle  tale,  and  falsehood ;  for  even  they  did  not 
know  the  inspired  Scripture,  and  so  they  were  incredulous,  and 
mocked  at  the  news  and  rejected  it. 

How  did  the  disciples  in  John's  Gospel,  having  heard  Mary, 
and  having  run  to  the  sepulchre,  believe?  For  to  this  also 
the  Scripture  bears  witness  in  their  behalf,  saying,  "  When  John  xx.  S. 
"  therefore  they  entered,  the  other  disciple  who  came  first  to 
"  the  sepulchre  both  saw  and  believed."  But  in  Luke  it  is 
said,  "And  they  returned  from  the  sepulchre,  and  told  all 
«  these  things  unto  the  eleven  and  to  all  the  rest,— -it  was 
"  Mary  Magdalene,  and  Joanna,  and  Mary  the  wifeh  of  James, 
"  and  the  rest  with  them,  who  told  these  things  to  the  apostles, 
«  — and  they  disbelieved  them l." 

Behold  two  of  them  went  that  same  day  to  a  village.  Ver'  >3- 
Ask  two  of  the  disciples  walk  to  a  village  called  Emmaus, 
they  conversed  with  one  another  concerning  Christ,  regarding 
Him  as  no  longer  living,  but  mourning  Him  as  dead.  ^  And  as 
they  conversed,  Jesus  Himself  drew  near  and  went  with  them, 
without  being  recognised  by  them,  "  for  their  eyes  were  held  Ver.  .4. 
«  that  they  should  not  know  Him.     And  He  saith  unto  them, 

h  Or  possibly  the  mother;  but  if  exists  in  words  only,  S.  Luke's  dis- 

so    she  is  described  in  three  dif-  belief  being  one  merely  of  surprise 

fer'ent  ways,  l°.  Mapia  f,  'Jwca^ov;  and  astonishment   at   the  startling 

ao  Mapi'a  i; 'Ia^TOf,  and  3°.  Mapta  news  brought  by  the  women.    It  is 

h  Iok&Pov  rov  fiiKpov  Kal  'luxnjros  found  only  in  the  small  Catena  D. 

Lnrvp,  in  the  course  of  nine  verses  of  *  The  whole  of  the  remainder  is 

S  Mark's  Gospel.    That  our  Lord's  contained  in  Cramer's  Catena,  but 

brethrenweremarried,Cf.iCor.ix.3.  with  the  constant  omission  of  sen- 

l  The  statement  of  this  discre-  tences,  and  given  as  a  string  ot  te- 
nancy is  to  be  referred  rather  to  the  tached  extracts  without  the  author  s 
Catenist  than  to  S.  Cyril,  as  the  name.  The  present  passage  is  also 
latter  would  most  probably  have  given  in  the  Aurea  Catena,  but  re- 
criven  some  explanation  of  it,  had  ferred  simply  to  "  Grsecus,  i.  e. 
he  noticed  at  all  a  difference  which  some  Greek  commentator. 


726  COMMENTARY  UPON 

"  What  is  it,  I  pray,  of  which  ye  converse  with  one  another  as 
"  ye  walk  thus  mournfully  ?  And  one  of  them  whose  name 
"  was  Cleopas  answered  and  said,  Art  Thou  only  a  stranger  in 
"  Jerusalem,"  &c.  And  then  they  tell  Him  of  the  rumours  of 
the  resurrection  Drought  by  the  women,  and  of  that  by  Peter, 
Ver.  22.  but  believe  them  not.  For  by  saying,  "  And  women  also 
"  astonished  us,  who  found  not  the  body/'  they  shew  that 
they  had  not  been  induced  to  believe  the  news,  nor  regard  it 
as  true  tidings,  but  as  a  cause  of  trouble  and  astonishment : 
and  Peter's  testimony,  who  had  seen  only  the  linen  bandages 
at  the  sepulchre,  they  did  not  consider  as  a  trustworthy  proof 
of  the  resurrection,  because  he  did  not  say  that  he  had  seen 
Him,  but  inferred  that  He  had  risen  from  His  being  no  longer 
there.  And  vou  must  know  that  these  two  belonged  to  the 
number  of  the  seventy,  and  that  Cleopas'  companion  was  Si- 
mon1,— not  Peter,  nor  he  of  Cana,  —  but  another  of  the 
seventy. 

Ver.  27.  Having  begun  from  Moses  and  from  all  the  prophets. 

In  this  discourse  the  Lord  shews  that  the  law  was  necessary 
to  make  ready  the  way,  and  the  ministry  of  the  prophets  to 
prepare  men  for  faith  in  this  marvellous  act,  that  so  when  the 
resurrection  really  took  place,  those  who  were  troubled  at  its 
greatness  might  remember  what  was  said  of  old,  and  be  in- 
duced to  believe.  He  brings  forward  therefore  Moses  and  the 
prophets,  interpreting  their  hidden  meaning,  and  making  plain 
to  the  worthy  what  to  the  unworthy  was  obscure  m,  so  settling 
in  them  that  ancient  and  hereditary  faith  taught  them  by  the 

1  Origen  also  in  the  exordium  to  nected  with  the  journey  to  Em- 
his  Commentary  on  S.  John  re-  maus.  But  even  otherwise  the  lan- 
cords  the  same  tradition,  that  Cleo-  guage  used  has  not  the  true  Cyrillic 
pas'  companion  was  named  Simon.  "  ring,"  as  may  be  seen  by  this 
Later  authorities,  like  Theophylact,  sentence  ;  ra  rots  dva£iois  ao-a<pfj 
think  that  it  was  Luke  himself.  tra(f>t}vi^m>  rots  d£(W.  And  again, 
Cramer's  Catena  omits  this  pas-  npo(3\ri3(iq  ra  irpoti.pqp.iva  r£  ano- 
sage,  but  begins  again  at  "  He  icpv<pov  ttjs  trportpov  acracpdas  tit 
"  brings  forward  Moses,  &c."  rovpcpavis   81a   ttjs   o-acpqvflat  airo- 

m  The  index  to  the  Sermons  has  KaXxmroptva.      The   three   extracts 

already  made  it  probable   that  S.  upon  the  journey  to  Emmaus  are 

Cyril  entirely  omitted,  or  only  very  taken,  the  first  and  third  from  D, 

cursorily   mentioned   in  the  Com-  the  second  from  B. 
mentary,    the    circumstances    con- 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  727 

sacred  books  which  they  possessed.     For  nothing  which  comes 
from  God  is  without  its  use,  but  all  aud  several  of  them  have 
their  appointed  place  and  service.     In  their  due  place  servants 
were  sent   before   to  make   ready   for   the   presence  of  the 
Master,  by  bringing  in  beforehand  prophecy  as  the  necessary 
preparative  for  faith,  that,  like  some  royal  treasure,  what  had 
been  foretold  might  in  due  season  be  brought  forward  from 
the  concealment  of  its  former  obscurity,  being  unveiled  and 
made  plain  by  the  clearness  of  the  interpretation.     Having" 
thus  then  stirred  up  their  minds  by  the  writings  of  the  law 
and  the  prophets,  He  afterwards  more  plainly  sets  Himself 
before  them,  when,  having  consented  to  their  request  to  go 
with  them  to  the  village,  He  took  bread,  and  blessed  it,  and 
brake,  and  divided  it  among  them.     "  For  their  eyes,  it  says,  Ver.  16. 
"  were  held  that  they  might  not  know  Him,"  until  namely  the 
word  had  entered  stirring  up  their  heart  unto  faith,  and  then, 
rendering  what  they  had  before  heard  and  believed  visible,  He 
offered  them  the  sight  seasonably  after  the  hearing.     He  does 
not,  however,  continue  with  them,  for  •'  He  vanished,  it  says, 
"  out  of  their  sight."     For  our  Lord's  relation  unto  men  after 
His  resurrection  does  not  continue  the  same  as  before,  for  they 
too  have  need  of  renovation,  and  a  second  life  in  Christ,  that 
the  renewed  may  associate  with  the  renewed,  and  the  incor- 
ruptible approach  the  incorruptible.      For  which  reason,  as 
John  tells  us,  He  did  not  permit  Mary  to  touch  Him,  until  He  Jolin  xx- 
should  go  awav  and  return  again. 

They  rose  up  that  same  hour.  Ver.  $$. 

Cleopas,  it  says,  and  his   companions,  rose  up  that  same  Caute 
hour,  the  same  of  course  in  which  Jesus  had  vanished  out  of  esas' 
their  sight,  and  returned  to  Jerusalem :  but  it  does  not  say 
that  they  found  the  eleven  gathered  together  that  same  hour, 

n  Again  ascribed  in  the  Aurea  the  meaning  of  the  Latin — for  the 

Catena  to  "  some  Greek  expositor."  English   has   no   meaning — being, 

The  English  translation  is  as  usual  that  after  our  Lord  had  prepared 

an  absurdity  :  for  it  renders  Conve-  the  minds  of  the  disciples  to  believe 

nienter  opportunum   siii   aspectum  in  the   resurrection   by  arguments 

auditui  subjungit,  by  •  He  fitly  af-  addressed  to  their  hearing,  He  sea- 

'  fords,  in  addition  to  their  hearing,  sonably  permitted  them  at  length 

'  a  favourable  object  to  their  sight;'  to  see  Him  visibly. 


728  COMMENTARY  UPON 

and  told  them  what  had*  happened  concerning  Jesus,0  but  this 
took  place  on  the  fortieth  day  after  His  resurrection,  on  which 
day  He  was  also  taken  up.  This  evangelist  therefore  has 
omitted  the  events  which  took  place  in  the  intervening  time, 
and  which  Cleopas  and  his  companions  found  the  eleven  dia- 

Ver.  34.  cussing  in  private,  and  saying,  that  "  the  Lord  is  risen,  and 
"  has  been  seen  by  Simon  :"  and  of  him  he  has  not  mentioned 
either  where,  or  when,  or  how  this  took  place.  It  was  during 
these  days  that  those  events  also  took  place  which  were  done 

Mat.  in  Galilee,  and  which  Matthew  has  recorded. 

xxviii.  16. 

Ver.  36.  Jesus  Himself  stood  in  the  midst  of  them. 

AndP  now,  keeping  to  the  order  of  events,  we  say,  that  the 
account  of  the  resurrection  having  already  reached  the  apostles 
from  many  quarters,  and  their  desire  to  see  Him  having  thus 
been  roused,  He  comes  according  to  their  desire,  and  stands 
visible  and  revealed  before  them  as  they  seek  for  and  expect 
Him.  And  no  longer  does  He  appear  to  them  with  their  eyes 
held,  nor  converse  with  them  as  concerning  some  other  person, 
but  permits  them  to  see  Him  plainly,  and  bids  them  be  of  good 
cheer.  But  they  even  so  were  in  doubt  and  affright ;  for  they 
thought  that  they  saw  not  Himself,  but  some  apparition  and 
shadow  :  but  He  quiets  the  perturbation  occasioned  by  such 
thoughts,  addressing  them  with  His  usual  and  customary 
speech,  and  saying,  "  Peace  be  unto  you."l 

Ver.  38.      He  said  unto  them,  Why  are  ye  troubled  ?  and  why  do  rea- 
sonings arise  in  your  hearts  ? 

To  convince  them  firmly  and  indubitably,  that  He  is  the 
same  Who  suffered,  He  immediately  shews  that  being  God 

0  This  passage  is  given  so  much  *  that  the  Lord  waa  seen  by  Simon.' 
more   probably  in  Cramer,  that  I         V  The  Aurea  Catena  ascribes  this 

append   it  :     '  But    not   that   they  to  Cyril. 

'  found  the  eleven  gathered   toge-         1  A  passage  upon  peace  ascribed 

'  ther    that    same   hour,   and   told  to  Cyril  in  the  Aurea  Catena,  and 

•  them   what    had    happened    con-  given  by  Mai  as  probably  belong- 

'  cerning  the  Lord  Jesus,  but  after  ing  to  the  Commentary,  is   taken 

'  the  lapse  of  as  many  hours  as  suf-  from   the   commencement  of  Gre- 

1  ficed  for  walking  the   sixty  fur-  gory   Nazianzen's   eighteenth    Ho- 

1  longs    between   the   two    places ;  mily,  being  his  third  "  Oratio  de 

'  and   during  this   interval  it    was  "  pace." 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  729 

by  nature,  He  knows  what  is  hidden,  and  that  the  tumultuous 
thoughts  within  them  escape  Him  not :  for  He  said,  "Why  are 
"  ye  troubled?"  And  this  is  a  very  plain  proof  that  He  Whom 
they  see  before  them  is  not  some  other  person,  but  the  very 
same  Whom  they  had  seen  both  suffering  death  upou  the  cross 
and  laid  in  the  tomb,  even  Him  Who  sees  reins  and  heart,  and 
from  Whom  nothing  that  is  in  us  is  hid.  This  therefore  He 
gives  them  as  a  sign,  His  knowledge  namely  of  the  tumult  of 
thoughts  that  was  within  them.  And  to  prove  moreover  in 
another  way  that  both  death  is  conquered,  and  that  human 
nature  has  put  off  corruption  in  Him  as  the  foremost,  He  shews 
His  hands  and  His  feet,  and  the  holes  of  the  nails,  and  permits 
them  to  handle  Him,  and  in  every  way  convince  themselves 
that  the  very  body  which  had  suffered  was,  as  I  said,  risen. 
Let  no  one  therefore  cavil  at  the  resurrection1, :  and  though 
thou  hearest  the  sacred  Scripture  say  of  the  human  body,  that 
"  it  is  sown  an  animal  body,  it  is  raised  a  spiritual  body,"  do  i  Cor.  xv. 
not  deny  the  return  even  of  human  bodies  to  incorruption.  44' 
For  as  the  animal  is  that  which  follows  after,  and  is  subject 
to  animal,  that  is,  to  fleshly  lusts,  so  also  the  spiritual  is  that 
which  submits  itself  to  the  will  of  the  Holy  Ghost.  For  after 
the  resurrection  from  the  dead,  there  will  be  no  longer  the 
opportunity  for  carnal  affection,  but  the  goad  of  sin  will  be 
entirely  powerless.  That  very  (body)  therefore  which  has 
been  brought  down  to  the  earth,  shall  be  clothed  with  incor- 
ruption. 

That  the  disciples  therefore  might  be  quite  sure  that  it  is 
the  very  same  Who  suffered  and  was  buried  and  rose  again, 
He  shews,  as  I  said,  both  His  hands  and  feet :  and  He  bids 
them  be  fully  convinced  that  it  is  not  a  spirit,  as  they  thought, 
but  rather  in  very  truth  a  body,  saying,  "  And  ye  see  that  a 
"  spirit  hath  not  flesh  and  bones,  as  ye  see  Me  have."  For  a 
shadow  and  spirit  and  apparition  merely  could  not  endure  the 
touch  of  the  hand. 

Having3  then,  as  we  have  said,  shewn  His  hands  and  feet  to 

r  Cramer's  reading  is,  "  Let  no  edition,  however,  by  Nicolaus,  it  is 

"  one  cavil  at  the  common  resur-  said  to  be  taken  from  "an  anony- 

**  rection  of  us  all."  mous  author  in  the  Greek  Catena." 

s  This   extract  is   in  the  Aurea  S.  Cyril  can  scarcely  have  repeated 

Catena   ascribed  to  Cyril ;   in   the  himself  in  so  confused  a  manner, 

5a 


730  COMMENTARY  UPON 

the  disciples,  the  Lord  fully  convinced  them  that  the  body 
which  had  suffered  had  risen :  but,  to  produce  in  them  still 
further  a  yet  more  firmly-settled  faith  therein,  He  asked  for 
something  to  eat.  And  what  was  brought  was  a  piece  of 
broiled  fish,  which  He  took  and  ate  in  the  presence  of  them 
all.  Now  this  He  did  for  no  other  reason  than  clearly  to  shew 
them  that  He  Who  had  risen  from  the  dead  was  the  same 
Who  in  old  time  had  eaten  and  drunk  with  them  during  the 
whole  period  of  the  dispensation,  and  conversed  with  them  as 

Bar.  iii.  37.  a  man,  according  to  the  prophet's  voice  :  intending  them  to 
perceive  that  the  human  body  does  indeed  need  sustenance  of 
this  kind,  but  a  spirit  by  no  means  so.  Who  therefore  that 
claims  to  be  faithful,  and  receives  unhesitatingly  the  witness  of 
the  holy  evangelists,  can  any  longer  listen  to  the  fictions  of 

SoK7]ffia6-  heretics,  can  any  longer  endure  the  apparition-mongers  ?  For 
the  power  of  Christ  surpasses  human  enquiry,  nor  is  it  on  the 
level  of  the  understanding  of  ordinary  events.  He  ate  then  a 
piece  of  fish  because  of  the  resurrection  :  but  the  natural  con- 
sequences of  eating  by  no  means  followed  in  the  case  of  Christ, 

Mat.  xv.  as  the  unbeliever  might  object,  knowing  that  "  whatsoever  en- 
"  tereth  in  at  the  mouth,  must  necessarily  be  cast  out  and  go 
"  into  the  draught."  But  the  believer  will  admit  no  such 
cavils  into  his  mind,  but  leave  the  matter  to  the  power  of  God. 

Ver.  45.         Then  opened  He  their  mind  to  understand  the  Scriptures. 

When*  He  had  quieted  their  reasonings  by  what  He  said,  by 
the  touch  of  their  hands,  and  by  partaking  of  food,  He  then 
opened  their  mind  to  understand,  that  "  so  it  behoved  Him  to 
"  suffer,"  even  upon  the  wood  of  the  cross.  The  Lord  there- 
fore recalls  the  minds  of  the  disciples  to  what  He  had  before 
said  :  for  He  had  forewarned  them  of  His  sufferings  upon  the 
cross,  according  to  what  the  prophets  had  long  before  spoken  : 
and  He  opens  also  the  eyes  of  their  heart,  so  as  for  them  to 
understand  the  ancient  prophecies. 

The  Saviour  promises  the  disciples  the  descent  of  the  Holy 
Joel  U.  28.  Ghost,  which  God  had  announced  of  old  by  Joel,  and  power 

and   the   discussion   at   the  end  is  matter  thus  :   ov  (frvviKus  aXX'  oIko- 
scarcely  worthy  of  him.     Theophy-  m/iucfic  (^i^pdxxKfro. 
lact,  within  whose  range  it  much  *  This  and  the  two  following  ex- 
more    properly  comes,  settles   the  tracts  are  omitted  by  Cramer. 


THE  GOSPEL  OF  ST.  LUKE.  731 

from  above,  that  they  might  be  strong  and  invincible,  and 
without  all  fear  preach  to  men  everywhere  the  divine  mystery. 

He  says  unto  them  now  that  they  had  received  the  Spirit 
after  the  resurrection,  "  Receive  ye  the  Holy  Ghost,"  and  John  xx. 
adds,  "  But  tarry  ye  at  Jerusalem,  and  wait  for  the  promise  ^ct3 : 
"  of  the  Father,  which  ye  have  heard  of  2Ie.  For  John  indeed 
"  baptized  with  water,  but  ye  shall  be  baptized  with  the  Holv 
"  Ghost ;"  in  water  no  longer,  for  that  they  had  received,  but 
with  the  Holy  Ghost :  He  does  not  add  water  to  water,  but 
completes  that  which  was  deficient  by  adding  what  was  want- 
ing to  it. 

Having  blessed  them,  and  gone  a  little  in  advance,  He  was 
carried  up  unto  heaven,  that  He  might  share  the  Father's 
throne  even  with  the  flesh  that  was  united  unto  Him.  And 
this  new  pathway  the  Word  made  for  us  when  He  appeared  in 
human  form  :  and  hereafter  in  dne  time  He  will  come  again  in 
the  glory  of  His  Father  with  the  angels,  and  will  take  us  up 
to  be  with  Him. 

Let  us  glorify  therefore  Him  Who  being  God  the  Word  be- 
came man  for  our  sakes :  Who  suffered  willingly  in  the  flesh, 
and  arose  from  the  dead,  and  abolished  corruption :  Who  was 
taken  up,  and  hereafter  shall  come  with  great  glory  to  judge 
the  living  and  the  dead,  and  to  give  to  every  one  according  to 
his  deeds :  by  Whom  and  with  Whom  to  God  the  Father  be 
glory  and  power  with  the  Spirit u  for  ever  and  ever.    Amen. 

u  Cramer  adds  navayla,  "  with  the  all-holy  Spirit." 


LAUS    DEO. 


IN  COMPLIANCE  WITH  CURRENT 

COPYRIGHT  LAW 

OCKER  &  TRAPP,  INC. 

AND 

PRINCETON  THEOL.  SEMINARY 

PRODUCED  THIS  REPLACEMENT  VOLUME 

ON  WEYERHAEUSER  COUGAR  OPAQUE  NATURAL  PAPER, 

THAT  MEETS  ANSI/NISO  STANDARDS  239.48-1992 

TO  REPLACE  THE  IRREPARABLY 

DETERIORATED  ORIGINAL.       1996 


1    1012  01121   5524 


DATE  DUE 

Hrflr^, 

lk£&^" 

4*MN£* 

A^^^ 

S5* 

•S0 

HIGHSMITH  # 

4523 

0 

Primed 
In  USA